Quotations.ch
  Directory : The Life and Opinions of Tristram Shandy, Gentleman
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Life and Opinions of Tristram Shandy,
  • Gentleman, by Laurence Sterne
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org/license
  • Title: The Life and Opinions of Tristram Shandy, Gentleman
  • Author: Laurence Sterne
  • Commentator: George Saintsbury
  • Release Date: March 26, 2012 [EBook #39270]
  • Language: English
  • Character set encoding: UTF-8
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK TRISTRAM SHANDY ***
  • Produced by Louise Hope, Malcolm Farmer and the Online
  • Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
  • [Transcriber’s Note:
  • This text uses UTF-8 (Unicode) file encoding. If the apostrophes and
  • quotation marks in this paragraph appear as garbage, make sure your
  • text reader’s “character set” or “file encoding” is set to Unicode
  • (UTF-8). You may also need to change the default font. As a last
  • resort, use the Latin-1 version of the file instead.
  • Text marked #like this# was printed in blackletter (“Gothic”) type.
  • Nested _lines_ represent emphatic Roman text within Italic body text.
  • The notation [-->] represents a pointing finger.
  • The editor’s Introduction says:
  • No attempt has been made to correct any oddities of spelling
  • that are not clearly mere misprints.
  • The same principle was used in the e-text. Unless otherwise noted,
  • spelling, punctuation and capitalization are as in the original.
  • Typographical errors are listed at the end of the text. Footnotes
  • are numbered by Book, and are shown at the end of each chapter. All
  • footnotes to the word “volume” have the same text.
  • Except for footnotes and similar obvious additions, all brackets are in
  • the original.]
  • Everyman’s Library
  • Edited By Ernest Rhys
  • FICTION
  • TRISTRAM SHANDY
  • With An Introduction By
  • GEORGE SAINTSBURY
  • This is No. 617 of _EVERYMAN’S LIBRARY_. The Publishers will be
  • pleased to send freely to all applicants a list of the published
  • and projected volumes, arranged under the following sections:
  • Travel * Science * Fiction
  • Theology & Philosophy
  • History * Classical
  • For Young People
  • Essays * Oratory
  • Poetry & Drama
  • Biography
  • Reference
  • Romance
  • [Decoration]
  • In four styles of binding: Cloth, Flat Back, Coloured Top;
  • Leather, Round Corners, Gilt Top; Library Binding in Cloth,
  • & Quarter Pigskin
  • London: J. M. DENT & SONS, Ltd.
  • New York: E. P. DUTTON & CO.
  • [Decorative Text:
  • A TALE
  • WHICH
  • HOLDETH
  • CHILDREN
  • FROM PLAY
  • & OLD MEN
  • FROM THE
  • CHIMNEY
  • CORNER
  • Sir Philip Sidney]
  • [Decorative Text:
  • THE LIFE &
  • OPINIONS of
  • TRISTRAM
  • SHANDY *
  • GENTLEMAN
  • By LAURENCE
  • * STERNE
  • London & Toronto
  • J·M·Dent & Sons
  • Ltd. * New York
  • E·P·Dutton & Co]
  • First Issue of this Edition 1912
  • Reprinted 1915, 1917
  • INTRODUCTION
  • It can hardly be said that Sterne was an unfortunate person during his
  • lifetime, though he seems to have thought himself so. His childhood was
  • indeed a little necessitous, and he died early, and in debt, after some
  • years of very bad health. But from the time when he went to Cambridge,
  • things went on the whole very fairly well with him in respect of
  • fortune; his ill-health does not seem to have caused him much disquiet;
  • his last ten years gave him fame, flirting, wandering, and other
  • pleasures and diversions to his heart’s content; and his debts only
  • troubled those he left behind him. He delighted in his daughter; he was
  • able to get rid of his wife, when he was more than usually _fatigatus et
  • aegrotus_ of her, with singular ease. During the unknown, or almost
  • unknown, middle of his life he had friends of the kind most congenial to
  • him; and both in his time of preparation and his time of production in
  • literature, he was able to indulge his genius in a way by no means
  • common with men of letters. If his wish to die in a certain manner and
  • circumstance was only bravado--and borrowed bravado--still it was
  • granted; and it is quite certain that to him an old age of real illness
  • would have been unmitigated torture. Even if we admit the ghastly
  • stories of the fate of his remains, there was very little reason why any
  • one should not have anticipated Mr. Swinburne’s words on the morrow of
  • Sterne’s death and said, “Oh! brother, the gods were good to you,”
  • though even then he might have said it with a sort of mental reservation
  • on the question whether Sterne had been very good to the gods.
  • Nemesis, for the purpose of adjusting things, played him the
  • exceptionally savage trick of using the intervention of his idolised
  • daughter. Little or nothing seems to be known of “Lydia Sterne de
  • Medalle,” as she was pleased to sign herself; “Mrs. Medalle,” as her
  • bluff British contemporaries call her. But that she must have been
  • either a very silly, a very stupid, or an excessively callous person,
  • appears certain. It would seem, indeed, to require a combination of the
  • flightiness and lack of taste which her father too often displayed, with
  • the stolidity which (from rather unfair inference through Mrs. Shandy)
  • is sometimes supposed to have characterised her mother, to prompt or
  • permit a daughter to publish such a collection of letters as those which
  • were first given to the world in 1775. Charity, not unsupported by
  • probability, has trusted that Madame de Medalle could not read Latin,
  • but she certainly could read English; and only an utterly corrupted
  • heart, or an incurably dense or feather-brained head, could hide from
  • her the fact that not a few of the English letters she published were
  • damaging to her father’s character. Her alleged excuse--that her mother,
  • who was then dead, had desired her, if any letters should be published
  • under her father’s name, to publish these, and that the “Yorick and
  • Eliza” correspondence had appeared--is utterly insufficient. For Mrs.
  • Sterne, of whose conduct we know nothing unfavourable, and one or two
  • things decidedly to her credit, could only have meant “such of these as
  • will put your father in a favourable light,” else she would have
  • published them herself. Yet though Lydia could, while taking no
  • editorial trouble whatever, go out of her way to make a silly missish
  • apology for publishing a passage in which her charms and merits are
  • celebrated, she seems never to have given a thought to what she was
  • doing in other ways. Nor were Sterne’s misfortunes in this way over with
  • the publication of these things; for the subsequently discovered
  • Fourmentelle correspondence sunk him, with precise judges, a little
  • deeper. No doubt _Tristram Shandy_, the _Sentimental Journey_, and the
  • curious stories or traditions about their author, were not exactly
  • calculated to give Sterne a very high reputation with grave authorities.
  • But it is these unlucky letters which put him almost hopelessly out of
  • court. Even the slight relenting of fortune which gave him at last, in
  • Mr. Percy Fitzgerald, a biographer very good-natured, very
  • indefatigable, and with a natural genius for detecting undiscovered
  • facts and documents, only made matters worse in some ways. And the
  • consequence is, that it has become a commonplace and almost a necessity
  • to make up for praising Sterne’s genius by damning his character.
  • Johnson, while declining to deny him ability, seems to have been too
  • much disgusted to talk freely about him; Scott’s natural kindliness,
  • warm admiration for my Uncle Toby, and total freedom from squeamish
  • prudery, seem yet to have left him ill at ease and tongue-tied in
  • discussing Sterne; Thackeray, as is well known, exceeded all measure in
  • denouncing him; and his chief recent critical biographer, Mr. Traill,
  • who is probably as free from cant, Britannic or other, as any man who
  • ever wrote in English, speaks his mind in the most unsparing fashion.
  • For my own part, I do not hesitate to say that I do not think letters of
  • this kind ought to be published at all; and though it may seem
  • paradoxical or foolish, I am by no means sure that, if they are
  • published, they ought to be admitted as evidence. That which is not
  • written for the public, is no business of the public’s; and I never read
  • letters of this kind, published for the first time, without feeling like
  • an eavesdropper.[I.1] Unluckily, the evidence furnished by the letters
  • fits in only too well with that furnished by the published works, by his
  • favourite cronies and companions, and by his general reputation, so that
  • “what the prisoner says” must, no doubt, “be used against him.”
  • [Footnote I.1: It is perhaps barely necessary to observe that
  • the parallel does not extend to a further parallel between
  • republication and tale-bearing. Once published, the thing is
  • public.]
  • * * * * *
  • It may be doubted whether it was accident or his usual deliberate
  • fantasticality that made Sterne, in the well-known summary of his life
  • which (very late in it) he drew up for his daughter, devote almost the
  • whole space to his childhood. Perhaps it may be accounted for,
  • reasonably enough, by supposing that of his later years he thought his
  • daughter knew quite as much as he wished her to know, while of the
  • middle period he had little or nothing to tell. In fact, of the two
  • earlier divisions we still know very little but what he has chosen to
  • tell us in one of the most characteristic and not the least charming
  • excursions of his pen. Laurence Sterne was, with two sisters, the only
  • “permanent child” (to borrow a pleasant phrase of Mr. Traill’s) out of a
  • very plentiful but most impermanent family, borne in the most
  • inconvenient circumstances possible by Agnes Nuttle or Herbert or
  • Sterne, a widow, and daughter or stepdaughter of a sutler of our army in
  • Flanders, to Roger, second son of Simon Sterne of Elvington, in
  • Yorkshire, who was the third son of Dr. Richard Sterne, Archbishop of
  • York. The Sternes were of a gentle if not very distinguished family,
  • which, after being seated in Suffolk, migrated to Nottinghamshire. After
  • the promotion of the archbishop (who had been a stout cavalier, as
  • Master of Jesus at Cambridge, in the bad times), they obtained, as was
  • fitting, divers establishments by marriage or benefice in Yorkshire
  • itself. Very little endowment of any kind, however, fell to the lot of
  • Roger Sterne, who was an ensign in what ranked later as the 34th
  • regiment. Laurence, his eldest son, was born at Clonmel, in Ireland,
  • where his mother’s relations lived, and just after his father’s regiment
  • had been disbanded. It was shortly re-established, however, and became
  • the most “marching” of all marching corps; for though its headquarters
  • were generally in Ireland, it was constantly being ordered elsewhere,
  • and Roger Sterne saw active service both at Vigo and Gibraltar. In this
  • latter station he fought a duel of an extremely Shandean character
  • “about a goose.” He was run through the body and pinned to the wall;
  • whereupon, it is said, he requested his antagonist to be so kind as to
  • wipe the plaster off the sword before pulling it out of his body. In
  • despite of this thoughtfulness, however, and of an immediate recovery,
  • the wound so weakened him that, being ordered to Jamaica, he took fever
  • and died there in March 1731. As Lawrence had been born on November 24,
  • 1713, he was nearly eighteen; and the family had meanwhile been
  • increased by four other children who all died, and a youngest daughter,
  • Catherine, who, like the eldest, Mary, lived. Till he was about nine or
  • ten the boy followed the exceedingly fluctuating fortunes of his family,
  • which he diversified further on by falling through, not a millrace, but
  • a going mill. Then he was sent to school at Halifax, in Yorkshire, and
  • soon after practically adopted by his cousin Sterne of Elvington, who,
  • when the time came, sent him to Jesus College at Cambridge, the family
  • connection with which had begun with his great-grandfather. He was
  • admitted there on July 6, 1733, being then nearly twenty, and took his
  • degree of B.A. in 1736, and that of M.A. in 1740. The only tradition of
  • his school career is his own story that, having written his name on the
  • school ceiling, he was whipped by the usher, but complimented as a “boy
  • of genius” by the master, who said the name should never be effaced.
  • This anecdote, as might be expected, has not escaped the _aqua fortis_
  • of criticism.
  • We know practically nothing of Sterne’s Cambridge career except the
  • dates above mentioned, the fact of his being elected first to a
  • sizarship and then as founder’s kin to a scholarship endowed by
  • Archbishop Sterne, and the incident told by himself that he there
  • contracted his lifelong friendship with a distant relative and fellow
  • Jesus man, John Hall, or John Hall Stevenson, of whom more presently.
  • But Sterne had further reason to acknowledge that his family stood
  • together. He had no sooner taken his degree, than he was taken up by a
  • brother of his father’s, Jaques Sterne, a great pluralist in the diocese
  • of York, a very busy and masterful person, and a strong Whig and
  • Hanoverian. Under his care, Sterne took deacon’s orders in March 1736 at
  • the hands of the Bishop of Lincoln; and as soon as, two years later, he
  • had been ordained priest, he was appointed to the living of
  • Sutton-on-the-Forest, eight miles from York. The uncle and nephew some
  • years later quarrelled bitterly--according to the latter’s account,
  • because he would not write “dirty paragraphs in the newspapers,” being
  • “no party man.” That Sterne would have been particularly squeamish about
  • what he wrote may be doubted; but it is certain that he shows no
  • partisan spirit anywhere, and very little interest in politics as such.
  • However, for some years his uncle was certainly his active patron, and
  • obtained for him two prebends and some other special preferments in
  • connection with the diocese and chapter of York, so that he became, as
  • _Tristram_ shows, intimately acquainted with cathedral society there.
  • It has been a steady rule in the Anglican Church (if not, as in the
  • Greek, a _sine quâ non_) that when a man has been provided with a
  • living, he should, if he has not done so before, provide himself with a
  • wife; and Sterne was a very unlikely man to break good custom in this
  • respect. Very soon at least after his ordination he fell in love with
  • Elizabeth Lumley, a young lady of a good Yorkshire family, and of some
  • little fortune, which, however, for a time she thought “not enough” to
  • share with him, but which, as she told him during a fit of illness, she
  • left to him in her will. On the strength of two quite unauthenticated
  • and, I believe, not now traceable portraits seen by this or that person
  • in printshops or elsewhere, she is said to have been plain. Certain
  • expressions in Sterne’s letters seem to imply that she had a rather
  • exasperatingly steady and not too intelligent will of her own; and some
  • twenty or five and twenty years after the marriage, M. Tollot,
  • a gossiping Frenchman, with French ideas on the duty of husbands and
  • wives going separate ways, said that she wished to have a finger in
  • every pie, and pestered “the good and agreeable Tristram” with her
  • presence. But Sterne, despite his reckless confessions of conjugal
  • indifference, and worse, says nothing serious or even ill-natured of
  • her; and one or two traits and sayings of hers, especially her refusal
  • to listen to a meddlesome person who wished to tell her tales about
  • “Eliza,” seem to argue sense and dignity. That in the latter years she
  • cared little to be with a husband who had long been “tired and sick” of
  • her is not to her discredit. Their daughter, with the almost invariable
  • ill-luck or ill-judgment which seems to have attended her, printed
  • certain letters of this courtship time, though she gave nothing for many
  • years afterwards. The use made of these Strephon or Damon blandishments,
  • in contrast with the expressions used by the writer of his wife, and of
  • other women, long afterwards, is perhaps a little unfair; but it must be
  • admitted that though far too characteristic and amusing to be omitted,
  • they are anything but brilliant specimens of their kind. In particular,
  • Thackeray’s bitter fun on the ineffably lackadaisical passage, “My L.
  • has seen a polyanthus blow in December,” is pretty fully justified.
  • If, however, the marriage, which, difficulties being removed, took place
  • on Easter Monday, March 30, 1741, did not bring lasting happiness to
  • Sterne, it probably brought him some at the time, and it certainly
  • brought him an accession of fortune; for in addition to what little
  • money Miss Lumley had, a friend of hers bestowed the additional living
  • of Stillington on her husband. These various sources of income must have
  • made a tolerable revenue, which, after the publication of _Tristram_,
  • was further supplemented by yet another benefice given him by Lord
  • Falconbridge at Coxwold, a living of no great value, but a pleasant
  • place of residence. Add to this the profits of his books in the last
  • eight years of his life, which were for that day considerable, and it
  • will be seen that, as has been said above, Sterne might have been much
  • worse off in this world’s goods than he was. He seems, like other
  • people, to have made some rather costly experiments in farming; and his
  • way of life latterly, what with his own journeys and sojourns in London,
  • and the long separate residence of his wife and daughter in France, was
  • expensive. But he complains little of poverty; and though he died in
  • debt, much of that debt was due to no fault of his, but to the burning
  • of the parsonage of Sutton.
  • It is all the more remarkable in one way, though the absence of any
  • pressure of want may explain it in another, that Sterne’s great literary
  • gifts should have remained so long without finding any kind of literary
  • expression, unless it was in the newspaper way, in respect to which he
  • first obliged and afterwards disobliged his uncle. There is, I believe,
  • no dispute about the fact that he distances, and that by many years,
  • every other man of letters of anything like his rank--except Cowper,
  • whose affliction puts him out of comparison--in the lateness of his
  • fruiting time. All but a quarter of a century had passed since he took
  • his degree when _Tristram Shandy_ appeared; and, putting sermons aside,
  • the very earliest thing of his known, _The History of a Good Watch
  • Coat_, only antedated _Tristram_ by two years or rather less. He was no
  • doubt “making himself all this time;” but the making must have been an
  • uncommonly slow process. Nor did he, like a good many writers, occupy
  • the time in preparing what he was afterwards to publish, unless in the
  • case of a few of his sermons. It is positively known that _Tristram_ was
  • written merely as it was published, and the _Journey_ likewise. Nor is
  • even the first by any means a long book. It is as nearly as possible the
  • same length as Fielding’s _Amelia_ when printed straight on; and even
  • then more allowance has to be made, not merely for its free and
  • audacious plagiarisms, but for its constantly broken paragraphs, stars,
  • dashes, and other trickeries. If it were possible to squeeze it up, as
  • one squeezes a sponge, into the solid texture of an ordinary book,
  • I doubt whether it would be very much longer than _Joseph Andrews_.
  • It will probably be admitted, however, that the idiosyncrasy of the
  • writings of Sterne’s last and incomplete decade, even if it be in part
  • only an idiosyncrasy of mannerism, is almost great enough to justify the
  • nearly three decades of _Lehrjahre_ (starting from his entrance at
  • Cambridge) which preceded it. It is true that of the actual occupations
  • of these years we know extremely little--indeed, what we know as
  • distinguished from what is guesswork and inference is mostly summed up
  • by Sterne’s own current and curvetting pen thus: “I remained near twenty
  • years at Sutton, doing duty at both places [_i.e._, Sutton and
  • Stillington]. I had then very good health. Books, painting, fiddling,
  • and shooting were my amusements;” to which he adds only that he and the
  • squire of Sutton were not very good friends, but that at Stillington the
  • Croft family were extremely kind and amiable. From other sources,
  • including, it is true, his own letters--though the dates and allusions
  • of these are so uncertain that they are very doubtful guides--we find
  • that his chief crony during this period, as during his life, was the
  • already-mentioned John Hall, who had taken to the name of Stevenson, and
  • was master of Skelton Castle, a very old and curious house on the border
  • of the Cleveland moors, not far from the town of Guisborough. The master
  • of “Crazy” Castle--he liked to give his house this name, which he
  • afterwards used in entitling his book of _Crazy Tales_--his ways and his
  • library, have usually been charged with debauching Sterne’s innocent
  • mind, which I should imagine lent itself to that process in a most
  • docile and _morigerant_ fashion; but whether this was the case or not,
  • it is clear that Stevenson bore no very good reputation. It is not
  • certain, but was asserted, that he had been a monk of Medmenham. He
  • gathered about him at Skelton a society which, though no such
  • imputations were made on it as on that of Wilkes and Dashwood, was of a
  • pretty loose kind; he was a humourist, both in the old and the modern
  • sense; and his _Crazy Tales_ were, if not very mad, rather sad and bad
  • exercises of the imagination.
  • Amid all this dream- and guess-work, almost the only solid facts in
  • Sterne’s life are the births of two daughters, one in 1745, and the
  • other two years later. Both were christened Lydia; the first died soon
  • after she was born, the second lived to be the darling of both her
  • parents, the object of the most respectable emotions of Sterne’s life,
  • the wife of an unknown Frenchman, M. de Medalle, and, as has been said,
  • the probably unwitting destroyer of her father’s last chance of
  • reputation.
  • Our exuberant nescience in matters Sternian extends up to the very
  • publication of _Tristram_, as far as the determining causes of its
  • production are concerned. It is true that in passages of the letters
  • Sterne seems to say that his experiment with the pen was prompted by a
  • desire to make good some losses in farming, and elsewhere that he was
  • tired of employing his brains for other people’s advantage, as he had
  • done for some years for an ungrateful person, that is to say, his uncle.
  • This last passage was written just before _Tristram_ came out; but at no
  • time was Sterne a very trustworthy reporter of his own motives, and it
  • would seem that the quarrel with his uncle must have been a good deal
  • earlier. At any rate, the year 1759 seems to have been spent in writing
  • the first two volumes of the book, and _The Life and Opinions of
  • Tristram Shandy, Gent._, published by John Hinxham, Stonegate, York, but
  • obtainable also from divers London booksellers, appeared on the 1st of
  • January 1760. I wish Sterne had thought of keeping it till the 1st of
  • April, which he would probably then have done.
  • The comparatively short last scenes of his life were as busy and varied
  • as his long middle course had been outwardly monotonous. Although his
  • book was nominally published at York, he had gone up to London to
  • superintend arrangements for its sale there, perhaps not without a hope
  • of triumph. If so, Fortune chose not to play him her usual tricks. In
  • York, the extreme personality of the book excited interest of a twofold
  • and dubious kind; but, to play on some words of Dryden’s, “London liked
  • grossly” and swallowed _Tristram Shandy_ whole with singular avidity.
  • Its author came to town just in time to enjoy the results of this, and
  • was one of the chief lions of the season of 1760, a position which he
  • enjoyed with a childish frankness that is not the least pleasant thing
  • in his history. One, probably of the least important, though by accident
  • one of the best known of his innumerable flirtations, with a Miss
  • Fourmentelle, was apparently quenched by this distraction when it was on
  • the point of going such lengths that the lady had actually come up alone
  • to London to meet Sterne there. He was introduced to persons as
  • different as Garrick and Warburton, from the latter of whom he received,
  • in rather mysterious circumstances, a present of money. He haunted
  • Ministers and Knights of the Garter; he was overwhelmed with invitations
  • and callers; and, as has been said, he received one very solid present
  • in the shape of the living of Coxwold. _Tristram_ went into a second
  • edition rapidly; its author was enabled to announce a collection of
  • “_Sermons_ by Mr. Yorick” in April; and he went to his new living in the
  • early summer, determined to set to work vigorously on more of the work
  • that had been so fortunate. By the end of the year he was ready with two
  • more volumes, again came up to town, and again, when vols. iii. and iv.
  • had appeared, at the end of January 1761, was besieged by admirers. For
  • these two he received £380 from Dodsley, who had fought shy of the book
  • earlier. They were quite as successful as the first pair; and again
  • Sterne stayed all the spring and earlier summer in London, returning to
  • Yorkshire to make more _Shandy_ in the autumn. He was still quicker over
  • the third batch, and it was published in December 1761, when he was
  • again in town, but he now meditated a longer flight. His health had been
  • really declining, and he obtained leave from the archbishop for a year
  • certain, and perhaps two, that he might go to the south of France. He
  • was warmly received in Paris, where his work had obtained a popularity
  • which it has never wholly lost, and the framework of fact (including the
  • passport difficulties) for the _Sentimental Journey_, as well as for the
  • seventh volume of _Tristram_, was laid during the spring. His plans were
  • now changed, it being determined that his wife and daughter (who had
  • inherited his constitution) should join him. They did so after some
  • difficulties, and the consumptive novelist, having spent all the winter
  • in one of the worst climates in Europe, that of the French capital,
  • started with his family in the torrid heats of July for Toulouse, where
  • at last they were established about the middle of August.
  • Toulouse became Sterne’s abode for nearly a year, his headquarters for a
  • somewhat longer period, and the home of his wife and daughter, with
  • migrations to Bagnères, Montpellier, and a great many other places in
  • France, for about five years. He himself--he had been ill at Toulouse,
  • and worse at Montpellier--reached England again (after a short stay in
  • Paris) during the early summer of 1764. Nor was it till January 1765
  • that the seventh and eighth volumes of _Tristram_ appeared. As usual
  • Sterne went to town to receive the congratulations of the public, which
  • seem to have been fairly hearty; for though the instalment immediately
  • preceding had not been an entire success, the longer interval had now
  • had its effect not merely on the art and materials of the caterer, but
  • on the appetite of his guests. He followed this up with two more volumes
  • of Sermons, of a much more characteristic kind than his earlier venture
  • in this way, and published partly by subscription. These, however, were
  • not actually issued till 1766. Meanwhile, in October 1765, Sterne had
  • set out for his second attempt in travel on the Continent, which was to
  • supply the remaining material for the _Sentimental Journey_, and to be
  • prolonged as far as Naples. Little is known of his winter stay at that
  • city and in Rome. On his way homeward he met his wife and daughter in
  • Franche-Comté, but at Mrs. Sterne’s request left them there, and went on
  • alone to Coxwold.
  • He reached England in extremely bad health, and never left it again; but
  • he had still nearly two years of fairly well filled life to run. The
  • ninth, or last volume of _Tristram_ occupied him during the autumn of
  • 1766, and was produced with the invariable accompaniment of its author’s
  • appearance in London during January 1767. This visit, which lasted till
  • May, saw the flirtation with “Eliza” Draper, the young wife of an Indian
  • official, who was at home for her health, an affair which exalted Sterne
  • in the eyes of eighteenth-century sensibility, especially in France,
  • about as much as it has depressed him in the eyes not merely of the
  • propriety, not merely of the common sense, but of the romance of later
  • times. He was very ill when he got back to Coxwold, but recovered, and
  • in October was joined by his wife and daughter. Even then, however, the
  • community was a very temporary and divided one, for he took a house for
  • them at York, and they were not to stay in England beyond the spring. He
  • himself finished what we have of the _Sentimental Journey_, and went to
  • London with it, where it was published rather later than usual, on the
  • 27th February 1768. Three weeks later its author, at his lodgings at 41
  • New Bond Street, in the presence only of a hired nurse and a footman,
  • who had been sent by some of his friends to inquire after him, took a
  • journey other than sentimental, and so far unreported. Some odd but not
  • very well authenticated stories gathered round his death, which occurred
  • on Friday the 18th March. It was said, and it is probable enough, that
  • his gold sleeve-links were stolen by his landlady. After his funeral,
  • scantily attended, at the burying-ground of St. George’s, Hanover
  • Square, opposite Hyde Park (which used to be known by the squalid brown
  • of its unrestored, and afterwards made more hideous by the bedizened red
  • of its restored chapel), his body is said to have been snatched by
  • resurrection men. And the myth is rounded off by the addition that the
  • remains, having been sold to the professor of anatomy at Cambridge, were
  • dissected there in public, one of the spectators, a friend of Sterne’s,
  • recognising the face too late, and fainting.
  • His affairs, which had never been managed in a very business-like
  • manner, were in considerable disorder. Some years before, the
  • carelessness of his curate had caused or allowed the parsonage at Sutton
  • to be burnt to the ground; and Sterne, besides losing valuable effects
  • of his own, was of course liable for the rebuilding. He managed to put
  • this off till his death, after which his widow and administratrix was
  • sued for dilapidations. These, as she was in very poor circumstances,
  • had to be compounded for sixty pounds only, but they probably ranked for
  • a much larger sum in the £1100 at which Sterne’s indebtedness was
  • reckoned. His widow had a little money of her own: £800 was collected
  • for her and her daughter at York races; there must have been profits
  • from the copyrights; and a fresh collection of _Sermons_ was issued by
  • subscription. But though very little is known about the pair, they are
  • said to have been ill off. They applied first to Wilkes and then to
  • Stevenson to write a life of Sterne to prefix to his Works, but neither
  • complied. Mr. Fitzgerald, who seldom deserves the curse laid on those
  • who use harsh judgment, is very severe on both for this. Yet surely
  • each, considering his own reputation, must have felt that he was the
  • last person to set Sterne right with the stricter part of society, and
  • that to write a “Crazy” or “Shandean” life of him would be a cruel
  • crime. It is not known exactly when Lydia married, or when either she or
  • her mother died. Mrs. Sterne must have been dead by 1775, the date of
  • the publication of the letters; Lydia is said to have perished in the
  • French Revolution.
  • Beginning authorship very late in life, having schooled himself to an
  • intensely artificial method, both in style and in construction, and not
  • allowed by Fate more than a few years in which to write at all, Sterne,
  • as is natural, displays a great uniformity throughout his work. Indeed,
  • it might be said that he has written but one book, _Tristram Shandy_.
  • The _Sentimental Journey_ (as to the relative merits of which, compared
  • with the earlier and larger work, there is a _polemos aspondos_ between
  • the Big-endians and the Little-endians of Sternism) is after all only an
  • expansion of the seventh book of Tristram, with _fioriture_, variations,
  • and new divertisements. The sermon which occurs so early is an actual
  • sermon of “Yorick’s,” and a sufficient specimen of his more serious
  • concionatory vein; many, if not most of his letters might have been
  • twined into _Tristram_ without being in the least degree more out of
  • place than most of its actual contents. And so there is more propriety
  • than depends upon the mere fact that _Tristram Shandy_ is the earliest
  • and the largest part of its author’s work, in making no extremely
  • scholastic distinction between the specially Shandean and the generally
  • Sternian characteristics; for, indeed, all Sterne is in it more or less
  • eminently.
  • No less a critic than M. Scherer has given his sanction to the idea that
  • in Sterne we have a special, if not even _the_ special, type of the
  • humourist; and probably few people who have given no particular thought
  • or attention to the matter, would refuse to agree with him. I am myself
  • inclined rather to a demur, or, at any rate, to a distinction, though
  • few better things have been written about humour itself than a passage
  • in M. Scherer’s essay on our author. Sterne has no doubt in a very
  • eminent degree the sense of contrast, which all the best critics admit
  • to be the root of humour--the note of the humourist. But he has it
  • partially, occasionally, and, I should even go as far as to say, not
  • _greatly_. The _great_ English humourists, I take it, are Shakespeare,
  • Swift, Fielding, Thackeray, and Carlyle. All these--even Fielding, whose
  • eighteenth-century manner, the contemporary and counterpart of Sterne’s,
  • cannot hide the truth--apply the humourist contrast, the humourist sense
  • of the irony of existence, to the great things, the _prima et
  • novissima_. They see, and feel, and show the simultaneous sense of Death
  • and Life, of Love and Loss, of the Finite and the Infinite. Sterne stops
  • a long way short of this; _les grands sujets lui sont défendus_ in
  • another sense than La Bruyère’s. It is scarcely too much to say that his
  • ostentatious preference for the _bagatelle_ was a real, and not in the
  • least affected fact. Nowhere, not in the true pathos of the famous
  • deathbed letter to Mrs. James, not in the, as it seems to me, by no
  • means wholly true pathos of the Le Fever episode, does he pierce to “the
  • accepted hells beneath.” He has an unmatched command of the lesser and
  • lower varieties of the humorous contrast--over the odd, the petty, the
  • queer, above all, over what the French untranslatably call the
  • _saugrenu_. His forte is the foible; his _cheval de bataille_, the
  • hobby-horse. If you want to soar into the heights, or plunge into the
  • depths of humour, Sterne is not for you. But if you want what his own
  • generation called a frisk on middle, _very_ middle-earth, a hunt in
  • curiosity-shops (especially of the technically “curious” description),
  • a peep into all manner of _coulisses_ and behind-scenes of human nature,
  • a ride on a sort of intellectual switchback, a view of moral, mental,
  • religious, sentimental dancing of all the kinds that have delighted man,
  • from the rope to the skirt, then have with Sterne in any direction he
  • pleases. He may sometimes a very little disgust you, but you will seldom
  • have just cause to complain that he disappoints and deceives.
  • The _Life and Opinions of Tristram Shandy, Gent._ (which, as it has been
  • excellently observed, is in reality based on the life of the gent’s
  • uncle, and the opinions of the gent’s father), is the largest and in
  • every way the chief field for these diversions. The apparatus, and, so
  • far as there can be said to have been one, the object with which Sterne
  • marked it out and filled it up, are clear, and even the former must have
  • been clear enough to anybody of some reading and some intelligence long
  • before the excellent Dr. Ferriar, in the spirit of a reverent
  • iconoclast, set himself to work to point out Sterne’s exact indebtedness
  • to Rabelais, Burton, Beroalde (if Beroalde wrote the _Moyen de
  • Parvenir_), Bruscambille, and the rest. Of this particular part of the
  • matter I do not think it necessary to say much. The charge of plagiarism
  • is usually an excessively idle one; for when a man of genius steals, he
  • always makes the thefts his own; and when a man steals without genius,
  • the thefts are mere fairy gold which turns to leaves and pebbles under
  • his hand. No doubt Sterne “lifted” in _Tristram_, and still more in the
  • _Sermons_, with rather more freedom and audacity than most men of
  • genius; but when we remember that he took Burton’s denunciation of the
  • practice and reproduced it (all but in Burton’s very words) as his own,
  • it must be clear to any one who is not very dull indeed that he was
  • playing an audacious practical joke. Where he is best, he does not steal
  • at all, and that is the only point of real importance.
  • It is somewhat more, I think, the business of the critic (who is here
  • more especially bound not to look only at the stop-watch) to note the
  • far more striking way in which Sterne borrowed, not actual passages and
  • words, but manner and style. Here, perhaps, we shall find him accountant
  • for a greater debt; and here also we may think that though his genius is
  • indisputable, he gives more reason to those who should deny him the
  • highest kind of genius. Beyond doubt not merely his reading, but his
  • temper and his characteristics of all kinds, inclined him to the style
  • to which the French fifteenth and sixteenth centuries gave the name of
  • _fatrasie_, or pillar-to-post divagation, with more or less of a covert
  • satiric aim. But if we compare the dealing of Swift with Cyrano de
  • Bergerac, the dealing of Fielding with the romance and novel as it
  • existed before his time, nay, the dealing of Shakespeare with the
  • Marlowe drama, we shall note a marked difference in Sterne’s procedure.
  • Nobody, even in his own day, who knew Rabelais at all could fail to
  • detect the almost servile following of manner in great things and in
  • small which _Tristram_ displays. No one--a much smaller designation--who
  • knows the strange, unedifying, but very far from commonplace book of
  • which, as I have hinted, I never can quite believe that Beroalde de
  • Verville was the author, can fail to detect an even closer, though a
  • somewhat less obvious and, so to speak, less verifiable following here.
  • In another region--the purgatory of all Sterne’s commentators--we can
  • trace this corrupt following as distinctly at least, though it has,
  • I think, been less often definitely attributed. Sterne’s too celebrated
  • indecency, is, with one exception, _sui generis_. No doubt much nonsense
  • has been and is talked about “indecency” in general literature. When it
  • is indulged, as it has been, for instance, in French of late, it becomes
  • a nuisance of the most loathsome kind. It is always perhaps better left
  • alone. But if it be a sin to laugh now and then frankly at what were
  • once called “gentlemen’s stories,” then not merely many a gallant,
  • noble, and not unwise gentleman, but I fear not a few ladies, both fair
  • and fine, are damned, with Shakespeare and Scott and Southey, with
  • Margaret of Navarre and Marie de Sévigné, to keep them in countenance.
  • Yet to merit indulgence, this questionable quality, in addition to being
  • treated as genius treats, must have certain sub-qualities, or freedoms
  • from quality, of its own. It must not be brutal and inhuman, since the
  • quality of humanity is the main thing that saves it. It must not be
  • underhand and sniggering. It must be frank and jovial, or frank and
  • passionate. Perhaps, in some cases, it may be saved, as Swift’s is to a
  • great extent, by the overmastering pessimism of despair, which enforces
  • its contempt of man and man’s fate by bringing forward these evidences
  • of his weakness. But Sterne can plead none of these exemptions. He has
  • neither the frank laughter of Aristophanes and Rabelais, nor the frank
  • passion of Catullus and Donne. He was incapable of feeling any _sæva
  • indignatio_ whatever. The attraction of the thing for him was, I fear,
  • merely the attraction of the improper, because it is improper; because
  • it shocks people, or makes them blush, or gives them an unholy little
  • quiver of sordid shamefaced delectation. His famous apology of the child
  • playing on the floor and showing in innocence what is not usually shown,
  • was desperately unlucky. For his displays are those of educated and
  • economic un-innocency. And he took this manner, I am nearly sure, wholly
  • and directly from Voltaire, who enjoys the unenviable copyright and
  • patent of it.
  • The third characteristic which Sterne took from others, which dyed his
  • work deeply, and which injured more than it helped it, was his famous,
  • his unrivalled, Sensibility or Sentimentalism. A great deal has been
  • written about this admired eighteenth-century device, and there is no
  • space here for discussing it. Suffice it to say, that although Sterne
  • certainly did not invent it--it had been inculcated by two whole
  • generations of French novelists before him, and had been familiar in
  • England for half a century--he has the glory, such as it is, of carrying
  • it to the farthest possible. The dead donkey and the live donkey, the
  • latter (as I humbly but proudly join myself to Mr. Thackeray and Mr.
  • Traill in thinking) far the finer animal; Le Fever and La Fleur; Maria
  • and Eliza; Uncle Toby’s fly, and poor Mrs. Sterne’s antenuptial
  • polyanthus; the stoics that Mr. Sterne (with a generous sense that he
  • was in no danger of that lash) wished to be whipped, and the critics
  • from whom he would have fled from Dan to Beersheba to be delivered;
  • --all the celebrated persons and passages of his works, all the
  • decorations and fireworks thereof, are directed mainly to the exhibition
  • of _Sensibility_, once so charming, now, alas! hooted and contemned of
  • the people!
  • And now it will be possible to have done with his foibles, all the rest
  • in Sterne being for praise, with hardly any mixture of blame. We have
  • seen what he borrowed from others, mostly to his hurt; let us now see
  • what he contributed of his own, almost wholly to his credit and
  • advantage. He had, in the first place, what most writers when they begin
  • almost invariably and almost inevitably lack, a long and carefully
  • amassed store, not merely of reading, but of observation of mankind.
  • Although his nearly fifty years of life had been in the ordinary sense
  • uneventful, they had given him opportunities which he had amply taken.
  • A “son of the regiment,” he had evidently studied with the greatest and
  • most loving care the ways of an army which still included a large
  • proportion of Marlborough’s veterans; and it has been constantly and
  • reasonably held that his chief study had been his father, whom he
  • evidently adored in a way. Roger Sterne is the admitted model of my
  • Uncle Toby; and I at least have no doubt that he was the original of Mr.
  • Shandy also, for some of the qualities which appear in his son’s
  • character of him are Walter’s, not Toby’s. It would have required,
  • perhaps, even greater genius than Sterne possessed, and an environment
  • less saturated with the delusive theory of the “ruling passion,” to have
  • given us the mixed and blended temperament instead of separating it into
  • two gentlemen at once, and making Walter Shandy all wayward intellect,
  • and Tobias all gentle goodness. But if it had been done--as Shakespeare
  • perhaps alone could have done it--we should have had a greater and more
  • human figure than either. Mr. Shandy would then never have come near, as
  • he does sometimes, to being a bore; and my Uncle Toby (if I may say so
  • without taking the wings of the morning to flee from the wrath of the
  • extreme Tobyolaters) would have been saved from the occasional
  • appearance of being something like a fool.
  • Still, these two are delightful even in their present dichotomy; and
  • Sterne was amply provided by his genius, working on his experience, with
  • company for them. His fancy portrait of himself as “Yorick” (his
  • unfeigned Shakespearianism is one of his best traits) is a little vague
  • and fantastic; and that of Eugenius, which is supposed to represent John
  • Hall Stevenson, is almost as slight as it is flattering. But Dr. Slop,
  • who is known to have been drawn (with somewhat unmerciful fidelity in
  • externals, but not at all unkindly when we look deeper) from Dr. Burton,
  • a well-known Jacobite practitioner who had suffered from the Hanoverian
  • zeal of Yorick’s uncle Jaques in the ’45, is a masterpiece. The York
  • dignitaries are veritable etchings in outline, more instinct with life
  • and individuality than a thousand elaborately painted pictures; all the
  • servants, Obadiah, Susannah, Bridget, and the rest, are the equals of
  • Fielding’s, or of Thackeray’s domestics; and though Tristram himself is
  • the shadow of a shade, I confess that I seem to see a vivid portrait in
  • the three or four strokes which alone give us “my dear, dear Jenny.” Mr.
  • Fitzgerald, succumbing to a not unnatural temptation, considering the
  • close juxtaposition in time, approximates this to the “dear, dear Kitty”
  • of the letters to Miss Catherine de Fourmentelle. But this, taking all
  • things together, would be a rather serious _scandalum damigellarum_; and
  • I do not think it necessary to identify, though the traits seem to me to
  • suit not ill with the few genuine ones in the letters about Mrs. Sterne
  • herself. That the “dear, dear” should be ironical more or less is quite
  • Shandean. All these, if not drawn directly from individuals (the lower
  • exercise), are first generalised and then precipitated into
  • individuality from a large observation (which is the infinitely higher
  • and better). I fear I must except Widow Wadman, save in the sentry-box
  • scene, from this encomium. But then Widow Wadman is not really a real
  • person. She is partly an instrument to put my Uncle Toby through some
  • new motions, and partly a cue to enable Sterne to indulge in his worst
  • foible. As for Trim, _quis vituperavit_ Trim? The lover of the “popish
  • clergywoman” is simply perfect, with a not much less good heart and a
  • much better head than his master’s, and in his own degree hardly less of
  • a gentleman.
  • The manner in which these delightful persons (I observe with shame that
  • I had omitted the modest worth of Mrs. Shandy, nearly the most
  • delightful of them all) are introduced to the reader, may have suffered
  • a little from that corrupt following of which enough has been said.
  • I can only say, that I would compound for a good deal more corruption of
  • the same kind, allied with a good deal less genius. It can scarcely be
  • doubted that there was a real pre-established harmony between Sterne’s
  • gifts and the _fatrasie_ manner; certainly this manner, if it sometimes
  • exhibited his weaknesses, gave rare opportunities to his strength. And
  • the same may be said of his style. He might certainly have given us less
  • of the typographical tricks with which he chose to bedizen and bedaub
  • it, and sometimes in his ultra-Rabelaisian moods --I do not mean of
  • _gauloiserie_ but of sheer fooling--we feel the falsetto rather
  • disastrously. It is constantly forgotten by unfavourable critics of
  • Rabelais that his extravagances were to a great extent, at any rate,
  • quite natural outbursts of animal spirits. The Middle Ages, though it
  • has become the fashion with those who know nothing about them to
  • represent them as ages of gloom, were probably the merriest time of this
  • world’s history; and the Reformation and the Renaissance, with their
  • pedantry and their puritanism, and worst of all their physical science,
  • had not quite killed the merriment when Rabelais wrote. But though
  • animal spirits still survived in Sterne’s day, it cannot be said that in
  • England, any more than elsewhere, there was much genuine merriment of
  • the honest, childish, mediæval kind, and thus his manner perpetually
  • jars. Still the style, independently of the tricks, was excellently
  • suited for the work. It is a moot point how far the extremely loose and
  • ungirt character of this style, which sometimes, and indeed often,
  • reaches sheer slovenliness and solecism, was intentional. I think myself
  • that it was nearly as deliberate as the asterisks, and the black and
  • marble pages. We know from the _Sermons_ that Sterne could write
  • carefully enough when he chose, and we know from the MS. of the
  • _Journey_ that he corrected sedulously. Nor is it likely that he had the
  • excuse of hurry. The shortest time that he ever took over one of his
  • two-volume batches was more than six months; and looking at the
  • practice, not of miracles of industry and facility like Scott, but of
  • rather dilatory writers like Thackeray, one would think that the
  • quantity (which is not more than a couple of hundred pages of one of
  • these present volumes) might be written in little more than six weeks.
  • At any rate, the style, conversational, unpretentious, too easy to be
  • jerky, and yet too broken to be sustained, suits subject and scheme as
  • few others could.
  • * * * * *
  • But there is perhaps little need to say more about a book which, though
  • some say that few read it through nowadays, is thoroughly well known in
  • outline and in its salient passages, and which will pretty certainly lay
  • hold of all fit readers as soon as they take to it. Of its writer a very
  • little more may perhaps be said, all the more so because those who, not
  • understanding critical admiration, think that biographers and editors
  • ought not only to be just and a little kind, but extravagantly partial
  • to their subjects, may conceive that I have been a little unjust, or, at
  • any rate, a little unkind to Sterne. If so, they have not read his own
  • extremely ingenious, and in general, if not in particular, very sound
  • attack on the adage _de mortuis_. But if not _nil nisi_, there is yet
  • very much _bonum_ to be said of Sterne. He was not merely endowed with a
  • singular and essential genius; he was not merely the representative and
  • mouthpiece, in a way hardly surpassed by any one, of a certain way of
  • thought and feeling more or less peculiar to his time. These were his
  • merits, his very great merits as a writer. But he had others, and great,
  • if not very great ones, as a man. Though never rich, he seems to have
  • been free from the fault of parsimony; and albeit he died in debt, not
  • deeply tainted with that of extravagance in money matters. For most of
  • his later expenditure was on others, and he might justly calculate on
  • his pen paying, and more than paying, his shot. Little love as there was
  • lost between him and his wife, he always took the greatest care to
  • provide for her wants in the rather costly severance of their
  • establishments, and never even in his most indiscreet moments hints a
  • grumble at her expenditure, a vice of which some people of much higher
  • general reputation have been known to be guilty. Though he was certainly
  • pleased at the attentions of “the great,” I do not know that there is
  • any just cause for accusing him of truckling to, or fawning on them
  • beyond the custom and courtesy of the time. For all his reckless humour,
  • there was no ill-nature in him. His worst enemies have admitted that his
  • affection for his daughter was very pretty and quite unaffected; and his
  • letters to and of Mrs. James show that he could think of a woman nobly
  • and wholesomely as a friend, for all his ignoble and unwholesome ways of
  • thought in regard to the sex. If it had not been for the cruel
  • indiscretion of his Lydia (which, however, has something of the old
  • virtue of conveying the balm as well as the sting), he would probably
  • have been much better thought of than he is. And considering the
  • delightful books here once more presented, I think we may consent to
  • forgive the faults which, after all, were mainly his own business, for
  • the merits by which we so largely benefit and for which he reaped no
  • over-bounteous guerdon.
  • GEORGE SAINTSBURY.
  • WORKS. --The Life and Opinions of Tristram Shandy, Vols. I. and II.,
  • 1759; III. and IV., 1761; V. and VI., 1762; VII. and VIII., 1765;
  • IX., 1767; first collected edition, 1767; numerous later editions,
  • chiefly of recent date. Sermons of Mr. Yorick, Vols. I. and II.,
  • 1760; III. and IV., 1766; V., VI., and VII., 1769. A Sentimental
  • Journey, 1768; many later editions; Letters from Yorick to Eliza,
  • 1775; Sterne’s Letters to his Friends on Various Occasions, 1775;
  • Letters of Laurence Sterne to his most intimate friends, 1775;
  • Original Letters never before published, 1788; Letters of Yorick and
  • Eliza, 1807; Seven Letters written by Sterne and his Friends,
  • hitherto unpublished, 1844; Unpublished Letters of Laurence Sterne,
  • edited by J. Murray, 1856.
  • Collected editions of the works of Laurence Sterne appeared in 1779,
  • 1780; edited by G. Saintsbury, 1894; by Wilbur L. Cross, 1906.
  • LIFE. --An account of the life and writings of the author is prefixed
  • to the edition of his Works, 1779; a life of the author written by
  • himself in edition of works, 1780; by Sir W. Scott in edition of
  • Life and Opinions of Tristram Shandy, 1867; by H. D. Traill, 1878;
  • by P. H. Fitzgerald, 1896; Laurence Sterne in Germany, by H. W.
  • Thayer, 1905; Life and Times, by Wilbur L. Cross, 1909; A Study, by
  • Walter S. Sichel, 1910; Life and Letters, by Lewis Melville, 1911.
  • ⁂ The text which has been here adopted is that of the ten-volume
  • edition, first printed in 1781, and reprinted several times before the
  • end of the century, which is as near as anything to the “standard”
  • Sterne. It seems, however, to have had no competent editing; and the
  • renumbering of the chapters to suit the _four_ volumes, in which
  • _Tristram_ was printed, completely upsets the original and important
  • division into _nine_ volumes, or books, which has here, as in some other
  • editions, been restored. Another piece of thoughtlessness was that of
  • sticking the Dedication, which originally came between the eighth and
  • ninth volumes, or books, at the beginning of the _fourth_ volume as
  • reprinted, thereby making nonsense or puzzle of Sterne’s joke about _à
  • priori_. It should be observed that the Dedication to Pitt, which here
  • leads off, was not prefixed till the _second_ edition of the original,
  • and that sometimes in the last-century editions it appears displaced at
  • a later spot. No attempt has been made to correct any oddities of
  • spelling that are not clearly mere misprints.
  • CONTENTS
  • PAGE
  • BOOK I. 3
  • BOOK II. 59
  • BOOK III. 113
  • BOOK IV. 176
  • BOOK V. 251
  • BOOK VI. 300
  • BOOK VII. 349
  • BOOK VIII. 395
  • BOOK IX. 441
  • THE LIFE AND OPINIONS
  • OF
  • TRISTRAM SHANDY
  • GENTLEMAN
  • Ταράσσει τοὺς Ἀνθρώπους οὐ τὰ Πράγματα,
  • Ἀλλὰ τὰ περὶ τῶν Πραγμάτων Δόγματα.
  • TO THE RIGHT HONOURABLE
  • _MR. PITT_
  • SIR, --Never poor Wight of a Dedicator had less hopes from his
  • Dedication, than I have from this of mine; for it is written in a bye
  • corner of the kingdom, and in a retir’d thatch’d house, where I live in
  • a constant endeavour to fence against the infirmities of ill health, and
  • other evils of life, by mirth; being firmly persuaded that every time a
  • man smiles, ----but much more so, when he laughs, it adds something to
  • this Fragment of Life.
  • I humbly beg, Sir, that you will honour this book, by taking it----(not
  • under your Protection, ----it must protect itself, but)----into the
  • country with you; where, if I am ever told, it has made you smile; or
  • can conceive it has beguiled you of one moment’s pain ----I shall think
  • myself as happy as a minister of state; ------perhaps much happier than
  • any one (one only excepted) that I have read or heard of.
  • I am, GREAT SIR,
  • (and what is more to your Honour)
  • I am, GOOD SIR,
  • Your Well-wisher, and
  • most humble Fellow-subject,
  • THE AUTHOR.
  • THE LIFE AND OPINIONS OF
  • TRISTRAM SHANDY, GENT.
  • BOOK I
  • CHAPTER I
  • I wish either my father or my mother, or indeed both of them, as they
  • were in duty both equally bound to it, had minded what they were about
  • when they begot me; had they duly consider’d how much depended upon what
  • they were then doing; --that not only the production of a rational Being
  • was concerned in it, but that possibly the happy formation and
  • temperature of his body, perhaps his genius and the very cast of his
  • mind; --and, for aught they knew to the contrary, even the fortunes of
  • his whole house might take their turn from the humours and dispositions
  • which were then uppermost; ----Had they duly weighed and considered all
  • this, and proceeded accordingly, ----I am verily persuaded I should have
  • made a quite different figure in the world from that in which the reader
  • is likely to see me. --Believe me, good folks, this is not so
  • inconsiderable a thing as many of you may think it; --you have all,
  • I dare say, heard of the animal spirits, as how they are transfused from
  • father to son, &c., &c. --and a great deal to that purpose: --Well, you
  • may take my word, that nine parts in ten of a man’s sense or his
  • nonsense, his successes and miscarriages in this world depend upon their
  • motions and activity, and the different tracts and trains you put them
  • into, so that when they are once set a-going, whether right or wrong,
  • ’tis not a halfpenny matter, --away they go cluttering like hey-go mad;
  • and by treading the same steps over and over again, they presently make
  • a road of it, as plain and as smooth as a garden-walk, which, when they
  • are once used to, the Devil himself sometimes shall not be able to drive
  • them off it.
  • _Pray, my Dear_, quoth my mother, _have you not forgot to wind up the
  • clock? ------Good G--!_ cried my father, making an exclamation, but
  • taking care to moderate his voice at the same time, ----_Did ever woman,
  • since the creation of the world, interrupt a man with such a silly
  • question?_ Pray, what was your father saying? ------Nothing.
  • CHAPTER II
  • ------Then, positively, there is nothing in the question that I can see,
  • either good or bad. ----Then, let me tell you, Sir, it was a very
  • unseasonable question at least, --because it scattered and dispersed the
  • animal spirits, whose business it was to have escorted and gone hand in
  • hand with the _HOMUNCULUS_, and conducted him safe to the place destined
  • for his reception.
  • The HOMUNCULUS, Sir, in however low and ludicrous a light he may appear,
  • in this age of levity, to the eye of folly or prejudice; --to the eye of
  • reason in scientifick research, he stands confess’d--a BEING guarded and
  • circumscribed with rights. ----The minutest philosophers, who, by the
  • bye, have the most enlarged understandings (their souls being inversely
  • as their enquiries), shew us incontestably, that the HOMUNCULUS is
  • created by the same hand, --engender’d in the same course of nature,
  • --endow’d with the same locomotive powers and faculties with us: --That
  • he consists as we do, of skin, hair, fat, flesh, veins, arteries,
  • ligaments, nerves, cartilages, bones, marrow, brains, glands, genitals,
  • humours, and articulations; --is a Being of as much activity, --and, in
  • all senses of the word, as much and as truly our fellow-creature as my
  • Lord Chancellor of _England_. --He may be benefited, --he may be
  • injured, --he may obtain redress; --in a word, he has all the claims and
  • rights of humanity, which _Tully_, _Puffendorf_, or the best ethick
  • writers allow to arise out of that state and relation.
  • Now, dear Sir, what if any accident had befallen him in his way alone!
  • --or that, through terror of it, natural to so young a traveller, my
  • little Gentleman had got to his journey’s end miserably spent; --his
  • muscular strength and virility worn down to a thread; --his own animal
  • spirits ruffled beyond description, --and that in this sad disordered
  • state of nerves, he had lain down a prey to sudden starts, or a series
  • of melancholy dreams and fancies, for nine long, long months together.
  • --I tremble to think what a foundation had been laid for a thousand
  • weaknesses both of body and mind, which no skill of the physician or the
  • philosopher could ever afterwards have set thoroughly to rights.
  • CHAPTER III
  • To my uncle Mr. _Toby Shandy_ do I stand indebted for the preceding
  • anecdote, to whom my father, who was an excellent natural philosopher,
  • and much given to close reasoning upon the smallest matters, had oft,
  • and heavily complained of the injury; but once more particularly, as my
  • uncle _Toby_ well remember’d, upon his observing a most unaccountable
  • obliquity (as he call’d it) in my manner of setting up my top, and
  • justifying the principles upon which I had done it, --the old gentleman
  • shook his head, and in a tone more expressive by half of sorrow than
  • reproach, --he said his heart all along foreboded, and he saw it
  • verified in this, and from a thousand other observations he had made
  • upon me, That I should neither think nor act like any other man’s child:
  • --_But alas!_ continued he, shaking his head a second time, and wiping
  • away a tear which was trickling down his cheeks, _My Tristram’s
  • misfortunes began nine months before ever he came into the world_.
  • --My mother, who was sitting by, look’d up, --but she knew no more than
  • her backside what my father meant, --but my uncle, Mr. _Toby Shandy_,
  • who had been often informed of the affair, --understood him very well.
  • CHAPTER IV
  • I know there are readers in the world, as well as many other good people
  • in it, who are no readers at all, who find themselves ill at ease,
  • unless they are let into the whole secret from first to last, of
  • everything which concerns you.
  • It is in pure compliance with this humour of theirs, and from a
  • backwardness in my nature to disappoint any one soul living, that I have
  • been so very particular already. As my life and opinions are likely to
  • make some noise in the world, and, if I conjecture right, will take in
  • all ranks, professions, and denominations of men whatever, --be no less
  • read than the _Pilgrim’s Progress_ itself--and in the end, prove the
  • very thing which _Montaigne_ dreaded his Essays should turn out, that
  • is, a book for a parlour-window; --I find it necessary to consult every
  • one a little in his turn; and therefore must beg pardon for going on a
  • little farther in the same way: For which cause, right glad I am, that I
  • have begun the history of myself in the way I have done; and that I am
  • able to go on, tracing everything in it, as _Horace_ says, _ab Ovo_.
  • _Horace_, I know, does not recommend this fashion altogether: But that
  • gentleman is speaking only of an epic poem or a tragedy; --(I forget
  • which), --besides, if it was not so, I should beg Mr. _Horace’s_ pardon;
  • --for in writing what I have set about, I shall confine myself neither
  • to his rules, nor to any man’s rules that ever lived.
  • To such, however, as do not choose to go so far back into these things,
  • I can give no better advice, than that they skip over the remaining part
  • of this chapter; for I declare before-hand, ’tis wrote only for the
  • curious and inquisitive.
  • ------------Shut the door. -------------------------------------- I was
  • begot in the night, betwixt the first _Sunday_ and the first _Monday_ in
  • the month of _March_, in the year of our Lord one thousand seven hundred
  • and eighteen. I am positive I was. --But how I came to be so very
  • particular in my account of a thing which happened before I was born, is
  • owing to another small anecdote known only in our own family, but now
  • made publick for the better clearing up this point.
  • My father, you must know, who was originally a _Turkey_ merchant, but
  • had left off business for some years, in order to retire to, and die
  • upon, his paternal estate in the county of ------, was, I believe, one
  • of the most regular men in everything he did, whether ’twas matter of
  • business, or matter of amusement, that ever lived. As a small specimen
  • of this extreme exactness of his, to which he was in truth a slave, --he
  • had made it a rule for many years of his life, --on the first
  • _Sunday-night_ of every month throughout the whole year, --as certain as
  • ever the _Sunday-night_ came, ----to wind up a large house-clock, which
  • we had standing on the back-stairs head, with his own hands: --And being
  • somewhere between fifty and sixty years of age at the time I have been
  • speaking of, --he had likewise gradually brought some other little
  • family concernments to the same period, in order, as he would often say
  • to my uncle _Toby_, to get them all out of the way at one time, and be
  • no more plagued and pestered with them the rest of the month.
  • It was attended but with one misfortune, which, in a great measure, fell
  • upon myself, and the effects of which I fear I shall carry with me to my
  • grave; namely, that from an unhappy association of ideas, which have no
  • connection in nature, it so fell out at length, that my poor mother
  • could never hear the said clock wound up, ----but the thoughts of some
  • other things unavoidably popped into her head--and _vice versâ_:
  • ----Which strange combination of ideas, the sagacious _Locke_, who
  • certainly understood the nature of these things better than most men,
  • affirms to have produced more wry actions than all other sources of
  • prejudice whatsoever.
  • But this by the bye.
  • Now it appears by a memorandum in my father’s pocket-book, which now
  • lies upon the table, “That on _Lady-day_, which was on the 25th of the
  • same month in which I date my geniture, ----my father set out upon his
  • journey to _London_, with my eldest brother _Bobby_, to fix him at
  • _Westminster_ school;” and, as it appears from the same authority, “That
  • he did not get down to his wife and family till the _second week_ in
  • _May_ following,” --it brings the thing almost to a certainty. However,
  • what follows in the beginning of the next chapter, puts it beyond all
  • possibility of doubt.
  • ------But pray, Sir, What was your father doing all _December_,
  • _January_, and _February?_ ----Why, Madam, --he was all that time
  • afflicted with a Sciatica.
  • CHAPTER V
  • On the fifth day of _November_, 1718, which to the æra fixed on, was as
  • near nine calendar months as any husband could in reason have expected,
  • --was I _Tristram Shandy_, Gentleman, brought forth into this scurvy and
  • disasterous world of ours. ----I wish I had been born in the Moon, or in
  • any of the planets (except _Jupiter_ or _Saturn_, because I never could
  • bear cold weather) for it could not well have fared worse with me in any
  • of them (though I will not answer for _Venus_) than it has in this vile,
  • dirty planet of ours, --which, o’ my conscience, with reverence be it
  • spoken, I take to be made up of the shreds and clippings of the rest;
  • ----not but the planet is well enough, provided a man could be born in
  • it to a great title or to a great estate; or could any how contrive to
  • be called up to publick charges, and employments of dignity or power;
  • ----but that is not my case; ----and therefore every man will speak of
  • the fair as his own market has gone in it; ------for which cause I
  • affirm it over again to be one of the vilest worlds that ever was made;
  • --for I can truly say, that from the first hour I drew my breath in it,
  • to this, that I can now scarce draw it at all, for an asthma I got in
  • scating against the wind in _Flanders_; --I have been the continual
  • sport of what the world calls Fortune; and though I will not wrong her
  • by saying, She has ever made me feel the weight of any great or signal
  • evil; ----yet with all the good temper in the world, I affirm it of her,
  • that in every stage of my life, and at every turn and corner where she
  • could get fairly at me, the ungracious duchess has pelted me with a set
  • of as pitiful misadventures and cross accidents as ever small HERO
  • sustained.
  • CHAPTER VI
  • In the beginning of the last chapter, I informed you exactly _when_ I
  • was born; but I did not inform you _how. No_, that particular was
  • reserved entirely for a chapter by itself; --besides, Sir, as you and I
  • are in a manner perfect strangers to each other, it would not have been
  • proper to have let you into too many circumstances relating to myself
  • all at once. --You must have a little patience. I have undertaken, you
  • see, to write not only my life, but my opinions also; hoping and
  • expecting that your knowledge of my character, and of what kind of a
  • mortal I am, by the one, would give you a better relish for the other:
  • As you proceed farther with me, the slight acquaintance, which is now
  • beginning betwixt us, will grow into familiarity; and that, unless one
  • of us is in fault, will terminate in friendship. --_O diem
  • præclarum!_--then nothing which has touched me will be thought trifling
  • in its nature, or tedious in its telling. Therefore, my dear friend and
  • companion, if you should think me somewhat sparing of my narrative on my
  • first setting out--bear with me, --and let me go on, and tell my story
  • my own way: --Or, if I should seem now and then to trifle upon the road,
  • --or should sometimes put on a fool’s cap with a bell to it, for a
  • moment or two as we pass along, --don’t fly off, --but rather
  • courteously give me credit for a little more wisdom than appears upon my
  • outside; --and as we jog on, either laugh with me, or at me, or in
  • short, do anything, --only keep your temper.
  • CHAPTER VII
  • In the same village where my father and my mother dwelt, dwelt also a
  • thin, upright, motherly, notable, good old body of a midwife, who with
  • the help of a little plain good sense, and some years full employment in
  • her business, in which she had all along trusted little to her own
  • efforts, and a great deal to those of dame Nature, --had acquired, in
  • her way, no small degree of reputation in the world: ----by which word
  • _world_, need I in this place inform your worship, that I would be
  • understood to mean no more of it, than a small circle described upon the
  • circle of the great world, of four _English_ miles diameter, or
  • thereabouts, of which the cottage where the good old woman lived, is
  • supposed to be the centre? --She had been left, it seems, a widow in
  • great distress, with three or four small children, in her forty-seventh
  • year; and as she was at that time a person of decent carriage, --grave
  • deportment, --a woman moreover of few words, and withal an object of
  • compassion, whose distress, and silence under it, called out the louder
  • for a friendly lift: the wife of the parson of the parish was touched
  • with pity; and having often lamented an inconvenience, to which her
  • husband’s flock had for many years been exposed, inasmuch as there was
  • no such thing as a midwife, of any kind or degree, to be got at, let the
  • case have been never so urgent, within less than six or seven long miles
  • riding; which seven said long miles in dark nights and dismal roads, the
  • country thereabouts being nothing but a deep clay, was almost equal to
  • fourteen; and that in effect was sometimes next to having no midwife at
  • all; it came into her head, that it would be doing as seasonable a
  • kindness to the whole parish, as to the poor creature herself, to get
  • her a little instructed in some of the plain principles of the business,
  • in order to set her up in it. As no woman thereabouts was better
  • qualified to execute the plan she had formed than herself, the
  • gentlewoman very charitably undertook it; and having great influence
  • over the female part of the parish, she found no difficulty in effecting
  • it to the utmost of her wishes. In truth, the parson join’d his interest
  • with his wife’s in the whole affair; and in order to do things as they
  • should be, and give the poor soul as good a title by law to practise, as
  • his wife had given by institution, --he chearfully paid the fees for the
  • ordinary’s licence himself, amounting in the whole, to the sum of
  • eighteen shillings and four pence; so that betwixt them both, the good
  • woman was fully invested in the real and corporal possession of her
  • office, together with all its _rights, members, and appurtenances
  • whatsoever_.
  • These last words, you must know, were not according to the old form in
  • which such licences, faculties, and powers usually ran, which in like
  • cases had heretofore been granted to the sisterhood. But it was
  • according to a neat _Formula_ of _Didius_ his own devising, who having a
  • particular turn for taking to pieces, and new framing over again, all
  • kind of instruments in that way, not only hit upon this dainty
  • amendment, but coaxed many of the old licensed matrons in the
  • neighbourhood, to open their faculties afresh, in order to have this
  • wham-wham of his inserted.
  • I own I never could envy _Didius_ in these kinds of fancies of his:
  • --But every man to his own taste. --Did not Dr. _Kunastrokius_, that
  • great man, at his leisure hours, take the greatest delight imaginable in
  • combing of asses tails, and plucking the dead hairs out with his teeth,
  • though he had tweezers always in his pocket? Nay, if you come to that,
  • Sir, have not the wisest of men in all ages, not excepting _Solomon_
  • himself, --have they not had their HOBBY-HORSES; --their running horses,
  • --their coins and their cockle-shells, their drums and their trumpets,
  • their fiddles, their pallets, --their maggots and their butterflies?
  • --and so long as a man rides his HOBBY-HORSE peaceably and quietly along
  • the King’s highway, and neither compels you or me to get up behind him,
  • --pray, Sir, what have either you or I to do with it?
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • --_De gustibus non est disputandum_; --that is, there is no disputing
  • against HOBBY-HORSES; and for my part, I seldom do; nor could I with any
  • sort of grace, had I been an enemy to them at the bottom; for happening,
  • at certain intervals and changes of the moon, to be both fidler and
  • painter, according as the fly stings: --Be it known to you, that I keep
  • a couple of pads myself, upon which, in their turns, (nor do I care who
  • knows it) I frequently ride out and take the air; --though sometimes, to
  • my shame be it spoken, I take somewhat longer journies than what a wise
  • man would think altogether right. --But the truth is, --I am not a wise
  • man; --and besides am a mortal of so little consequence in the world, it
  • is not much matter what I do: so I seldom fret or fume at all about it:
  • Nor does it much disturb my rest, when I see such great Lords and tall
  • Personages as hereafter follow; --such, for instance, as my Lord A, B,
  • C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, and so on, all of a row,
  • mounted upon their several horses; --some with large stirrups, getting
  • on in a more grave and sober pace; ----others on the contrary, tucked up
  • to their very chins, with whips across their mouths, scouring and
  • scampering it away like so many little party-coloured devils astride a
  • mortgage, --and as if some of them were resolved to break their necks.
  • ----So much the better--say I to myself; --for in case the worst should
  • happen, the world will make a shift to do excellently well without them;
  • and for the rest, ----why ----God speed them----e’en let them ride on
  • without opposition from me; for were their lordships unhorsed this very
  • night--’tis ten to one but that many of them would be worse mounted by
  • one half before to-morrow morning.
  • Not one of these instances therefore can be said to break in upon my
  • rest. ----But there is an instance, which I own puts me off my guard,
  • and that is, when I see one born for great actions, and what is still
  • more for his honour, whose nature ever inclines him to good ones; --when
  • I behold such a one, my Lord, like yourself, whose principles and
  • conduct are as generous and noble as his blood, and whom, for that
  • reason, a corrupt world cannot spare one moment; --when I see such a
  • one, my Lord, mounted, though it is but for a minute beyond the time
  • which my love to my country has prescribed to him, and my zeal for his
  • glory wishes, --then, my Lord, I cease to be a philosopher, and in the
  • first transport of an honest impatience, I wish the HOBBY-HORSE, with
  • all his fraternity, at the Devil.
  • “MY LORD,
  • “I maintain this to be a dedication, notwithstanding its singularity in
  • the three great essentials of matter, form, and place: I beg, therefore,
  • you will accept it as such, and that you will permit me to lay it, with
  • the most respectful humility, at your Lordship’s feet, --when you are
  • upon them, --which you can be when you please; --and that is, my Lord,
  • whenever there is occasion for it, and I will add, to the best purposes
  • too. I have the honour to be,
  • “_My Lord,
  • Your Lordship’s most obedient,
  • and most devoted,
  • and most humble servant_,
  • TRISTRAM SHANDY.”
  • CHAPTER IX
  • I solemnly declare to all mankind, that the above dedication was made
  • for no one Prince, Prelate, Pope, or Potentate, --Duke, Marquis, Earl,
  • Viscount, or Baron, of this, or any other Realm in Christendom; ----nor
  • has it yet been hawked about, or offered publicly or privately, directly
  • or indirectly, to any one person or personage, great or small; but is
  • honestly a true Virgin-Dedication untried on, upon any soul living.
  • I labour this point so particularly, merely to remove any offence or
  • objection which might arise against it from the manner in which I
  • propose to make the most of it; --which is the putting it up fairly to
  • public sale; which I now do.
  • ----Every author has a way of his own in bringing his points to bear;
  • --for my own part, as I hate chaffering and higgling for a few guineas
  • in a dark entry; --I resolved within myself, from the very beginning, to
  • deal squarely and openly with your Great Folks in this affair, and try
  • whether I should not come off the better by it.
  • If therefore there is any one Duke, Marquis, Earl, Viscount, or Baron,
  • in these his Majesty’s dominions, who stands in need of a tight, genteel
  • dedication, and whom the above will suit, (for by the bye, unless it
  • suits in some degree, I will not part with it)----it is much at his
  • service for fifty guineas; ----which I am positive is twenty guineas
  • less than it ought to be afforded for, by any man of genius.
  • My Lord, if you examine it over again, it is far from being a gross
  • piece of daubing, as some dedications are. The design, your Lordship
  • sees, is good, --the colouring transparent, --the drawing not amiss;
  • --or to speak more like a man of science, --and measure my piece in the
  • painter’s scale, divided into 20, --I believe, my Lord, the outlines
  • will turn out as 12, --the composition as 9, --the colouring as 6, --the
  • expression 13 and a half, --and the design, --if I may be allowed, my
  • Lord, to understand my own _design_, and supposing absolute perfection
  • in designing, to be as 20, --I think it cannot well fall short of 19.
  • Besides all this, --there is keeping in it, and the dark strokes in the
  • HOBBY-HORSE, (which is a secondary figure, and a kind of back-ground to
  • the whole) give great force to the principal lights in your own figure,
  • and make it come off wonderfully; ----and besides, there is an air of
  • originality in the _tout ensemble_.
  • Be pleased, my good Lord, to order the sum to be paid into the hands of
  • Mr. _Dodsley_, for the benefit of the author; and in the next edition
  • care shall be taken that this chapter be expunged, and your Lordship’s
  • titles, distinctions, arms, and good actions, be placed at the front of
  • the preceding chapter: All which, from the words, _De gustibus non est
  • disputandum_, and whatever else in this book relates to HOBBY-HORSES,
  • but no more, shall stand dedicated to your Lordship. --The rest I
  • dedicate to the MOON, who, by the bye, of all the PATRONS or MATRONS I
  • can think of, has most power to set my book a-going, and make the world
  • run mad after it.
  • _Bright Goddess_,
  • If thou art not too busy with CANDID and Miss CUNEGUND’S affairs, --take
  • _Tristram Shandy’s_ under thy protection also.
  • CHAPTER X
  • Whatever degree of small merit the act of benignity in favour of the
  • midwife might justly claim, or in whom that claim truly rested, --at
  • first sight seems not very material to this history; ----certain however
  • it was, that the gentlewoman, the parson’s wife, did run away at that
  • time with the whole of it: And yet, for my life, I cannot help thinking
  • but that the parson himself, though he had not the good fortune to hit
  • upon the design first, --yet, as he heartily concurred in it the moment
  • it was laid before him, and as heartily parted with his money to carry
  • it into execution, had a claim to some share of it, --if not to a full
  • half of whatever honour was due to it.
  • The world at that time was pleased to determine the matter otherwise.
  • Lay down the book, and I will allow you half a day to give a probable
  • guess at the grounds of this procedure.
  • Be it known then, that, for about five years before the date of the
  • midwife’s licence, of which you have had so circumstantial an account,
  • --the parson we have to do with had made himself a country-talk by a
  • breach of all decorum, which he had committed against himself, his
  • station, and his office; --and that was in never appearing better, or
  • otherwise mounted, than upon a lean, sorry, jack-ass of a horse, value
  • about one pound fifteen shillings; who, to shorten all description of
  • him, was full brother to _Rosinante_, as far as similitude congenial
  • could make him; for he answered his description to a hair-breadth in
  • every thing, --except that I do not remember ’tis any where said, that
  • _Rosinante_ was broken-winded; and that, moreover, _Rosinante_, as is
  • the happiness of most _Spanish_ horses, fat or lean, --was undoubtedly a
  • horse at all points.
  • I know very well that the HERO’S horse was a horse of chaste deportment,
  • which may have given grounds for the contrary opinion: But it is as
  • certain at the same time, that _Rosinante’s_ continency (as may be
  • demonstrated from the adventure of the _Yanguesian_ carriers) proceeded
  • from no bodily defect or cause whatsoever, but from the temperance and
  • orderly current of his blood. --And let me tell you, Madam, there is a
  • great deal of very good chastity in the world, in behalf of which you
  • could not say more for your life.
  • Let that be as it may, as my purpose is to do extra justice to every
  • creature brought upon the stage of this dramatic work, --I could not
  • stifle this distinction in favour of Don _Quixote’s_ horse; ----in all
  • other points, the parson’s horse, I say, was just such another, --for he
  • was as lean, and as lank, and as sorry a jade, as HUMILITY herself could
  • have bestrided.
  • In the estimation of here and there a man of weak judgment, it was
  • greatly in the parson’s power to have helped the figure of this horse of
  • his, --for he was master of a very handsome demi-peak’d saddle, quilted
  • on the seat with green plush, garnished with a double row of
  • silver-headed studs, and a noble pair of shining brass stirrups, with a
  • housing altogether suitable, of grey superfine cloth, with an edging of
  • black lace, terminating in a deep, black, silk fringe, _poudré d’or_,
  • --all which he had purchased in the pride and prime of his life,
  • together with a grand embossed bridle, ornamented at all points as it
  • should be. ----But not caring to banter his beast, he had hung all these
  • up behind his study door: --and, in lieu of them, had seriously befitted
  • him with just such a bridle and such a saddle, as the figure and value
  • of such a steed might well and truly deserve.
  • In the several sallies about his parish, and in the neighbouring visits
  • to the gentry who lived around him, --you will easily comprehend, that
  • the parson, so appointed, would both hear and see enough to keep his
  • philosophy from rusting. To speak the truth, he never could enter a
  • village, but he caught the attention of both old and young. ----Labour
  • stood still as he pass’d----the bucket hung suspended in the middle of
  • the well, ----the spinning-wheel forgot its round, ----even
  • chuck-farthing and shuffle-cap themselves stood gaping till he had got
  • out of sight; and as his movement was not of the quickest, he had
  • generally time enough upon his hands to make his observations, --to hear
  • the groans of the serious, --and the laughter of the light-hearted;
  • --all which he bore with excellent tranquillity. --His character was,
  • --he loved a jest in his heart--and as he saw himself in the true point
  • of ridicule, he would say he could not be angry with others for seeing
  • him in a light, in which he so strongly saw himself: So that to his
  • friends, who knew his foible was not the love of money, and who
  • therefore made the less scruple in bantering the extravagance of his
  • humour, --instead of giving the true cause, --he chose rather to join in
  • the laugh against himself; and as he never carried one single ounce of
  • flesh upon his own bones, being altogether as spare a figure as his
  • beast, --he would sometimes insist upon it, that the horse was as good
  • as the rider deserved; --that they were, centaur-like, --both of a
  • piece. At other times, and in other moods, when his spirits were above
  • the temptation of false wit, --he would say, he found himself going off
  • fast in a consumption; and, with great gravity, would pretend, he could
  • not bear the sight of a fat horse, without a dejection of heart, and a
  • sensible alteration in his pulse; and that he had made choice of the
  • lean one he rode upon, not only to keep himself in countenance, but in
  • spirits.
  • At different times he would give fifty humorous and apposite reasons for
  • riding a meek-spirited jade of a broken-winded horse, preferably to one
  • of mettle; --for on such a one he could sit mechanically, and meditate
  • as delightfully _de vanitate mundi et fugâ sæculi_, as with the
  • advantage of a death’s-head before him; --that, in all other
  • exercitations, he could spend his time, as he rode slowly along, --to as
  • much account as in his study; --that he could draw up an argument in his
  • sermon, --or a hole in his breeches, as steadily on the one as in the
  • other; --that brisk trotting and slow argumentation, like wit and
  • judgment, were two incompatible movements. --But that upon his steed--he
  • could unite and reconcile every thing, --he could compose his sermon--he
  • could compose his cough, ----and, in case nature gave a call that way,
  • he could likewise compose himself to sleep. --In short, the parson upon
  • such encounters would assign any cause but the true cause, --and he
  • with-held the true one, only out of a nicety of temper, because he
  • thought it did honour to him.
  • But the truth of the story was as follows: In the first years of this
  • gentleman’s life, and about the time when the superb saddle and bridle
  • were purchased by him, it had been his manner, or vanity, or call it
  • what you will, --to run into the opposite extreme. --In the language of
  • the county where he dwelt, he was said to have loved a good horse, and
  • generally had one of the best in the whole parish standing in his stable
  • always ready for saddling; and as the nearest midwife, as I told you,
  • did not live nearer to the village than seven miles, and in a vile
  • country, --it so fell out that the poor gentleman was scarce a whole
  • week together without some piteous application for his beast; and as he
  • was not an unkind-hearted man, and every case was more pressing and more
  • distressful than the last, --as much as he loved his beast, he had never
  • a heart to refuse him; the upshot of which was generally this, that his
  • horse was either clapp’d, or spavin’d, or greaz’d; --or he was
  • twitter-bon’d, or broken-winded, or something, in short, or other had
  • befallen him, which would let him carry no flesh; --so that he had every
  • nine or ten months a bad horse to get rid of, --and a good horse to
  • purchase in his stead.
  • What the loss on such a balance might amount to, _communibus annis_, I
  • would leave to a special jury of sufferers in the same traffick, to
  • determine; --but let it be what it would, the honest gentleman bore it
  • for many years without a murmur, till at length, by repeated ill
  • accidents of the kind, he found it necessary to take the thing under
  • consideration; and upon weighing the whole, and summing it up in his
  • mind, he found it not only disproportioned to his other expences, but
  • withal so heavy an article in itself, as to disable him from any other
  • act of generosity in his parish: Besides this, he considered that with
  • half the sum thus galloped away, he could do ten times as much good;
  • --and what still weighed more with him than all other considerations put
  • together, was this, that it confined all his charity into one particular
  • channel, and where, as he fancied, it was the least wanted, namely, to
  • the child-bearing and child-getting part of his parish; reserving
  • nothing for the impotent, --nothing for the aged, --nothing for the many
  • comfortless scenes he was hourly called forth to visit, where poverty,
  • and sickness, and affliction dwelt together.
  • For these reasons he resolved to discontinue the expence; and there
  • appeared but two possible ways to extricate him clearly out of it; --and
  • these were, either to make it an irrevocable law never more to lend his
  • steed upon any application whatever, --or else be content to ride the
  • last poor devil, such as they had made him, with all his aches and
  • infirmities, to the very end of the chapter.
  • As he dreaded his own constancy in the first--he very chearfully betook
  • himself to the second; and though he could very well have explained it,
  • as I said, to his honour, --yet, for that very reason, he had a spirit
  • above it; choosing rather to bear the contempt of his enemies, and the
  • laughter of his friends, than undergo the pain of telling a story, which
  • might seem a panegyrick upon himself.
  • I have the highest idea of the spiritual and refined sentiments of this
  • reverend gentleman, from this single stroke in his character, which I
  • think comes up to any of the honest refinements of the peerless knight
  • of _La Mancha_, whom, by the bye, with all his follies, I love more, and
  • would actually have gone farther to have paid a visit to, than the
  • greatest hero of antiquity.
  • But this is not the moral of my story: The thing I had in view was to
  • shew the temper of the world in the whole of this affair. --For you must
  • know, that so long as this explanation would have done the parson
  • credit, --the devil a soul could find it out, --I suppose his enemies
  • would not, and that his friends could not. ----But no sooner did he
  • bestir himself in behalf of the midwife, and pay the expences of the
  • ordinary’s licence to set her up, --but the whole secret came out; every
  • horse he had lost, and two horses more than ever he had lost, with all
  • the circumstances of their destruction, were known and distinctly
  • remembered. --The story ran like wild-fire-- “The parson had a returning
  • fit of pride which had just seized him; and he was going to be well
  • mounted once again in his life; and if it was so, ’twas plain as the sun
  • at noon-day, he would pocket the expence of the licence, ten times told,
  • the very first year: --So that every body was left to judge what were
  • his views in this act of charity.”
  • What were his views in this, and in every other action of his life, --or
  • rather what were the opinions which floated in the brains of other
  • people concerning it, was a thought which too much floated in his own,
  • and too often broke in upon his rest, when he should have been sound
  • asleep.
  • About ten years ago this gentleman had the good fortune to be made
  • entirely easy upon that score, --it being just so long since he left his
  • parish, --and the whole world at the same time behind him, --and stands
  • accountable to a Judge of whom he will have no cause to complain.
  • But there is a fatality attends the actions of some men: Order them as
  • they will, they pass thro’ a certain medium, which so twists and
  • refracts them from their true directions----that, with all the titles to
  • praise which a rectitude of heart can give, the doers of them are
  • nevertheless forced to live and die without it.
  • Of the truth of which, this gentleman was a painful example. ----But to
  • know by what means this came to pass, --and to make that knowledge of
  • use to you, I insist upon it that you read the two following chapters,
  • which contain such a sketch of his life and conversation, as will carry
  • its moral along with it. --When this is done, if nothing stops us in our
  • way, we will go on with the midwife.
  • CHAPTER XI
  • Yorick was this parson’s name, and, what is very remarkable in it
  • (as appears from a most ancient account of the family, wrote upon strong
  • vellum, and now in perfect preservation) it had been exactly so spelt
  • for near, ----I was within an ace of saying nine hundred years; ----but
  • I would not shake my credit in telling an improbable truth, however
  • indisputable in itself; ----and therefore I shall content myself with
  • only saying ----It had been exactly so spelt, without the least variation
  • or transposition of a single letter, for I do not know how long; which
  • is more than I would venture to say of one half of the best surnames in
  • the kingdom; which, in a course of years, have generally undergone as
  • many chops and changes as their owners. --Has this been owing to the
  • pride, or to the shame of the respective proprietors? --In honest truth,
  • I think sometimes to the one, and sometimes to the other, just as the
  • temptation has wrought. But a villainous affair it is, and will one day
  • so blend and confound us altogether, that no one shall be able to stand
  • up and swear, “That his own great grandfather was the man who did either
  • this or that.”
  • This evil had been sufficiently fenced against by the prudent care of
  • the _Yorick’s_ family, and their religious preservation of these records
  • I quote, which do farther inform us, That the family was originally of
  • _Danish_ extraction, and had been transplanted into _England_ as early
  • as in the reign of _Horwendillus_, king of _Denmark_, in whose court, it
  • seems, an ancestor of this Mr. _Yorick’s_, and from whom he was lineally
  • descended, held a considerable post to the day of his death. Of what
  • nature this considerable post was, this record saith not; --It only
  • adds, That, for near two centuries, it had been totally abolished, as
  • altogether unnecessary, not only in that court, but in every other court
  • of the Christian world.
  • It has often come into my head, that this post could be no other than
  • that of the king’s chief Jester; --and that _Hamlet’s Yorick_, in our
  • _Shakespeare_, many of whose plays, you know, are founded upon
  • authenticated facts, was certainly the very man.
  • I have not the time to look into _Saxo-Grammaticus’s Danish_ history, to
  • know the certainty of this; --but if you have leisure, and can easily
  • get at the book, you may do it full as well yourself.
  • I had just time, in my travels through _Denmark_ with Mr. _Noddy’s_
  • eldest son, whom, in the year 1741, I accompanied as governor, riding
  • along with him at a prodigious rate thro’ most parts of _Europe_, and of
  • which original journey performed by us two, a most delectable narrative
  • will be given in the progress of this work; I had just time, I say, and
  • that was all, to prove the truth of an observation made by a long
  • sojourner in that country; ----namely, “That nature was neither very
  • lavish, nor was she very stingy in her gifts of genius and capacity to
  • its inhabitants; --but, like a discreet parent, was moderately kind to
  • them all; observing such an equal tenor in the distribution of her
  • favours, as to bring them, in those points, pretty near to a level with
  • each other; so that you will meet with few instances in that kingdom of
  • refined parts; but a great deal of good plain household understanding
  • amongst all ranks of people, of which everybody has a share;” which is,
  • I think, very right.
  • With us, you see, the case is quite different: --we are all ups and
  • downs in this matter; --you are a great genius; --or ’tis fifty to one,
  • Sir, you are a great dunce and a blockhead; --not that there is a total
  • want of intermediate steps, --no, --we are not so irregular as that
  • comes to; --but the two extremes are more common, and in a greater
  • degree in this unsettled island, where nature, in her gifts and
  • dispositions of this kind, is most whimsical and capricious; fortune
  • herself not being more so in the bequest of her goods and chattels than
  • she.
  • This is all that ever staggered my faith in regard to _Yorick’s_
  • extraction, who, by what I can remember of him, and by all the accounts
  • I could ever get of him, seemed not to have had one single drop of
  • _Danish_ blood in his whole crasis; in nine hundred years, it might
  • possibly have all run out: ----I will not philosophize one moment with
  • you about it; for happen how it would, the fact was this: --That instead
  • of that cold phlegm and exact regularity of sense and humours, you would
  • have looked for, in one so extracted; --he was, on the contrary, as
  • mercurial and sublimated a composition, --as heteroclite a creature in
  • all his declensions; --with as much life and whim, and _gaité de cœur_
  • about him, as the kindliest climate could have engendered and put
  • together. With all this sail, poor _Yorick_ carried not one ounce of
  • ballast; he was utterly unpractised in the world; and, at the age of
  • twenty-six, knew just about as well how to steer his course in it, as a
  • romping, unsuspicious girl of thirteen: So that upon his first setting
  • out, the brisk gale of his spirits, as you will imagine, ran him foul
  • ten times in a day of somebody’s tackling; and as the grave and more
  • slow-paced were oftenest in his way, ----you may likewise imagine, ’twas
  • with such he had generally the ill luck to get the most entangled. For
  • aught I know there might be some mixture of unlucky wit at the bottom of
  • such _Fracas_: ----For, to speak the truth, _Yorick_ had an invincible
  • dislike and opposition in his nature to gravity; --not to gravity as
  • such; --for where gravity was wanted, he would be the most grave or
  • serious of mortal men for days and weeks together; --but he was an enemy
  • to the affectation of it, and declared open war against it, only as it
  • appeared a cloak for ignorance, or for folly: and then, whenever it fell
  • in his way, however sheltered and protected, he seldom gave it much
  • quarter.
  • Sometimes, in his wild way of talking, he would say that Gravity was an
  • errant scoundrel, and he would add, --of the most dangerous kind too,
  • --because a sly one; and that he verily believed, more honest,
  • well-meaning people were bubbled out of their goods and money by it in
  • one twelve-month, than by pocket-picking and shop-lifting in seven. In
  • the naked temper which a merry heart discovered, he would say, there was
  • no danger, --but to itself: --whereas the very essence of gravity was
  • design, and consequently deceit; --’twas a taught trick to gain credit
  • of the world for more sense and knowledge than a man was worth; and
  • that, with all its pretensions, --it was no better, but often worse,
  • than what a _French_ wit had long ago defined it, --_viz._ _A mysterious
  • carriage of the body to cover the defects of the mind_; --which
  • definition of gravity, _Yorick_, with great imprudence, would say,
  • deserved to be wrote in letters of gold.
  • But, in plain truth, he was a man unhackneyed and unpractised in the
  • world, and was altogether as indiscreet and foolish on every other
  • subject of discourse where policy is wont to impress restraint. _Yorick_
  • had no impression but one, and that was what arose from the nature of
  • the deed spoken of; which impression he would usually translate into
  • plain _English_ without any periphrasis; --and too oft without much
  • distinction of either person, time, or place; --so that when mention was
  • made of a pitiful or an ungenerous proceeding----he never gave himself a
  • moment’s time to reflect who was the hero of the piece, ----what his
  • station, ----or how far he had power to hurt him hereafter; ----but if
  • it was a dirty action, --without more ado, --The man was a dirty fellow,
  • --and so on. --And as his comments had usually the ill fate to be
  • terminated either in a _bon mot_, or to be enlivened throughout with
  • some drollery or humour of expression, it gave wings to _Yorick’s_
  • indiscretion. In a word, tho’ he never sought, yet, at the same time, as
  • he seldom shunned occasions of saying what came uppermost, and without
  • much ceremony; ----he had but too many temptations in life, of
  • scattering his wit and his humour, --his gibes and his jests about him.
  • ----They were not lost for want of gathering.
  • What were the consequences, and what was _Yorick’s_ catastrophe
  • thereupon, you will read in the next chapter.
  • CHAPTER XII
  • The _Mortgager_ and _Mortgagée_ differ the one from the other, not more
  • in length of purse, than the _Jester_ and _Jestée_ do, in that of
  • memory. But in this the comparison between them runs, as the scholiasts
  • call it, upon all-four; which, by the bye, is upon one or two legs more
  • than some of the best of _Homer’s_ can pretend to; --namely, That the
  • one raises a sum, and the other a laugh at your expence, and thinks no
  • more about it. Interest, however, still runs on in both cases; --the
  • periodical or accidental payments of it, just serving to keep the memory
  • of the affair alive; till, at length, in some evil hour, --pop comes the
  • creditor upon each, and by demanding principal upon the spot, together
  • with full interest to the very day, makes them both feel the full extent
  • of their obligations.
  • As the reader (for I hate your _ifs_) has a thorough knowledge of human
  • nature, I need not say more to satisfy him, that my HERO could not go on
  • at this rate without some slight experience of these incidental
  • mementos. To speak the truth, he had wantonly involved himself in a
  • multitude of small book-debts of this stamp, which, notwithstanding
  • _Eugenius’s_ frequent advice, he too much disregarded; thinking, that as
  • not one of them was contracted thro’ any malignancy; --but, on the
  • contrary, from an honesty of mind, and a mere jocundity of humour, they
  • would all of them be cross’d out in course.
  • _Eugenius_ would never admit this; and would often tell him, that one
  • day or other he would certainly be reckoned with; and he would often
  • add, in an accent of sorrowful apprehension, --to the uttermost mite. To
  • which _Yorick_, with his usual carelessness of heart, would as often
  • answer with a pshaw! --and if the subject was started in the
  • fields--with a hop, skip, and a jump at the end of it; but if close pent
  • up in the social chimney-corner, where the culprit was barricado’d in,
  • with a table and a couple of armchairs, and could not so readily fly off
  • in a tangent, --_Eugenius_ would then go on with his lecture upon
  • discretion in words to this purpose, though somewhat better put
  • together.
  • Trust me, dear _Yorick_, this unwary pleasantry of thine will sooner or
  • later bring thee into scrapes and difficulties, which no after-wit can
  • extricate thee out of. ----In these sallies, too oft, I see, it happens,
  • that a person laughed at, considers himself in the light of a person
  • injured, with all the rights of such a situation belonging to him; and
  • when thou viewest him in that light too, and reckons up his friends, his
  • family, his kindred and allies, ----and musters up with them the many
  • recruits which will list under him from a sense of common danger;
  • ----’tis no extravagant arithmetick to say, that for every ten jokes,
  • --thou hast got an hundred enemies; and till thou hast gone on, and
  • raised a swarm of wasps about thine ears, and art half stung to death by
  • them, thou wilt never be convinced it is so.
  • I cannot suspect it in the man whom I esteem, that there is the least
  • spur from spleen or malevolence of intent in these sallies ----I believe
  • and know them to be truly honest and sportive: --But consider, my dear
  • lad, that fools cannot distinguish this, --and that knaves will not: and
  • thou knowest not what it is, either to provoke the one, or to make merry
  • with the other: ----whenever they associate for mutual defence, depend
  • upon it, they will carry on the war in such a manner against thee, my
  • dear friend, as to make thee heartily sick of it, and of thy life too.
  • Revenge from some baneful corner shall level a tale of dishonour at
  • thee, which no innocence of heart or integrity of conduct shall set
  • right. ----The fortunes of thy house shall totter, --thy character,
  • which led the way to them, shall bleed on every side of it, --thy faith
  • questioned, --thy works belied, --thy wit forgotten, --thy learning
  • trampled on. To wind up the last scene of thy tragedy, CRUELTY and
  • COWARDICE, twin ruffians, hired and set on by MALICE in the dark, shall
  • strike together at all thy infirmities and mistakes: ----The best of us,
  • my dear lad, lie open there, ----and trust me, ----trust me, _Yorick,
  • when to gratify a private appetite, it is once resolved upon, that an
  • innocent and an helpless creature shall be sacrificed, ’tis an easy
  • matter to pick up sticks enough from any thicket where it has strayed,
  • to make a fire to offer it up with_.
  • _Yorick_ scarce ever heard this sad vaticination of his destiny read
  • over to him, but with a fear stealing from his eye, and a promissory
  • look attending it, that he was resolved, for the time to come, to ride
  • his tit with more sobriety. --But, alas, too late! --a grand
  • confederacy, with ***** and ***** at the head of it, was formed before
  • the first prediction of it. --The whole plan of the attack, just as
  • _Eugenius_ had foreboded, was put in execution all at once, --with so
  • little mercy on the side of the allies, --and so little suspicion in
  • _Yorick_, of what was carrying on against him, --that when he thought,
  • good easy man! full surely preferment was o’ ripening, --they had smote
  • his root, and then he fell, as many a worthy man had fallen before him.
  • _Yorick_, however, fought it out with all imaginable gallantry for some
  • time; till, overpowered by numbers, and worn out at length by the
  • calamities of the war, --but more so, by the ungenerous manner in which
  • it was carried on, --he threw down the sword; and though he kept up his
  • spirits in appearance to the last, he died, nevertheless, as was
  • generally thought, quite broken-hearted.
  • What inclined _Eugenius_ to the same opinion was as follows:
  • A few hours before _Yorick_ breathed his last, _Eugenius_ stept in with
  • an intent to take his last sight and last farewell of him. Upon his
  • drawing _Yorick’s_ curtain, and asking how he felt himself, _Yorick_
  • looking up in his face took hold of his hand, --and after thanking him
  • for the many tokens of his friendship to him, for which, he said, if it
  • was their fate to meet hereafter, --he would thank him again and again,
  • --he told him, he was within a few hours of giving his enemies the slip
  • for ever. --I hope not, answered _Eugenius_, with tears trickling down
  • his cheeks, and with the tenderest tone that ever man spoke. --I hope
  • not, _Yorick_, said he. ----_Yorick_ replied, with a look up, and a
  • gentle squeeze of _Eugenius’s_ hand, and that was all, --but it cut
  • _Eugenius_ to his heart, --Come--come, _Yorick_, quoth _Eugenius_,
  • wiping his eyes, and summoning up the man within him, --my dear lad, be
  • comforted, --let not all thy spirits and fortitude forsake thee at this
  • crisis when thou most wants them; ----who knows what resources are in
  • store, and what the power of God may yet do for thee? ----_Yorick_ laid
  • his hand upon his heart, and gently shook his head; --For my part,
  • continued _Eugenius_, crying bitterly as he uttered the words, --I
  • declare I know not, _Yorick_, how to part with thee, and would gladly
  • flatter my hopes, added _Eugenius_, chearing up his voice, that there is
  • still enough left of thee to make a bishop, and that I may live to see
  • it. ----I beseech thee, _Eugenius_, quoth _Yorick_, taking off his
  • night-cap as well as he could with his left hand, ----his right being
  • still grasped close in that of _Eugenius_, ----I beseech thee to take a
  • view of my head. --I see nothing that ails it, replied _Eugenius_. Then,
  • alas! my friend, said _Yorick_, let me tell you, that ’tis so bruised
  • and mis-shapened with the blows which ***** and *****, and some others
  • have so unhandsomely given me, in the dark, that I might say with
  • _Sancho Pança_, that should I recover, and “Mitres thereupon be suffered
  • to rain down from heaven as thick as hail, not one of them would fit
  • it.” ----_Yorick’s_ last breath was hanging upon his trembling lips
  • ready to depart as he uttered this: ----yet still it was uttered with
  • something of a _Cervantick_ tone; ----and as he spoke it, _Eugenius_
  • could perceive a stream of lambent fire lighted up for a moment in his
  • eyes; ----faint picture of those flashes of his spirit, which
  • (as _Shakespeare_ said of his ancestor) were wont to set the table in a
  • roar!
  • _Eugenius_ was convinced from this, that the heart of his friend was
  • broke: he squeezed his hand, ----and then walked softly out of the room,
  • weeping as he walked. _Yorick_ followed _Eugenius_ with his eyes to the
  • door, --he then closed them, --and never opened them more.
  • [Illustration (full-page black tombstone)]
  • He lies buried in the corner of his churchyard, in the parish of ------,
  • under a plain marble slab, which his friend _Eugenius_, by leave of his
  • executors, laid upon his grave, with no more than these three words of
  • inscription, serving both for his epitaph and elegy.
  • ____________________
  • | |
  • | Alas, poor YORICK! |
  • |____________________|
  • Ten times a day has _Yorick’s_ ghost the consolation to hear his
  • monumental inscription read over with such a variety of plaintive tones,
  • as denote a general pity and esteem for him; ----a foot-way crossing the
  • churchyard close by the side of his grave, --not a passenger goes by
  • without stopping to cast a look upon it, --and sighing as he walks on,
  • Alas, poor YORICK!
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • It is so long since the reader of this rhapsodical work has been parted
  • from the midwife, that it is high time to mention her again to him,
  • merely to put him in mind that there is such a body still in the world,
  • and whom, upon the best judgment I can form upon my own plan at present,
  • --I am going to introduce to him for good and all: But as fresh matter
  • may be started, and much unexpected business fall out betwixt the reader
  • and myself, which may require immediate dispatch; ----’twas right to
  • take care that the poor woman should not be lost in the meantime;
  • --because when she is wanted, we can no way do without her.
  • I think I told you that this good woman was a person of no small note
  • and consequence throughout our whole village and township; --that her
  • fame had spread itself to the very out-edge and circumference of that
  • circle of importance, of which kind every soul living, whether he has a
  • shirt to his back or no, ----has one surrounding him; --which said
  • circle, by the way, whenever ’tis said that such a one is of great
  • weight and importance in the _world_, ----I desire may be enlarged or
  • contracted in your worship’s fancy, in a compound ratio of the station,
  • profession, knowledge, abilities, height and depth (measuring both ways)
  • of the personage brought before you.
  • In the present case, if I remember, I fixed it about four or five miles,
  • which not only comprehended the whole parish, but extended itself to two
  • or three of the adjacent hamlets in the skirts of the next parish; which
  • made a considerable thing of it. I must add, That she was, moreover,
  • very well looked on at one large grange-house, and some other odd houses
  • and farms within two or three miles, as I said, from the smoke of her
  • own chimney: ----But I must here, once for all, inform you, that all
  • this will be more exactly delineated and explain’d in a map, now in the
  • hands of the engraver, which, with many other pieces and developements
  • of this work, will be added to the end of the twentieth volume, --not to
  • swell the work, --I detest the thought of such a thing; --but by way of
  • commentary, scholium, illustration, and key to such passages, incidents,
  • or innuendos as shall be thought to be either of private interpretation,
  • or of dark or doubtful meaning, after my life and my opinions shall have
  • been read over (now don’t forget the meaning of the word) by all the
  • _world_; ----which, betwixt you and me, and in spite of all the
  • gentlemen-reviewers in _Great Britain_, and of all that their worships
  • shall undertake to write or say to the contrary, --I am determined shall
  • be the case. --I need not tell your worship, that all this is spoke in
  • confidence.
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • Upon looking into my mother’s marriage-settlement, in order to satisfy
  • myself and reader in a point necessary to be cleared up, before we could
  • proceed any farther in this history; --I had the good fortune to pop
  • upon the very thing I wanted before I had read a day and a half straight
  • forwards, --it might have taken me up a month; --which shews plainly,
  • that when a man sits down to write a history, --tho’ it be but the
  • history of _Jack Hickathrift_ or _Tom Thumb_, he knows no more than his
  • heels what lets and confounded hindrances he is to meet with in his way,
  • --or what a dance he may be led, by one excursion or another, before all
  • is over. Could a historiographer drive on his history, as a muleteer
  • drives on his mule, --straight forward; ----for instance, from _Rome_
  • all the way to _Loretto_, without ever once turning his head aside
  • either to the right hand or to the left, ----he might venture to
  • foretell you to an hour when he should get to his journey’s end; ----but
  • the thing is, morally speaking, impossible: For, if he is a man of the
  • least spirit, he will have fifty deviations from a straight line to make
  • with this or that party as he goes along, which he can no ways avoid. He
  • will have views and prospects to himself perpetually soliciting his eye,
  • which he can no more help standing still to look at than he can fly; he
  • will moreover have various
  • Accounts to reconcile:
  • Anecdotes to pick up:
  • Inscriptions to make out:
  • Stories to weave in:
  • Traditions to sift:
  • Personages to call upon:
  • Panegyricks to paste up at this door;
  • Pasquinades at that: ----All which both the man and his mule are quite
  • exempt from. To sum up all; there are archives at every stage to be
  • look’d into, and rolls, records, documents, and endless genealogies,
  • which justice ever and anon calls him back to stay the reading of:
  • ----In short, there is no end of it; ----for my own part, I declare I
  • had been at it these six weeks, making all the speed I possibly could,
  • --and am not yet born: --I have just been able, and that’s all, to tell
  • you _when_ it happen’d, but not _how_; --so that you see the thing is
  • yet far from being accomplished.
  • These unforeseen stoppages, which I own I had no conception of when I
  • first set out; --but which, I am convinced now, will rather increase
  • than diminish as I advance, --have struck out a hint which I am resolved
  • to follow; ----and that is, --not to be in a hurry; but to go on
  • leisurely, writing and publishing two volumes of my life every year;
  • ----which, if I am suffered to go on quietly, and can make a tolerable
  • bargain with my bookseller, I shall continue to do as long as I live.
  • CHAPTER XV
  • The article in my mother’s marriage-settlement, which I told the reader
  • I was at the pains to search for, and which, now that I have found it,
  • I think proper to lay before him, --is so much more fully express’d in
  • the deed itself, than ever I can pretend to do it, that it would be
  • barbarity to take it out of the lawyer’s hand: --It is as follows.
  • “#And this Indenture further witnesseth#, That the said _Walter Shandy_,
  • merchant, in consideration of the said intended marriage to be had, and,
  • by God’s blessing, to be well and truly solemnised and consummated
  • between the said _Walter Shandy_ and _Elizabeth Mollineux_ aforesaid,
  • and divers other good and valuable causes and considerations him
  • thereunto specially moving, --doth grant, covenant, condescend, consent,
  • conclude, bargain, and fully agree to and with _John Dixon_, and _James
  • Turner_, Esqrs. the above-named Trustees, _&c. &c._--#to Wit#, --That in
  • case it should hereafter so fall out, chance, happen, or otherwise come
  • to pass, --That the said _Walter Shandy_, merchant, shall have left off
  • business before the time or times, that the said _Elizabeth Mollineux_
  • shall, according to the course of nature, or otherwise, have left off
  • bearing and bringing forth children; --and that, in consequence of the
  • said _Walter Shandy_ having so left off business, he shall in despight,
  • and against the free-will, consent, and good-liking of the said
  • _Elizabeth Mollineux_, --make a departure from the city of _London_, in
  • order to retire to, and dwell upon, his estate at _Shandy Hall_, in the
  • county of ----, or at any other country-seat, castle, hall,
  • mansion-house, messuage or grainge-house, now purchased, or hereafter to
  • be purchased, or upon any part or parcel thereof: --That then, and as
  • often as the said _Elizabeth Mollineux_ shall happen to be enceint with
  • child or children severally and lawfully begot, or to be begotten, upon
  • the body of the said _Elizabeth Mollineux_, during her said coverture,
  • --he the said _Walter Shandy_ shall, at his own proper cost and charges,
  • and out of his own proper monies, upon good and reasonable notice, which
  • is hereby agreed to be within six weeks of her the said _Elizabeth
  • Mollineux’s_ full reckoning, or time of supposed and computed delivery,
  • --pay, or cause to be paid, the sum of one hundred and twenty pounds of
  • good and lawful money, to _John Dixon_, and _James Turner_, Esqrs. or
  • assigns, --upon TRUST and confidence, and for and unto the use and uses,
  • intent, end, and purpose following: --#That is to say#, --That the said
  • sum of one hundred and twenty pounds shall be paid into the hands of the
  • said _Elizabeth Mollineux_, or to be otherwise applied by them the said
  • Trustees, for the well and truly hiring of one coach, with able and
  • sufficient horses, to carry and convey the body of the said _Elizabeth
  • Mollineux_, and the child or children which she shall be then and there
  • enceint and pregnant with, --unto the city of _London_; and for the
  • further paying and defraying of all other incidental costs, charges, and
  • expences whatsoever, --in and about, and for, and relating to, her said
  • intended delivery and lying-in, in the said city or suburbs thereof. And
  • that the said _Elizabeth Mollineux_ shall and may, from time to time,
  • and at all such time and times as are here covenanted and agreed upon,
  • --peaceably and quietly hire the said coach and horses, and have free
  • ingress, egress, and regress throughout her journey, in and from the
  • said coach, according to the tenor, true intent, and meaning of these
  • presents, without any let, suit, trouble, disturbance, molestation,
  • discharge, hindrance, forfeiture, eviction, vexation, interruption, or
  • incumbrance whatsoever. --And that it shall moreover be lawful to and
  • for the said _Elizabeth Mollineux_, from time to time, and as oft or
  • often as she shall well and truly be advanced in her said pregnancy, to
  • the time heretofore stipulated and agreed upon, --to live and reside in
  • such place or places, and in such family or families, and with such
  • relations, friends, and other persons within the said city of _London_,
  • as she at her own will and pleasure, notwithstanding her present
  • coverture, and as if she was a _femme sole_ and unmarried, --shall think
  • fit. --#And this Indenture further Witnesseth#, That for the more
  • effectually carrying of the said covenant into execution, the said
  • _Walter Shandy_, merchant, doth hereby grant, bargain, sell, release,
  • and confirm unto the said _John Dixon_, and _James Turner_, Esqrs. their
  • heirs, executors, and assigns, in their actual possession now being, by
  • virtue of an indenture of bargain and sale for a year to them the said
  • _John Dickson_, and _James Turner_, Esqrs. by him the said _Walter
  • Shandy_, merchant, thereof made; which said bargain and sale for a year,
  • bears date the day next before the date of these presents, and by force
  • and virtue of the statute for transferring of uses into possession,
  • --#All# that the manor and lordship of _Shandy_, in the county of ----,
  • with all the rights, members, and appurtenances thereof; and all and
  • every the messuages, houses, buildings, barns, stables, orchards,
  • gardens, backsides, tofts, crofts, garths, cottages, lands, meadows,
  • feedings, pastures, marshes, commons, woods, underwoods, drains,
  • fisheries, waters, and water-courses; --together with all rents,
  • reversions, services, annuities, fee-farms, knights fees, views of
  • frankpledge, escheats, reliefs, mines, quarries, goods and chattels of
  • felons and fugitives, felons of themselves, and put in exigent,
  • deodands, free warrens, and all other royalties and seigniories, rights
  • and jurisdictions, privileges and hereditaments whatsoever. ----#And
  • also# the advowson, donation, presentation, and free disposition of the
  • rectory or parsonage of _Shandy_ aforesaid, and all and every the
  • tenths, tythes, glebe-lands.” ----In three words, ----“My mother was to
  • lay in, (if she chose it) in _London_.”
  • But in order to put a stop to the practice of any unfair play on the
  • part of my mother, which a marriage-article of this nature too
  • manifestly opened a door to, and which indeed had never been thought of
  • at all, but for my uncle _Toby Shandy_; --a clause was added in security
  • of my father, which was this: --“That in case my mother hereafter
  • should, at any time, put my father to the trouble and expence of a
  • _London_ journey, upon false cries and tokens; ----that for every such
  • instance, she should forfeit all the right and title which the covenant
  • gave her to the next turn; ----but to no more, --and so on, _toties
  • quoties_, in as effectual a manner, as if such a covenant betwixt them
  • had not been made.” --This, by the way, was no more than what was
  • reasonable; --and yet, as reasonable as it was, I have ever thought it
  • hard that the whole weight of the article should have fallen entirely,
  • as it did, upon myself.
  • But I was begot and born to misfortunes: --for my poor mother, whether
  • it was wind or water--or a compound of both, --or neither; --or whether
  • it was simply the mere swell of imagination and fancy in her; --or how
  • far a strong wish and desire to have it so, might mislead her judgment:
  • --in short, whether she was deceived or deceiving in this matter, it no
  • way becomes me to decide. The fact was this, That in the latter end of
  • _September_ 1717, which was the year before I was born, my mother having
  • carried my father up to town much against the grain, --he peremptorily
  • insisted upon the clause; --so that I was doom’d, by marriage-articles,
  • to have my nose squeez’d as flat to my face, as if the destinies had
  • actually spun me without one.
  • How this event came about, --and what a train of vexatious
  • disappointments, in one stage or other of my life, have pursued me from
  • the mere loss, or rather compression, of this one single member, --shall
  • be laid before the reader all in due time.
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • My father, as anybody may naturally imagine, came down with my mother
  • into the country, in but a pettish kind of a humour. The first twenty or
  • five-and-twenty miles he did nothing in the world but fret and teaze
  • himself, and indeed my mother too, about the cursed expence, which he
  • said might every shilling of it have been saved; --then what vexed him
  • more than everything else was, the provoking time of the year, --which,
  • as I told you, was towards the end of _September_, when his wall-fruit
  • and green gages especially, in which he was very curious, were just
  • ready for pulling: ----“Had he been whistled up to _London_, upon a _Tom
  • Fool’s_ errand, in any other month of the whole year, he should not have
  • said three words about it.”
  • For the next two whole stages, no subject would go down, but the heavy
  • blow he had sustain’d from the loss of a son, whom it seems he had fully
  • reckon’d upon in his mind, and register’d down in his pocket-book, as a
  • second staff for his old age, in case _Bobby_ should fail him. The
  • disappointment of this, he said, was ten times more to a wise man, than
  • all the money which the journey, etc., had cost him, put together, --rot
  • the hundred and twenty pounds, ----he did not mind it a rush.
  • From _Stilton_, all the way to _Grantham_, nothing in the whole affair
  • provoked him so much as the condolences of his friends, and the foolish
  • figure they should both make at church, the first _Sunday_; ----of
  • which, in the satirical vehemence of his wit, now sharpen’d a little by
  • vexation, he would give so many humorous and provoking descriptions,
  • --and place his rib and self in so many tormenting lights and attitudes
  • in the face of the whole congregation; --that my mother declared, these
  • two stages were so truly tragi-comical, that she did nothing but laugh
  • and cry in a breath, from one end to the other of them all the way.
  • From _Grantham_, till they had cross’d the _Trent_, my father was out of
  • all kind of patience at the vile trick and imposition which he fancied
  • my mother had put upon him in this affair-- “Certainly,” he would say to
  • himself, over and over again, “the woman could not be deceived
  • herself----if she could, ----what weakness!” --tormenting word! --which
  • led his imagination a thorny dance, and, before all was over, play’d the
  • duce and all with him; ----for sure as ever the word _weakness_ was
  • uttered, and struck full upon his brain--so sure it set him upon running
  • divisions upon how many kinds of weaknesses there were; ----that there
  • was such a thing as weakness of the body, ----as well as weakness of the
  • mind, --and then he would do nothing but syllogize within himself for a
  • stage or two together, How far the cause of all these vexations might,
  • or might not, have arisen out of himself.
  • In short, he had so many little subjects of disquietude springing out of
  • this one affair, all fretting successively in his mind as they rose up
  • in it, that my mother, whatever was her journey up, had but an uneasy
  • journey of it down. ----In a word, as she complained to my uncle _Toby_,
  • he would have tired out the patience of any flesh alive.
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • Though my father travelled homewards, as I told you, in none of the best
  • of moods, --pshawing and pishing all the way down, --yet he had the
  • complaisance to keep the worst part of the story still to himself;
  • --which was the resolution he had taken of doing himself the justice,
  • which my uncle _Toby’s_ clause in the marriage-settlement empowered him;
  • nor was it till the very night in which I was begot, which was thirteen
  • months after, that she had the least intimation of his design: when my
  • father, happening, as you remember, to be a little chagrin’d and out of
  • temper, ----took occasion as they lay chatting gravely in bed
  • afterwards, talking over what was to come, ----to let her know that she
  • must accommodate herself as well as she could to the bargain made
  • between them in their marriage-deeds; which was to lye-in of her next
  • child in the country, to balance the last year’s journey.
  • My father was a gentleman of many virtues, --but he had a strong spice
  • of that in his temper, which might, or might not, add to the number.
  • --’Tis known by the name of perseverance in a good cause, --and of
  • obstinacy in a bad one: Of this my mother had so much knowledge, that
  • she knew ’twas to no purpose to make any remonstrance, --so she e’en
  • resolved to sit down quietly, and make the most of it.
  • CHAPTER XVIII
  • As the point was that night agreed, or rather determined, that my mother
  • should lye-in of me in the country, she took her measures accordingly;
  • for which purpose, when she was three days, or thereabouts, gone with
  • child, she began to cast her eyes upon the midwife, whom you have so
  • often heard me mention; and before the week was well got round, as the
  • famous Dr. _Manningham_ was not to be had, she had come to a final
  • determination in her mind, ----notwithstanding there was a scientific
  • operator within so near a call as eight miles of us, and who, moreover,
  • had expressly wrote a five shillings book upon the subject of midwifery,
  • in which he had exposed, not only the blunders of the sisterhood itself,
  • ----but had likewise superadded many curious improvements for the
  • quicker extraction of the fœtus in cross births, and some other cases of
  • danger, which belay us in getting into the world; notwithstanding all
  • this, my mother, I say, was absolutely determined to trust her life, and
  • mine with it, into no soul’s hand but this old woman’s only. --Now this
  • I like; --when we cannot get at the very thing we wish----never to take
  • up with the next best in degree to it: --no; that’s pitiful beyond
  • description; --it is no more than a week from this very day, in which I
  • am now writing this book for the edification of the world; --which is
  • _March_ 9, 1759, ----that my dear, dear _Jenny_, observing I looked a
  • little grave, as she stood cheapening a silk of five-and-twenty
  • shillings a yard, --told the mercer, she was sorry she had given him so
  • much trouble; --and immediately went and bought herself a yard-wide
  • stuff of tenpence a yard. --’Tis the duplication of one and the same
  • greatness of soul; only what lessened the honour of it, somewhat, in my
  • mother’s case, was, that she could not heroine it into so violent and
  • hazardous an extreme, as one in her situation might have wished, because
  • the old widwife had really some little claim to be depended upon, --as
  • much, at least, as success could give her; having, in the course of her
  • practice of near twenty years in the parish, brought every mother’s son
  • of them into the world without any one slip or accident which could
  • fairly be laid to her account.
  • These facts, tho’ they had their weight, yet did not altogether satisfy
  • some few scruples and uneasinesses which hung upon my father’s spirits
  • in relation to this choice. --To say nothing of the natural workings of
  • humanity and justice--or of the yearnings of parental and connubial
  • love, all which prompted him to leave as little to hazard as possible in
  • a case of this kind; ----he felt himself concerned in a particular
  • manner, that all should go right in the present case; --from the
  • accumulated sorrow he lay open to, should any evil betide his wife and
  • child in lying-in at _Shandy-Hall_. ----He knew the world judged by
  • events, and would add to his afflictions in such a misfortune, by
  • loading him with the whole blame of it. ----“Alas, o’day; --had Mrs.
  • _Shandy_, poor gentlewoman! had but her wish in going up to town just to
  • lye-in and come down again; --which, they say, she begged and prayed for
  • upon her bare knees, ----and which, in my opinion, considering the
  • fortune which Mr. _Shandy_ got with her, --was no such mighty matter to
  • have complied with, the lady and her babe might both of them have been
  • alive at this hour.”
  • This exclamation, my father knew, was unanswerable; --and yet, it was
  • not merely to shelter himself, --nor was it altogether for the care of
  • his offspring and wife that he seemed so extremely anxious about this
  • point; --my father had extensive views of things, ----and stood
  • moreover, as he thought, deeply concerned in it for the publick good,
  • from the dread he entertained of the bad uses an ill-fated instance
  • might be put to.
  • He was very sensible that all political writers upon the subject had
  • unanimously agreed and lamented, from the beginning of Queen
  • _Elizabeth’s_ reign down to his own time, that the current of men and
  • money towards the metropolis, upon one frivolous errand or another,
  • --set in so strong, --as to become dangerous to our civil rights,
  • --though, by the bye, ----a _current_ was not the image he took most
  • delight in, --a _distemper_ was here his favourite metaphor, and he
  • would run it down into a perfect allegory, by maintaining it was
  • identically the same in the body national as in the body natural where
  • the blood and spirits were driven up into the head faster than they
  • could find their ways down; ----a stoppage of circulation must ensue,
  • which was death in both cases.
  • There was little danger, he would say, of losing our liberties by
  • _French_ politicks or _French_ invasions; ----nor was he so much in pain
  • of a consumption from the mass of corrupted matter and ulcerated humours
  • in our constitution, which he hoped was not so bad as it was imagined;
  • --but he verily feared, that in some violent push, we should go off, all
  • at once, in a state-apoplexy; --and then he would say, _The Lord have
  • mercy upon us all_.
  • My father was never able to give the history of this distemper,
  • --without the remedy along with it.
  • “Was I an absolute prince,” he would say, pulling up his breeches with
  • both his hands, as he rose from his arm-chair, “I would appoint able
  • judges, at every avenue of my metropolis, who should take cognizance of
  • every fool’s business who came there; --and if, upon a fair and candid
  • hearing, it appeared not of weight sufficient to leave his own home, and
  • come up, bag and baggage, with his wife and children, farmer’s sons,
  • &c., &c., at his backside, they should be all sent back, from constable
  • to constable, like vagrants as they were, to the place of their legal
  • settlements. By this means I shall take care, that my metropolis
  • totter’d not thro’ its own weight; --that the head be no longer too big
  • for the body; --that the extremes, now wasted and pinn’d in, be restored
  • to their due share of nourishment, and regain with it their natural
  • strength and beauty: --I would effectually provide, That the meadows and
  • corn-fields of my dominions, should laugh and sing; --that good chear
  • and hospitality flourish once more; --and that such weight and influence
  • be put thereby into the hands of the Squirality of my kingdom, as should
  • counterpoise what I perceive my Nobility are now taking from them.
  • “Why are there so few palaces and gentlemen’s seats,” he would ask, with
  • some emotion, as he walked across the room, “throughout so many
  • delicious provinces in _France?_ Whence is it that the few remaining
  • _Chateaus_ amongst them are so dismantled, --so unfurnished, and in so
  • ruinous and desolate a condition? ----Because, Sir,” (he would say) “in
  • that kingdom no man has any country-interest to support; --the little
  • interest of any kind which any man has anywhere in it, is concentrated
  • in the court, and the looks of the Grand Monarch: by the sunshine of
  • whose countenance, or the clouds which pass across it, every _French_
  • man lives or dies.”
  • Another political reason which prompted my father so strongly to guard
  • against the least evil accident in my mother’s lying-in in the country,
  • ----was, That any such instance would infallibly throw a balance of
  • power, too great already, into the weaker vessels of the gentry, in his
  • own, or higher stations; ----which, with the many other usurped rights
  • which that part of the constitution was hourly establishing, --would, in
  • the end, prove fatal to the monarchical system of domestick government
  • established in the first creation of things by God.
  • In this point he was entirely of Sir _Robert Filmer’s_ opinion, That the
  • plans and institutions of the greatest monarchies in the eastern parts
  • of the world were, originally, all stolen from that admirable pattern
  • and prototype of this household and paternal power; --which, for a
  • century, he said, and more, had gradually been degenerating away into a
  • mix’d government; ----the form of which, however desirable in great
  • combinations of the species, ----was very troublesome in small ones,
  • --and seldom produced anything, that he saw, but sorrow and confusion.
  • For all these reasons, private and publick, put together, --my father
  • was for having the man-midwife by all means, --my mother by no means. My
  • father begg’d and intreated she would for once recede from her
  • prerogative in this matter, and suffer him to choose for her; --my
  • mother, on the contrary, insisted upon her privilege in this matter, to
  • choose for herself, --and have no mortal’s help but the old woman’s.
  • --What could my father do? He was almost at his wit’s end; ----talked it
  • over with her in all moods; --placed his arguments in all lights;
  • --argued the matter with her like a christian, --like a heathen, --like
  • a husband, --like a father, --like a patriot, --like a man: --My mother
  • answered everything only like a woman; which was a little hard upon her;
  • --for as she could not assume and fight it out behind such a variety of
  • characters, --’twas no fair match: --’twas seven to one. --What could my
  • mother do? ----She had the advantage (otherwise she had been certainly
  • overpowered) of a small reinforcement of chagrin personal at the bottom,
  • which bore her up, and enabled her to dispute the affair with my father
  • with so equal an advantage, ----that both sides sung _Te Deum_. In a
  • word, my mother was to have the old woman, --and the operator was to
  • have licence to drink a bottle of wine with my father and my uncle _Toby
  • Shandy_ in the back parlour, --for which he was to be paid five guineas.
  • I must beg leave, before I finish this chapter, to enter a caveat in the
  • breast of my fair reader; --and it is this, ----Not to take it
  • absolutely for granted, from an unguarded word or two which I have
  • dropp’d in it, ----“That I am a married man.” --I own, the tender
  • appellation of my dear, dear _Jenny_, --with some other strokes of
  • conjugal knowledge, interspersed here and there, might, naturally
  • enough, have misled the most candid judge in the world into such a
  • determination against me. --All I plead for, in this case, Madam, is
  • strict justice, and that you do so much of it, to me as well as to
  • yourself, --as not to prejudge, or receive such an impression of me,
  • till you have better evidence, than, I am positive, at present can be
  • produced against me. --Not that I can be so vain or unreasonable, Madam,
  • as to desire you should therefore think, that my dear, dear _Jenny_ is
  • my kept mistress; --no, --that would be flattering my character in the
  • other extreme, and giving it an air of freedom, which, perhaps, it has
  • no kind of right to. All I contend for, is the utter impossibility, for
  • some volumes, that you, or the most penetrating spirit upon earth,
  • should know how this matter really stands. --It is not impossible, but
  • that my dear, dear _Jenny!_ tender as the appellation is, may be my
  • child. ----Consider, --I was born in the year eighteen. --Nor is there
  • anything unnatural or extravagant in the supposition, that my dear
  • _Jenny_ may be my friend. --Friend! --My friend. --Surely, Madam,
  • a friendship between the two sexes may subsist, and be supported
  • without ------Fy! Mr. _Shandy_: --Without anything, Madam, but that
  • tender and delicious sentiment, which ever mixes in friendship, where
  • there is a difference of sex. Let me intreat you to study the pure and
  • sentimental parts of the best _French_ Romances; --it will really,
  • Madam, astonish you to see with what a variety of chaste expressions
  • this delicious sentiment, which I have the honour to speak of, is
  • dress’d out.
  • CHAPTER XIX
  • I would sooner undertake to explain the hardest problem in geometry,
  • than pretend to account for it, that a gentleman of my father’s great
  • good sense, ----knowing, as the reader must have observed him, and
  • curious too in philosophy, --wise also in political reasoning, --and in
  • polemical (as he will find) no way ignorant, --could be capable of
  • entertaining a notion in his head, so out of the common track, --that I
  • fear the reader, when I come to mention it to him, if he is the least of
  • a cholerick temper, will immediately throw the book by; if mercurial, he
  • will laugh most heartily at it; --and if he is of a grave and saturnine
  • cast, he will, at first sight, absolutely condemn as fanciful and
  • extravagant; and that was in respect to the choice and imposition of
  • christian names, on which he thought a great deal more depended than
  • what superficial minds were capable of conceiving.
  • His opinion, in this matter, was, That there was a strange kind of
  • magick bias, which good or bad names, as he called them, irresistibly
  • impressed upon our characters and conduct.
  • The hero of _Cervantes_ argued not the point with more seriousness,
  • ----nor had he more faith, ----or more to say on the powers of
  • necromancy in dishonouring his deeds, --or on DULCINEA’S name, in
  • shedding lustre upon them, than my father had on those of TRISMEGISTUS
  • or ARCHIMEDES, on the one hand--or of NYKY and SIMKIN on the other. How
  • many CÆSARS and POMPEYS, he would say, by mere inspiration of the names,
  • have been rendered worthy of them? And how many, he would add, are
  • there, who might have done exceeding well in the world, had not their
  • characters and spirits been totally depressed and NICOMEDUS’D into
  • nothing?
  • I see plainly, Sir, by your looks (or as the case happened), my father
  • would say--that you do not heartily subscribe to this opinion of mine,
  • --which, to those, he would add, who have not carefully sifted it to the
  • bottom, --I own has an air more of fancy than of solid reasoning in it;
  • ----and yet, my dear Sir, if I may presume to know your character, I am
  • morally assured, I should hazard little in stating a case to you, --not
  • as a party in the dispute, --but as a judge, and trusting my appeal upon
  • it to your own good sense and candid disquisition in this matter;
  • ----you are a person free from as many narrow prejudices of education as
  • most men; --and, if I may presume to penetrate farther into you, --of a
  • liberality of genius above bearing down an opinion, merely because it
  • wants friends. Your son, --your dear son, --from whose sweet and open
  • temper you have so much to expect. --Your BILLY, Sir! --would you, for
  • the world, have called him JUDAS? --Would you, my dear Sir, he would
  • say, laying his hand upon your breast, with the genteelest address,
  • --and in that soft and irresistible _piano_ of voice, which the nature
  • of the _argumentum ad hominem_ absolutely requires, --Would you, Sir, if
  • a _Jew_ of a godfather had proposed the name for your child, and offered
  • you his purse along with it, would you have consented to such a
  • desecration of him? ----O my God! he would say, looking up, if I know
  • your temper right, Sir, --you are incapable of it; ----you would have
  • trampled upon the offer; --you would have thrown the temptation at the
  • tempter’s head with abhorrence.
  • Your greatness of mind in this action, which I admire, with that
  • generous contempt of money, which you shew me in the whole transaction,
  • is really noble; --and what renders it more so, is the principle of it;
  • --the workings of a parent’s love upon the truth and conviction of this
  • very hypothesis, namely, That was your son called JUDAS, --the sordid
  • and treacherous idea, so inseparable from the name, would have
  • accompanied him through life like his shadow, and, in the end, made a
  • miser and a rascal of him, in spite, Sir, of your example.
  • I never knew a man able to answer this argument. ----But, indeed, to
  • speak of my father as he was; --he was certainly irresistible; --both in
  • his orations and disputations; --he was born an orator; --Θεοδίδακτος.
  • --Persuasion hung upon his lips, and the elements of Logick and
  • Rhetorick were so blended up in him, --and, withal, he had so shrewd a
  • guess at the weaknesses and passions of his respondent, ----that NATURE
  • might have stood up and said, --“This man is eloquent.” --In short,
  • whether he was on the weak or the strong side of the question, ’twas
  • hazardous in either case to attack him. --And yet, ’tis strange, he had
  • never read _Cicero_, nor _Quintilian de Oratore_, nor _Isocrates_, nor
  • _Aristotle_, nor _Longinus_ amongst the antients; --nor _Vossius_, nor
  • _Skioppius_, nor _Ramus_, nor _Farnaby_ amongst the moderns; --and what
  • is more astonishing, he had never in his whole life the least light or
  • spark of subtilty struck into his mind, by one single lecture upon
  • _Crackenthorp_ or _Burgersdicius_, or any Dutch logician or commentator;
  • --he knew not so much as in what the difference of an argument _ad
  • ignorantiam_, and an argument _ad hominem_ consisted; so that I well
  • remember, when he went up along with me to enter my name at _Jesus
  • College_ in ****, --it was a matter of just wonder with my worthy tutor,
  • and two or three fellows of that learned society, --that a man who knew
  • not so much as the names of his tools, should be able to work after that
  • fashion with them.
  • To work with them in the best manner he could, was what my father was,
  • however, perpetually forced upon; ----for he had a thousand little
  • sceptical notions of the comick kind to defend----most of which notions,
  • I verily believe, at first entered upon the footing of mere whims, and
  • of a _vive la Bagatelle_; and as such he would make merry with them for
  • half an hour or so, and having sharpened his wit upon them, dismiss them
  • till another day.
  • I mention this, not only as matter of hypothesis or conjecture upon the
  • progress and establishment of my father’s many odd opinions, --but as a
  • warning to the learned reader against the indiscreet reception of such
  • guests, who, after a free and undisturbed entrance, for some years, into
  • our brains, --at length claim a kind of settlement there, ----working
  • sometimes like yeast; --but more generally after the manner of the
  • gentle passion, beginning in jest, --but ending in downright earnest.
  • Whether this was the case of the singularity of my father’s notions--or
  • that his judgment, at length, became the dupe of his wit; --or how far,
  • in many of his notions, he might, though odd, be absolutely right;
  • ----the reader, as he comes at them, shall decide. All that I maintain
  • here, is, that in this one, of the influence of christian names, however
  • it gained footing, he was serious; --he was all uniformity; --he was
  • systematical, and, like all systematick reasoners, he would move both
  • heaven and earth, and twist and torture everything in nature, to support
  • his hypothesis. In a word, I repeat it over again; --he was serious;
  • --and, in consequence of it, he would lose all kind of patience whenever
  • he saw people, especially of condition, who should have known better,
  • ----as careless and as indifferent about the name they imposed upon
  • their child, --or more so, than in the choice of _Ponto_ or _Cupid_ for
  • their puppy-dog.
  • This, he would say, look’d ill; --and had, moreover, this particular
  • aggravation in it, viz., That when once a vile name was wrongfully or
  • injudiciously given, ’twas not like the case of a man’s character,
  • which, when wrong’d, might hereafter be cleared; ----and, possibly, some
  • time or other, if not in the man’s life, at least after his death, --be,
  • somehow or other, set to rights with the world: But the injury of this,
  • he would say, could never be undone; --nay, he doubted even whether an
  • act of parliament could reach it: ----He knew as well as you, that the
  • legislature assumed a power over surnames; --but for very strong
  • reasons, which he could give, it had never yet adventured, he would say,
  • to go a step farther.
  • It was observable, that tho’ my father, in consequence of this opinion,
  • had, as I have told you, the strongest likings and dislikings towards
  • certain names; --that there were still numbers of names which hung so
  • equally in the balance before him, that they were absolutely indifferent
  • to him. _Jack_, _Dick_, and _Tom_ were of this class: These my father
  • called neutral names; --affirming of them, without a satire, That there
  • had been as many knaves and fools, at least, as wise and good men, since
  • the world began, who had indifferently borne them; --so that, like equal
  • forces acting against each other in contrary directions, he thought they
  • mutually destroyed each other’s effects; for which reason, he would
  • often declare, He would not give a cherry-stone to choose amongst them.
  • _Bob_, which was my brother’s name, was another of these neutral kinds
  • of christian names, which operated very little either way; and as my
  • father happen’d to be at _Epsom_, when it was given him, --he would
  • oft-times thank Heaven it was no worse. _Andrew_ was something like a
  • negative quantity in Algebra with him; --’twas worse, he said, than
  • nothing. --_William_ stood pretty high: ----_Numps_ again was low with
  • him: --and _Nick_, he said, was the DEVIL.
  • But, of all the names in the universe, he had the most unconquerable
  • aversion for TRISTRAM; --he had the lowest and most contemptible opinion
  • of it of anything in the world, --thinking it could possibly produce
  • nothing in _rerum naturâ_, but what was extremely mean and pitiful: So
  • that in the midst of a dispute on the subject, in which, by the bye, he
  • was frequently involved, ----he would sometimes break off in a sudden
  • and spirited EPIPHONEMA, or rather EROTESIS, raised a third, and
  • sometimes a full fifth above the key of the discourse, ----and demand it
  • categorically of his antagonist, Whether he would take upon him to say,
  • he had ever remembered, ----whether he had ever read, --or even whether
  • he had ever heard tell of a man, called _Tristram_, performing anything
  • great or worth recording? --No, --he would say, --TRISTRAM! --The thing
  • is impossible.
  • What could be wanting in my father but to have wrote a book to publish
  • this notion of his to the world? Little boots it to the subtle
  • speculatist to stand single in his opinions, --unless he gives them
  • proper vent: --It was the identical thing which my father did: --for in
  • the year sixteen, which was two years before I was born, he was at the
  • pains of writing an express DISSERTATION simply upon the word
  • _Tristram_, --shewing the world, with great candour and modesty, the
  • grounds of his great abhorrence to the name.
  • When this story is compared with the title-page, --Will not the gentle
  • reader pity my father from his soul? --to see an orderly and
  • well-disposed gentleman, who tho’ singular, --yet inoffensive in his
  • notions, --so played upon in them by cross purposes; ----to look down
  • upon the stage, and see him baffled and overthrown in all his little
  • systems and wishes; to behold a train of events perpetually falling out
  • against him, and in so critical and cruel a way, as if they had
  • purposedly been plann’d and pointed against him, merely to insult his
  • speculations. ----In a word, to behold such a one, in his old age,
  • ill-fitted for troubles, ten times in a day suffering sorrow; --ten
  • times in a day calling the child of his prayers TRISTRAM! --Melancholy
  • dissyllable of sound! which, to his ears, was unison to _Nincompoop_,
  • and every name vituperative under heaven. ----By his ashes! I swear it,
  • --if ever malignant spirit took pleasure, or busied itself in traversing
  • the purposes of mortal man, --it must have been here; --and if it was
  • not necessary I should be born before I was christened, I would this
  • moment give the reader an account of it.
  • CHAPTER XX
  • ------How could you, Madam, be so inattentive in reading the last
  • chapter? I told you in it, _That my mother was not a papist_.
  • ----Papist! You told me no such thing, Sir. --Madam, I beg leave to
  • repeat it over again, that I told you as plain, at least, as words, by
  • direct inference, could tell you such a thing. --Then, Sir, I must have
  • miss’d a page. --No, Madam, --you have not miss’d a word. ----Then I was
  • asleep, Sir. --My pride, Madam, cannot allow you that refuge. ----Then,
  • I declare, I know nothing at all about the matter. --That, Madam, is the
  • very fault I lay to your charge; and as a punishment for it, I do insist
  • upon it, that you immediately turn back, that is, as soon as you get to
  • the next full stop, and read the whole chapter over again. I have
  • imposed this penance upon the lady, neither out of wantonness nor
  • cruelty; but from the best of motives; and therefore shall make her no
  • apology for it when she returns back: --’Tis to rebuke a vicious taste,
  • which has crept into thousands besides herself, --of reading straight
  • forwards, more in quest of the adventures, than of the deep erudition
  • and knowledge which a book of this cast, if read over as it should be,
  • would infallibly impart with them ----The mind should be accustomed to
  • make wise reflections, and draw curious conclusions as it goes along;
  • the habitude of which made _Pliny_ the younger affirm, “That he never
  • read a book so bad, but he drew some profit from it.” The stories of
  • _Greece_ and _Rome_, run over without this turn and application, --do
  • less service, I affirm it, than the history of _Parismus_ and
  • _Parismenus_, or of the Seven Champions of _England_, read with it.
  • ------But here comes my fair lady. Have you read over again the chapter,
  • Madam, as I desired you? --You have: And did you not observe the
  • passage, upon the second reading, which admits the inference? ----Not a
  • word like it! Then, Madam, be pleased to ponder well the last line but
  • one of the chapter, where I take upon me to say, “It was _necessary_ I
  • should be born before I was christen’d.” Had my mother, Madam, been a
  • Papist, that consequence did not follow.[1.1]
  • It is a terrible misfortune for this same book of mine, but more so to
  • the Republick of letters; --so that my own is quite swallowed up in the
  • consideration of it, --that this selfsame vile pruriency for fresh
  • adventures in all things, has got so strongly into our habit and humour,
  • --and so wholly intent are we upon satisfying the impatience of our
  • concupiscence that way, --that nothing but the gross and more carnal
  • parts of a composition will go down: --The subtle hints and sly
  • communications of science fly off, like spirits upwards, ----the heavy
  • moral escapes downwards; and both the one and the other are as much lost
  • to the world, as if they were still left in the bottom of the ink-horn.
  • I wish the male-reader has not pass’d by many a one, as quaint and
  • curious as this one, in which the female-reader has been detected.
  • I wish it may have its effects; --and that all good people, both male
  • and female, from her example, may be taught to think as well as read.
  • MEMOIRE presenté à Messieurs les Docteurs de SORBONNE[1.2]
  • _Un Chirurgien Accoucheur, represente à Messieurs les Docteurs de
  • SORBONNE, qu’il y a des cas, quoique très rares, où une mere ne sçauroit
  • accoucher, & même où l’enfant est tellement renfermé dans le sein de sa
  • mere, qu’il ne fait parôitre aucune partie de son corps, ce qui seroit
  • un cas, suivant les Rituels, de lui conférer, du moins sous condition,
  • le baptême. Le Chirurgien, qui consulte, prétend, par le moyen d’une
  • _petite canulle_, de pouvoir baptiser immediatement l’enfant, sans
  • faire aucun tort à la mere. ----Il demand si ce moyen, qu’il vient de
  • proposer, est permis & légitime, & s’il peut s’en servir dans les cas
  • qu’il vient d’exposer._
  • [Footnote 1.1: The _Romish_ Rituals direct the baptizing of the
  • child, in cases of danger, _before_ it is born; --but upon this
  • proviso, That some part or other of the child’s body be seen by
  • the baptizer: ----But the Doctors of the _Sorbonne_, by a
  • deliberation held amongst them, _April_ 10, 1733, --have enlarged
  • the powers of the midwives, by determining, That though no part
  • of the child’s body should appear, ----that baptism shall,
  • nevertheless, be administered to it by injection, --_par le moyen
  • d’une petite canulle_, --Anglicè _a squirt_. ----’Tis very strange
  • that St. _Thomas Aquinas_, who had so good a mechanical head,
  • both for tying and untying the knots of school-divinity, --should,
  • after so much pains bestowed upon this, --give up the point at
  • last, as a second _La chose impossible_, --“Infantes in maternis
  • uteris existentes (quoth St. _Thomas!_) baptizari possunt _nullo
  • modo_.” --O _Thomas!_ _Thomas!_
  • If the reader has the curiosity to see the question upon baptism
  • _by injection_, as presented to the Doctors of the _Sorbonne_,
  • with their consultation thereupon, it is as follows.]
  • [Footnote 1.2: Vide Deventer, Paris edit., 4to, 1734, p. 366.]
  • REPONSE
  • _Le Conseil estime, que la question proposée souffre de grandes
  • difficultés. Les Théologiens posent d’un côté pour principe, que le
  • baptême, qui est une naissance spirituelle, suppose une premiere
  • naissance; il faut être né dans le monde, pour renaître en _Jesus
  • Christ_, comme ils l’enseignent. _S. Thomas, 3 part, quæst. 88, artic.
  • II_, suit cette doctrine comme une verité constante; l’on ne peut, dit
  • ce S. Docteur, baptiser les enfans qui sont renfermés dans le sein de
  • leurs meres, & _S. Thomas_ est fondé sur ce, que les enfans ne sont
  • point nés, & ne peuvent être comptés parmi les autres hommes; d’où il
  • conclud, qu’ils ne peuvent être l’objet d’une action extérieure, pour
  • reçevoir par leur ministére, les sacremens nécessaires au salut:_ Pueri
  • in maternis uteris existentes nondum prodierunt in lucem ut cum aliis
  • hominibus vitam ducant; unde non possunt subjici actioni humanæ, ut per
  • eorum ministerium sacramenta recipiant ad salutem. _Les rituels
  • ordonnent dans la pratique ce que les théologiens ont établi sur les
  • mêmes matiéres, & ils deffendent tous d’une maniére uniforme, de
  • baptiser les enfans qui sont renfermés dans le sein de leurs meres,
  • s’ils ne font paroître quelque partie de leurs corps. Le concours des
  • théologiens, & des rituels, qui sont les régles des diocéses, paroit
  • former une autorité qui termine la question presente; cependant le
  • conseil de conscience considerant d’un côté, que le raisonnement des
  • théologiens est uniquement fondé sur une raison de convenance, & que la
  • deffense des rituels suppose que l’on ne peut baptiser immediatement les
  • enfans ainsi renfermés dans le sein de leurs meres, ce qui est contre la
  • supposition presente; & d’un autre côté, considerant que les mêmes
  • théologiens enseignent, que l’on peut risquer les sacremens que _Jesus
  • Christ_ a établis comme des moyens faciles, mais nécessaires pour
  • sanctifier les hommes; & d’ailleurs estimant, que les enfans renfermés
  • dans le sein de leurs meres, pourroient être capables de salut,
  • parcequ’ils sont capables de damnation; --pour ces considerations, & en
  • egard à l’exposé, suivant lequel on assure avoir trouvé un moyen certain
  • de baptiser ces enfans ainsi renfermés, sans faire aucun tort à la mere,
  • le Conseil estime que l’on pourroit se servir du moyen proposé, dans la
  • confiance qu’il a, que Dieu n’a point laissé ces sortes d’enfans sans
  • aucuns secours, & supposant, comme il est exposé, que le moyen dont il
  • s’agit est propre à leur procurer le baptême; cependant comme il
  • s’agiroit, en autorisant la pratique proposée, de changer une regie
  • universellement établie, le Conseil croit que celui qui consulte doit
  • s’addresser à son evêque, & à qui il appartient de juger de l’utilité, &
  • du danger du moyen proposé, & comme, sous le bon plaisir de l’evêque, le
  • Conseil estime qu’il faudroit recourir au Pape, qui a le droit
  • d’expliquer les régles de l’eglise, & d’y déroger dans le cas, ou la loi
  • ne sçauroit obliger, quelque sage & quelque utile que paroisse la
  • maniére de baptiser dont il s’agit, le Conseil ne pourroit l’approuver
  • sans le concours de ces deux autorités. On conseile au moins à celui qui
  • consulte, de s’addresser à son evêque, & de lui faire part de la
  • presente décision, afin que, si le prelat entre dans les raisons sur
  • lesquelles les docteurs soussignés s’appuyent, il puisse être autorisé
  • dans le cas de nécessité, ou il risqueroit trop d’attendre que la
  • permission fût demandée & accordée d’employer le moyen qu’il propose si
  • avantageux au salut de l’enfant. Au reste, le Conseil, en estimant que
  • l’on pourroit s’en servir, croit cependant, que si les enfans dont il
  • s’agit, venoient au monde, contre l’esperance de ceux qui se seroient
  • servis du même moyen, il seroit nécessaire de les baptiser sous
  • condition; & en cela le Conseil se conforme à tous les rituels, qui en
  • autorisant le baptême d’un enfant qui fait paroître quelque partie de
  • son corps, enjoignent néantmoins, & ordonnent de le baptiser sous
  • condition, s’il vient heureusement au monde._
  • Deliberé en _Sorbonne_, le 10 _Avril_, 1733.
  • A. LE MOYNE.
  • L. DE ROMIGNY.
  • DE MARCILLY.
  • Mr. _Tristram Shandy’s_ compliments to Messrs. _Le Moyne_, _De Romigny_,
  • and _De Marcilly_; hopes they all rested well the night after so
  • tiresome a consultation. --He begs to know, whether after the ceremony
  • of marriage, and before that of consummation, the baptizing all the
  • HOMUNCULI at once, slapdash, by _injection_, would not be a shorter and
  • safer cut still; on condition, as above, That if the HOMUNCULI do well,
  • and come safe into the world after this, that each and every of them
  • shall be baptized again (_sous condition_) ----And provided, in the
  • second place, That the thing can be done, which _Mr. Shandy_ apprehends
  • it may, _par le moyen d’une petite canulle_, and _sans faire aucun tort
  • au pere_.
  • CHAPTER XXI
  • ----I wonder what’s all that noise, and running backwards and forwards
  • for, above stairs, quoth my father, addressing himself, after an hour
  • and a half’s silence, to my uncle _Toby_, ----who, you must know, was
  • sitting on the opposite side of the fire, smoking his social pipe all
  • the time, in mute contemplation of a new pair of black plush-breeches
  • which he had got on: --What can they be doing, brother? --quoth my
  • father, --we can scarce hear ourselves talk.
  • I think, replied my uncle _Toby_, taking his pipe from his mouth, and
  • striking the head of it two or three times upon the nail of his left
  • thumb, as he began his sentence, ----I think, says he: ----But to enter
  • rightly into my uncle _Toby’s_ sentiments upon this matter, you must be
  • made to enter first a little into his character, the outlines of which I
  • shall just give you, and then the dialogue between him and my father
  • will go on as well again.
  • Pray what was that man’s name, --for I write in such a hurry, I have no
  • time to recollect or look for it, ----who first made the observation,
  • “That there was great inconstancy in our air and climate?” Whoever he
  • was, ’twas a just and good observation in him. --But the corollary drawn
  • from it, namely, “That it is this which has furnished us with such a
  • variety of odd and whimsical characters;” --that was not his; --it was
  • found out by another man, at least a century and a half after him: Then
  • again, --that this copious store-house of original materials, is the
  • true and natural cause that our Comedies are so much better than those
  • of _France_, or any others that either have, or can be wrote upon the
  • Continent: ----that discovery was not fully made till about the middle
  • of King _William’s_ reign, --when the great _Dryden_, in writing one of
  • his long prefaces, (if I mistake not) most fortunately hit upon it.
  • Indeed toward the latter end of Queen _Anne_, the great _Addison_ began
  • to patronize the notion, and more fully explained it to the world in one
  • or two of his Spectators; --but the discovery was not his. --Then,
  • fourthly and lastly, that this strange irregularity in our climate,
  • producing so strange an irregularity in our characters, ----doth
  • thereby, in some sort, make us amends, by giving us somewhat to make us
  • merry with when the weather will not suffer us to go out of doors,
  • --that observation is my own; --and was struck out by me this very rainy
  • day, _March_ 26, 1759, and betwixt the hours of nine and ten in the
  • morning.
  • Thus--thus, my fellow-labourers and associates in this great harvest
  • of our learning, now ripening before our eyes; thus it is, by slow
  • steps of casual increase, that our knowledge physical, metaphysical,
  • physiological, polemical, nautical, mathematical, ænigmatical,
  • technical, biographical, romantical, chemical, and obstetrical, with
  • fifty other branches of it, (most of ’em ending as these do, in _ical_)
  • have for these two last centuries and more, gradually been creeping
  • upwards towards that Ἀκμὴ of their perfections, from which, if we may
  • form a conjecture from the advances of these last seven years, we cannot
  • possibly be far off.
  • When that happens, it is to be hoped, it will put an end to all kind of
  • writings whatsoever; --the want of all kind of writing will put an end
  • to all kind of reading; --and that in time, _As war begets poverty;
  • poverty peace_, ----must, in course, put an end to all kind of
  • knowledge, --and then----we shall have all to begin over again; or, in
  • other words, be exactly where we started.
  • ------Happy! thrice happy times! I only wish that the æra of my
  • begetting, as well as the mode and manner of it, had been a little
  • alter’d, ----or that it could have been put off, with any convenience to
  • my father or mother, for some twenty or five-and-twenty years longer,
  • when a man in the literary world might have stood some chance.----
  • But I forget my uncle _Toby_, whom all this while we have left knocking
  • the ashes out of his tobacco-pipe.
  • His humour was of that particular species, which does honour to our
  • atmosphere; and I should have made no scruple of ranking him amongst one
  • of the first-rate productions of it, had not there appeared too many
  • strong lines in it of a family-likeness, which shewed that he derived
  • the singularity of his temper more from blood, than either wind or
  • water, or any modifications or combinations of them whatever: And I
  • have, therefore, oft-times wondered, that my father, tho’ I believe he
  • had his reasons for it, upon his observing some tokens of eccentricity,
  • in my course, when I was a boy, --should never once endeavour to account
  • for them in this way: for all the SHANDY FAMILY were of an original
  • character throughout: ----I mean the males, --the females had no
  • character at all, --except, indeed, my great aunt DINAH, who, about
  • sixty years ago, was married and got with child by the coachman, for
  • which my father, according to his hypothesis of christian names, would
  • often say, She might thank her godfathers and godmothers.
  • It will seem very strange, ----and I would as soon think of dropping a
  • riddle in the reader’s way, which is not my interest to do, as set him
  • upon guessing how it could come to pass, that an event of this kind, so
  • many years after it had happened, should be reserved for the
  • interruption of the peace and unity, which otherwise so cordially
  • subsisted, between my father and my uncle _Toby_. One would have
  • thought, that the whole force of the misfortune should have spent and
  • wasted itself in the family at first, --as is generally the case. --But
  • nothing ever wrought with our family after the ordinary way. Possibly at
  • the very time this happened, it might have something else to afflict it;
  • and as afflictions are sent down for our good, and that as this had
  • never done the SHANDY FAMILY any good at all, it might lie waiting till
  • apt times and circumstances should give it an opportunity to discharge
  • its office. ----Observe, I determine nothing upon this. ----My way is
  • ever to point out to the curious, different tracts of investigation, to
  • come at the first springs of the events I tell; --not with a pedantic
  • _Fescue_, --or in the decisive manner of _Tacitus_, who outwits himself
  • and his reader; --but with the officious humility of a heart devoted to
  • the assistance merely of the inquisitive; --to them I write, ----and by
  • them I shall be read, ----if any such reading as this could be supposed
  • to hold out so long, --to the very end of the world.
  • Why this cause of sorrow, therefore, was thus reserved for my father and
  • uncle, is undetermined by me. But how and in what direction it exerted
  • itself so as to become the cause of dissatisfaction between them, after
  • it began to operate, is what I am able to explain with great exactness,
  • and is as follows:
  • My uncle TOBY SHANDY, Madam, was a gentleman, who, with the virtues
  • which usually constitute the character of a man of honour and rectitude,
  • ----possessed one in a very eminent degree, which is seldom or never put
  • into the catalogue; and that was a most extreme and unparallel’d modesty
  • of nature; ----though I correct the word nature, for this reason, that I
  • may not prejudge a point which must shortly come to a hearing, and that
  • is, Whether this modesty of his was natural or acquir’d. ----Whichever
  • way my uncle _Toby_ came by it, ’twas nevertheless modesty in the truest
  • sense of it; and that is, Madam, not in regard to words, for he was so
  • unhappy as to have very little choice in them, --but to things; ----and
  • this kind of modesty so possessed him, and it arose to such a height in
  • him, as almost to equal, if such a thing could be, even the modesty of a
  • woman: That female nicety, Madam, and inward cleanliness of mind and
  • fancy, in your sex, which makes you so much the awe of ours.
  • You will imagine, Madam, that my uncle _Toby_ had contracted all this
  • from this very source; --that he had spent a great part of his time in
  • converse with your sex; and that from a thorough knowledge of you, and
  • the force of imitation which such fair examples render irresistible, he
  • had acquired this amiable turn of mind.
  • I wish I could say so, --for unless it was with his sister-in-law, my
  • father’s wife and my mother----my uncle _Toby_ scarce exchanged three
  • words with the sex in as many years; --no, he got it, Madam, by a blow.
  • ----A blow! --Yes, Madam, it was owing to a blow from a stone, broke off
  • by a ball from the parapet of a horn-work at the siege of _Namur_, which
  • struck full upon my uncle _Toby’s_ groin. --Which way could that effect
  • it? The story of that, Madam, is long and interesting; --but it would be
  • running my history all upon heaps to give it you here. ----’Tis for an
  • episode hereafter; and every circumstance relating to it, in its proper
  • place, shall be faithfully laid before you: --’Till then, it is not in
  • my power to give farther light into this matter, or say more than what I
  • have said already, ----That my uncle _Toby_ was a gentleman of
  • unparallel’d modesty, which happening to be somewhat subtilized and
  • rarified by the constant heat of a little family pride, ----they both so
  • wrought together within him, that he could never bear to hear the affair
  • of my aunt DINAH touch’d upon, but with the greatest emotion. ----The
  • least hint of it was enough to make the blood fly into his face; --but
  • when my father enlarged upon the story in mixed companies, which the
  • illustration of his hypothesis frequently obliged him to do, --the
  • unfortunate blight of one of the fairest branches of the family, would
  • set my uncle _Toby’s_ honour and modesty o’bleeding; and he would often
  • take my father aside, in the greatest concern imaginable, to expostulate
  • and tell him, he would give him anything in the world, only to let the
  • story rest.
  • My father, I believe, had the truest love and tenderness for my uncle
  • _Toby_, that ever one brother bore towards another, and would have done
  • any thing in nature, which one brother in reason could have desir’d of
  • another, to have made my uncle _Toby’s_ heart easy in this, or any other
  • point. But this lay out of his power.
  • ----My father, as I told you, was a philosopher in grain, --speculative,
  • --systematical; --and my aunt _Dinah’s_ affair was a matter of as much
  • consequence to him, as the retrogradation of the planets to
  • _Copernicus_: --The backslidings of _Venus_ in her orbit fortified the
  • _Copernican_ system, called so after his name; and the backslidings of
  • my aunt _Dinah_ in her orbit, did the same service in establishing my
  • father’s system, which, I trust, will for ever hereafter be called the
  • _Shandean System_, after this.
  • In any other family dishonour, my father, I believe, had as nice a sense
  • of shame as any man whatever; ----and neither he, nor, I dare say,
  • _Copernicus_, would have divulged the affair in either case, or have
  • taken the least notice of it to the world, but for the obligations they
  • owed, as they thought, to truth. --_Amicus Plato_, my father would say,
  • construing the words to my uncle _Toby_, as he went along, _Amicus
  • Plato_; that is, DINAH was my aunt; --_sed magis amica veritas_----but
  • TRUTH is my sister.
  • This contrariety of humours betwixt my father and my uncle, was the
  • source of many a fraternal squabble. The one could not bear to hear the
  • tale of family disgrace recorded, ----and the other would scarce ever
  • let a day pass to an end without some hint at it.
  • For God’s sake, my uncle _Toby_ would cry, ----and for my sake, and for
  • all our sakes, my dear brother _Shandy_, --do let this story of our
  • aunt’s and her ashes sleep in peace; ----how can you, ----how can you
  • have so little feeling and compassion for the character of our family?
  • ----What is the character of a family to an hypothesis? my father would
  • reply. ----Nay, if you come to that--what is the life of a family?
  • ----The life of a family! --my uncle _Toby_ would say, throwing himself
  • back in his arm chair, and lifting up his hands, his eyes, and one leg.
  • ----Yes, the life, ----my father would say, maintaining his point. How
  • many thousands of ’em are there every year that come cast away, (in all
  • civilized countries at least)----and considered as nothing but common
  • air, in competition of an hypothesis. In my plain sense of things, my
  • uncle _Toby_ would answer, ----every such instance is downright MURDER,
  • let who will commit it. ----There lies your mistake, my father would
  • reply; ----for, in _Foro Scientiæ_ there is no such thing as MURDER,
  • ----’tis only DEATH, brother.
  • My uncle _Toby_ would never offer to answer this by any other kind of
  • argument, than that of whistling half a dozen bars of _Lillabullero_.
  • ----You must know it was the usual channel thro’ which his passions got
  • vent, when any thing shocked or surprized him: ----but especially when
  • any thing, which he deem’d very absurd, was offered.
  • As not one of our logical writers, nor any of the commentators upon
  • them, that I remember, have thought proper to give a name to this
  • particular species of argument, --I here take the liberty to do it
  • myself, for two reasons. First, That, in order to prevent all confusion
  • in disputes, it may stand as much distinguished for ever, from every
  • other species of argument------as the _Argumentum ad Verecundiam_, _ex
  • Absurdo, ex Fortiori_, or any other argument whatsoever: ----And,
  • secondly, That it may be said by my children’s children, when my head is
  • laid to rest, ----that their learn’d grandfather’s head had been busied
  • to as much purpose once, as other people’s; --That he had invented a
  • name, --and generously thrown it into the TREASURY of the _Ars Logica_,
  • for one of the most unanswerable arguments in the whole science. And, if
  • the end of disputation is more to silence than convince, --they may add,
  • if they please, to one of the best arguments too.
  • I do therefore, by these presents, strictly order and command, That it
  • be known and distinguished by the name and title of the _Argumentum
  • Fistulatorium_, and no other; --and that it rank hereafter with the
  • _Argumentum Baculinum_ and the _Argumentum ad Crumenam_, and for ever
  • hereafter be treated of in the same chapter.
  • As for the _Argumentum Tripodium_, which is never used but by the woman
  • against the man; --and the _Argumentum ad Rem_, which, contrarywise, is
  • made use of by the man only against the woman; --As these two are enough
  • in conscience for one lecture; ----and, moreover, as the one is the best
  • answer to the other, --let them likewise be kept apart, and be treated
  • of in a place by themselves.
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • The learned Bishop _Hall_, I mean the famous Dr. _Joseph Hall_, who was
  • Bishop of _Exeter_ in King _James_ the First’s reign, tells us in one of
  • his _Decads_, at the end of his divine art of meditation, imprinted at
  • _London_, in the year 1610, by _John Beal_, dwelling in
  • _Aldersgate-street_, “That it is an abominable thing for a man to
  • commend himself;” ----and I really think it is so.
  • And yet, on the other hand, when a thing is executed in a masterly kind
  • of a fashion, which thing is not likely to be found out; --I think it is
  • full as abominable, that a man should lose the honour of it, and go out
  • of the world with the conceit of it rotting in his head.
  • This is precisely my situation.
  • For in this long digression which I was accidentally led into, as in all
  • my digressions (one only excepted) there is a masterstroke of digressive
  • skill, the merit of which has all along, I fear, been overlooked by my
  • reader, --not for want of penetration in him, --but because ’tis an
  • excellence seldom looked for, or expected indeed, in a digression; --and
  • it is this: That tho’ my digressions are all fair, as you observe, --and
  • that I fly off from what I am about, as far, and as often too, as any
  • writer in _Great Britain_; yet I constantly take care to order affairs
  • so that my main business does not stand still in my absence.
  • I was just going, for example, to have given you the great outlines of
  • my uncle _Toby’s_ most whimsical character; --when my aunt _Dinah_ and
  • the coachman came across us, and led us a vagary some millions of miles
  • into the very heart of the planetary system: Notwithstanding all this,
  • you perceive that the drawing of my uncle _Toby’s_ character went on
  • gently all the time; --not the great contours of it, --that was
  • impossible, --but some familiar strokes and faint designations of it,
  • were here and there touch’d on, as we went along, so that you are much
  • better acquainted with my uncle _Toby_ now than you was before.
  • By this contrivance the machinery of my work is of a species by itself;
  • two contrary motions are introduced into it, and reconciled, which were
  • thought to be at variance with each other. In a word, my work is
  • digressive, and it is progressive too, --and at the same time.
  • This, Sir, is a very different story from that of the earth’s moving
  • round her axis, in her diurnal rotation, with her progress in her
  • elliptick orbit which brings about the year, and constitutes that
  • variety and vicissitude of seasons we enjoy; --though I own it suggested
  • the thought, --as I believe the greatest of our boasted improvements and
  • discoveries have come from such trifling hints.
  • Digressions, incontestably, are the sunshine; ----they are the life, the
  • soul of reading! --take them out of this book, for instance, --you might
  • as well take the book along with them; --one cold eternal winter would
  • reign in every page of it; restore them to the writer; --he steps forth
  • like a bridegroom, --bids All-hail; brings in variety, and forbids the
  • appetite to fail.
  • All the dexterity is in the good cookery and management of them, so as
  • to be not only for the advantage of the reader, but also of the author,
  • whose distress, in this matter, is truly pitiable: For, if he begins a
  • digression, --from that moment, I observe, his whole work stands stock
  • still; --and if he goes on with his main work, --then there is an end of
  • his digression.
  • ----This is vile work. --For which reason, from the beginning of this,
  • you see, I have constructed the main work and the adventitious parts of
  • it with such intersections, and have so complicated and involved the
  • digressive and progressive movements, one wheel within another, that the
  • whole machine, in general, has been kept a-going; --and, what’s more, it
  • shall be kept a-going these forty years, if it pleases the fountain of
  • health to bless me so long with life and good spirits.
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • I have a strong propensity in me to begin this chapter very
  • nonsensically, and I will not baulk my fancy. --Accordingly I set off
  • thus:
  • If the fixture of _Momus’s_ glass in the human breast, according to the
  • proposed emendation of that arch-critick, had taken place, ----first,
  • This foolish consequence would certainly have followed, --That the very
  • wisest and very gravest of us all, in one coin or other, must have paid
  • window-money every day of our lives.
  • And, secondly, That had the said glass been there set up, nothing more
  • would have been wanting, in order to have taken a man’s character, but
  • to have taken a chair and gone softly, as you would to a dioptrical
  • beehive, and look’d in, --view’d the soul stark naked; --observed all
  • her motions, --her machinations; --traced all her maggots from their
  • first engendering to their crawling forth; --watched her loose in her
  • frisks, her gambols, her capricios; and after some notice of her more
  • solemn deportment, consequent upon such frisks, etc. ----then taken your
  • pen and ink and set down nothing but what you had seen, and could have
  • sworn to: --But this is an advantage not to be had by the biographer in
  • this planet; --in the planet _Mercury_ (belike) it may be so, if not
  • better still for him; ----for there the intense heat of the country,
  • which is proved by computators, from its vicinity to the sun, to be more
  • than equal to that of red-hot iron, --must, I think, long ago have
  • vitrified the bodies of the inhabitants, (as the efficient cause) to
  • suit them for the climate (which is the final cause); so that betwixt
  • them both, all the tenements of their souls, from top to bottom, may be
  • nothing else, for aught the soundest philosophy can shew to the
  • contrary, but one fine transparent body of clear glass (bating the
  • umbilical knot)--so that, till the inhabitants grow old and tolerably
  • wrinkled, whereby the rays of light, in passing through them, become so
  • monstrously refracted, ----or return reflected from their surfaces in
  • such transverse lines to the eye, that a man cannot be seen through;
  • --his soul might as well, unless for mere ceremony, or the trifling
  • advantage which the umbilical point gave her, --might, upon all other
  • accounts, I say, as well play the fool out o’doors as in her own house.
  • But this, as I said above, is not the case of the inhabitants of this
  • earth; --our minds shine not through the body, but are wrapt up here in
  • a dark covering of uncrystalized flesh and blood; so that, if we would
  • come to the specific characters of them, we must go some other way to
  • work.
  • Many, in good truth, are the ways, which human wit has been forced to
  • take, to do this thing with exactness.
  • Some, for instance, draw all their characters with wind-instruments.
  • --_Virgil_ takes notice of that way in the affair of _Dido_ and _Æneas_;
  • --but it is as fallacious as the breath of fame; --and, moreover,
  • bespeaks a narrow genius. I am not ignorant that the _Italians_ pretend
  • to a mathematical exactness in their designations of one particular sort
  • of character among them, from the _forte_ or _piano_ of a certain
  • wind-instrument they use, --which they say is infallible. --I dare not
  • mention the name of the instrument in this place; --’tis sufficient we
  • have it amongst us, --but never think of making a drawing by it; --this
  • is ænigmatical, and intended to be so, at least _ad populum_: --And
  • therefore, I beg, Madam, when you come here, that you read on as fast as
  • you can, and never stop to make any inquiry about it.
  • There are others again, who will draw a man’s character from no other
  • helps in the world, but merely from his evacuations; --but this often
  • gives a very incorrect outline, --unless, indeed, you take a sketch of
  • his repletions too; and by correcting one drawing from the other,
  • compound one good figure out of them both.
  • I should have no objection to this method, but that I think it must
  • smell too strong of the lamp, --and be render’d still more operose, by
  • forcing you to have an eye to the rest of his _Non-naturals_. ----Why
  • the most natural actions of a man’s life should be called his
  • Non-naturals, --is another question.
  • There are others, fourthly, who disdain every one of these expedients;
  • --not from any fertility of their own, but from the various ways of
  • doing it, which they have borrowed from the honourable devices which the
  • Pentagraphic Brethren[1.3] of the brush have shewn in taking copies.
  • --These, you must know, are your great historians.
  • One of these you will see drawing a full-length character _against the
  • light_; --that’s illiberal, --dishonest, --and hard upon the character
  • of the man who sits.
  • Others, to mend the matter, will make a drawing of you in the _Camera_;
  • --that is most unfair of all, --because, _there_ you are sure to be
  • represented in some of your most ridiculous attitudes.
  • To avoid all and every one of these errors in giving you my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ character, I am determined to draw it by no mechanical help
  • whatever; ----nor shall my pencil be guided by any one wind-instrument
  • which ever was blown upon, either on this, or on the other side of the
  • _Alps_; --nor will I consider either his repletions or his discharges,
  • --or touch upon his Non-naturals--but, in a word, I will draw my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ character from his HOBBY-HORSE.
  • [Footnote 1.3: Pentagraph, an instrument to copy Prints and
  • Pictures mechanically, and in any proportion.]
  • CHAPTER XXIV
  • If I was not morally sure that the reader must be out of all patience
  • for my uncle _Toby’s_ character, ----I would here previously have
  • convinced him that there is no instrument so fit to draw such a thing
  • with, as that which I have pitch’d upon.
  • A man and his HOBBY-HORSE, tho’ I cannot say that they act and re-act
  • exactly after the same manner in which the soul and body do upon each
  • other: Yet doubtless there is a communication between them of some kind;
  • and my opinion rather is, that there is something in it more of the
  • manner of electrified bodies, --and that, by means of the heated parts
  • of the rider, which come immediately into contact with the back of the
  • HOBBY-HORSE, --by long journeys and much friction, it so happens, that
  • the body of the rider is at length fill’d as full of HOBBY-HORSICAL
  • matter as it can hold; ----so that if you are able to give but a clear
  • description of the nature of the one, you may form a pretty exact notion
  • of the genius and character of the other.
  • Now the HOBBY-HORSE which my uncle _Toby_ always rode upon, was in my
  • opinion a HOBBY-HORSE well worth giving a description of, if it was only
  • upon the score of his great singularity; --for you might have travelled
  • from _York_ to _Dover_, --from _Dover_ to _Penzance_ in _Cornwall_, and
  • from _Penzance_ to _York_ back again, and not have seen such another
  • upon the road; or if you had seen such a one, whatever haste you had
  • been in, you must infallibly have stopp’d to have taken a view of him.
  • Indeed, the gait and figure of him was so strange, and so utterly unlike
  • was he, from his head to his tail, to any one of the whole species, that
  • it was now and then made a matter of dispute, ----whether he was really
  • a HOBBY-HORSE or no: but as the Philosopher would use no other argument
  • to the Sceptic, who disputed with him against the reality of motion,
  • save that of rising up upon his legs, and walking across the room; --so
  • would my uncle _Toby_ use no other argument to prove his HOBBY-HORSE was
  • a HOBBY-HORSE indeed, but by getting upon his back and riding him about;
  • --leaving the world, after that, to determine the point as it thought
  • fit.
  • In good truth, my uncle _Toby_ mounted him with so much pleasure, and he
  • carried my uncle _Toby_ so well, ----that he troubled his head very
  • little with what the world either said or thought about it.
  • It is now high time, however, that I give you a description of him:
  • --But to go on regularly, I only beg you will give me leave to acquaint
  • you first, how my uncle _Toby_ came by him.
  • CHAPTER XXV
  • The wound in my uncle _Toby’s_ groin, which he received at the siege of
  • _Namur_, rendering him unfit for the service, it was thought expedient
  • he should return to _England_, in order, if possible, to be set to
  • rights.
  • He was four years totally confined, --part of it to his bed, and all of
  • it to his room: and in the course of his cure, which was all that time
  • in hand, suffer’d unspeakable miseries, --owing to a succession of
  • exfoliations from the _os pubis_, and the outward edge of that part of
  • the _coxendix_ called the _os illium_, ----both which bones were
  • dismally crush’d, as much by the irregularity of the stone, which I told
  • you was broke off the parapet, --as by its size, --(tho’ it was pretty
  • large) which inclined the surgeon all along to think, that the great
  • injury which it had done my uncle _Toby’s_ groin, was more owing to the
  • gravity of the stone itself, than to the projectile force of it, --which
  • he would often tell him was a great happiness.
  • My father at that time was just beginning business in _London_, and had
  • taken a house; --and as the truest friendship and cordiality subsisted
  • between the two brothers, --and that my father thought my uncle _Toby_
  • could no where be so well nursed and taken care of as in his own house,
  • ----he assign’d him the very best apartment in it. --And what was a much
  • more sincere mark of his affection still, he would never suffer a friend
  • or an acquaintance to step into the house on any occasion, but he would
  • take him by the hand, and lead him up stairs to see his brother _Toby_,
  • and chat an hour by his bedside.
  • The history of a soldier’s wound beguiles the pain of it; --my uncle’s
  • visitors at least thought so, and in their daily calls upon him, from
  • the courtesy arising out of that belief, they would frequently turn the
  • discourse to that subject, --and from that subject the discourse would
  • generally roll on to the siege itself.
  • These conversations were infinitely kind; and my uncle _Toby_ received
  • great relief from them, and would have received much more, but that they
  • brought him into some unforeseen perplexities, which, for three months
  • together, retarded his cure greatly; and if he had not hit upon an
  • expedient to extricate himself out of them, I verily believe they would
  • have laid him in his grave.
  • What these perplexities of my uncle _Toby_ were, ----’tis impossible for
  • you to guess; --if you could, --I should blush; not as a relation, --not
  • as a man, --nor even as a woman, --but I should blush as an author;
  • inasmuch as I set no small store by myself upon this very account, that
  • my reader has never yet been able to guess at anything. And in this,
  • Sir, I am of so nice and singular a humour, that if I thought you was
  • able to form the least judgment or probable conjecture to yourself, of
  • what was to come in the next page, --I would tear it out of my book.
  • BOOK II
  • CHAPTER I
  • I have begun a new book, on purpose that I might have room enough to
  • explain the nature of the perplexities in which my uncle _Toby_ was
  • involved, from the many discourses and interrogations about the siege of
  • _Namur_, where he received his wound.
  • I must remind the reader, in case he has read the history of King
  • _William’s_ wars, --but if he has not, --I then inform him, that one of
  • the most memorable attacks in that siege, was that which was made by the
  • _English_ and _Dutch_ upon the point of the advanced counterscarp,
  • between the gate of _St. Nicolas_, which inclosed the great sluice or
  • water-stop, where the _English_ were terribly exposed to the shot of the
  • counter-guard and demi-bastion of _St. Roch_. The issue of which hot
  • dispute, in three words, was this; That the _Dutch_ lodged themselves
  • upon the counter-guard, --and that the _English_ made themselves masters
  • of the covered-way before _St. Nicolas_-gate, notwithstanding the
  • gallantry of the _French_ officers, who exposed themselves upon the
  • glacis sword in hand.
  • As this was the principal attack of which my uncle _Toby_ was an
  • eye-witness at _Namur_, ----the army of the besiegers being cut off, by
  • the confluence of the _Maes_ and _Sambre_, from seeing much of each
  • other’s operations, ----my uncle _Toby_ was generally more eloquent and
  • particular in his account of it; and the many perplexities he was in,
  • arose out of the almost insurmountable difficulties he found in telling
  • his story intelligibly, and giving such clear ideas of the differences
  • and distinctions between the scarp and counter-scarp, --the glacis and
  • covered-way, --the half-moon and ravelin, --as to make his company fully
  • comprehend where and what he was about.
  • Writers themselves are too apt to confound these terms; so that you will
  • the less wonder, if in his endeavours to explain them, and in opposition
  • to many misconceptions, that my uncle _Toby_ did oft-times puzzle his
  • visitors, and sometimes himself too.
  • To speak the truth, unless the company my father led upstairs were
  • tolerably clear-headed, or my uncle _Toby_ was in one of his explanatory
  • moods, ’twas a difficult thing, do what he could, to keep the discourse
  • free from obscurity.
  • What rendered the account of this affair the more intricate to my uncle
  • _Toby_, was this, --that in the attack of the counterscarp, before the
  • gate of _St. Nicolas_, extending itself from the bank of the _Maes_,
  • quite up to the great water-stop, --the ground was cut and cross cut
  • with such a multitude of dykes, drains, rivulets, and sluices, on all
  • sides, --and he would get so sadly bewildered, and set fast amongst
  • them, that frequently he could neither get backwards or forwards to save
  • his life; and was oft-times obliged to give up the attack upon that very
  • account only.
  • These perplexing rebuffs gave my uncle _Toby Shandy_ more perturbations
  • than you would imagine: and as my father’s kindness to him was
  • continually dragging up fresh friends and fresh enquirers, ----he had
  • but a very uneasy task of it.
  • No doubt my uncle _Toby_ had great command of himself, could guard
  • appearances, I believe, as well as most men; --yet any one may imagine,
  • that when he could not retreat out of the ravelin without getting into
  • the half-moon, or get out of the covered-way without falling down the
  • counterscarp, nor cross the dyke without danger of slipping into the
  • ditch, but that he must have fretted and fumed inwardly: --He did so;
  • and the little and hourly vexations, which may seem trifling and of no
  • account to the man who has not read _Hippocrates_, yet, whoever has read
  • _Hippocrates_, or Dr. _James Mackenzie_, and has considered well the
  • effects which the passions and affections of the mind have upon the
  • digestion--(Why not of a wound as well as of a dinner?)--may easily
  • conceive what sharp paroxysms and exacerbations of his wound my uncle
  • _Toby_ must have undergone upon that score only.
  • --My uncle _Toby_ could not philosophize upon it; --’twas enough he felt
  • it was so, --and having sustained the pain and sorrows of it for three
  • months together, he was resolved some way or other to extricate himself.
  • He was one morning lying upon his back in his bed, the anguish and
  • nature of the wound upon his groin suffering him to lie in no other
  • position, when a thought came into his head, that if he could purchase
  • such a thing, and have it pasted down upon a board, as a large map of
  • the fortification of the town and citadel of _Namur_, with its environs,
  • it might be a means of giving him ease. --I take notice of his desire to
  • have the environs along with the town and citadel, for this reason,
  • --because my uncle _Toby’s_ wound was got in one of the traverses, about
  • thirty toises from the returning angle of the trench, opposite to the
  • salient angle of the demi-bastion of _St. Roch_: ----so that he was
  • pretty confident he could stick a pin upon the identical spot of ground
  • where he was standing on when the stone struck him.
  • All this succeeded to his wishes, and not only freed him from a world of
  • sad explanations, but, in the end, it proved the happy means, as you
  • will read, of procuring my uncle _Toby_ his HOBBY-HORSE.
  • CHAPTER II
  • There is nothing so foolish, when you are at the expence of making an
  • entertainment of this kind, as to order things so badly, as to let your
  • criticks and gentry of refined taste run it down: Nor is there anything
  • so likely to make them do it, as that of leaving them out of the party,
  • or, what is full as offensive, of bestowing your attention upon the rest
  • of your guests in so particular a way, as if there was no such thing as
  • a critick (by occupation) at table.
  • ----I guard against both; for, in the first place, I have left half a
  • dozen places purposely open for them; --and in the next place, I pay
  • them all court. --Gentlemen, I kiss your hands, I protest no company
  • could give me half the pleasure, --by my soul I am glad to see
  • you ------I beg only you will make no strangers of yourselves, but sit
  • down without any ceremony, and fall on heartily.
  • I said I had left six places, and I was upon the point of carrying my
  • complaisance so far, as to have left a seventh open for them, --and in
  • this very spot I stand on; but being told by a Critick (tho’ not by
  • occupation, --but by nature) that I had acquitted myself well enough,
  • I shall fill it up directly, hoping, in the meantime, that I shall be
  • able to make a great deal of more room next year.
  • ------How, in the name of wonder! could your uncle _Toby_, who, it
  • seems, was a military man, and whom you have represented as no fool,
  • ----be at the same time such a confused, pudding-headed, muddle-headed,
  • fellow, as --Go look.
  • So, Sir Critick, I could have replied; but I scorn it. --’Tis language
  • unurbane, --and only befitting the man who cannot give clear and
  • satisfactory accounts of things, or dive deep enough into the first
  • causes of human ignorance and confusion. It is moreover the reply
  • valiant--and therefore I reject it: for tho’ it might have suited my
  • uncle _Toby’s_ character as a soldier excellently well, and had he not
  • accustomed himself, in such attacks, to whistle the _Lillabullero_, as
  • he wanted no courage, ’tis the very answer he would have given; yet it
  • would by no means have done for me. You see as plain as can be, that I
  • write as a man of erudition; --that even my similies, my allusions, my
  • illustrations, my metaphors, are erudite, --and that I must sustain my
  • character properly, and contrast it properly too, --else what would
  • become of me? Why, Sir, I should be undone; --at this very moment that I
  • am going here to fill up one place against a critick, --I should have
  • made an opening for a couple.
  • ----Therefore I answer thus:
  • Pray, Sir, in all the reading which you have ever read, did you ever
  • read such a book as _Locke’s_ Essay upon the Human Understanding?
  • ----Don’t answer me rashly--because many, I know, quote the book, who
  • have not read it--and many have read it who understand it not: --If
  • either of these is your case, as I write to instruct, I will tell you in
  • three words what the book is. --It is a history. --A history! of who?
  • what? where? when? Don’t hurry yourself ----It is a history-book, Sir
  • (which may possibly recommend it to the world) of what passes in a man’s
  • own mind; and if you will say so much of the book, and no more, believe
  • me, you will cut no contemptible figure in a metaphysick circle.
  • But this by the way.
  • Now if you will venture to go along with me, and look down into the
  • bottom of this matter, it will be found that the cause of obscurity and
  • confusion, in the mind of a man, is threefold.
  • Dull organs, dear Sir, in the first place. Secondly, slight and
  • transient impressions made by the objects, when the said organs are not
  • dull. And thirdly, a memory like unto a sieve, not able to retain what
  • it has received. --Call down _Dolly_ your chambermaid, and I will give
  • you my cap and bell along with it, if I make not this matter so plain
  • that _Dolly_ herself should understand it as well as _Malbranch_.
  • ----When _Dolly_ has indited her epistle to _Robin_, and has thrust her
  • arm into the bottom of her pocket hanging by her right side; --take that
  • opportunity to recollect that the organs and faculties of perception
  • can, by nothing in this world, be so aptly typified and explained as by
  • that one thing which _Dolly’s_ hand is in search of. --Your organs are
  • not so dull that I should inform you--’tis an inch, Sir, of red
  • seal-wax.
  • When this is melted, and dropped upon the letter, if _Dolly_ fumbles too
  • long for her thimble, till the wax is over hardened, it will not receive
  • the mark of her thimble from the usual impulse which was wont to imprint
  • it. Very well. If _Dolly’s_ wax, for want of better, is bees-wax, or of
  • a temper too soft, --tho’ it may receive, --it will not hold the
  • impression, how hard soever _Dolly_ thrusts against it; and last of all,
  • supposing the wax good, and eke the thimble, but applied thereto in
  • careless haste, as her Mistress rings the bell; ----in any one of these
  • three cases the print left by the thimble will be as unlike the
  • prototype as a brass-jack.
  • Now you must understand that not one of these was the true cause of the
  • confusion in my uncle _Toby’s_ discourse; and it is for that very reason
  • I enlarge upon them so long, after the manner of great physiologists--to
  • shew the world, what it did _not_ arise from.
  • What it did arise from, I have hinted above, and a fertile source of
  • obscurity it is, --and ever will be, --and that is the unsteady uses of
  • words, which have perplexed the clearest and most exalted
  • understandings.
  • It is ten to one (at _Arthur’s_) whether you have ever read the literary
  • histories of past ages; --if you have, what terrible battles, ’yclept
  • logomachies, have they occasioned and perpetuated with so much gall and
  • ink-shed, --that a good-natured man cannot read the accounts of them
  • without tears in his eyes.
  • Gentle critick! when thou hast weighed all this, and considered within
  • thyself how much of thy own knowledge, discourse, and conversation has
  • been pestered and disordered at one time or other, by this, and this
  • only: --What a pudder and racket in COUNCILS about οὐσία and ὑπόστασις;
  • and in the SCHOOLS of the learned about power and about spirit; --about
  • essences, and about quintessences; ----about substances, and about
  • space. ----What confusion in greater THEATRES from words of little
  • meaning, and as indeterminate a sense! when thou considerest this, thou
  • wilt not wonder at my uncle _Toby’s_ perplexities, --thou wilt drop a
  • tear of pity upon his scarp and his counterscarp; --his glacis and his
  • covered way; --his ravelin and his half-moon: ’Twas not by ideas, --by
  • Heaven; his life was put in jeopardy by words.
  • CHAPTER III
  • When my uncle _Toby_ got his map of _Namur_ to his mind, he began
  • immediately to apply himself, and with the utmost diligence, to the
  • study of it; for nothing being of more importance to him than his
  • recovery, and his recovery depending, as you have read, upon the
  • passions and affections of his mind, it behoved him to take the nicest
  • care to make himself so far master of his subject, as to be able to talk
  • upon it without emotion.
  • In a fortnight’s close and painful application, which, by the bye, did
  • my uncle _Toby’s_ wound, upon his groin, no good, --he was enabled, by
  • the help of some marginal documents at the feet of the elephant,
  • together with _Gobesius’s_ military architecture and pyroballogy,
  • translated from the _Flemish_, to form his discourse with passable
  • perspicuity; and before he was two full months gone, --he was right
  • eloquent upon it, and could make not only the attack of the advanced
  • counterscarp with great order; ----but having, by that time, gone much
  • deeper into the art, than what his first motive made necessary, my uncle
  • _Toby_ was able to cross the _Maes_ and _Sambre_; make diversions as far
  • as _Vauban’s_ line, the abbey of _Salsines_, etc., and give his visitors
  • as distinct a history of each of their attacks, as of that of the gate
  • of _St. Nicolas_, where he had the honour to receive his wound.
  • But desire of knowledge, like the thirst of riches, increases ever with
  • the acquisition of it. The more my uncle _Toby_ pored over his map, the
  • more he took a liking to it! --by the same process and electrical
  • assimilation, as I told you, through which I ween the souls of
  • connoisseurs themselves, by long friction and incumbition, have the
  • happiness, at length, to get all be-virtu’d--be-pictured,
  • --be-butterflied, and befiddled.
  • The more my uncle _Toby_ drank of this sweet fountain of science, the
  • greater was the heat and impatience of his thirst, so that before the
  • first year of his confinement had well gone round, there was scarce a
  • fortified town in _Italy_ or _Flanders_, of which, by one means or
  • other, he had not procured a plan, reading over as he got them, and
  • carefully collating therewith the histories of their sieges, their
  • demolitions, their improvements, and new works, all which he would read
  • with that intense application and delight, that he would forget himself,
  • his wound, his confinement, his dinner.
  • In the second year my uncle _Toby_ purchased _Ramelli_ and _Cataneo_,
  • translated from the _Italian_; --likewise _Stevinus_, _Moralis_, the
  • Chevalier _de Ville_, _Lorini_, _Cochorn_, _Sheeter_, the Count _de
  • Pagan_, the Marshal _Vauban_, Mons. _Blondel_, with almost as many more
  • books of military architecture, as Don _Quixote_ was found to have of
  • chivalry, when the curate and barber invaded his library.
  • Towards the beginning of the third year, which was in _August_,
  • ninety-nine, my uncle _Toby_ found it necessary to understand a little
  • of projectiles: --and having judged it best to draw his knowledge from
  • the fountain-head, he began with _N. Tartaglia_, who it seems was the
  • first man who detected the imposition of a cannon-ball’s doing all that
  • mischief under the notion of a right line --This _N. Tartaglia_ proved
  • to my uncle _Toby_ to be an impossible thing.
  • ----Endless is the search of Truth.
  • No sooner was my uncle _Toby_ satisfied which road the cannon-ball did
  • not go, but he was insensibly led on, and resolved in his mind to
  • enquire and find out which road the ball did go: For which purpose he
  • was obliged to set off afresh with old _Maltus_, and studied him
  • devoutly. --He proceeded next to _Galileo_ and _Torricellius_, wherein,
  • by certain Geometrical rules, infallibly laid down, he found the precise
  • part to be a PARABOLA--or else an HYPERBOLA, --and that the parameter,
  • or _latus rectum_, of the conic section of the said path, was to the
  • quantity and amplitude in a direct _ratio_, as the whole line to the
  • sine of double the angle of incidence, formed by the breech upon an
  • horizontal plane; --and that the semiparameter, ----stop! my dear uncle
  • _Toby_----stop! --go not one foot farther into this thorny and
  • bewildered track, --intricate are the steps! intricate are the mazes of
  • this labyrinth! intricate are the troubles which the pursuit of this
  • bewitching phantom KNOWLEDGE will bring upon thee. --O my uncle;
  • --fly--fly, fly from it as from a serpent. ----Is it fit----good-natured
  • man! thou should’st sit up, with the wound upon thy groin, whole nights
  • baking thy blood with hectic watchings? ----Alas! ’twill exasperate thy
  • symptoms, --check thy perspirations--evaporate thy spirits--waste thy
  • animal strength, --dry up thy radical moisture, bring thee into a
  • costive habit of body, ----impair thy health, ----and hasten all the
  • infirmities of thy old age. ----O my uncle! my uncle _Toby_.
  • CHAPTER IV
  • I would not give a groat for that man’s knowledge in pencraft, who does
  • not understand this, ----That the best plain narrative in the world,
  • tacked very close to the last spirited apostrophe to my uncle
  • _Toby_----would have felt both cold and vapid upon the reader’s palate;
  • --therefore I forthwith put an end to the chapter, though I was in the
  • middle of my story.
  • ------Writers of my stamp have one principle in common with painters.
  • Where an exact copying makes our pictures less striking, we choose the
  • less evil; deeming it even more pardonable to trespass against truth,
  • than beauty. This is to be understood _cum grano salis_; but be it as it
  • will, --as the parallel is made more for the sake of letting the
  • apostrophe cool, than any thing else, --’tis not very material whether
  • upon any other score the reader approves of it or not.
  • In the latter end of the third year, my uncle _Toby_ perceiving that the
  • parameter and semiparameter of the conic section angered his wound, he
  • left off the study of projectiles in a kind of a huff, and betook
  • himself to the practical part of fortification only; the pleasure of
  • which, like a spring held back, returned upon him with redoubled force.
  • It was in this year that my uncle began to break in upon the daily
  • regularity of a clean shirt, ----to dismiss his barber unshaven, ----and
  • to allow his surgeon scarce time sufficient to dress his wound,
  • concerning himself so little about it, as not to ask him once in seven
  • times dressing, how it went on: when, lo! --all of a sudden, for the
  • change was quick as lightning, he began to sigh heavily for his
  • recovery, ----complained to my father, grew impatient with the surgeon:
  • ----and one morning, as he heard his foot coming up stairs, he shut up
  • his books, and thrust aside his instruments, in order to expostulate
  • with him upon the protraction of the cure, which, he told him, might
  • surely have been accomplished at least by that time: --He dwelt long
  • upon the miseries he had undergone, and the sorrows of his four years
  • melancholy imprisonment; --adding, that had it not been for the kind
  • looks and fraternal chearings of the best of brothers, --he had long
  • since sunk under his misfortunes. ----My father was by: My uncle
  • _Toby’s_ eloquence brought tears into his eyes; ----’twas unexpected:
  • ----My uncle _Toby_, by nature was not eloquent; --it had the greater
  • effect: ----The surgeon was confounded; ----not that there wanted
  • grounds for such, or greater marks of impatience, --but ’twas unexpected
  • too; in the four years he had attended him, he had never seen anything
  • like it in my uncle _Toby’s_ carriage; he had never once dropped one
  • fretful or discontented word; ----he had been all patience, --all
  • submission.
  • --We lose the right of complaining sometimes by forbearing it; --but we
  • often treble the force: --The surgeon was astonished; but much more so,
  • when he heard my uncle _Toby_ go on, and peremptorily insist upon his
  • healing up the wound directly, --or sending for Monsieur _Ronjat_, the
  • king’s serjeant-surgeon, to do it for him.
  • The desire of life and health is implanted in man’s nature; ----the love
  • of liberty and enlargement is a sister-passion to it: These my uncle
  • _Toby_ had in common with his species; ----and either of them had been
  • sufficient to account for his earnest desire to get well and out of
  • doors; ----but I have told you before, that nothing wrought with our
  • family after the common way; ----and from the time and manner in which
  • this eager desire shewed itself in the present case, the penetrating
  • reader will suspect there was some other cause or crotchet for it in my
  • uncle _Toby’s_ head: ----There was so, and ’tis the subject of the next
  • chapter to set forth what that cause and crotchet was. I own, when
  • that’s done, ’twill be time to return back to the parlour fire-side,
  • where we left my uncle _Toby_ in the middle of his sentence.
  • CHAPTER V
  • When a man gives himself up to the government of a ruling passion, --or,
  • in other words, when his HOBBY-HORSE grows headstrong, ----farewel cool
  • reason and fair discretion!
  • My uncle _Toby’s_ wound was near well, and as soon as the surgeon
  • recovered his surprize, and could get leave to say as much----he told
  • him, ’twas just beginning to incarnate; and that if no fresh exfoliation
  • happened, which there was no sign of, --it would be dried up in five or
  • six weeks. The sound of as many Olympiads, twelve hours before, would
  • have conveyed an idea of shorter duration to my uncle _Toby’s_ mind.
  • ----The succession of his ideas was now rapid, --he broiled with
  • impatience to put his design in execution; ----and so, without
  • consulting farther with any soul living, --which, by the bye, I think is
  • right, when you are predetermined to take no one soul’s advice, ----he
  • privately ordered _Trim_, his man, to pack up a bundle of lint and
  • dressings, and hire a chariot-and-four to be at the door exactly by
  • twelve o’clock that day, when he knew my father would be upon ’Change.
  • ----So leaving a banknote upon the table for the surgeon’s care of him,
  • and a letter of tender thanks for his brother’s--he packed up his maps,
  • his books of fortification, his instruments, &c., and by the help of a
  • crutch on one side, and _Trim_ on the other, ----my uncle _Toby_
  • embarked for _Shandy-Hall_.
  • The reason, or rather the rise of this sudden demigration was as
  • follows:
  • The table in my uncle _Toby’s_ room, and at which, the night before this
  • change happened, he was sitting with his maps, &c., about him--being
  • somewhat of the smallest, for that infinity of great and small
  • instruments of knowledge which usually lay crowded upon it--he had the
  • accident, in reaching over for his tobacco-box, to throw down his
  • compasses, and in stooping to take the compasses up, with his sleeve he
  • threw down his case of instruments and snuffers; --and as the dice took
  • a run against him, in his endeavouring to catch the snuffers in falling,
  • ----he thrust Monsieur _Blondel_ off the table, and Count _de Pagan_
  • o’top of him.
  • ’Twas to no purpose for a man, lame as my uncle _Toby_ was, to think of
  • redressing these evils by himself, --he rung his bell for his man
  • _Trim_; ------_Trim_, quoth my uncle _Toby_, prithee see what confusion
  • I have here been making --I must have some better contrivance, _Trim_.
  • ----Can’st not thou take my rule, and measure the length and breadth of
  • this table, and then go and bespeak me one as big again? ----Yes, an’
  • please your Honour, replied _Trim_, making a bow; but I hope your Honour
  • will be soon well enough to get down to your country-seat, where, --as
  • your Honour takes so much pleasure in fortification, we could manage
  • this matter to a T.
  • I must here inform you, that this servant of my uncle _Toby’s_, who went
  • by the name of _Trim_, had been a corporal in my uncle’s own company,
  • --his real name was _James Butler_, --but having got the nick-name of
  • _Trim_ in the regiment, my uncle _Toby_, unless when he happened to be
  • very angry with him, would never call him by any other name.
  • The poor fellow had been disabled for the service, by a wound on his
  • left knee by a musket-bullet, at the battle of _Landen_, which was two
  • years before the affair of _Namur_; --and as the fellow was well-beloved
  • in the regiment, and a handy fellow into the bargain, my uncle _Toby_
  • took him for his servant; and of an excellent use was he, attending my
  • uncle _Toby_ in the camp and in his quarters as a valet, groom, barber,
  • cook, sempster, and nurse; and indeed, from first to last, waited upon
  • him and served him with great fidelity and affection.
  • My uncle _Toby_ loved the man in return, and what attached him more to
  • him still, was the similitude of their knowledge. ----For Corporal
  • _Trim_ (for so, for the future, I shall call him), by four years
  • occasional attention to his Master’s discourse upon fortified towns, and
  • the advantage of prying and peeping continually into his Master’s plans,
  • &c., exclusive and besides what he gained HOBBY-HORSICALLY, as a
  • body-servant, _Non Hobby Horsical per se_; ----had become no mean
  • proficient in the science; and was thought, by the cook and
  • chamber-maid, to know as much of the nature of strongholds as my uncle
  • _Toby_ himself.
  • I have but one more stroke to give to finish Corporal _Trim’s_
  • character, ----and it is the only dark line in it. --The fellow loved to
  • advise, --or rather to hear himself talk; his carriage, however, was so
  • perfectly respectful, ’twas easy to keep him silent when you had him so;
  • but set his tongue a-going, --you had no hold of him--he was voluble;
  • --the eternal interlardings of _your Honour_, with the respectfulness of
  • Corporal _Trim’s_ manner, interceding so strong in behalf of his
  • elocution, --that though you might have been incommoded, ----you could
  • not well be angry. My uncle _Toby_ was seldom either the one or the
  • other with him, --or, at least, this fault, in _Trim_, broke no squares
  • with them. My uncle _Toby_, as I said, loved the man; ----and besides,
  • as he ever looked upon a faithful servant, --but as an humble friend,
  • --he could not bear to stop his mouth. ----Such was Corporal _Trim_.
  • If I durst presume, continued _Trim_, to give your Honour my advice, and
  • speak my opinion in this matter. --Thou art welcome, _Trim_, quoth my
  • uncle _Toby_--speak, ----speak what thou thinkest upon the subject, man,
  • without fear. Why then, replied _Trim_ (not hanging his ears and
  • scratching his head like a country-lout, but) stroking his hair back
  • from his forehead, and standing erect as before his division, --I think,
  • quoth _Trim_, advancing his left, which was his lame leg, a little
  • forwards, --and pointing with his right hand open towards a map of
  • _Dunkirk_, which was pinned against the hangings, ----I think, quoth
  • Corporal _Trim_, with humble submission to your Honour’s better
  • judgment, ----that these ravelins, bastions, curtins, and horn-works,
  • make but a poor, contemptible, fiddle-faddle piece of work of it here
  • upon paper, compared to what your Honour and I could make of it were we
  • in the country by ourselves, and had but a rood, or a rood and a half of
  • ground to do what we pleased with: As summer is coming on, continued
  • _Trim_, your Honour might sit out of doors, and give me the
  • nography--(Call it ichnography, quoth my uncle)----of the town or
  • citadel, your Honour was pleased to sit down before, --and I will be
  • shot by your Honour upon the glacis of it, if I did not fortify it to
  • your Honour’s mind ----I dare say thou would’st, _Trim_, quoth my uncle.
  • --For if your Honour, continued the Corporal, could but mark me the
  • polygon, with its exact lines and angles --That I could do very well,
  • quoth my uncle. --I would begin with the fossé, and if your Honour could
  • tell me the proper depth and breadth --I can to a hair’s breadth, _Trim_,
  • replied my uncle. --I would throw out the earth upon this hand towards
  • the town for the scarp, --and on that hand towards the campaign for the
  • counterscarp. --Very right, _Trim_, quoth my uncle _Toby_: ----And when
  • I had sloped them to your mind, ----an’ please your Honour, I would face
  • the glacis, as the finest fortifications are done in _Flanders_, with
  • sods, ----and as your Honour knows they should be, --and I would make
  • the walls and parapets with sods too. --The best engineers call them
  • gazons, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_. ----Whether they are gazons or
  • sods, is not much matter, replied _Trim_; your Honour knows they are ten
  • times beyond a facing either of brick or stone. ----I know they are,
  • _Trim_, in some respects, ----quoth my uncle _Toby_, nodding his head;
  • --for a cannon-ball enters into the gazon right onwards, without
  • bringing any rubbish down with it, which might fill the fossé (as was
  • the case at _St. Nicolas’s_ gate), and facilitate the passage over it.
  • Your Honour understands these matters, replied Corporal _Trim_, better
  • than any officer in his Majesty’s service; ----but would your Honour
  • please to let the bespeaking of the table alone, and let us but go into
  • the country, I would work under your Honour’s directions like a horse,
  • and make fortifications for you something like a tansy, with all their
  • batteries, saps, ditches, and palisadoes, that it should be worth all
  • the world’s riding twenty miles to go and see it.
  • My uncle _Toby_ blushed as red as scarlet as _Trim_ went on; --but it
  • was not a blush of guilt, --of modesty, --or of anger, --it was a blush
  • of joy; --he was fired with Corporal _Trim’s_ project and description.
  • ----_Trim!_ said my uncle _Toby_, thou hast said enough. --We might
  • begin the campaign, continued _Trim_, on the very day that his Majesty
  • and the Allies take the field, and demolish them town by town as fast
  • as--_Trim_, quoth my uncle _Toby_, say no more. Your Honour, continued
  • _Trim_, might sit in your arm-chair (pointing to it) this fine weather,
  • giving me your orders, and I would ----Say no more, _Trim_, quoth my
  • uncle _Toby_ ----Besides, your Honour would get not only pleasure and
  • good pastime, --but good air, and good exercise, and good health, --and
  • your Honour’s wound would be well in a month. Thou hast said enough,
  • _Trim_, --quoth my uncle _Toby_ (putting his hand into his
  • breeches-pocket) ----I like thy project mightily. --And if your Honour
  • pleases, I’ll this moment go and buy a pioneer’s spade to take down with
  • us, and I’ll bespeak a shovel and a pick-axe, and a couple of ----Say no
  • more, _Trim_, quoth my uncle _Toby_, leaping up upon one leg, quite
  • overcome with rapture, --and thrusting a guinea into _Trim’s_ hand,
  • --_Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_, say no more; --but go down, _Trim_, this
  • moment, my lad, and bring up my supper this instant.
  • _Trim_ ran down and brought up his master’s supper, ----to no purpose:
  • --_Trim’s_ plan of operation ran so in my uncle _Toby’s_ head, he could
  • not taste it. --_Trim_, quoth my uncle _Toby_, get me to bed. --’Twas
  • all one. --Corporal _Trim’s_ description had fired his imagination, --my
  • uncle _Toby_ could not shut his eyes. --The more he considered it, the
  • more bewitching the scene appeared to him; --so that, two full hours
  • before day-light, he had come to a final determination, and had
  • concerted the whole plan of his and Corporal _Trim’s_ decampment.
  • My uncle _Toby_ had a little neat country-house of his own, in the
  • village where my father’s estate lay at _Shandy_, which had been left
  • him by an old uncle, with a small estate of about one hundred pounds
  • a-year. Behind this house, and contiguous to it, was a kitchen-garden of
  • about half an acre; and at the bottom of the garden, and cut off from it
  • by a tall yew hedge, was a bowling-green, containing just about as much
  • ground as Corporal _Trim_ wished for; --so that as _Trim_ uttered the
  • words, “A rood and a half of ground to do what they would with,” --this
  • identical bowling-green instantly presented itself, and became curiously
  • painted all at once, upon the retina of my uncle _Toby’s_ fancy; --which
  • was the physical cause of making him change colour, or at least of
  • heightening his blush, to that immoderate degree I spoke of.
  • Never did lover post down to a beloved mistress with more heat and
  • expectation, than my uncle _Toby_ did, to enjoy this self-same thing in
  • private; --I say in private; --for it was sheltered from the house, as I
  • told you, by a tall yew hedge, and was covered on the other three sides,
  • from mortal sight, by rough holly and thick-set flowering shrubs: --so
  • that the idea of not being seen, did not a little contribute to the idea
  • of pleasure pre-conceived in my uncle _Toby’s_ mind. --Vain thought!
  • however thick it was planted about, ----or private soever it might seem,
  • --to think, dear uncle _Toby_, of enjoying a thing which took up a whole
  • rood and a half of ground, ----and not have it known!
  • How my uncle _Toby_ and Corporal _Trim_ managed this matter, ----with
  • the history of their campaigns, which were no way barren of events,
  • ----may make no uninteresting under-plot in the epitasis and working-up
  • of this drama. --At present the scene must drop, --and change for the
  • parlour fire-side.
  • CHAPTER VI
  • ----What can they be doing, brother? said my father. --I think, replied
  • my uncle _Toby_, --taking, as I told you, his pipe from his mouth, and
  • striking the ashes out of it as he began his sentence; ----I think,
  • replied he, --it would not be amiss, brother, if we rung the bell.
  • Pray, what’s all that racket over our heads, _Obadiah?_ ----quoth my
  • father; ----my brother and I can scarce hear ourselves speak.
  • Sir, answered _Obadiah_, making a bow towards his left shoulder, --my
  • Mistress is taken very badly. --And where’s _Susannah_ running down the
  • garden there, as if they were going to ravish her? ----Sir, she is
  • running the shortest cut into the town, replied _Obadiah_, to fetch the
  • old midwife. --Then saddle a horse, quoth my father, and do you go
  • directly for Dr. _Slop_, the man-midwife, with all our services, ----and
  • let him know your mistress is fallen into labour----and that I desire he
  • will return with you with all speed.
  • It is very strange, says my father, addressing himself to my uncle
  • _Toby_, as _Obadiah_ shut the door, ----as there is so expert an
  • operator as Dr. _Slop_ so near, --that my wife should persist to the
  • very last in this obstinate humour of hers, in trusting the life of my
  • child, who has had one misfortune already, to the ignorance of an old
  • woman; ----and not only the life of my child, brother, ----but her own
  • life, and with it the lives of all the children I might, peradventure,
  • have begot out of her hereafter.
  • Mayhap, brother, replied my uncle _Toby_, my sister does it to save the
  • expense: --A pudding’s end, --replied my father, ----the Doctor must be
  • paid the same for inaction as action, ----if not better, --to keep him
  • in temper.
  • ----Then it can be out of nothing in the whole world, quoth my uncle
  • _Toby_, in the simplicity of his heart, --but MODESTY. --My sister,
  • I dare say, added he, does not care to let a man come so near her ****.
  • I will not say whether my uncle _Toby_ had completed the sentence or
  • not; ----’tis for his advantage to suppose he had, ----as, I think, he
  • could have added no ONE WORD which would have improved it.
  • If, on the contrary, my uncle _Toby_ had not fully arrived at the
  • period’s end, --then the world stands indebted to the sudden snapping of
  • my father’s tobacco-pipe for one of the neatest examples of that
  • ornamental figure in oratory, which Rhetoricians stile the
  • _Aposiopesis_. ----Just Heaven! how does the _Poco piu_ and the _Poco
  • meno_ of the _Italian_ artists; --the insensible MORE OR LESS, determine
  • the precise line of beauty in the sentence, as well as in the statute!
  • How do the slight touches of the chisel, the pencil, the pen, the
  • fiddle-stick, _et cætera_, --give the true swell, which gives the true
  • pleasure! --O my countrymen; --be nice; --be cautious of your language;
  • --and never, O! never let it be forgotten upon what small particles your
  • eloquence and your fame depend.
  • ----“My sister, mayhap,” quoth my uncle _Toby_, “does not choose to let
  • a man come so near her ****.” Make this dash, --’tis an Aposiopesis.
  • --Take the dash away, and write _Backside_, ----’tis Bawdy. --Scratch
  • Backside out, and put _Cover’d way_ in, ’tis a Metaphor; --and, I dare
  • say, as fortification ran so much in my uncle _Toby’s_ head, that if he
  • had been left to have added one word to the sentence, ----that word was
  • it.
  • But whether that was the case or not the case; --or whether the snapping
  • of my father’s tobacco-pipe, so critically, happened through accident or
  • anger, will be seen in due time.
  • CHAPTER VII
  • Tho’ my father was a good natural philosopher, --yet he was something of
  • a moral philosopher too; for which reason, when his tobacco-pipe snapp’d
  • short in the middle, --he had nothing to do, as such, but to have taken
  • hold of the two pieces, and thrown them gently upon the back of the
  • fire. ----He did no such thing; ----he threw them with all the violence
  • in the world; --and, to give the action still more emphasis, --he
  • started upon both his legs to do it.
  • This looked something like heat; --and the manner of his reply to what
  • my uncle _Toby_ was saying, proved it was so.
  • --“Not choose,” quoth my father, (repeating my uncle _Toby’s_ words) “to
  • let a man come so near her!” ----By Heaven, brother _Toby!_ you would
  • try the patience of _Job_; --and I think I have the plagues of one
  • already without it. ----Why? ----Where? ----Wherein? ----Wherefore?
  • ----Upon what account? replied my uncle _Toby_, in the utmost
  • astonishment. --To think, said my father, of a man living to your age,
  • brother, and knowing so little about women! ----I know nothing at all
  • about them, --replied my uncle _Toby_: And I think, continued he, that
  • the shock I received the year after the demolition of _Dunkirk_, in my
  • affair with widow _Wadman_; --which shock you know I should not have
  • received, but from my total ignorance of the sex, --has given me just
  • cause to say, That I neither know nor do pretend to know anything about
  • ’em or their concerns either. --Methinks, brother, replied my father,
  • you might, at least, know so much as the right end of a woman from the
  • wrong.
  • It is said in _Aristotle’s_ _Master Piece_, “That when a man doth think
  • of anything which is past, ----he looketh down upon the ground; ----but
  • that when he thinketh of something that is to come, he looketh up
  • towards the heavens.”
  • My uncle _Toby_, I suppose, thought of neither, for he look’d
  • horizontally. --Right end! quoth my uncle _Toby_, muttering the two
  • words low to himself, and fixing his two eyes insensibly as he muttered
  • them, upon a small crevice, formed by a bad joint in the
  • chimney-piece ----Right end of a woman! ----I declare, quoth my uncle,
  • I know no more which it is than the man in the moon; ----and if I was to
  • think, continued my uncle _Toby_ (keeping his eye still fixed upon the
  • bad joint) this month together, I am sure I should not be able to find
  • it out.
  • Then, brother _Toby_, replied my father, I will tell you.
  • Everything in this world, continued my father (filling a fresh
  • pipe)--every thing in this world, my dear brother _Toby_, has two
  • handles. ----Not always, quoth my uncle _Toby_. ----At least, replied my
  • father, everyone has two hands, ----which comes to the same thing.
  • ----Now, if a man was to sit down coolly, and consider within himself
  • the make, the shape, the construction, come-at-ability, and convenience
  • of all the parts which constitute the whole of that animal, called
  • Woman, and compare them analogically ----I never understood rightly the
  • meaning of that word, --quoth my uncle _Toby_.--
  • ANALOGY, replied my father, is the certain relation and agreement which
  • different ----Here a devil of a rap at the door snapped my father’s
  • definition (like his tobacco-pipe) in two, --and, at the same time,
  • crushed the head of as notable and curious a dissertation as ever was
  • engendered in the womb of speculation; --it was some months before my
  • father could get an opportunity to be safely delivered of it: --And, at
  • this hour, it is a thing full as problematical as the subject of the
  • dissertation itself, --(considering the confusion and distresses of our
  • domestick misadventures, which are now coming thick one upon the back of
  • another) whether I shall be able to find a place for it in the third
  • volume or not.
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • It is about an hour and a half’s tolerable good reading since my uncle
  • _Toby_ rung the bell, when _Obadiah_ was ordered to saddle a horse, and
  • go for Dr. _Slop_, the man-midwife; --so that no one can say, with
  • reason, that I have not allowed _Obadiah_ time enough, poetically
  • speaking, and considering the emergency too, both to go and come;
  • ----though, morally and truly speaking, the man perhaps has scarce had
  • time to get on his boots.
  • If the hypercritick will go upon this; and is resolved after all to take
  • a pendulum, and measure the true distance betwixt the ringing of the
  • bell, and the rap at the door; --and, after finding it to be no more
  • than two minutes, thirteen seconds, and three fifths, --should take upon
  • him to insult over me for such a breach in the unity, or rather
  • probability of time; --I would remind him, that the idea of duration,
  • and of its simple modes, is got merely from the train and succession of
  • our ideas, ----and is the true scholastic pendulum, ----and by which, as
  • a scholar, I will be tried in this matter, --abjuring and detesting the
  • jurisdiction of all other pendulums whatever.
  • I would therefore desire him to consider that it is but poor eight miles
  • from _Shandy-Hall_ to Dr. _Slop_, the man-midwife’s house; --and that
  • whilst _Obadiah_ has been going those said miles and back, I have
  • brought my uncle _Toby_ from _Namur_, quite across all _Flanders_, into
  • _England_: --That I have had him ill upon my hands near four years;
  • --and have since travelled him and Corporal _Trim_ in a
  • chariot-and-four, a journey of near two hundred miles down into
  • _Yorkshire_, ----all which put together, must have prepared the reader’s
  • imagination for the entrance of Dr. _Slop_ upon the stage, --as much, at
  • least (I hope) as a dance, a song, or a concerto between the acts.
  • If my hypercritick is intractable, alledging, that two minutes and
  • thirteen seconds are no more than two minutes and thirteen seconds,
  • --when I have said all I can about them; and that this plea, though it
  • might save me dramatically, will damn me biographically, rendering my
  • book from this very moment, a professed ROMANCE, which, before, was a
  • book apocryphal: ----If I am thus pressed --I then put an end to the
  • whole objection and controversy about it all at once, ----by acquainting
  • him, that _Obadiah_ had not got above threescore yards from the
  • stable-yard before he met with Dr. _Slop_; --and indeed he gave a
  • dirty proof that he had met with him, and was within an ace of giving a
  • tragical one too.
  • Imagine to yourself; --but this had better begin a new chapter.
  • CHAPTER IX
  • Imagine to yourself a little squat, uncourtly figure of a Doctor _Slop_,
  • of about four feet and a half perpendicular height, with a breadth of
  • back, and a sesquipedality of belly, which might have done honour to a
  • serjeant in the horse-guards.
  • Such were the out-lines of Dr. _Slop’s_ figure, which, --if you have
  • read _Hogarth’s_ analysis of beauty, and if you have not, I wish you
  • would; ----you must know, may as certainly be caricatured, and conveyed
  • to the mind by three strokes as three hundred.
  • Imagine such a one, ----for such, I say, were the outlines of Dr.
  • _Slop’s_ figure, coming slowly along, foot by foot, waddling thro’ the
  • dirt upon the vertebræ of a little diminutive pony, of a pretty
  • colour----but of strength, ----alack! ----scarce able to have made an
  • amble of it, under such a fardel, had the roads been in an ambling
  • condition. ----They were not. ----Imagine to yourself, _Obadiah_ mounted
  • upon a strong monster of a coach-horse, pricked into a full gallop, and
  • making all practicable speed the adverse way.
  • Pray, Sir, let me interest you a moment in this description.
  • Had Dr. _Slop_ beheld _Obadiah_ a mile off, posting in a narrow lane
  • directly towards him, at that monstrous rate, --splashing and plunging
  • like a devil thro’ thick and thin, as he approached, would not such a
  • phænomenon, with such a vortex of mud and water moving along with it,
  • round its axis, --have been a subject of juster apprehension to Dr.
  • _Slop_ in his situation, than the _worst_ of _Whiston’s_ comets? --To
  • say nothing of the NUCLEUS; that is, of _Obadiah_ and the coach-horse.
  • --In my idea, the vortex alone of ’em was enough to have involved and
  • carried, if not the doctor, at least the doctor’s pony, quite away with
  • it. What then do you think must the terror and hydrophobia of Dr. _Slop_
  • have been, when you read (which you are just going to do) that he was
  • advancing thus warily along towards _Shandy-Hall_, and had approached to
  • within sixty yards of it, and within five yards of a sudden turn, made
  • by an acute angle of the garden-wall, --and in the dirtiest part of a
  • dirty lane, --when _Obadiah_ and his coach-horse turned the corner,
  • rapid, furious, --pop, --full upon him! --Nothing, I think, in nature,
  • can be supposed more terrible than such a rencounter, --so imprompt! so
  • ill prepared to stand the shock of it as Dr. _Slop_ was.
  • What could Dr. _Slop_ do? ----he crossed himself + --Pugh! --but the
  • doctor, Sir, was a Papist. --No matter; he had better have kept hold of
  • the pummel --He had so; --nay, as it happened, he had better have done
  • nothing at all; for in crossing himself he let go his whip, ----and in
  • attempting to save his whip betwixt his knee and his saddle’s skirt, as
  • it slipped, he lost his stirrup, ----in losing which he lost his seat;
  • ----and in the multitude of all these losses (which, by the bye, shews
  • what little advantage there is in crossing) the unfortunate doctor lost
  • his presence of mind. So that without waiting for _Obadiah’s_ onset, he
  • left his pony to its destiny, tumbling off it diagonally, something in
  • the stile and manner of a pack of wool, and without any other
  • consequence from the fall, save that of being left (as it would have
  • been) with the broadest part of him sunk about twelve inches deep in the
  • mire.
  • _Obadiah_ pull’d off his cap twice to Dr. _Slop_; --once as he was
  • falling, --and then again when he saw him seated. ----Ill-timed
  • complaisance; --had not the fellow better have stopped his horse, and
  • got off and help’d him? --Sir, he did all that his situation would
  • allow; --but the MOMENTUM of the coach-horse was so great, that
  • _Obadiah_ could not do it all at once; he rode in a circle three times
  • round Dr. _Slop_, before he could fully accomplish it any how; --and at
  • the last, when he did stop his beast, ’twas done with such an explosion
  • of mud, that _Obadiah_ had better have been a league off. In short,
  • never was a Dr. _Slop_ so beluted, and so transubstantiated, since that
  • affair came into fashion.
  • CHAPTER X
  • When Dr. _Slop_ entered the back parlour, where my father and my uncle
  • _Toby_ were discoursing upon the nature of women, ----it was hard to
  • determine whether Dr. _Slop’s_ figure, or Dr. _Slop’s_ presence,
  • occasioned more surprize to them; for as the accident happened so near
  • the house, as not to make it worth while for _Obadiah_ to remount him,
  • ----Obadiah had led him in as he was, _unwiped_, _unappointed_,
  • _unannealed_, with all his stains and blotches on him. --He stood like
  • _Hamlet’s_ ghost, motionless and speechless, for a full minute and a
  • half at the parlour-door (_Obadiah_ still holding his hand) with all the
  • majesty of mud. His hinder parts, upon which he had received his fall,
  • totally besmeared, ----and in every other part of him, blotched over in
  • such a manner with _Obadiah’s_ explosion, that you would have sworn
  • (without mental reservation) that every grain of it had taken effect.
  • Here was a fair opportunity for my uncle _Toby_ to have triumphed over
  • my father in his turn; --for no mortal, who had beheld Dr. _Slop_ in
  • that pickle, could have dissented from so much at least, of my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ opinion, “That mayhap his sister might not care to let such a
  • Dr. _Slop_ come so near her ****.” But it was the _Argumentum ad
  • hominem_; and if my uncle _Toby_ was not very expert at it, you may
  • think, he might not care to use it. ----No; the reason was, --’twas not
  • his nature to insult.
  • Dr. _Slop’s_ presence at that time, was no less problematical than the
  • mode of it; tho’ it is certain, one moment’s reflexion in my father
  • might have solved it; for he had apprized Dr. _Slop_ but the week
  • before, that my mother was at her full reckoning; and as the doctor had
  • heard nothing since, ’twas natural and very political too in him, to
  • have taken a ride to _Shandy-Hall_, as he did, merely to see how matters
  • went on.
  • But my father’s mind took unfortunately a wrong turn in the
  • investigation; running, like the hypercritick’s, altogether upon the
  • ringing of the bell and the rap upon the door, --measuring their
  • distance, and keeping his mind so intent upon the operation as to have
  • power to think of nothing else, ----common-place infirmity of the
  • greatest mathematicians! working with might and main at the
  • demonstration, and so wasting all their strength upon it, that they have
  • none left in them to draw the corollary, to do good with.
  • The ringing of the bell, and the rap upon the door, struck likewise
  • strong upon the sensorium of my uncle _Toby_, --but it excited a very
  • different train of thoughts; --the two irreconcileable pulsations
  • instantly brought _Stevinus_, the great engineer, along with them, into
  • my uncle _Toby’s_ mind. What business _Stevinus_ had in this affair,
  • --is the greatest problem of all: ----It shall be solved, --but not in
  • the next chapter.
  • CHAPTER XI
  • Writing, when properly managed (as you may be sure I think mine is) is
  • but a different name for conversation. As no one, who knows what he is
  • about in good company, would venture to talk all; ----so no author, who
  • understands the just boundaries of decorum and good-breeding, would
  • presume to think all: The truest respect which you can pay to the
  • reader’s understanding, is to halve this matter amicably, and leave him
  • something to imagine, in his turn, as well as yourself.
  • For my own part, I am eternally paying him compliments of this kind, and
  • do all that lies in my power to keep his imagination as busy as my own.
  • ’Tis his turn now; --I have given an ample description of Dr. _Slop’s_
  • sad overthrow, and of his sad appearance in the back-parlour; --his
  • imagination must now go on with it for a while.
  • Let the reader imagine then, that Dr. _Slop_ has told his tale--and in
  • what words, and with what aggravations, his fancy chooses; --Let him
  • suppose, that _Obadiah_ has told his tale also, and with such rueful
  • looks of affected concern, as he thinks best will contrast the two
  • figures as they stand by each other. ----Let him imagine, that my father
  • has stepped upstairs to see my mother. --And, to conclude this work of
  • imagination--let him imagine the doctor washed, --rubbed down, and
  • condoled, --felicitated, --got into a pair of _Obadiah’s_ pumps,
  • stepping forwards towards the door, upon the very point of entering upon
  • action.
  • Truce! --truce, good Dr. _Slop_: --stay thy obstetrick hand; ----return
  • it safe into thy bosom to keep it warm; ----little dost thou know what
  • obstacles, ------little dost thou think what hidden causes, retard its
  • operation! ----Hast thou, Dr. _Slop_, --hast thou been intrusted with
  • the secret articles of the solemn treaty which has brought thee into
  • this place? --Art thou aware that at this instant, a daughter of
  • _Lucina_ is put obstetrically over thy head? Alas! --’tis too true.
  • --Besides, great son of _Pilumnus!_ what canst thou do? --Thou hast come
  • forth unarm’d; --thou hast left thy _tire-tête_, --thy new-invented
  • _forceps_, --thy _crotchet_, --thy _squirt_, and all thy instruments of
  • salvation and deliverance, behind thee, --By Heaven! at this moment they
  • are hanging up in a green bays bag, betwixt thy two pistols, at the
  • bed’s head! --Ring; --call; --send _Obadiah_ back upon the coach-horse
  • to bring them with all speed.
  • ----Make great haste, _Obadiah_, quoth my father, and I’ll give thee a
  • crown! --and quoth my uncle _Toby_, I’ll give him another.
  • CHAPTER XII
  • Your sudden and unexpected arrival, quoth my uncle _Toby_, addressing
  • himself to Dr. _Slop_ (all three of them sitting down to the fire
  • together, as my uncle _Toby_ began to speak)--instantly brought the
  • great _Stevinus_ into my head, who, you must know, is a favourite author
  • with me. --Then, added my father, making use of the argument _Ad
  • Crumenam_, --I will lay twenty guineas to a single crown-piece (which
  • will serve to give away to _Obadiah_ when he gets back) that this same
  • _Stevinus_ was some engineer or other, --or has wrote something or
  • other, either directly or indirectly, upon the science of fortification.
  • He has so, --replied my uncle _Toby_. --I knew it, said my father,
  • though, for the soul of me, I cannot see what kind of connection there
  • can be betwixt Dr. _Slop’s_ sudden coming, and a discourse upon
  • fortification; --yet I fear’d it. --Talk of what we will, brother,
  • ----or let the occasion be never so foreign or unfit for the subject,
  • --you are sure to bring it in. I would not, brother _Toby_, continued my
  • father, ------I declare I would not have my head so full of curtins and
  • hornworks. --That I dare say you would not, quoth Dr. _Slop_,
  • interrupting him, and laughing most immoderately at his pun.
  • _Dennis_ the critic could not detest and abhor a pun, or the insinuation
  • of a pun, more cordially than my father; --he would grow testy upon it
  • at any time; --but to be broke in upon by one, in a serious discourse,
  • was as bad, he would say, as a fillip upon the nose; ----he saw no
  • difference.
  • Sir, quoth my uncle _Toby_, addressing himself to Dr. _Slop_, --the
  • curtins my brother _Shandy_ mentions here, have nothing to do with
  • bedsteads; --tho’, I know _Du Cange_ says, “That bed-curtains, in all
  • probability, have taken their name from them;” --nor have the hornworks
  • he speaks of, anything in the world to do with the horn-works of
  • cuckoldom: --But the _Curtin_, Sir, is the word we use in fortification,
  • for that part of the wall or rampart which lies between the two bastions
  • and joins them --Besiegers seldom offer to carry on their attacks
  • directly against the curtin, for this reason, because they are so well
  • _flanked_. (’Tis the case of other curtains, quoth Dr. _Slop_,
  • laughing.) However, continued my uncle _Toby_, to make them sure, we
  • generally choose to place ravelins before them, taking care only to
  • extend them beyond the fossé or ditch: ----The common men, who know very
  • little of fortification, confound the ravelin and the half-moon
  • together, --tho’ they are very different things; --not in their figure
  • or construction, for we make them exactly alike, in all points; --for
  • they always consist of two faces, making a salient angle, with the
  • gorges, not straight, but in form of a crescent: ----Where then lies the
  • difference? (quoth my father, a little testily). --In their situations,
  • answered my uncle _Toby_: --For when a ravelin, brother, stands before
  • the curtin, it is a ravelin; and when a ravelin stands before a bastion,
  • then the ravelin is not a ravelin; --it is a half-moon; --a half-moon
  • likewise is a half-moon, and no more, so long as it stands before its
  • bastion; ----but was it to change place, and get before the curtin,
  • --’twould be no longer a half-moon; a half-moon, in that case, is not a
  • half-moon; --’tis no more than a ravelin. ----I think, quoth my father,
  • that the noble science of defence has its weak sides----as well as
  • others.
  • --As for the horn-work (high! ho! sigh’d my father) which, continued my
  • uncle _Toby_, my brother was speaking of, they are a very considerable
  • part of an outwork; ----they are called by the _French_ engineers,
  • _Ouvrage à corne_, and we generally make them to cover such places as we
  • suspect to be weaker than the rest; --’tis formed by two epaulments or
  • demi-bastions--they are very pretty, --and if you will take a walk, I’ll
  • engage to shew you one well worth your trouble. --I own, continued my
  • uncle _Toby_, when we crown them, --they are much stronger, but then
  • they are very expensive, and take up a great deal of ground, so that, in
  • my opinion, they are most of use to cover or defend the head of a camp;
  • otherwise the double tenaille --By the mother who bore us! ----brother
  • _Toby_, quoth my father, not able to hold out any longer, ----you would
  • provoke a saint; ----here have you got us, I know not how, not only
  • souse into the middle of the old subject again: --But so full is your
  • head of these confounded works, that though my wife is this moment in
  • the pains of labour, and you hear her cry out, yet nothing will serve
  • you but to carry off the man-midwife. ----_Accoucheur_, --if you please,
  • quoth Dr. _Slop_. ----With all my heart, replied my father, I don’t care
  • what they call you, --but I wish the whole science of fortification,
  • with all its inventors, at the devil; --it has been the death of
  • thousands, --and it will be mine in the end, --I would not, I would not,
  • brother _Toby_, have my brains so full of saps, mines, blinds, gabions,
  • pallisadoes, ravelins, half-moons, and such trumpery, to be proprietor
  • of _Namur_, and of all the towns in _Flanders_ with it.
  • My uncle _Toby_ was a man patient of injuries; --not from want of
  • courage, --I have told you in a former chapter, “that he was a man of
  • courage:” --And will add here, that where just occasions presented, or
  • called it forth, --I know no man under whose arm I would have sooner
  • taken shelter; ----nor did this arise from any insensibility or
  • obtuseness of his intellectual parts; --for he felt this insult of my
  • father’s as feelingly as a man could do; --but he was of a peaceful,
  • placid nature, --no jarring element in it, --all was mixed up so kindly
  • within him; my uncle _Toby_ had scarce a heart to retaliate upon a fly.
  • --Go--says he, one day at dinner, to an over-grown one which had buzzed
  • about his nose, and tormented him cruelly all dinner-time, --and which
  • after infinite attempts, he had caught at last, as it flew by him;
  • --I’ll not hurt thee, says my uncle _Toby_, rising from his chair, and
  • going across the room, with the fly in his hand, ----I’ll not hurt a
  • hair of thy head: --Go, says he, lifting up the sash, and opening his
  • hand as he spoke, to let it escape; --go, poor devil, get thee gone, why
  • should I hurt thee? ----This world surely is wide enough to hold both
  • thee and me.
  • I was but ten years old when this happened: but whether it was, that the
  • action itself was more in unison to my nerves at that age of pity, which
  • instantly set my whole frame into one vibration of most pleasurable
  • sensation; --or how far the manner and expression of it might go towards
  • it; --or in what degree, or by what secret magick, --a tone of voice and
  • harmony of movement, attuned by mercy, might find a passage to my heart,
  • I know not; --this I know, that the lesson of universal good-will then
  • taught and imprinted by my uncle _Toby_, has never since been worn out
  • of my mind: And tho’ I would not depreciate what the study of the
  • _Literæ humaniores_, at the university, have done for me in that
  • respect, or discredit the other helps of an expensive education bestowed
  • upon me, both at home and abroad since; --yet I often think that I owe
  • one half of my philanthropy to that one accidental impression.
  • [-->] This is to serve for parents and governors instead of a whole
  • volume upon the subject.
  • I could not give the reader this stroke in my uncle _Toby’s_ picture, by
  • the instrument with which I drew the other parts of it, --that taking in
  • no more than the mere HOBBY-HORSICAL likeness: ----this is a part of his
  • moral character. My father, in this patient endurance of wrongs, which I
  • mention, was very different, as the reader must long ago have noted; he
  • had a much more acute and quick sensibility of nature, attended with a
  • little soreness of temper; tho’ this never transported him to anything
  • which looked like malignancy: --yet in the little rubs and vexations of
  • life, ’twas apt to shew itself in a drollish and witty kind of
  • peevishness: ----He was, however, frank and generous in his nature;
  • ----at all times open to conviction; and in the little ebullitions of
  • this subacid humour towards others, but particularly towards my uncle
  • _Toby_, whom he truly loved: ----he would feel more pain, ten times told
  • (except in the affair of my aunt _Dinah_, or where an hypothesis was
  • concerned) than what he ever gave.
  • The characters of the two brothers, in this view of them, reflected
  • light upon each other, and appeared with great advantage in this affair
  • which arose about _Stevinus_.
  • I need not tell the reader, if he keeps a HOBBY-HORSE, ----that a man’s
  • HOBBY-HORSE is as tender a part as he has about him; and that these
  • unprovoked strokes at my uncle _Toby’s_ could not be unfelt by him.
  • ----No: ------as I said above, my uncle _Toby_ did feel them, and very
  • sensibly too.
  • Pray, Sir, what said he? --How did he behave? --O, Sir! --it was great:
  • For as soon as my father had done insulting his HOBBY-HORSE, ------he
  • turned his head without the least emotion, from Dr. _Slop_, to whom he
  • was addressing his discourse, and looking up into my father’s face, with
  • a countenance spread over with so much good-nature; ----so placid;
  • ----so fraternal; ----so inexpressibly tender towards him: --it
  • penetrated my father to his heart: He rose up hastily from his chair,
  • and seizing hold of both my uncle _Toby’s_ hands as he spoke: --Brother
  • _Toby_, said he, --I beg thy pardon; ----forgive, I pray thee, this rash
  • humour which my mother gave me. ----My dear, dear brother, answered my
  • uncle _Toby_, rising up by my father’s help, say no more about it; --you
  • are heartily welcome, had it been ten times as much, brother. But ’tis
  • ungenerous, replied my father, to hurt any man; ----a brother worse;
  • ----but to hurt a brother of such gentle manners, --so unprovoking,
  • --and so unresenting; ----’tis base: ----By Heaven, ’tis cowardly. --You
  • are heartily welcome, brother, quoth my uncle _Toby_, ------had it been
  • fifty times as much. ----Besides, what have I to do, my dear _Toby_,
  • cried my father, either with your amusements or your pleasures, unless
  • it was in my power (which it is not) to increase their measure?
  • ----Brother _Shandy_, answered my uncle _Toby_, looking wistfully in his
  • face, ----you are much mistaken in this point: --for you do increase my
  • pleasure very much, in begetting children for the _Shandy_ family at
  • your time of life. --But, by that, Sir, quoth Dr. _Slop_, Mr. _Shandy_
  • increases his own. --Not a jot, quoth my father.
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • My brother does it, quoth my uncle _Toby_, out of _principle_. ----In a
  • family way, I suppose, quoth Dr. _Slop_. ----Pshaw! --said my father,
  • --’tis not worth talking of.
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • At the end of the last chapter, my father and my uncle _Toby_ were left
  • both standing, like _Brutus_ and _Cassius_, at the close of the scene,
  • making up their accounts.
  • As my father spoke the three last words, ----he sat down; --my uncle
  • _Toby_ exactly followed his example, only, that before he took his
  • chair, he rung the bell, to order Corporal _Trim_, who was in waiting,
  • to step home for _Stevinus_: --my uncle _Toby’s_ house being no farther
  • off than the opposite side of the way.
  • Some men would have dropped the subject of _Stevinus_; ----but my uncle
  • _Toby_ had no resentment in his heart, and he went on with the subject,
  • to shew my father that he had none.
  • Your sudden appearance, Dr. _Slop_, quoth my uncle, resuming the
  • discourse, instantly brought _Stevinus_ into my head. (My father, you
  • may be sure, did not offer to lay any more wagers upon _Stevinus’s_
  • head.) ----Because, continued my uncle _Toby_, the celebrated sailing
  • chariot, which belonged to Prince _Maurice_, and was of such wonderful
  • contrivance and velocity, as to carry half a dozen people thirty
  • _German_ miles, in I don’t know how few minutes, ----was invented by
  • _Stevinus_, that great mathematician and engineer.
  • You might have spared your servant the trouble, quoth Dr. _Slop_ (as the
  • fellow is lame) of going for _Stevinus’s_ account of it, because in my
  • return from _Leyden_ thro’ the _Hague_, I walked as far as _Schevling_,
  • which is two long miles, on purpose to take a view of it.
  • That’s nothing, replied my uncle _Toby_, to what the learned
  • _Peireskius_ did, who walked a matter of five hundred miles, reckoning
  • from _Paris_ to _Schevling_, and from _Schevling_ to _Paris_ back again,
  • in order to see it, --and nothing else.
  • Some men cannot bear to be out-gone.
  • The more fool _Peireskius_, replied Dr. _Slop_. But mark, ’twas out of
  • no contempt of _Peireskius_ at all; ----but that _Peireskius’s_
  • indefatigable labour in trudging so far on foot, out of love for the
  • sciences, reduced the exploit of Dr. _Slop_, in that affair, to nothing:
  • --the more fool _Peireskius_, said he again. --Why so? --replied my
  • father, taking his brother’s part, not only to make reparation as fast
  • as he could for the insult he had given him, which sat still upon my
  • father’s mind; ----but partly, that my father began really to interest
  • himself in the discourse. ----Why so? ----said he. Why is _Peireskius_,
  • or any man else, to be abused for an appetite for that, or any other
  • morsel of sound knowledge: For notwithstanding I know nothing of the
  • chariot in question, continued he, the inventor of it must have had a
  • very mechanical head; and tho’ I cannot guess upon what principles of
  • philosophy he has atchieved it; --yet certainly his machine has been
  • constructed upon solid ones, be they what they will, or it could not
  • have answered at the rate my brother mentions.
  • It answered, replied my uncle _Toby_, as well, if not better; for, as
  • _Peireskius_ elegantly expresses it, speaking of the velocity of its
  • motion, _Tam citus erat, quam erat ventus_; which, unless I have forgot
  • my Latin, is, _that it was as swift as the wind itself_.
  • But pray, Dr. _Slop_, quoth my father, interrupting my uncle (tho’ not
  • without begging pardon for it at the same time) upon what principles was
  • this self-same chariot set a-going? --Upon very pretty principles to be
  • sure, replied Dr. _Slop_: --And I have often wondered, continued he,
  • evading the question, why none of our gentry, who live upon large plains
  • like this of ours, --(especially they whose wives are not past
  • child-bearing) attempt nothing of this kind; for it would not only be
  • infinitely expeditious upon sudden calls, to which the sex is subject,
  • --if the wind only served, --but would be excellent good husbandry to
  • make use of the winds, which cost nothing, and which eat nothing, rather
  • than horses, which (the devil take ’em) both cost and eat a great deal.
  • For that very reason, replied my father, “Because they cost nothing, and
  • because they eat nothing,” --the scheme is bad; --it is the consumption
  • of our products, as well as the manufactures of them, which gives bread
  • to the hungry, circulates trade, --brings in money, and supports the
  • value of our lands: --and tho’, I own, if I was a Prince, I would
  • generously recompense the scientifick head which brought forth such
  • contrivances; --yet I would as peremptorily suppress the use of them.
  • My father here had got into his element, ----and was going on as
  • prosperously with his dissertation upon trade, as my uncle _Toby_ had
  • before, upon his of fortification; --but to the loss of much sound
  • knowledge, the destinies in the morning had decreed that no dissertation
  • of any kind should be spun by my father that day, ----for as he opened
  • his mouth to begin the next sentence.
  • CHAPTER XV
  • In popped Corporal _Trim_ with _Stevinus_: --But ’twas too late, --all
  • the discourse had been exhausted without him, and was running into a new
  • channel. --You may take the book home again, _Trim_, said my uncle
  • _Toby_, nodding to him.
  • But prithee, Corporal, quoth my father, drolling, --look first into it,
  • and see if thou canst spy aught of a sailing chariot in it.
  • Corporal _Trim_, by being in the service, had learned to obey, --and not
  • to remonstrate; --so taking the book to a side-table, and running over
  • the leaves; An’ please your Honour, said _Trim_, I can see no such
  • thing; --however, continued the Corporal, drolling a little in his turn,
  • I’ll make sure work of it, an’ please your Honour; --so taking hold of
  • the two covers of the book, one in each hand, and letting the leaves
  • fall down, as he bent the covers back, he gave the book a good sound
  • shake.
  • There is something falling out, however, said _Trim_, an’ please your
  • Honour; --but it is not a chariot, or anything like one: --Prithee,
  • Corporal, said my father, smiling, what is it then? --I think, answered
  • _Trim_, stooping to take it up, ----’tis more like a sermon, ------for
  • it begins with a text of scripture, and the chapter and verse; --and
  • then goes on, not as a chariot, but like a sermon directly.
  • The company smiled.
  • I cannot conceive how it is possible, quoth my uncle _Toby_, for such a
  • thing as a sermon to have got into my _Stevinus_.
  • I think ’tis a sermon, replied _Trim_; --but if it please your Honours,
  • as it is a fair hand, I will read you a page; --for _Trim_, you must
  • know, loved to hear himself read almost as well as talk.
  • I have ever a strong propensity, said my father, to look into things
  • which cross my way, by such strange fatalities as these; --and as we
  • have nothing better to do, at least till _Obadiah_ gets back, I shall be
  • obliged to you, brother, if Dr. _Slop_ has no objection to it, to order
  • the Corporal to give us a page or two of it, --if he is as able to do
  • it, as he seems willing. An’ please your Honour, quoth _Trim_, I
  • officiated two whole campaigns, in _Flanders_, as clerk to the chaplain
  • of the regiment. ----He can read it, quoth my uncle _Toby_, as well as I
  • can. ----_Trim_, I assure you, was the best scholar in my company, and
  • should have had the next halberd, but for the poor fellow’s misfortune.
  • Corporal _Trim_ laid his hand upon his heart, and made an humble bow to
  • his master; --then laying down his hat upon the floor, and taking up the
  • sermon in his left hand, in order to have his right at liberty, ----he
  • advanced, nothing doubting, into the middle of the room, where he could
  • best see, and be best seen by his audience.
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • --If you have any objection, --said my father, addressing himself to Dr.
  • _Slop_. Not in the least, replied Dr. _Slop_; --for it does not appear
  • on which side of the question it is wrote; ----it may be a composition
  • of a divine of our church, as well as yours, --so that we run equal
  • risques. ----’Tis wrote upon neither side, quoth _Trim_, for ’tis only
  • upon _Conscience_, an’ please your Honours.
  • _Trim’s_ reason put his audience into good-humour, --all but Dr. _Slop_,
  • who turning his head about towards _Trim_, looked a little angry.
  • Begin, _Trim_, --and read distinctly, quoth my father. --I will, an’
  • please your Honour, replied the Corporal, making a bow, and bespeaking
  • attention with a slight movement of his right hand.
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • ----But before the Corporal begins, I must first give you a description
  • of his attitude; ----otherwise he will naturally stand represented, by
  • your imagination, in an uneasy posture, --stiff, --perpendicular,
  • --dividing the weight of his body equally upon both legs; ----his eye
  • fixed, as if on duty; --his look determined, --clenching the sermon in
  • his left hand, like his firelock. ----In a word, you would be apt to
  • paint _Trim_, as if he was standing in his platoon ready for action.
  • --His attitude was as unlike all this as you can conceive.
  • He stood before them with his body swayed, and bent forwards just so
  • far, as to make an angle of 85 degrees and a half upon the plain of the
  • horizon; --which sound orators, to whom I address this, know very well
  • to be the true persuasive angle of incidence; --in any other angle you
  • may talk and preach; --’tis certain; --and it is done every day; --but
  • with what effect, --I leave the world to judge!
  • The necessity of this precise angle, of 85 degrees and a half to a
  • mathematical exactness, ----does it not shew us, by the way, how the
  • arts and sciences mutually befriend each other?
  • How the duce Corporal _Trim_, who knew not so much as an acute angle
  • from an obtuse one, came to hit it so exactly; ----or whether it was
  • chance or nature, or good sense or imitation, &c., shall be commented
  • upon in that part of the cyclopædia of arts and sciences, where the
  • instrumental parts of the eloquence of the senate, the pulpit, and the
  • bar, the coffee-house, the bed-chamber, and fire-side, fall under
  • consideration.
  • He stood, ----for I repeat it, to take the picture of him in at one
  • view, with his body swayed, and somewhat bent forwards, --his right leg
  • from under him, sustaining seven-eighths of his whole weight, ------the
  • foot of his left leg, the defect of which was no disadvantage to his
  • attitude, advanced a little, --not laterally, nor forwards, but in a
  • line betwixt them; --his knee bent, but that not violently, --but so as
  • to fall within the limits of the line of beauty; --and I add, of the
  • line of science too; --for consider, it had one eighth part of his body
  • to bear up; --so that in this case the position of the leg is
  • determined, --because the foot could be no farther advanced, or the knee
  • more bent, than what would allow him, mechanically to receive an eighth
  • part of his whole weight under it, and to carry it too.
  • [-->] This I recommend to painters: --need I add, --to orators! --I
  • think not; for unless they practise it, ------they must fall upon their
  • noses.
  • So much for Corporal _Trim’s_ body and legs. ----He held the sermon
  • loosely, not carelessly, in his left hand, raised something above his
  • stomach, and detached a little from his breast; ----his right arm
  • falling negligently by his side, as nature and the laws of gravity
  • ordered it, ----but with the palm of it open and turned towards his
  • audience, ready to aid the sentiment in case it stood in need.
  • Corporal _Trim’s_ eyes and the muscles of his face were in full harmony
  • with the other parts of him; --he looked frank, --unconstrained,
  • --something assured, --but not bordering upon assurance.
  • Let not the critic ask how Corporal _Trim_ could come by all this.
  • ----I’ve told him it should be explained; --but so he stood before my
  • father, my uncle _Toby_, and Dr. _Slop_, --so swayed his body, so
  • contrasted his limbs, and with such an oratorical sweep throughout the
  • whole figure, ----a statuary might have modelled from it; ----nay,
  • I doubt whether the oldest Fellow of a College, --or the _Hebrew_
  • Professor himself, could have much mended it.
  • _Trim_ made a bow, and read as follows:
  • The SERMON
  • HEBREWS xiii. 18
  • ----_For we _trust_ we have a good Conscience_
  • “Trust! ----Trust we have a good conscience!”
  • [Certainly, _Trim_, quoth my father, interrupting him, you give that
  • sentence a very improper accent; for you curl up your nose, man, and
  • read it with such a sneering tone, as if the Parson was going to abuse
  • the Apostle.
  • He is, an’ please your Honour, replied _Trim_. Pugh! said my father,
  • smiling.
  • Sir, quoth Dr. _Slop_, _Trim_ is certainly in the right; for the writer
  • (who I perceive is a Protestant) by the snappish manner in which he
  • takes up the apostle, is certainly going to abuse him; --if this
  • treatment of him has not done it already. But from whence, replied my
  • father, have you concluded so soon, Dr. _Slop_, that the writer is of
  • our church? --for aught I can see yet, --he may be of any church.
  • ----Because, answered Dr. _Slop_, if he was of ours, --he durst no more
  • take such a licence, --than a bear by his beard: --If, in our communion,
  • Sir, a man was to insult an apostle, ----a saint, ----or even the paring
  • of a saint’s nail, --he would have his eyes scratched out. --What, by
  • the saint? quoth my uncle _Toby_. No, replied Dr. _Slop_, he would have
  • an old house over his head. Pray is the Inquisition an ancient building,
  • answered my uncle _Toby_, or is it a modern one? --I know nothing of
  • architecture, replied Dr. _Slop_. --An’ please your Honours, quoth
  • _Trim_, the Inquisition is the vilest ----Prithee spare thy description,
  • _Trim_, I hate the very name of it, said my father. --No matter for
  • that, answered Dr. _Slop_, --it has its uses; for tho’ I’m no great
  • advocate for it, yet, in such a case as this, he would soon be taught
  • better manners; and I can tell him, if he went on at that rate, would be
  • flung into the Inquisition for his pains. God help him then, quoth my
  • uncle _Toby_. Amen, added _Trim_; for Heaven above knows, I have a poor
  • brother who has been fourteen years a captive in it. --I never heard one
  • word of it before, said my uncle _Toby_, hastily: --How came he there,
  • _Trim?_ ----O, Sir! the story will make your heart bleed, --as it has
  • made mine a thousand times; --but it is too long to be told now; --your
  • Honour shall hear it from first to last some day when I am working
  • beside you in our fortifications; --but the short of the story is this;
  • --That my brother _Tom_ went over a servant to _Lisbon_, --and then
  • married a Jew’s widow, who kept a small shop, and sold sausages, which
  • somehow or other, was the cause of his being taken in the middle of the
  • night out of his bed, where he was lying with his wife and two small
  • children, and carried directly to the Inquisition, where, God help him,
  • continued _Trim_, fetching a sigh from the bottom of his heart, --the
  • poor honest lad lies confined at this hour; he was as honest a soul,
  • added _Trim_, (pulling out his handkerchief) as ever blood warmed.----
  • --The tears trickled down _Trim’s_ cheeks faster than he could well wipe
  • them away. --And dead silence in the room ensued for some minutes.
  • --Certain proof of pity!
  • Come, _Trim_, quoth my father, after he saw the poor fellow’s grief had
  • got a little vent, --read on, --and put this melancholy story out of thy
  • head: --I grieve that I interrupted thee; but prithee begin the sermon
  • again; --for if the first sentence in it is matter of abuse, as thou
  • sayest, I have a great desire to know what kind of provocation the
  • apostle has given.
  • Corporal _Trim_ wiped his face, and returned his handkerchief into his
  • pocket, and, making a bow as he did it, --he began again.]
  • The SERMON
  • HEBREWS xiii. 18
  • _----For we _trust_ we have a good Conscience. --_
  • “Trust! trust we have a good conscience! Surely if there is any thing in
  • this life which a man may depend upon, and to the knowledge of which he
  • is capable of arriving upon the most indisputable evidence, it must be
  • this very thing, --whether he has a good conscience or no.”
  • [I am positive I am right, quoth Dr. _Slop_.]
  • “If a man thinks at all, he cannot well be a stranger to the true state
  • of this account; ----he must be privy to his own thoughts and desires;
  • --he must remember his past pursuits, and know certainly the true
  • springs and motives, which, in general, have governed the actions of his
  • life.”
  • [I defy him, without an assistant, quoth Dr. _Slop_.]
  • “In other matters we may be deceived by false appearances; and, as the
  • wise man complains, _hardly do we guess aright at the things that are
  • upon the earth, and with labour do we find the things that are before
  • us_. But here the mind has all the evidence and facts within herself;
  • ----is conscious of the web she has wove; ----knows its texture and
  • fineness, and the exact share which every passion has had in working
  • upon the several designs which virtue or vice has planned before her.”
  • [The language is good, and I declare _Trim_ reads very well, quoth my
  • father.]
  • “Now, --as conscience is nothing else but the knowledge which the mind
  • has within herself of this; and the judgment, either of approbation or
  • censure, which it unavoidably makes upon the successive actions of our
  • lives; ’tis plain you will say, from the very terms of the proposition,
  • --whenever this inward testimony goes against a man, and he stands
  • self-accused, that he must necessarily be a guilty man. --And, on the
  • contrary, when the report is favourable on his side, and his heart
  • condemns him not: --that it is not a matter of _trust_, as the apostle
  • intimates, but a matter of _certainty_ and fact, that the conscience is
  • good, and that the man must be good also.”
  • [Then the apostle is altogether in the wrong, I suppose, quoth Dr.
  • _Slop_, and the Protestant divine is in the right. Sir, have patience,
  • replied my father, for I think it will presently appear that St. _Paul_
  • and the Protestant divine are both of an opinion. --As nearly so, quoth
  • Dr. _Slop_, as east is to west; --but this, continued he, lifting both
  • hands, comes from the liberty of the press.
  • It is no more, at the worst, replied my uncle _Toby_, than the liberty
  • of the pulpit; for it does not appear that the sermon is printed, or
  • ever likely to be.
  • Go on, _Trim_, quoth my father.]
  • “At first sight this may seem to be a true state of the case: and I make
  • no doubt but the knowledge of right and wrong is so truly impressed upon
  • the mind of man, --that did no such thing ever happen, as that the
  • conscience of a man, by long habits of sin, might (as the scripture
  • assures it may) insensibly become hard; --and, like some tender parts of
  • his body, by much stress and continual hard usage, lose by degrees that
  • nice sense and perception with which God and nature endowed it: --Did
  • this never happen; --or was it certain that self-love could never hang
  • the least bias upon the judgment; --or that the little interests below
  • could rise up and perplex the faculties of our upper regions, and
  • encompass them about with clouds and thick darkness: ----Could no such
  • thing as favour and affection enter this sacred Court: --Did WIT disdain
  • to take a bribe in it; --or was ashamed to shew its face as an advocate
  • for an unwarrantable enjoyment: Or, lastly, were we assured that
  • INTEREST stood always unconcerned whilst the cause was hearing--and that
  • Passion never got into the judgment-seat, and pronounced sentence in the
  • stead of Reason, which is supposed always to preside and determine upon
  • the case: --Was this truly so, as the objection must suppose; --no doubt
  • then the religious and moral state of a man would be exactly what he
  • himself esteemed it: --and the guilt or innocence of every man’s life
  • could be known, in general, by no better measure, than the degrees of
  • his own approbation and censure.
  • “I own, in one case, whenever a man’s conscience does accuse him (as it
  • seldom errs on that side) that he is guilty; and unless in melancholy
  • and hypocondriac cases, we may safely pronounce upon it, that there is
  • always sufficient grounds for the accusation.
  • “But the converse of the proposition will not hold true; --namely, that
  • whenever there is guilt, the conscience must accuse; and if it does not,
  • that a man is therefore innocent. ----This is not fact ------So that the
  • common consolation which some good christian or other is hourly
  • administering to himself, --that he thanks God his mind does not misgive
  • him; and that, consequently, he has a good conscience, because he hath a
  • quiet one, --is fallacious; --and as current as the inference is, and as
  • infallible as the rule appears at first sight, yet when you look nearer
  • to it, and try the truth of this rule upon plain facts, ----you see it
  • liable to so much error from a false application; ----the principle upon
  • which it goes so often perverted; ----the whole force of it lost, and
  • sometimes so vilely cast away, that it is painful to produce the common
  • examples from human life, which confirm the account.
  • “A man shall be vicious and utterly debauched in his principles;
  • --exceptionable in his conduct to the world; shall live shameless, in
  • the open commission of a sin which no reason or pretence can justify,
  • ----a sin by which, contrary to all the workings of humanity, he shall
  • ruin for ever the deluded partner of his guilt; --rob her of her best
  • dowry; and not only cover her own head with dishonour; --but involve a
  • whole virtuous family in shame and sorrow for her sake. Surely, you will
  • think conscience must lead such a man a troublesome life; he can have no
  • rest night or day from its reproaches.
  • “Alas! CONSCIENCE had something else to do all this time, than break in
  • upon him; as _Elijah_ reproached the god _Baal_, ----this domestic god
  • _was either talking, or pursuing, or was in a journey, or peradventure
  • he slept and could not be awoke_.
  • “Perhaps HE was gone out in company with HONOUR to fight a duel: to pay
  • off some debt at play; ----or dirty annuity, the bargain of his lust;
  • Perhaps CONSCIENCE all this time was engaged at home, talking aloud
  • against petty larceny, and executing vengeance upon some such puny
  • crimes as his fortune and rank of life secured him against all
  • temptation of committing; so that he lives as merrily” ----[If he was of
  • our church, tho’, quoth Dr. _Slop_, he could not]-- “sleeps as soundly
  • in his bed; --and at last meets death as unconcernedly; --perhaps much
  • more so, than a much better man.”
  • [All this is impossible with us, quoth Dr. _Slop_, turning to my father,
  • --the case could not happen in our church. --It happens in ours,
  • however, replied my father, but too often. ----I own, quoth Dr. _Slop_,
  • (struck a little with my father’s frank acknowledgment)--that a man in
  • the _Romish_ church may live as badly; --but then he cannot easily die
  • so. ----’Tis little matter, replied my father, with an air of
  • indifference, --how a rascal dies. --I mean, answered Dr. _Slop_, he
  • would be denied the benefits of the last sacraments. --Pray how many
  • have you in all, said my uncle _Toby_, ----for I always forget?
  • ----Seven, answered Dr. _Slop_. ----Humph! --said my uncle _Toby_; tho’
  • not accented as a note of acquiescence, --but as an interjection of that
  • particular species of surprize, when a man in looking into a drawer,
  • finds more of a thing than he expected. ----Humph! replied my uncle
  • _Toby_. Dr. _Slop_, who had an ear, understood my uncle _Toby_ as well
  • as if he had wrote a whole volume against the seven sacraments.
  • ----Humph! replied Dr. _Slop_ (stating my uncle _Toby’s_ argument over
  • again to him) ----Why, Sir, are there not seven cardinal virtues?
  • ----Seven mortal sins? ----Seven golden candlesticks? ----Seven heavens?
  • --’Tis more than I know, replied my uncle _Toby_. ------Are there not
  • seven wonders of the world? ----Seven days of the creation? ----Seven
  • planets? ----Seven plagues? ----That there are, quoth my father with a
  • most affected gravity. But prithee, continued he, go on with the rest of
  • thy characters, _Trim_.]
  • “Another is sordid, unmerciful,” (here _Trim_ waved his right hand)
  • “a strait-hearted, selfish wretch, incapable either of private
  • friendship or public spirit. Take notice how he passes by the widow and
  • orphan in their distress, and sees all the miseries incident to human
  • life without a sigh or a prayer.” [An’ please your honours, cried
  • _Trim_, I think this a viler man than the other.]
  • “Shall not conscience rise up and sting him on such occasions? ----No;
  • thank God there is no occasion, _I pay every man his own; --I have no
  • fornication to answer to my conscience; --no faithless vows or promises
  • to make up; --I have debauched no man’s wife or child; thank God, I am
  • not as other men, adulterers, unjust, or even as this libertine, who
  • stands before me._
  • “A third is crafty and designing in his nature. View his whole life;
  • --’tis nothing but a cunning contexture of dark arts and unequitable
  • subterfuges, basely to defeat the true intent of all laws,
  • ----plain-dealing and the safe enjoyment of our several properties.
  • ----You will see such a one working out a frame of little designs upon
  • the ignorance and perplexities of the poor and needy man; --shall raise
  • a fortune upon the inexperience of a youth, or the unsuspecting temper
  • of his friend, who would have trusted him with his life.
  • “When old age comes on, and repentance calls him to look back upon this
  • black account, and state it over again with his conscience --CONSCIENCE
  • looks into the STATUTES AT LARGE; --finds no express law broken by what
  • he has done; --perceives no penalty or forfeiture of goods and chattels
  • incurred; --sees no scourge waving over his head, or prison opening his
  • gates upon him: --What is there to affright his conscience? --Conscience
  • has got safely entrenched behind the Letter of the Law; sits there
  • invulnerable, fortified with #Cases# and #Reports# so strongly on all
  • sides; --that it is not preaching can dispossess it of its hold.”
  • [Here Corporal _Trim_ and my uncle _Toby_ exchanged looks with each
  • other. --Aye, aye, _Trim!_ quoth my uncle _Toby_, shaking his head,
  • ------these are but sorry fortifications, _Trim_. ------O! very poor
  • work, answered _Trim_, to what your Honour and I make of it. ----The
  • character of this last man, said Dr. _Slop_, interrupting _Trim_, is
  • more detestable than all the rest; and seems to have been taken from
  • some pettifogging Lawyer amongst you: --Amongst us, a man’s conscience
  • could not possibly continue so long _blinded_, ----three times in a
  • year, at least, he must go to confession. Will that restore it to sight?
  • quoth my uncle _Toby_. ----Go on, _Trim_, quoth my father, or _Obadiah_
  • will have got back before thou hast got to the end of thy sermon.
  • ----’Tis a very short one, replied _Trim_. ----I wish it was longer,
  • quoth my uncle _Toby_, for I like it hugely. --_Trim_ went on.]
  • “A fourth man shall want even this refuge; --shall break through all
  • their ceremony of slow chicane; ----scorns the doubtful workings of
  • secret plots and cautious trains to bring about his purpose: ----See the
  • bare-faced villain, how he cheats, lies, perjures, robs, murders!
  • --Horrid! --But indeed much better was not to be expected, in the
  • present case--the poor man was in the dark! ------his priest had got the
  • keeping of his conscience; ----and all he would let him know of it, was,
  • That he must believe in the Pope; --go to Mass; --cross himself; --tell
  • his beads; --be a good Catholic, and that this, in all conscience, was
  • enough to carry him to heaven. What; --if he perjures! --Why; --he had a
  • mental reservation in it. --But if he is so wicked and abandoned a
  • wretch as you represent him; --if he robs, --if he stabs, will not
  • conscience, on every such act, receive a wound itself? --Aye, --but the
  • man has carried it to confession; ----the wound digests there, and will
  • do well enough, and in a short time be quite healed up by absolution.
  • O Popery! what hast thou to answer for? ----when, not content with the
  • too many natural and fatal ways, thro’ which the heart of man is every
  • day thus treacherous to itself above all things; --thou hast wilfully
  • set open the wide gate of deceit before the face of this unwary
  • traveller, too apt, God knows, to go astray of himself; and confidently
  • speak peace to himself, when there is no peace.
  • “Of this the common instances which I have drawn out of life, are too
  • notorious to require much evidence. If any man doubts the reality of
  • them, or thinks it impossible for a man to be such a bubble to himself,
  • --I must refer him a moment to his own reflections, and will then
  • venture to trust my appeal with his own heart.
  • “Let him consider in how different a degree of detestation, numbers of
  • wicked actions stand _there_, tho’ equally bad and vicious in their own
  • natures; --he will soon find, that such of them as strong inclination
  • and custom have prompted him to commit, are generally dressed out and
  • painted with all the false beauties which a soft and a flattering hand
  • can give them; --and that the others, to which he feels no propensity,
  • appear, at once, naked and deformed, surrounded with all the true
  • circumstances of folly and dishonour.
  • “When _David_ surprized _Saul_ sleeping in the cave, and cut off the
  • skirt of his robe--we read his heart smote him for what he had done:
  • ----But in the matter of _Uriah_, where a faithful and gallant servant,
  • whom he ought to have loved and honoured, fell to make way for his lust,
  • --where conscience had so much greater reason to take the alarm, his
  • heart smote him not. A whole year had almost passed from the first
  • commission of that crime, to the time _Nathan_ was sent to reprove him;
  • and we read not once of the least sorrow or compunction of heart which
  • he testified, during all that time, for what he had done.
  • “Thus conscience, this once able monitor, ----placed on high as a judge
  • within us, and intended by our Maker as a just and equitable one too,
  • --by an unhappy train of causes and impediments, takes often such
  • imperfect cognizance of what passes, ----does its office so negligently,
  • ----sometimes so corruptly--that it is not to be trusted alone; and
  • therefore we find there is a necessity, an absolute necessity, of
  • joining another principle with it, to aid, if not govern, its
  • determinations.
  • “So that if you would form a just judgment of what is of infinite
  • importance to you not to be misled in, --namely, in what degree of real
  • merit you stand either as an honest man, an useful citizen, a faithful
  • subject to your king, or a good servant to your God, ----call in
  • religion and morality. --Look, What is written in the law of God?
  • ----How readest thou? --Consult calm reason and the unchangeable
  • obligations of justice and truth; ----what say they?
  • “Let CONSCIENCE determine the matter upon these reports; ----and then if
  • thy heart condemns thee not, which is the case the apostle supposes,
  • ----the rule will be infallible;” --[Here Dr. _Slop_ fell asleep]--
  • “_thou wilt have confidence towards God_; ----that is, have just grounds
  • to believe the judgment thou hast past upon thyself, is the judgment of
  • God; and nothing else but an anticipation of that righteous sentence
  • which will be pronounced upon thee hereafter by that Being, to whom thou
  • art finally to give an account of thy actions.
  • “_Blessed is the man_, indeed, then, as the author of the book of
  • _Ecclesiasticus_ expresses it, _who is not pricked with the multitude of
  • his sins: Blessed is the man whose heart hath not condemned him; whether
  • he be rich, or whether he be poor, if he have a good heart_ (a heart
  • thus guided and informed) _he shall at all times rejoice in a chearful
  • countenance; his mind shall tell him more than seven watch-men that sit
  • above upon a tower on high_.” --[A tower has no strength, quoth my uncle
  • _Toby_, unless ’tis flank’d.]-- “In the darkest doubts it shall conduct
  • him safer than a thousand casuists, and give the state he lives in,
  • a better security for his behaviour than all the causes and restrictions
  • put together which law-makers are forced to multiply: --_Forced_, I say,
  • as things stand; human laws not being a matter of original choice, but
  • of pure necessity, brought in to fence against the mischievous effects
  • of those consciences which are no law unto themselves; well intending,
  • by the many provisions made, --that in all such corrupt and misguided
  • cases, where principles and the checks of conscience will not make us
  • upright, --to supply their force, and, by the terrors of gaols and
  • halters, oblige us to it.”
  • [I see plainly, said my father, that this sermon has been composed to be
  • preached at the Temple, ----or at some Assize. --I like the reasoning,
  • --and am sorry that Dr. _Slop_ has fallen asleep before the time of his
  • conviction: --for it is now clear, that the Parson, as I thought at
  • first, never insulted St. _Paul_ in the least; --nor has there been,
  • brother, the least difference between them. ----A great matter, if they
  • had differed, replied my uncle _Toby_, --the best friends in the world
  • may differ sometimes. ----True, --brother _Toby_, quoth my father,
  • shaking hands with him, --we’ll fill our pipes, brother, and then _Trim_
  • shall go on.
  • Well, ----what dost thou think of it? said my father speaking to
  • Corporal _Trim_, as he reached his tobacco-box.
  • I think, answered the Corporal, that the seven watch-men upon the tower,
  • who, I suppose, are all centinels there, --are more, an’ please your
  • Honour, than were necessary; --and, to go on at that rate, would harrass
  • a regiment all to pieces, which a commanding officer, who loves his men,
  • will never do, if he can help it, because two centinels, added the
  • Corporal, are as good as twenty. --I have been a commanding officer
  • myself in the _Corps de Garde_ a hundred times, continued _Trim_, rising
  • an inch higher in his figure, as he spoke, --and all the time I had the
  • honour to serve his Majesty King _William_, in relieving the most
  • considerable posts, I never left more than two in my life. ----Very
  • right, _Trim_, quoth my uncle _Toby_, --but you do not consider,
  • _Trim_, that the towers, in _Solomon’s_ days, were not such things as
  • our bastions, flanked and defended by other works; --this, _Trim_, was
  • an invention since _Solomon’s_ death; nor had they horn-works, or
  • ravelins before the curtin, in his time; ----or such a fossé as we make
  • with a cuvette in the middle of it, and with covered ways and
  • counterscarps pallisadoed along it, to guard against a _Coup de main_:
  • --So that the seven men upon the tower were a party, I dare say, from
  • the _Corps de Garde_, set there, not only to look out, but to defend it.
  • --They could be no more, an’ please your Honour, than a Corporal’s
  • Guard. --My father smiled inwardly, but not outwardly; --the subject
  • being rather too serious, considering what had happened, to make a jest
  • of. --So putting his pipe into his mouth, which he had just lighted,
  • --he contented himself with ordering _Trim_ to read on. He read on as
  • follows:]
  • “To have the fear of God before our eyes, and, in our mutual dealings
  • with each other, to govern our actions by the eternal measures of right
  • and wrong: ----The first of these will comprehend the duties of
  • religion; --the second, those of morality, which are so inseparably
  • connected together, that you cannot divide these two _tables_, even in
  • imagination (tho’ the attempt is often made in practice) without
  • breaking and mutually destroying them both.
  • “I said the attempt is often made; and so it is; ----there being nothing
  • more common than to see a man who has no sense at all of religion, and
  • indeed has so much honesty as to pretend to none, who would take it as
  • the bitterest affront, should you but hint at a suspicion of his moral
  • character, ----or imagine he was not conscientiously just and scrupulous
  • to the uttermost mite.
  • “When there is some appearance that it is so, --tho’ one is unwilling
  • even to suspect the appearance of so amiable a virtue as moral honesty,
  • yet were we to look into the grounds of it, in the present case, I am
  • persuaded we should find little reason to envy such a one the honour of
  • his motive.
  • “Let him declaim as pompously as he chooses upon the subject, it will be
  • found to rest upon no better foundation than either his interest, his
  • pride, his ease, or some such little and changeable passion as will give
  • us but small dependence upon his actions in matters of great distress.
  • “I will illustrate this by an example.
  • “I know the banker I deal with, or the physician I usually call in”
  • --[There is no need, cried Dr. _Slop_ (waking), to call in any physician
  • in this case]---- “to be neither of them men of much religion: I hear
  • them make a jest of it every day, and treat all its sanctions with so
  • much scorn, as to put the matter past doubt. Well; --notwithstanding
  • this, I put my fortune into the hands of the one: --and what is dearer
  • still to me, I trust my life to the honest skill of the other.
  • “Now let me examine what is my reason for this great confidence. Why, in
  • the first place, I believe there is no probability that either of them
  • will employ the power I put into their hands to my disadvantage; --I
  • consider that honesty serves the purposes of this life: --I know their
  • success in the world depends upon the fairness of their characters. --In
  • a word, I’m persuaded that they cannot hurt me without hurting
  • themselves more.
  • “But put it otherwise, namely, that interest lay, for once, on the other
  • side; that a case should happen, wherein the one, without stain to his
  • reputation, could secrete my fortune, and leave me naked in the world;
  • --or that the other could send me out of it, and enjoy an estate by my
  • death, without dishonour to himself or his art: --In this case, what
  • hold have I of either of them? --Religion, the strongest of all motives,
  • is out of the question; --Interest, the next most powerful motive in the
  • world, is strongly against me: ------What have I left to cast into the
  • opposite scale to balance this temptation? ------Alas! I have nothing,
  • ----nothing but what is lighter than a bubble ------I must lie at the
  • mercy of HONOUR, or some such capricious principle --Strait security for
  • two of the most valuable blessings! --my property and myself.
  • “As, therefore, we can have no dependence upon morality without
  • religion; --so, on the other hand, there is nothing better to be
  • expected from religion without morality; nevertheless, ’tis no prodigy
  • to see a man whose real moral character stands very low, who yet
  • entertains the highest notion of himself in the light of a religious
  • man.
  • “He shall not only be covetous, revengeful, implacable, --but even
  • wanting in points of common honesty; yet inasmuch as he talks aloud
  • against the infidelity of the age, ----is zealous for some points of
  • religion, ----goes twice a day to church, --attends the sacraments,
  • --and amuses himself with a few instrumental parts of religion, --shall
  • cheat his conscience into a judgment, that, for this, he is a religious
  • man, and has discharged truly his duty to God: And you will find such a
  • man, through force of this delusion, generally looks down with spiritual
  • pride upon every other man who has less affectation of piety, --though,
  • perhaps, ten times more real honesty than himself.
  • “_This likewise is a sore evil under the sun_; and I believe, there is
  • no one mistaken principle, which, for its time, has wrought more serious
  • mischiefs. ------For a general proof of this, --examine the history of
  • the _Romish_ church;” --[Well, what can you make of that? cried Dr.
  • _Slop_]-- “see what scenes of cruelty, murder, rapine, bloodshed,”
  • ----[They may thank their own obstinacy, cried Dr. _Slop_]---- “have all
  • been sanctified by a religion not strictly governed by morality.
  • “In how many kingdoms of the world” --[Here _Trim_ kept waving his right
  • hand from the sermon to the extent of his arm, returning it backwards
  • and forwards to the conclusion of the paragraph.]
  • “In how many kingdoms of the world has the crusading sword of this
  • misguided saint-errant, spared neither age nor merit, or sex, or
  • condition? --and, as he fought under the banners of a religion which set
  • him loose from justice and humanity, he shewed none; mercilessly
  • trampled upon both, --heard neither the cries of the unfortunate, nor
  • pitied their distresses.”
  • [I have been in many a battle, an’ please your Honour, quoth _Trim_,
  • sighing, but never in so melancholy a one as this, --I would not have
  • drawn a tricker in it against these poor souls, ----to have been made a
  • general officer. ----Why? what do you understand of the affair? said Dr.
  • _Slop_, looking towards _Trim_, with something more of contempt than the
  • Corporal’s honest heart deserved. ----What do you know, friend, about
  • this battle you talk of? --I know, replied _Trim_, that I never refused
  • quarter in my life to any man who cried out for it; ----but to a woman
  • or a child, continued _Trim_, before I would level my musket at them,
  • I would lose my life a thousand times. ----Here’s a crown for thee,
  • _Trim_, to drink with _Obadiah_ to-night, quoth my uncle _Toby_, and
  • I’ll give _Obadiah_ another too. --God bless your Honour, replied
  • _Trim_, ----I had rather these poor women and children had it. ----Thou
  • art an honest fellow, quoth my uncle _Toby_. ----My father nodded his
  • head, as much as to say, --and so he is.----
  • But prithee, _Trim_, said my father, make an end, --for I see thou hast
  • but a leaf or two left.
  • Corporal _Trim_ read on.]
  • “If the testimony of past centuries in this matter is not sufficient,
  • --consider at this instant, how the votaries of that religion are every
  • day thinking to do service and honour to God, by actions which are a
  • dishonour and scandal to themselves.
  • “To be convinced of this, go with me for a moment into the prisons of
  • the Inquisition.” --[God help my poor brother _Tom_.]-- “Behold
  • _Religion_, with _Mercy_ and _Justice_ chained down under her feet,
  • ----there sitting ghastly upon a black tribunal, propped up with racks
  • and instruments of torment. Hark! --hark! what a piteous groan!” --[Here
  • _Trim’s_ face turned as pale as ashes.]---- “See the melancholy wretch
  • who uttered it” --[Here the tears began to trickle down.]---- “just
  • brought forth to undergo the anguish of a mock trial, and endure the
  • utmost pains that a studied system of cruelty has been able to invent.”
  • --[D--n them all, quoth _Trim_, his colour returning into his face as
  • red as blood.]-- “Behold this helpless victim delivered up to his
  • tormentors, --his body so wasted with sorrow and confinement.” ----[Oh!
  • ’tis my brother, cried poor _Trim_ in a most passionate exclamation,
  • dropping the sermon upon the ground, and clapping his hands together --I
  • fear ’tis poor _Tom_. My father’s and my uncle _Toby’s_ heart yearned
  • with sympathy for the poor fellow’s distress; even _Slop_ himself
  • acknowledged pity for him. ----Why, _Trim_, said my father, this is not
  • a history, ----’tis a sermon thou art reading; prithee begin the
  • sentence again.]---- “Behold this helpless victim delivered up to his
  • tormentors, --his body so wasted with sorrow and confinement, you will
  • see every nerve and muscle as it suffers.
  • “Observe the last movement of that horrid engine!” --[I would rather
  • face a cannon, quoth _Trim_, stamping.]-- “See what convulsions it has
  • thrown him into! ----Consider the nature of the posture in which he now
  • lies stretched, --what exquisite tortures he endures by it!” --[I hope
  • ’tis not in _Portugal_.]-- “’Tis all nature can bear! Good God! see how
  • it keeps his weary soul hanging upon his trembling lips!” [I would not
  • read another line of it, quoth _Trim_, for all this _world_; --I fear,
  • an’ please your Honours, all this is in _Portugal_, where my poor
  • brother _Tom_ is. I tell thee, _Trim_, again, quoth my father, ’tis not
  • an historical account, --’tis a description. --’Tis only a description,
  • honest man, quoth _Slop_, there’s not a word of truth in it. ----That’s
  • another story, replied my father. --However, as _Trim_ reads it with so
  • much concern, --’tis cruelty to force him to go on with it. --Give me
  • hold of the sermon, _Trim_, --I’ll finish it for thee, and thou may’st
  • go. I must stay and hear it, too, replied _Trim_, if your Honour will
  • allow me; --tho’ I would not read it myself for a Colonel’s pay.
  • ------Poor _Trim!_ quoth my uncle _Toby_. My father went on.]--
  • “----Consider the nature of the posture in which he now lies stretched,
  • --what exquisite torture he endures by it! --’Tis all nature can bear!
  • Good God! See how it keeps his weary soul hanging upon his trembling
  • lips, --willing to take its leave, ----but not suffered to depart!
  • --Behold the unhappy wretch led back to his cell!” ----[Then, thank God,
  • however, quoth _Trim_, they have not killed him.]-- “See him dragged out
  • of it again to meet the flames, and the insults in his last agonies,
  • which this principle, --this principle, that there can be religion
  • without mercy, has prepared for him.” ----[Then, thank God, ----he is
  • dead, quoth _Trim_, --he is out of his pain, --and they have done their
  • worst at him. --O Sirs! --Hold your peace, _Trim_, said my father, going
  • on with the sermon, lest _Trim_ should incense Dr. _Slop_, --we shall
  • never have done at this rate.]
  • “The surest way to try the merit of any disputed notion is, to trace
  • down the consequences such a notion has produced, and compare them with
  • the spirit of Christianity; ----’tis the short and decisive rule which
  • our Saviour hath left us, for these and such like cases, and it is worth
  • a thousand arguments----_By their fruits ye shall know them._
  • “I will add no farther to the length of this sermon, than by two or
  • three short and independent rules deducible from it.
  • “_First_, Whenever a man talks loudly against religion, always suspect
  • that it is not his reason, but his passions, which have got the better
  • of his CREED. A bad life and a good belief are disagreeable and
  • troublesome neighbours, and where they separate, depend upon it, ’tis
  • for no other cause but quietness’ sake.
  • “_Secondly_, When a man, thus represented, tells you in any particular
  • instance, ----That such a thing goes against his conscience, ----always
  • believe he means exactly the same thing, as when he tells you such a
  • thing goes _against_ his stomach; --a present want of appetite being
  • generally the true cause of both.
  • “In a word, --trust that man in nothing, who has not a CONSCIENCE in
  • everything.
  • “And, in your own case, remember this plain distinction, a mistake in
  • which has ruined thousands, --that your conscience is not a law: --No,
  • God and reason made the law, and have placed conscience within you to
  • determine; ----not, like an _Asiatic_ Cadi, according to the ebbs and
  • flows of his own passions, --but like a _British_ judge in this land of
  • liberty and good sense, who makes no new law, but faithfully declares
  • that law which he knows already written.”
  • _FINIS_
  • Thou hast read the sermon extremely well, _Trim_, quoth my father. --If
  • he had spared his comments, replied Dr. _Slop_, ----he would have read
  • it much better. I should have read it ten times better, Sir, answered
  • _Trim_, but that my heart was so full. --That was the very reason,
  • _Trim_, replied my father, which has made thee read the sermon as well
  • as thou hast done; and if the clergy of our church, continued my father,
  • addressing himself to Dr. _Slop_, would take part in what they deliver
  • as deeply as this poor fellow has done, --as their compositions are
  • fine; --[I deny it, quoth Dr. _Slop_]-- I maintain it, --that the
  • eloquence of our pulpits, with such subjects to enflame it, would be a
  • model for the whole world: ----But alas! continued my father, and I own
  • it, Sir, with sorrow, that, like _French_ politicians in this respect,
  • what they gain in the cabinet they lose in the field. ----’Twere a pity,
  • quoth my uncle, that this should be lost. I like the sermon well,
  • replied my father, ----’tis dramatick, --and there is something in that
  • way of writing, when skilfully managed, which catches the attention.
  • ----We preach much in that way with us, said Dr. _Slop_. --I know that
  • very well, said my father, ----but in a tone and manner which disgusted
  • Dr. _Slop_, full as much as his assent, simply, could have pleased him.
  • ----But in this, added Dr. _Slop_, a little piqued, --our sermons have
  • greatly the advantage, that we never introduce any character into them
  • below a patriarch or a patriarch’s wife, or a martyr or a saint. --There
  • are some very bad characters in this, however, said my father, and I do
  • not think the sermon a jot the worse for ’em. ----But pray, quoth my
  • uncle _Toby_, --who’s can this be? --How could it get into my
  • _Stevinus?_ A man must be as great a conjurer as _Stevinus_, said my
  • father, to resolve the second question: --The first, I think, is not so
  • difficult; --for unless my judgment greatly deceives me, ----I know the
  • author, for ’tis wrote, certainly, by the parson of the parish.
  • The similitude of the stile and manner of it, with those my father
  • constantly had heard preached in his parish-church, was the ground of
  • his conjecture, --proving it as strongly, as an argument _à priori_
  • could prove such a thing to a philosophic mind, That it was _Yorick’s_
  • and no one’s else: --It was proved to be so, _à posteriori_, the day
  • after, when _Yorick_ sent a servant to my uncle _Toby’s_ house to
  • enquire after it.
  • It seems that _Yorick_, who was inquisitive after all kinds of
  • knowledge, had borrowed _Stevinus_ of my uncle _Toby_, and had
  • carelessly popped his sermon, as soon as he had made it, into the middle
  • of _Stevinus_; and by an act of forgetfulness, to which he was ever
  • subject, he had sent _Stevinus_ home, and his sermon to keep him
  • company.
  • Ill-fated sermon! Thou wast lost, after this recovery of thee, a second
  • time, dropped thro’ an unsuspected fissure in thy master’s pocket, down
  • into a treacherous and a tattered lining, --trod deep into the dirt by
  • the left hind-foot of his Rosinante inhumanly stepping upon thee as thou
  • falledst; --buried ten days in the mire, ----raised up out of it by a
  • beggar, --sold for a halfpenny to a parish-clerk, ----transferred to his
  • parson, ----lost for ever to thy own, the remainder of his days, ----nor
  • restored to his restless MANES till this very moment, that I tell the
  • world the story.
  • Can the reader believe, that this sermon of _Yorick’s_ was preached at
  • an assize, in the cathedral of _York_, before a thousand witnesses,
  • ready to give oath of it, by a certain prebendary of that church, and
  • actually printed by him when he had done, ----and within so short a
  • space as two years and three months after _Yorick’s_ death? --_Yorick_
  • indeed, was never better served in his life; ------but it was a little
  • hard to maltreat him after, and plunder him after he was laid in his
  • grave.
  • However, as the gentleman who did it was in perfect charity with
  • _Yorick_, --and, in conscious justice, printed but a few copies to give
  • away; --and that I am told he could moreover have made as good a one
  • himself, had he thought fit, --I declare I would not have published this
  • anecdote to the world; ----nor do I publish it with an intent to hurt
  • his character and advancement in the church; ----I leave that to others;
  • --but I find myself impelled by two reasons, which I cannot withstand.
  • The first is, That in doing justice, I may give rest to _Yorick’s_
  • ghost; ----which--as the country-people, and some others, believe,
  • ----_still walks_.
  • The second reason is, That, by laying open this story to the world,
  • I gain an opportunity of informing it, --That in case the character of
  • parson _Yorick_, and this sample of his sermons, is liked, ----there are
  • now in the possession of the _Shandy_ family, as many as will make a
  • handsome volume, at the world’s service, ----and much good may they do
  • it.
  • CHAPTER XVIII
  • Obadiah gained the two crowns without dispute; for he came in jingling,
  • with all the instruments in the green bays bag we spoke of, slung across
  • his body, just as Corporal _Trim_ went out of the room.
  • It is now proper, I think, quoth Dr. _Slop_ (clearing up his looks), as
  • we are in a condition to be of some service to Mrs. _Shandy_, to send
  • upstairs to know how she goes on.
  • I have ordered, answered my father, the old midwife to come down to us
  • upon the least difficulty; --for you must know, Dr. _Slop_, continued my
  • father, with a perplexed kind of a smile upon his countenance, that by
  • express treaty, solemnly ratified between me and my wife, you are no
  • more than an auxiliary in this affair, --and not so much as that,
  • --unless the lean old mother of a midwife above stairs cannot do without
  • you. --Women have their particular fancies, and in points of this
  • nature, continued my father, where they bear the whole burden, and
  • suffer so much acute pain for the advantage of our families, and the
  • good of the species, --they claim a right of deciding, _en Souveraines_,
  • in whose hands, and in what fashion, they choose to undergo it.
  • They are in the right of it, ----quoth my uncle _Toby_. But, Sir,
  • replied Dr. _Slop_, not taking notice of my uncle _Toby’s_ opinion, but
  • turning to my father, --they had better govern in other points; ----and
  • a father of a family, who wishes its perpetuity, in my opinion, had
  • better exchange this prerogative with them, and give up some other
  • rights in lieu of it. ----I know not, quoth my father, answering a
  • little too testily, to be quite dispassionate in what he said, --I know
  • not, quoth he, what we have left to give up, in lieu of who shall bring
  • our children into the world, unless that, --of who shall beget them.
  • ------One would almost give up anything, replied Dr. _Slop_. --I beg
  • your pardon, ----answered my uncle _Toby_. --Sir, replied Dr. _Slop_, it
  • would astonish you to know what improvements we have made of late years
  • in all branches of obstetrical knowledge, but particularly in that one
  • single point of the safe and expeditious extraction of the _fœtus_,
  • ----which has received such lights, that, for my part (holding up his
  • hands) I declare I wonder how the world has ----I wish, quoth my uncle
  • _Toby_, you had seen what prodigious armies we had in _Flanders_.
  • CHAPTER XIX
  • I have dropped the curtain over this scene for a minute, ----to remind
  • you of one thing, ----and to inform you of another.
  • What I have to inform you, comes, I own, a little out of its due course;
  • ----for it should have been told a hundred and fifty pages ago, but that
  • I foresaw then ’twould come in pat hereafter, and be of more advantage
  • here than elsewhere. --Writers had need look before them, to keep up the
  • spirit and connection of what they have in hand.
  • When these two things are done, --the curtain shall be drawn up again,
  • and my uncle _Toby_, my father, and Dr. _Slop_, shall go on with their
  • discourse, without any more interruption.
  • First, then, the matter which I have to remind you of, is this; ----that
  • from the specimens of singularity in my father’s notions in the point of
  • christian-names, and that other previous point thereto, --you was led,
  • I think, into an opinion (and I am sure I said as much), that my father
  • was a gentleman altogether as odd and whimsical in fifty other opinions.
  • In truth, there was not a stage in the life of man, from the very first
  • act of his begetting, ----down to the lean and slippered pantaloon in
  • his second childishness, but he had some favourite notion to himself,
  • springing out of it, as sceptical, and as far out of the highway of
  • thinking, as these two which have been explained.
  • --Mr. _Shandy_, my father, Sir, would see nothing in the light in which
  • others placed it; --he placed things in his own light; --he would weigh
  • nothing in common scales; --no, he was too refined a researcher to lie
  • open to so gross an imposition. --To come at the exact weight of things
  • in the scientific steel-yard, the fulcrum, he would say, should be
  • almost invisible, to avoid all friction from popular tenets; --without
  • this the minutiæ of philosophy, which would always turn the balance,
  • will have no weight at all. Knowledge, like matter, he would affirm, was
  • divisible _in infinitum_; ----that the grains and scruples were as much
  • a part of it, as the gravitation of the whole world. --In a word, he
  • would say, error was error, --no matter where it fell, ----whether in a
  • fraction, --or a pound, --’twas alike fatal to truth, and she was kept
  • down at the bottom of her well, as inevitably by a mistake in the dust
  • of a butterfly’s wings, ----as in the disk of the sun, the moon, and all
  • the stars of heaven put together.
  • He would often lament that it was for want of considering this properly,
  • and of applying it skilfully to civil matters, as well as to speculative
  • truths, that so many things in this world were out of joint; ----that
  • the political arch was giving way; ----and that the very foundations of
  • our excellent constitution, in church and state, were so sapped as
  • estimators had reported.
  • You cry out, he would say, we are a ruined, undone people. Why? he would
  • ask, making use of the sorites or syllogism of _Zeno_ and _Chrysippus_,
  • without knowing it belonged to them. --Why? why are we a ruined people?
  • --Because we are corrupted. --Whence is it, dear Sir, that we are
  • corrupted? ----Because we are needy; ----our poverty, and not our wills,
  • consent. ----And wherefore, he would add, are we needy? --From the
  • neglect, he would answer, of our pence and our halfpence: --Our bank
  • notes, Sir, our guineas, --nay, our shillings take care of themselves.
  • ’Tis the same, he would say, throughout the whole circle of the
  • sciences; --the great, the established points of them, are not to be
  • broke in upon. --The laws of nature will defend themselves; --but
  • error----(he would add, looking earnestly at my mother)----error, Sir,
  • creeps in thro’ the minute holes and small crevices which human nature
  • leaves unguarded.
  • This turn of thinking in my father, is what I had to remind you of:
  • --The point you are to be informed of, and which I have reserved for
  • this place, is as follows.
  • Amongst the many and excellent reasons, with which my father had urged
  • my mother to accept of Dr. _Slop’s_ assistance preferably to that of the
  • old woman, ----there was one of a very singular nature; which, when he
  • had done arguing the manner with her as a Christian, and came to argue
  • it over again with her as a philosopher, he had put his whole strength
  • to, depending indeed upon it as his sheet-anchor. ----It failed him;
  • tho’ from no defect in the argument itself; but that, do what he could,
  • he was not able for his soul to make her comprehend the drift of it.
  • ----Cursed luck! ----said he to himself, one afternoon, as he walked out
  • of the room, after he had been stating it for an hour and a half to her,
  • to no manner of purpose; --cursed luck! said he, biting his lip as he
  • shut the door, ----for a man to be master of one of the finest chains of
  • reasoning in nature, --and have a wife at the same time with such a
  • headpiece, that he cannot hang up a single inference within side of it,
  • to save his soul from destruction.
  • This argument, though it was entirely lost upon my mother, ----had more
  • weight with him, than all his other arguments joined together: --I will
  • therefore endeavour to do it justice, --and set it forth with all the
  • perspicuity I am master of.
  • My father set out upon the strength of these two following axioms:
  • _First_, That an ounce of a man’s own wit, was worth a ton of other
  • people’s; and,
  • _Secondly_ (Which by the bye, was the ground-work of the first axiom,
  • ----tho’ it comes last), That every man’s wit must come from every man’s
  • own soul, ----and no other body’s.
  • Now, as it was plain to my father, that all souls were by nature equal,
  • ----and that the great difference between the most acute and the most
  • obtuse understanding----was from no original sharpness or bluntness of
  • one thinking substance above or below another, ----but arose merely from
  • the lucky or unlucky organisation of the body, in that part where the
  • soul principally took up her residence, ----he had made it the subject
  • of his enquiry to find out the identical place.
  • Now, from the best accounts he had been able to get of this matter, he
  • was satisfied it could not be where _Des Cartes_ had fixed it, upon the
  • top of the _pineal_ gland of the brain; which, as he philosophized,
  • formed a cushion for her about the size of a marrow pea; tho’, to speak
  • the truth, as so many nerves did terminate all in that one place,
  • --’twas no bad conjecture; ----and my father had certainly fallen with
  • that great philosopher plumb into the centre of the mistake, had it not
  • been for my uncle _Toby_, who rescued him out of it, by a story he told
  • him of a _Walloon_ officer at the battle of _Landen_, who had one part
  • of his brain shot away by a musket-ball, --and another part of it taken
  • out after by a _French_ surgeon; and after all, recovered, and did his
  • duty very well without it.
  • If death, said my father, reasoning with himself, is nothing but the
  • separation of the soul from the body; and if it is true that people can
  • walk about and do their business without brains, --then certes the soul
  • does not inhabit there. Q. E. D.
  • As for that certain, very thin, subtle and very fragrant juice which
  • _Coglionissimo Borri_, the great _Milanese_ physician affirms, in a
  • letter to _Bartholine_, to have discovered in the cellulæ of the
  • occipital parts of the cerebellum, and which he likewise affirms to be
  • the principal seat of the reasonable soul (for, you must know, in these
  • latter and more enlightened ages, there are two souls in every man
  • living, --the one, according to the great _Metheglingius_, being called
  • the _Animus_, the other, the _Anima_;)--as for the opinion, I say, of
  • _Borri_, --my father could never subscribe to it by any means; the very
  • idea of so noble, so refined, so immaterial, and so exalted a being as
  • the _Anima_, or even the _Animus_, taking up her residence, and sitting
  • dabbling, like a tadpole all day long, both summer and winter, in a
  • puddle, ----or in a liquid of any kind, how thick or thin soever, he
  • would say, shocked his imagination; he would scarce give the doctrine a
  • hearing.
  • What, therefore, seemed the least liable to objections of any, was that
  • the chief sensorium, or head-quarters of the soul, and to which place
  • all intelligences were referred, and from whence all her mandates were
  • issued, --was in, or near, the cerebellum, --or rather somewhere about
  • the _medulla oblongata_, wherein it was generally agreed by _Dutch_
  • anatomists, that all the minute nerves from all the organs of the seven
  • senses concentered, like streets and winding alleys, into a square.
  • So far there was nothing singular in my father’s opinion, --he had the
  • best of philosophers, of all ages and climates, to go along with him.
  • ----But here he took a road of his own, setting up another _Shandean_
  • hypothesis upon these corner-stones they had laid for him; ----and which
  • said hypothesis equally stood its ground; whether the subtilty and
  • fineness of the soul depended upon the temperature and clearness of the
  • said liquor, or of the finer network and texture in the cerebellum
  • itself; which opinion he favoured.
  • He maintained, that next to the due care to be taken in the act of
  • propagation of each individual, which required all the thought in the
  • world, as it laid the foundation of this incomprehensible contexture, in
  • which wit, memory, fancy, eloquence, and what is usually meant by the
  • name of good natural parts, do consist; --that next to this and his
  • christian-name, which were the two original and most efficacious causes
  • of all; ----that the third cause, or rather what logicians call the
  • _Causa sine quâ non_, and without which all that was done was of no
  • manner of significance, ----was the preservation of this delicate and
  • fine-spun web, from the havock which was generally made in it by the
  • violent compression and crush which the head was made to undergo, by the
  • nonsensical method of bringing us into the world by that foremost.
  • ----This requires explanation.
  • My father, who dipped into all kinds of books, upon looking into
  • _Lithopædus Senonesis de Partu difficili_,[2.1] published by _Adrianus
  • Smelvgot_, had found out, that the lax and pliable state of a child’s
  • head in parturition, the bones of the cranium having no sutures at that
  • time, was such, ----that by force of the woman’s efforts, which, in
  • strong labour-pains, was equal, upon an average, to the weight of 470
  • pounds averdupois acting perpendicularly upon it; --it so happened, that
  • in 49 instances out of 50, the said head was compressed and moulded into
  • the shape of an oblong conical piece of dough, such as a pastry-cook
  • generally rolls up in order to make a pye of. --Good God! cried my
  • father, what havock and destruction must this make in the infinitely
  • fine and tender texture of the cerebellum! --Or if there is such a juice
  • as _Borri_ pretends, --is it not enough to make the clearest liquid in
  • the world both feculent and mothery?
  • But how great was his apprehension, when he farther understood, that
  • this force acting upon the very vertex of the head, not only injured the
  • brain itself, or cerebrum, --but that it necessarily squeezed and
  • propelled the cerebrum towards the cerebellum, which was the immediate
  • seat of the understanding! ----Angels and ministers of grace defend us!
  • cried my father, ----can any soul withstand this shock? --No wonder the
  • intellectual web is so rent and tattered as we see it; and that so many
  • of our best heads are no better than a puzzled skein of silk, ----all
  • perplexity, ----all confusion within-side.
  • But when my father read on, and was let into the secret, that when a
  • child was turned topsy-turvy, which was easy for an operator to do, and
  • was extracted by the feet; --that instead of the cerebrum being
  • propelled towards the cerebellum, the cerebellum, on the contrary, was
  • propelled simply towards the cerebrum, where it could do no manner of
  • hurt: ----By heavens! cried he, the world is in conspiracy to drive out
  • what little wit God has given us, ----and the professors of the
  • obstetric art are lifted into the same conspiracy. --What is it to me
  • which end of my son comes foremost into the world, provided all goes
  • right after, and his cerebellum escapes uncrushed?
  • It is the nature of an hypothesis, when once a man has conceived it,
  • that it assimilates every thing to itself, as proper nourishment; and,
  • from the first moment of your begetting it, it generally grows the
  • stronger by every thing you see, hear, read, or understand. This is of
  • great use.
  • When my father was gone with this about a month, there was scarce a
  • phænomenon of stupidity or of genius, which he could not readily solve
  • by it; --it accounted for the eldest son being the greatest blockhead in
  • the family. ----Poor devil, he would say, --he made way for the capacity
  • of his younger brothers. ----It unriddled the observations of drivellers
  • and monstrous heads, ----shewing _à priori_, it could not be otherwise,
  • ----unless **** I don’t know what. It wonderfully explained and
  • accounted for the acumen of the _Asiatic_ genius, and that sprightlier
  • turn, and a more penetrating intuition of minds, in warmer climates; not
  • from the loose and common-place solution of a clearer sky, and a more
  • perpetual sunshine, &c. --which for aught he knew, might as well rarefy
  • and dilute the faculties of the soul into nothing, by one extreme, --as
  • they are condensed in colder climates by the other; ----but he traced
  • the affair up to its spring-head; --shewed that, in warmer climates,
  • nature had laid a lighter tax upon the fairest parts of the creation;
  • --their pleasures more; --the necessity of their pains less, insomuch
  • that the pressure and resistance upon the vertex was so slight, that the
  • whole organisation of the cerebellum was preserved; ----nay, he did not
  • believe, in natural births, that so much as a single thread of the
  • net-work was broke or displaced, ----so that the soul might just act as
  • she liked.
  • When my father had got so far, ------what a blaze of light did the
  • accounts of the _Cæsarian_ section, and of the towering geniuses who had
  • come safe into the world by it, cast upon this hypothesis? Here you see,
  • he would say, there was no injury done to the sensorium; --no pressure
  • of the head against the pelvis; ----no propulsion of the cerebrum
  • towards the cerebellum, either by the _os pubis_ on this side, or the
  • _os coxygis_ on that; ------and pray, what were the happy consequences?
  • Why, Sir, your _Julius Cæsar_, who gave the operation a name; --and your
  • _Hermes Trismegistus_, who was born so before ever the operation had a
  • name; ----your _Scipio Africanus_; your _Manlius Torquatus_; our
  • _Edward_ the Sixth, --who, had he lived, would have done the same honour
  • to the hypothesis: ----These, and many more who figured high in the
  • annals of fame, --all came _side-way_, Sir, into the world.
  • The incision of the _abdomen_ and _uterus_ ran for six weeks together in
  • my father’s head; ----he had read, and was satisfied, that wounds in the
  • _epigastrium_, and those in the _matrix_, were not mortal; --so that the
  • belly of the mother might be opened extremely well to give a passage to
  • the child. --He mentioned the thing one afternoon to my mother,
  • ------merely as a matter of fact; but seeing her turn as pale as ashes
  • at the very mention of it, as much as the operation flattered his hopes,
  • --he thought it as well to say no more of it, ----contenting himself
  • with admiring, --what he thought was to no purpose to propose.
  • This was my father Mr. _Shandy’s_ hypothesis; concerning which I have
  • only to add, that my brother _Bobby_ did as great honour to it (whatever
  • he did to the family) as any one of the great heroes we spoke of: For
  • happening not only to be christened, as I told you, but to be born too,
  • when my father was at _Epsom_, ----being moreover my mother’s _first_
  • child, --coming into the world with his head _foremost_, --and turning
  • out afterwards a lad of wonderful slow parts, ----my father spelt all
  • these together into his opinion: and as he had failed at one end, --he
  • was determined to try the other.
  • This was not to be expected from one of the sisterhood, who are not
  • easily to be put out of their way, ----and was therefore one of my
  • father’s great reasons in favour of a man of science, whom he could
  • better deal with.
  • Of all men in the world, Dr. _Slop_ was the fittest for my father’s
  • purpose; ----for though this new-invented forceps was the armour he had
  • proved, and what he maintained to be the safest instrument of
  • deliverance, yet, it seems, he had scattered a word or two in his book,
  • in favour of the very thing which ran in my father’s fancy; ----tho’ not
  • with a view to the soul’s good in extracting by the feet, as was my
  • father’s system, --but for reasons merely obstetrical.
  • This will account for the coalition betwixt my father and Dr. _Slop_, in
  • the ensuing discourse, which went a little hard against my uncle _Toby_.
  • ----In what manner a plain man, with nothing but common sense, could
  • bear up against two such allies in science, --is hard to conceive. --You
  • may conjecture upon it, if you please, ----and whilst your imagination
  • is in motion, you may encourage it to go on, and discover by what causes
  • and effects in nature it could come to pass, that my uncle _Toby_ got
  • his modesty by the wound he received upon his groin. --You may raise a
  • system to account for the loss of my nose by marriage-articles, --and
  • shew the world how it could happen, that I should have the misfortune to
  • be called TRISTAM, in opposition to my father’s hypothesis, and the wish
  • of the whole family, Godfathers and Godmothers not excepted. --These,
  • with fifty other points left yet unravelled, you may endeavour to solve
  • if you have time; ----but I tell you beforehand it will be in vain, for
  • not the sage _Alquife_, the magician in Don _Belianis_ of _Greece_, nor
  • the no less famous _Urganda_, the sorceress his wife, (were they alive),
  • could pretend to come within a league of the truth.
  • The reader will be content to wait for a full explanation of these
  • matters till the next year, ----when a series of things will be laid
  • open which he little expects.
  • [Footnote 2.1: The author is here twice mistaken; for
  • _Lithopædus_ should be wrote thus, _Lithopædii Senonensis Icon_.
  • The second mistake is, that this _Lithopædus_ is not an author,
  • but a drawing of a petrified child. The account of this,
  • published by _Athosius_ 1580, may be seen at the end of
  • _Cordæus’s_ works in _Spachius_. Mr. _Tristram Shandy_ has been
  • led into this error, either from seeing _Lithopædus’s_ name of
  • late in a catalogue of learned writers in Dr. ----, or by
  • mistaking _Lithopædus_ for _Trinecavellius_, ----from the too
  • great similitude of the names.]
  • BOOK III
  • Multitudinis imperitæ non formido judicia; meis tamen, rogo,
  • parcant opusculis------in quibus fuit propositi semper,
  • a jocis ad seria, a seriis vicissim ad jocos transire.
  • --JOAN. SARESBERIENSIS, _Episcopus Lugdun._
  • CHAPTER I
  • ----“_I WISH, Dr. Slop_,” quoth my uncle _Toby_, (repeating his wish for
  • Dr. _Slop_ a second time, and with a degree of more zeal and earnestness
  • in his manner of wishing, than he had wished at first[3.1])---- “_I
  • wish, Dr. Slop_,” quoth my uncle _Toby_, “_you had seen what prodigious
  • armies we had in_ Flanders.”
  • My uncle _Toby’s_ wish did Dr. _Slop_ a disservice which his heart never
  • intended any man, --Sir, it confounded him----and thereby putting his
  • ideas first into confusion, and then to flight, he could not rally them
  • again for the soul of him.
  • In all disputes, ----male or female, ----whether for honour, for profit,
  • or for love, --it makes no difference in the case; --nothing is more
  • dangerous, Madam, than a wish coming sideways in this unexpected manner
  • upon a man: the safest way in general to take off the force of the wish,
  • is for the party wish’d at, instantly to get upon his legs--and wish the
  • _wisher_ something in return, of pretty near the same value, ----so
  • balancing the account upon the spot, you stand as you were--nay
  • sometimes gain the advantage of the attack by it.
  • This will be fully illustrated to the world in my chapter of wishes.--
  • Dr. _Slop_ did not understand the nature of this defence; --he was
  • puzzled with it, and it put an entire stop to the dispute for four
  • minutes and a half; --five had been fatal to it: --my father saw the
  • danger--the dispute was one of the most interesting disputes in the
  • world, “Whether the child of his prayers and endeavours should be born
  • without a head or with one:” --he waited to the last moment, to allow
  • Dr. _Slop_, in whose behalf the wish was made, his right of returning
  • it; but perceiving, I say, that he was confounded, and continued looking
  • with that perplexed vacuity of eye which puzzled souls generally stare
  • with--first in my uncle _Toby’s_ face--then in his--then up--then
  • down--then east--east and by east, and so on, ----coasting it along by
  • the plinth of the wainscot till he had got to the opposite point of the
  • compass, ----and that he had actually begun to count the brass nails
  • upon the arm of his chair, --my father thought there was no time to be
  • lost with my uncle _Toby_, so took up the discourse as follows.
  • [Footnote 3.1: Vide page 105.] [[end of ch. II.XVIII]]
  • CHAPTER II
  • “--What prodigious armies you had in _Flanders!_”----
  • Brother _Toby_, replied my father, taking his wig from off his head with
  • his right hand, and with his _left_ pulling out a striped _India_
  • handkerchief from his right coat pocket, in order to rub his head, as he
  • argued the point with my uncle _Toby_.----
  • ----Now, in this I think my father was much to blame; and I will give
  • you my reasons for it.
  • Matters of no more seeming consequence in themselves than, “_Whether my
  • father should have taken off his wig with his right hand or with his
  • left_,” ----have divided the greatest kingdoms, and made the crowns of
  • the monarchs who governed them, to totter upon their heads. ----But need
  • I tell you, Sir, that the circumstances with which every thing in this
  • world is begirt, give every thing in this world its size and shape!
  • --and by tightening it, or relaxing it, this way or that, make the thing
  • to be, what it is--great--little--good--bad--indifferent or not
  • indifferent, just as the case happens?
  • As my father’s _India_ handkerchief was in his right coat pocket, he
  • should by no means have suffered his right hand to have got engaged: on
  • the contrary, instead of taking off his wig with it, as he did, he ought
  • to have committed that entirely to the left; and then, when the natural
  • exigency my father was under of rubbing his head, called out for his
  • handkerchief, he would have had nothing in the world to have done, but
  • to have put his right hand into his right coat pocket and taken it out;
  • ----which he might have done without any violence, or the least
  • ungraceful twist in any one tendon or muscle of his whole body
  • In this case, (unless, indeed, my father had been resolved to make a
  • fool of himself by holding the wig stiff in his left hand----or by
  • making some nonsensical angle or other at his elbow-joint, or
  • arm-pit)--his whole attitude had been easy--natural--unforced:
  • _Reynolds_ himself, as great and gracefully as he paints, might have
  • painted him as he sat.
  • Now as my father managed this matter, --consider what a devil of a
  • figure my father made of himself.
  • In the latter end of Queen _Anne’s_ reign, and in the beginning of the
  • reign of King _George_ the first-- “_Coat pockets were cut very low down
  • in the skirt_.” --I need say no more--the father of mischief, had he
  • been hammering at it a month, could not have contrived a worse fashion
  • for one in my father’s situation.
  • CHAPTER III
  • It was not an easy matter in any king’s reign (unless you were as lean a
  • subject as myself) to have forced your hand diagonally, quite across
  • your whole body, so as to gain the bottom of your opposite coat pocket.
  • ----In the year one thousand seven hundred and eighteen, when this
  • happened, it was extremely difficult; so that when my uncle _Toby_
  • discovered the transverse zig-zaggery of my father’s approaches towards
  • it, it instantly brought into his mind those he had done duty in, before
  • the gate of _St. Nicolas_; ----the idea of which drew off his attention
  • so entirely from the subject in debate, that he had got his right hand
  • to the bell to ring up _Trim_ to go and fetch his map of _Namur_, and
  • his compasses and sector along with it, to measure the returning angles
  • of the traverses of that attack, --but particularly of that one, where
  • he received his wound upon his groin.
  • My father knit his brows, and as he knit them, all the blood in his body
  • seemed to rush up into his face----my uncle _Toby_ dismounted
  • immediately.
  • ----I did not apprehend your uncle _Toby_ was o’ horseback.------
  • CHAPTER IV
  • A man’s body and his mind, with the utmost reverence to both I speak it,
  • are exactly like a jerkin, and a jerkin’s lining; --rumple the one,
  • --you rumple the other. There is one certain exception however in this
  • case, and that is, when you are so fortunate a fellow, as to have had
  • your jerkin made of gum-taffeta, and the body-lining to it of a
  • sarcenet, or thin persian.
  • _Zeno_, _Cleanthes_, _Diogenes Babylonius_, _Dionysius_, _Heracleotes_,
  • _Antipater_, _Panætius_, and _Posidonius_ amongst the _Greeks_;
  • ----_Cato_ and _Varro_ and _Seneca_ amongst the _Romans_;
  • ----_Pantæonus_ and _Clemens Alexandrinus_ and _Montaigne_ amongst the
  • Christians; and a score and a half of good, honest, unthinking
  • _Shandean_ people as ever lived, whose names I can’t recollect, --all
  • pretended that their jerkins were made after this fashion, --you might
  • have rumpled and crumpled, and doubled and creased, and fretted and
  • fridged the outside of them all to pieces; ----in short, you might have
  • played the very devil with them, and at the same time, not one of the
  • insides of them would have been one button the worse, for all you had
  • done to them.
  • I believe in my conscience that mine is made up somewhat after this
  • sort: ----for never poor jerkin has been tickled off at such a rate as
  • it has been these last nine months together, ----and yet I declare, the
  • lining to it, ------as far as I am a judge of the matter, ----is not a
  • three-penny piece the worse; --pell-mell, helter-skelter, ding-dong, cut
  • and thrust, back stroke and fore stroke, side way and long way, have
  • they been trimming it for me: --had there been the least gumminess in my
  • lining, --by heaven! it had all of it long ago been frayed and fretted
  • to a thread.
  • ------You Messrs. the Monthly reviewers! ------how could you cut and
  • slash my jerkin as you did? ----how did you know but you would cut my
  • lining too?
  • Heartily and from my soul, to the protection of that Being who will
  • injure none of us, do I recommend you and your affairs, --so God bless
  • you; --only next month, if any one of you should gnash his teeth, and
  • storm and rage at me, as some of you did last MAY (in which I remember
  • the weather was very hot)--don’t be exasperated, if I pass it by again
  • with good temper, --being determined as long as I live or write (which
  • in my case means the same thing) never to give the honest gentleman a
  • worse word or a worse wish than my uncle _Toby_ gave the fly which
  • buzz’d about his nose all _dinner-time_, ------“Go, --go, poor devil,”
  • quoth he, --“get thee gone, --why should I hurt thee? This world is
  • surely wide enough to hold both thee and me.”
  • CHAPTER V
  • Any man, Madam, reasoning upwards, and observing the prodigious
  • suffusion of blood in my father’s countenance, --by means of which
  • (as all the blood in his body seemed to rush into his face, as I told
  • you) he must have reddened, pictorically and scientifically speaking,
  • six whole tints and a half, if not a full octave above his natural
  • colour: --any man, Madam, but my uncle _Toby_, who had observed this,
  • together with the violent knitting of my father’s brows, and the
  • extravagant contortion of his body during the whole affair, --would have
  • concluded my father in a rage; and taking that for granted, --had he
  • been a lover of such kind of concord as arises from two such instruments
  • being put in exact tune, --he would instantly have skrew’d up his, to
  • the same pitch; --and then the devil and all had broke loose--the whole
  • piece, Madam, must have been played off like the sixth of Avison
  • Scarlatti--_con furia_, --like mad. --Grant me patience! ----What has
  • _con furia_, ----_con strepito_, ----or any other hurly burly whatever
  • to do with harmony?
  • Any man, I say, Madam, but my uncle _Toby_, the benignity of whose heart
  • interpreted every motion of the body in the kindest sense the motion
  • would admit of, would have concluded my father angry, and blamed him
  • too. My uncle _Toby_ blamed nothing but the taylor who cut the
  • pocket-hole; ----so sitting still till my father had got his
  • handkerchief out of it, and looking all the time up in his face with
  • inexpressible good-will----my father, at length, went on as follows.
  • CHAPTER VI
  • “What prodigious armies you had in _Flanders!_” ----Brother _Toby_, quoth
  • my father, I do believe thee to be as honest a man, and with as good and
  • as upright a heart as ever God created; --nor is it thy fault, if all
  • the children which have been, may, can, shall, will, or ought to be
  • begotten, come with their heads foremost into the world: ----but believe
  • me, dear _Toby_, the accidents which unavoidably waylay them, not only
  • in the article of our begetting ’em----though these, in my opinion, are
  • well worth considering, ----but the dangers and difficulties our
  • children are beset with, after they are got forth into the world, are
  • enow--little need is there to expose them to unnecessary ones in their
  • passage to it. ----Are these dangers, quoth my uncle _Toby_, laying his
  • hand upon my father’s knee, and looking up seriously in his face for an
  • answer, ----are these dangers greater now o’ days, brother, than in
  • times past? Brother _Toby_, answered my father, if a child was but
  • fairly begot, and born alive, and healthy, and the mother did well after
  • it, --our forefathers never looked farther. ----My uncle _Toby_
  • instantly withdrew his hand from off my father’s knee, reclined his body
  • gently back in his chair, raised his head till he could just see the
  • cornice of the room, and then directing the buccinatory muscles along
  • his cheeks, and the orbicular muscles around his lips to do their
  • duty--he whistled _Lillabullero_.
  • CHAPTER VII
  • Whilst my uncle _Toby_ was whistling _Lillabullero_ to my father, --Dr.
  • _Slop_ was stamping, and cursing and damning at _Obadiah_ at a most
  • dreadful rate, ------it would have done your heart good, and cured you,
  • Sir, for ever of the vile sin of swearing, to have heard him; I am
  • determined therefore to relate the whole affair to you.
  • When Dr. _Slop’s_ maid delivered the green bays bag with her master’s
  • instruments in it, to _Obadiah_, she very sensibly exhorted him to put
  • his head and one arm through the strings, and ride with it slung across
  • his body: so undoing the bow-knot, to lengthen the strings for him,
  • without any more ado, she helped him on with it. However, as this, in
  • some measure, unguarded the mouth of the bag, lest anything should bolt
  • out in galloping back, at the speed _Obadiah_ threatened, they consulted
  • to take it off again: and in the great care and caution of their hearts,
  • they had taken the two strings and tied them close (pursing up the mouth
  • of the bag first) with half a dozen hard knots, each of which _Obadiah_,
  • to make all safe, had twitched and drawn together with all the strength
  • of his body.
  • This answered all that _Obadiah_ and the maid intended; but was no
  • remedy against some evils which neither he or she foresaw. The
  • instruments, it seems, as tight as the bag was tied above, had so much
  • room to play in it, towards the bottom (the shape of the bag being
  • conical) that _Obadiah_ could not make a trot of it, but with such a
  • terrible jingle, what with the _tire tête_, _forceps_, and _squirt_, as
  • would have been enough, had _Hymen_ been taking a jaunt that way, to
  • have frightened him out of the country; but when _Obadiah_ accelerated
  • his motion, and from a plain trot assayed to prick his coach-horse into
  • a full gallop----by Heaven! Sir, the jingle was incredible.
  • As _Obadiah_ had a wife and three children----the turpitude of
  • fornication, and the many other political ill consequences of this
  • jingling, never once entered his brain, ----he had however his
  • objection, which came home to himself, and weighed with him, as it has
  • oft-times done with the greatest patriots. ----“_The poor fellow, Sir,
  • was not able to hear himself whistle._”
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • As _Obadiah_ loved wind-music preferably to all the instrumental music
  • he carried with him, --he very considerately set his imagination to
  • work, to contrive and to invent by what means he should put himself in a
  • condition of enjoying it.
  • In all distresses (except musical) where small cords are wanted, nothing
  • is so apt to enter a man’s head as his hat-band: ----the philosophy of
  • this is so near the surface ----I scorn to enter into it.
  • As _Obadiah’s_ was a mix’d case----mark, Sirs, ----I say, a mixed case;
  • for it was obstetrical, ----_scrip_tical, squirtical, papistical----and
  • as far as the coach-horse was concerned in it, ----caballistical----and
  • only partly musical; --_Obadiah_ made no scruple of availing himself of
  • the first expedient which offered; so taking hold of the bag and
  • instruments, and griping them hard together with one hand, and with the
  • finger and thumb of the other putting the end of the hat-band betwixt
  • his teeth, and then slipping his hand down to the middle of it, --he
  • tied and cross-tied them all fast together from one end to the other
  • (as you would cord a trunk) with such a multiplicity of roundabouts and
  • intricate cross turns, with a hard knot at every intersection or point
  • where the strings met, --that Dr. _Slop_ must have had three-fifths of
  • _Job’s_ patience at least to have unloosed them. --I think in my
  • conscience, that had NATURE been in one of her nimble moods, and in
  • humour for such a contest----and she and Dr. _Slop_ both fairly started
  • together----there is no man living who had seen the bag with all that
  • _Obadiah_ had done to it, ----and known likewise the great speed the
  • Goddess can make when she thinks proper, who would have had the least
  • doubt remaining in his mind--which of the two would have carried off the
  • prize. My mother, Madam, had been delivered sooner than the green bag
  • infallibly----at least by twenty _knots_. ----Sport of small accidents,
  • _Tristram Shandy!_ that thou art, and ever will be! had that trial been
  • for thee, and it was fifty to one but it had, ----thy affairs had not
  • been so depress’d--(at least by the depression of thy nose) as they have
  • been; nor had the fortunes of thy house and the occasions of making
  • them, which have so often presented themselves in the course of thy
  • life, to thee, been so often, so vexatiously, so tamely, so
  • irrecoverably abandoned--as thou hast been forced to leave them; ----but
  • ’tis over, ----all but the account of ’em, which cannot be given to the
  • curious till I am got out into the world.
  • CHAPTER IX
  • Great wits jump: for the moment Dr. _Slop_ cast his eyes upon his bag
  • (which he had not done till the dispute with my uncle _Toby_ about
  • midwifery put him in mind of it)--the very same thought occurred. --’Tis
  • God’s mercy, quoth he (to himself) that Mrs. _Shandy_ has had so bad a
  • time of it, ----else she might have been brought to bed seven times
  • told, before one half of these knots could have got untied. ----But here
  • you must distinguish--the thought floated only in Dr. _Slop’s_ mind,
  • without sail or ballast to it, as a simple proposition; millions of
  • which, as your worship knows, are every day swimming quietly in the
  • middle of the thin juice of a man’s understanding, without being carried
  • backwards or forwards, till some little gusts of passion or interest
  • drive them to one side.
  • A sudden trampling in the room above, near my mother’s bed, did the
  • proposition the very service I am speaking of. By all that’s
  • unfortunate, quoth Dr. _Slop_, unless I make haste, the thing will
  • actually befall me as it is.
  • CHAPTER X
  • In the case of _knots_, --by which, in the first place, I would not be
  • understood to mean slip-knots--because in the course of my life and
  • opinions--my opinions concerning them will come in more properly when I
  • mention the catastrophe of my great uncle Mr. _Hammond Shandy_, --a
  • little man, --but of high fancy: --he rushed into the duke of
  • _Monmouth’s_ affair: ----nor, secondly, in this place, do I mean that
  • particular species of knots called bow-knots; --there is so little
  • address, or skill, or patience required in the unloosing them, that they
  • are below my giving any opinion at all about them. --But by the knots I
  • am speaking of, may it please your reverences to believe, that I mean
  • good, honest, devilish tight, hard knots, made _bona fide_, as _Obadiah_
  • made his; ----in which there is no quibbling provision made by the
  • duplication and return of the two ends of the strings thro’ the annulus
  • or noose made by the second _implication_ of them--to get them slipp’d
  • and undone by. --I hope you apprehend me.
  • In the case of these _knots_ then, and of the several obstructions,
  • which, may it please your reverences, such knots cast in our way in
  • getting through life----every hasty man can whip out his penknife and
  • cut through them. ----’Tis wrong. Believe me, Sirs, the most virtuous
  • way, and which both reason and conscience dictate----is to take our
  • teeth or our fingers to them. ----Dr. _Slop_ had lost his teeth--his
  • favourite instrument, by extracting in a wrong direction, or by some
  • misapplication of it, unfortunately slipping, he had formerly, in a hard
  • labour, knock’d out three of the best of them with the handle of it:
  • ------he tried his fingers--alas; the nails of his fingers and thumbs
  • were cut close. ----The duce take it! I can make nothing of it either
  • way, cried Dr. _Slop_. ----The trampling overhead near my mother’s
  • bedside increased. --Pox take the fellow! I shall never get the knots
  • untied as long as I live. ----My mother gave a groan. ----Lend me your
  • penknife ----I must e’en cut the knots at last----pugh! ----psha!
  • --Lord! I have cut my thumb quite across to the very bone----curse the
  • fellow--if there was not another man-midwife within fifty miles ----I am
  • undone for this bout --I wish the scoundrel hang’d --I wish he was
  • shot ----I wish all the devils in hell had him for a blockhead!------
  • My father had a great respect for _Obadiah_, and could not bear to hear
  • him disposed of in such a manner--he had moreover some little respect
  • for himself--and could as ill bear with the indignity offered to himself
  • in it.
  • Had Dr. _Slop_ cut any part about him, but his thumb----my father had
  • pass’d it by--his prudence had triumphed: as it was, he was determined
  • to have his revenge.
  • Small curses, Dr. _Slop_, upon great occasions, quoth my father
  • (condoling with him first upon the accident), are but so much waste of
  • our strength and soul’s health to no manner of purpose. --I own it,
  • replied Dr. _Slop_. --They are like sparrow-shot, quoth my uncle _Toby_
  • (suspending his whistling), fired against a bastion. ----They serve,
  • continued my father, to stir the humours----but carry off none of their
  • acrimony: --for my own part, I seldom swear or curse at all --I hold it
  • bad----but if I fall into it by surprize, I generally retain so much
  • presence of mind (right, quoth my uncle _Toby_) as to make it answer my
  • purpose----that is, I swear on till I find myself easy. A wise and a
  • just man however would always endeavour to proportion the vent given to
  • these humours, not only to the degree of them stirring within
  • himself--but to the size and ill intent of the offence upon which they
  • are to fall. --“_Injuries come only from the heart_,” --quoth my uncle
  • _Toby_. For this reason, continued my father, with the most _Cervantick_
  • gravity, I have the greatest veneration in the world for that gentleman,
  • who, in distrust of his own discretion in this point, sat down and
  • composed (that is at his leisure) fit forms of swearing suitable to all
  • cases, from the lowest to the highest provocation which could possibly
  • happen to him----which forms being well considered by him, and such
  • moreover as he could stand to, he kept them ever by him on the
  • chimney-piece, within his reach, ready for use. --I never apprehended,
  • replied Dr. _Slop_, that such a thing was ever thought of----much less
  • executed. I beg your pardon, answered my father; I was reading, though
  • not using, one of them to my brother _Toby_ this morning, whilst he
  • pour’d out the tea--’tis here upon the shelf over my head; --but if I
  • remember right, ’tis too violent for a cut of the thumb. --Not at all,
  • quoth Dr. _Slop_--the devil take the fellow. ----Then, answered my
  • father, ’Tis much at your service, Dr. _Slop_--on condition you will
  • read it aloud; ----so rising up and reaching down a form of
  • excommunication of the church of _Rome_, a copy of which, my father (who
  • was curious in his collections) had procured out of the leger-book of
  • the church of _Rochester_, writ by ERNULPHUS the bishop----with a most
  • affected seriousness of look and voice, which might have cajoled
  • ERNULPHUS himself--he put it into Dr. _Slop’s_ hands. ----Dr. _Slop_
  • wrapt his thumb up in the corner of his handkerchief, and with a wry
  • face, though without any suspicion, read aloud, as follows------my uncle
  • _Toby_ whistling _Lillabullero_ as loud as he could all the time.
  • Textus de Ecclesiâ Roffensi, per Ernulfum Episcopum.
  • [Transcriber’s Note:
  • The following section was printed on facing pages, Latin and English.
  • For this e-text it has been broken into alternating paragraphs. The
  • letters inserted between Latin lines are alternative endings determined
  • by the number and gender of the person(s) being excommunicated.]
  • CAP. XI
  • EXCOMMUNICATIO[3.2]
  • Ex auctoritate Dei omnipotentis, Patris, et Filij, et Spiritus
  • Sancti, et sanctorum canonum, sanctæque et intemeratæ Virginis Dei
  • genetricis Mariæ,--
  • CHAPTER XI
  • “By the authority of God Almighty, the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, and
  • of the holy canons, and of the undefiled Virgin _Mary_, mother and
  • patroness of our Saviour.” I think there is no necessity, quoth Dr.
  • _Slop_, dropping the paper down to his knee, and addressing himself to
  • my father----as you have read it over, Sir, so lately, to read it
  • aloud----and as Captain _Shandy_ seems to have no great inclination to
  • hear it ------I may as well read it to myself. That’s contrary to treaty,
  • replied my father: ------besides, there is something so whimsical,
  • especially in the latter part of it, I should grieve to lose the
  • pleasure of a second reading. Dr. _Slop_ did not altogether like it,
  • ------but my uncle _Toby_ offering at that instant to give over
  • whistling, and read it himself to them; ------Dr. _Slop_ thought he
  • might as well read it under the cover of my uncle _Toby’s_
  • whistling------as suffer my uncle _Toby_ to read it alone; ----so
  • raising up the paper to his face, and holding it quite parallel to it,
  • in order to hide his chagrin------he read it aloud as follows--------my
  • uncle _Toby_ whistling _Lillabullero_, though not quite so loud as
  • before.
  • ------Atque omnium cœlestium virtutum, angelorum, archangelorum,
  • thronorum, dominationum, potestatuum, cherubin
  • ac seraphin, & sanctorum patriarchum, prophetarum, & omnium
  • apostolorum & evangelistarum, & sanctorum innocentum, qui
  • in conspectu Agni soli digni inventi sunt canticum cantare
  • novum, et sanctorum martyrum et sanctorum confessorum, et
  • sanctarum virginum, atque omnium simul sanctorum et electorum
  • _vel_ os
  • Dei, ----Excommunicamus, et anathematizamus hunc
  • s _vel_ os s
  • furem, vel hunc malefactorem, N. N. et a liminibus sanctæ Dei
  • _vel_ i n
  • ecclesiæ sequestramus, et æternis suppliciis excruciandus, mancipetur,
  • cum Dathan et Abiram, et cum his qui dixerunt Domino
  • Deo, Recede à nobis, scientiam viarum tuarum nolumus: et
  • _vel_ eorum
  • sicut aquâ ignis extinguitur, sic extinguatur lucerna ejus in
  • n n
  • secula seculorum nisi resipuerit, et ad satisfactionem venerit.
  • Amen.
  • “By the authority of God Almighty, the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, and
  • of the undefiled Virgin _Mary_, mother and patroness of our Saviour, and
  • of all the celestial virtues, angels, archangels, thrones, dominions,
  • powers, cherubins and seraphins, and of all the holy patriarchs,
  • prophets, and of all the apostles and evangelists, and of the holy
  • innocents, who in the sight of the Holy Lamb, are found worthy to sing
  • the new song of the holy martyrs and holy confessors, and of the holy
  • virgins, and of all the saints, together with the holy and elect of God,
  • ----May he” (_Obadiah_) “be damn’d” (for tying these knots)---- “We
  • excommunicate, and anathematize him, and from the thresholds of the holy
  • church of God Almighty we sequester him, that he may be tormented,
  • disposed, and delivered over with _Dathan_ and _Abiram_, and with those
  • who say unto the Lord God, Depart from us, we desire none of thy ways.
  • And as fire is quenched with water, so let the light of him be put out
  • for evermore, unless it shall repent him” (_Obadiah_, of the knots which
  • he has tied) “and make satisfaction” (for them) “Amen.”
  • os
  • Maledicat illum Deus Pater qui hominem creavit. Maledicat
  • os os
  • illum Dei Filius qui pro homine passus est. Maledicat illum
  • os
  • Spiritus Sanctus qui in baptismo effusus est. Maledicat illum
  • sancta crux, quam Christus pro nostrâ salute hostem triumphans
  • ascendit.
  • “May the Father who created man, curse him. ----May the Son who suffered
  • for us, curse him. ----May the Holy Ghost, who was given to us in
  • baptism, curse him (_Obadiah_) ----May the holy cross which Christ,
  • for our salvation triumphing over his enemies, ascended, curse him.
  • os
  • Maledicat illum sancta Dei genetrix et perpetua Virgo Maria.
  • os
  • Maledicat illum sanctus Michael, animarum susceptor sacrarum.
  • os
  • Maledicant illum omnes angeli et archangeli, principatus et
  • potestates, omnisque militia cœlestis.
  • “May the holy and eternal Virgin _Mary_, mother of God, curse him.
  • ------May St. _Michael_, the advocate of holy souls, curse him. ----May
  • all the angels and archangels, principalities and powers, and all the
  • heavenly armies, curse him.” [Our armies swore terribly in _Flanders_,
  • cried my uncle _Toby_, ------but nothing to this. ------For my own part
  • I could not have a heart to curse my dog so.]
  • os
  • Maledicat illum patriarcharum et prophetarum laudabilis
  • os
  • numerus. Maledicat illum sanctus Johannes Præcusor et
  • Baptista Christi, et sanctus Petrus, et sanctus Paulus, atque
  • sanctus Andreas, omnesque Christi apostoli, simul et cæteri
  • discipuli, quatuor quoque evangelistæ, qui sua prædicatione
  • os
  • mundum universum converterunt. Maledicat illum cuneus
  • martyrum et confessorum mirificus, qui Deo bonis operibus
  • placitus inventus est.
  • “May St. John, the Præcursor, and St. John the Baptist, and St. Peter
  • and St. Paul, and St. Andrew, and all other Christ’s apostles, together
  • curse him. And may the rest of his disciples and four evangelists, who
  • by their preaching converted the universal world, and may the holy and
  • wonderful company of martyrs and confessors who by their holy works are
  • found pleasing to God Almighty, curse him” (_Obadiah_).
  • os
  • Maledicant illum sacrarum virginum chori, quæ mundi vana
  • causa honoris Christi respuenda contempserunt. Maledicant
  • os
  • illum omnes sancti qui ab initio mundi usque in finem seculi
  • Deo dilecti inveniuntur.
  • os
  • Maledicant illum cœli et terra, et omnia sancta in eis manentia.
  • “May the holy choir of the holy virgins, who for the honour of Christ
  • have despised the things of the world, damn him ----May all the saints,
  • who from the beginning of the world to everlasting ages are found to be
  • beloved of God, damn him ------May the heavens and earth, and all the
  • holy things remaining therein, damn him” (_Obadiah_) “or her”
  • (or whoever else had a hand in tying these knots).
  • i n n
  • Maledictus sit ubicunque fuerit, sive in domo, sive in agro,
  • sive in viâ, sive in semitâ, sive in silvâ, sive in aquâ, sive in
  • ecclesiâ.
  • i n
  • Maledictus sit vivendo, moriendo, ----------------------------
  • ------ ------ ------
  • ------ ------ ------
  • ------ ------ ------
  • manducando, bibendo, esuriendo, sitiendo, jejunando, dormitando,
  • dormiendo, vigilando, ambulando, stando, sedendo,
  • jacendo, operando, quiescendo, mingendo, cacando, flebotomando.
  • “May he (_Obadiah_) be damn’d wherever he be----whether in the house or
  • the stables, the garden or the field, or the highway, or in the path, or
  • in the wood, or in the water, or in the church. ----May he be cursed in
  • living, in dying.” [Here my uncle _Toby_, taking the advantage of a
  • _minim_ in the second bar of his tune, kept whistling one continued note
  • to the end of the sentence. ----Dr. _Slop_, with his division of curses
  • moving under him, like a running bass all the way.] “May he be cursed in
  • eating, and drinking, in being hungry, in being thirsty, in fasting, in
  • sleeping, in slumbering, in walking, in standing, in sitting, in lying,
  • in working, in resting, in pissing, in shitting, and in blood-letting!”
  • i n
  • Maledictus sit in totis viribus corporis,
  • “May he” (_Obadiah_) “be cursed in all the faculties of his body!
  • i n
  • Maledictus sit intus et exterius.
  • i n i n i
  • Maledictus sit in capillis; maledictus sit in cerebro. Maledictus
  • n
  • sit in vertice, in temporibus, in fronte, in auriculis, in
  • superciliis, in oculis, in genis, in maxillis, in naribus, in
  • dentibus, mordacibus, sive molaribus, in labiis, in guttere, in
  • humeris, in harnis, in brachiis, in manubus, in digitis, in pectore,
  • in corde, et in omnibus interioribus stomacho tenus, in renibus,
  • in inguinibus, in femore, in genitalibus, in coxis, in genubus,
  • in cruribus, in pedibus, et in inguibus.
  • “May he be cursed inwardly and outwardly! ------May he be cursed in the
  • hair of his head! ----May he be cursed in his brains, and in his vertex”
  • (that is a sad curse, quoth my father), “in his temples, in his
  • forehead, in his ears, in his eye-brows, in his cheeks, in his
  • jaw-bones, in his nostrils, in his fore-teeth and grinders, in his lips,
  • in his throat, in his shoulders, in his wrists, in his arms, in his
  • hands, in his fingers!
  • “May he be damn’d in his mouth, in his breast, in his heart and
  • purtenance, down to the very stomach!
  • “May he be cursed in his reins, and in his groin” (God in heaven forbid!
  • quoth my uncle _Toby_), “in his thighs, in his genitals” (my father
  • shook his head), “and in his hips, and in his knees, his legs, and feet,
  • and toe-nails!
  • Maledictus sit in totis compagibus membrorum, a vertice
  • capitis, usque ad plantam pedis--non sit in eo sanitas.
  • “May he be cursed in all the joints and articulations of his members,
  • from the top of his head to the sole of his foot! May there be no
  • soundness in him!
  • Maledicat illum Christus Filius Dei vivi toto suæ majestatis
  • imperio.----
  • “May the Son of the living God, with all the glory of his Majesty”
  • ----[Here my uncle _Toby_, throwing back his head, gave a monstrous,
  • long, loud Whew--w--w--------something betwixt the interjectional
  • whistle of _Hay-day!_ and the word itself.------
  • ----By the golden beard of _Jupiter_--and of _Juno_ (if her majesty wore
  • one) and by the beards of the rest of your heathen worships, which by
  • the bye was no small number, since what with the beards of your
  • celestial gods, and gods aerial and aquatick--to say nothing of the
  • beards of town-gods and country-gods, or of the celestial goddesses your
  • wives, or of the infernal goddesses your whores and concubines (that is
  • in case they wore them)------all which beards, as _Varro_ tells me, upon
  • his word and honour, when mustered up together, made no less than thirty
  • thousand effective beards upon the Pagan establishment; ----every beard
  • of which claimed the rights and privileges of being stroken and sworn
  • by--by all these beards together then ----I vow and protest, that of the
  • two bad cassocks I am worth in the world, I would have given the better
  • of them, as freely as ever _Cid Hamet_ offered his----to have stood by,
  • and heard my uncle _Toby’s_ accompanyment.]
  • ----et insurgat adversus illum cœlum cum omnibus virtutibus
  • quæ in eo moventur ad _damnandum_ eum, nisi penituerit et ad
  • satisfactionem venerit. Amen. Fiat, fiat. Amen.
  • ----“curse him!” continued Dr. _Slop_, --“and may heaven, with all the
  • powers which move therein, rise up against him, curse and damn him”
  • (_Obadiah_) “unless he repent and make satisfaction! Amen. So be it,
  • --so be it. Amen.”
  • I declare, quoth my uncle _Toby_, my heart would not let me curse the
  • devil himself with so much bitterness. --He is the father of curses,
  • replied Dr. _Slop_. ----So am not I, replied my uncle. ----But he is
  • cursed, and damn’d already, to all eternity, replied Dr. _Slop_.
  • I am sorry for it, quoth my uncle _Toby_.
  • Dr. _Slop_ drew up his mouth, and was just beginning to return my uncle
  • _Toby_ the compliment of his Whu--u--u--or interjectional
  • whistle----when the door hastily opening in the next chapter but
  • one----put an end to the affair.
  • [Footnote 3.2: As the genuineness of the consultation of the
  • _Sorbonne_ upon the question of baptism, was doubted by some,
  • and denied by others----’twas thought proper to print the
  • original of this excommunication; for the copy of which Mr.
  • _Shandy_ returns thanks to the chapter clerk of the dean and
  • chapter of _Rochester_.]
  • CHAPTER XII
  • Now don’t let us give ourselves a parcel of airs, and pretend that the
  • oaths we make free with in this land of liberty of ours are our own; and
  • because we have the spirit to swear them, ----imagine that we have had
  • the wit to invent them too.
  • I’ll undertake this moment to prove it to any man in the world, except
  • to a connoisseur: ----though I declare I object only to a connoisseur in
  • swearing, ----as I would do to a connoisseur in painting, &c., &c., the
  • whole set of ’em are so hung round and _befetish’d_ with the bobs and
  • trinkets of criticism, ----or to drop my metaphor, which by the bye is a
  • pity, ----for I have fetch’d it as far as from the coast of _Guiney_;
  • --their heads, Sir, are stuck so full of rules and compasses, and have
  • that eternal propensity to apply them upon all occasions, that a work of
  • genius had better go to the devil at once, than stand to be prick’d and
  • tortured to death by ’em.
  • --And how did _Garrick_ speak the soliloquy last night? --Oh, against
  • all rule, my lord, --most ungrammatically! betwixt the substantive and
  • the adjective, which should agree together in _number_, _case_, and
  • _gender_, he made a breach thus, --stopping, as if the point wanted
  • settling; --and betwixt the nominative case, which your lordship knows
  • should govern the verb, he suspended his voice in the epilogue a dozen
  • times three seconds and three-fifths by a stop-watch, my lord, each
  • time, --Admirable grammarian! ----But in suspending his voice----was the
  • sense suspended likewise? Did no expression of attitude or countenance
  • fill up the chasm? ----Was the eye silent? Did you narrowly look?
  • ------I look’d only at the stop-watch, my lord. --Excellent observer!
  • And what of this new book the whole world makes such a rout about?
  • ----Oh! ’tis out of all plumb, my lord, ----quite an irregular thing!
  • --not one of the angles at the four corners was a right angle. --I had
  • my rule and compasses, &c., my lord, in my pocket. --Excellent critick!
  • ----And for the epick poem your lordship bid me look at----upon taking
  • the length, breadth, height, and depth of it, and trying them at home
  • upon an exact scale of _Bossu’s_----’tis out, my lord, in every one of
  • its dimensions. --Admirable connoisseur!
  • ----And did you step in, to take a look at the grand picture in your way
  • back? --’Tis a melancholy daub! my lord; not one principle of the
  • _pyramid_ in any one group! ----and what a price! ----for there is
  • nothing of the colouring of _Titian_--the expression of _Rubens_--the
  • grace of _Raphael_--the purity of _Dominichino_--the _corregiescity_ of
  • _Corregio_--the learning of _Poussin_--the airs of _Guido_--the taste of
  • the _Carrachis_--or the grand contour of _Angela_. --Grant me patience,
  • just Heaven! --Of all the cants which are canted in this canting
  • world--though the cant of hypocrites may be the worst----the cant of
  • criticism is the most tormenting!
  • I would go fifty miles on foot, for I have not a horse worth riding on,
  • to kiss the hand of that man whose generous heart will give up the reins
  • of his imagination into his author’s hands----be pleased he knows not
  • why, and cares not wherefore.
  • Great _Apollo!_ if thou art in a giving humour--give me --I ask no more,
  • but one stroke of native humour, with a single spark of thy own fire
  • along with it----and send _Mercury_, with the _rules and compasses_, if
  • he can be spared, with my compliments to--no matter.
  • Now to any one else I will undertake to prove, that all the oaths and
  • imprecations which we have been puffing off upon the world for these two
  • hundred and fifty years last past as originals----except St. _Paul’s
  • thumb_----_God’s flesh and God’s fish_, which were oaths monarchical,
  • and, considering who made them, not much amiss; and as kings’ oaths,
  • ’tis not much matter whether they were fish or flesh; --else I say,
  • there is not an oath, or at least a curse amongst them, which has not
  • been copied over and over again out of _Ernulphus_ a thousand times:
  • but, like all other copies, how infinitely short of the force and spirit
  • of the original! --It is thought to be no bad oath----and by itself
  • passes very well-- “_G--d damn you._” --Set it beside _Ernulphus’s_----
  • “God Almighty the Father damn you --God the Son damn you --God the Holy
  • Ghost damn you”--you see ’tis nothing. --There is an orientality in his,
  • we cannot rise up to: besides, he is more copious in his
  • invention--possess’d more of the excellencies of a swearer----had such a
  • thorough knowledge of the human frame, its membranes, nerves, ligaments,
  • knittings of the joints, and articulations, ----that when _Ernulphus_
  • cursed--no part escaped him. --’Tis true there is something of a
  • _hardness_ in his manner----and, as in _Michael Angelo_, a want of
  • _grace_----but then there is such a greatness of _gusto!_
  • My father, who generally look’d upon everything in a light very
  • different from all mankind, would, after all, never allow this to be an
  • original. ----He considered rather, _Ernulphus’s_ anathema, as an
  • institute of swearing, in which, as he suspected, upon the decline of
  • _swearing_ in some milder pontificate, _Ernulphus_, by order of the
  • succeeding pope, had with great learning and diligence collected
  • together all the laws of it; --for the same reason that _Justinian_, in
  • the decline of the empire, had ordered his chancellor _Tribonian_ to
  • collect the _Roman_ or civil laws all together into one code or
  • digest----lest, through the rust of time----and the fatality of all
  • things committed to oral tradition--they should be lost to the world for
  • ever.
  • For this reason my father would oft-times affirm, there was not an oath,
  • from the great and tremendous oath of _William_ the Conqueror (_By the
  • splendour of God_) down to the lowest oath of a scavenger (_Damn your
  • eyes_) which was not to be found in _Ernulphus_. --In short, he would
  • add --I defy a man to swear _out_ of it.
  • The hypothesis is, like most of my father’s, singular and ingenious too;
  • ----nor have I any objection to it, but that it overturns my own.
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • ----Bless my soul! --my poor mistress is ready to faint----and her pains
  • are gone--and the drops are done--and the bottle of julap is
  • broke----and the nurse has cut her arm--(and I, my thumb, cried Dr.
  • _Slop_,) and the child is where it was, continued _Susannah_, --and the
  • midwife has fallen backwards upon the edge of the fender, and bruised
  • her hip as black as your hat. --I’ll look at it, quoth Dr. _Slop_.
  • --There is no need of that, replied _Susannah_, --you had better look at
  • my mistress--but the midwife would gladly first give you an account how
  • things are, so desires you would go up stairs and speak to her this
  • moment.
  • Human nature is the same in all professions.
  • The midwife had just before been put over Dr. _Slop’s_ head --He had not
  • digested it, --No, replied Dr. _Slop_, ’twould be full as proper, if the
  • midwife came down to me. --I like subordination, quoth my uncle _Toby_,
  • --and but for it, after the reduction of _Lisle_, I know not what might
  • have become of the garrison of _Ghent_, in the mutiny for bread, in the
  • year Ten. --Nor, replied Dr. _Slop_, (parodying my uncle _Toby’s_
  • hobby-horsical reflection; though full as hobby-horsical
  • himself)------do I know, Captain _Shandy_, what might have become of the
  • garrison above stairs, in the mutiny and confusion I find all things are
  • in at present, but for the subordination of fingers and thumbs to
  • ******------the application of which, Sir, under this accident of mine,
  • comes in so _à propos_, that without it, the cut upon my thumb might
  • have been felt by the _Shandy_ family, as long as the _Shandy_ family
  • had a name.
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • Let us go back to the ******----in the last chapter.
  • It is a singular stroke of eloquence (at least it was so, when eloquence
  • flourished at _Athens_ and _Rome_, and would be so now, did orators wear
  • mantles) not to mention the name of a thing, when you had the thing
  • about you _in petto_, ready to produce, pop, in the place you want it.
  • A scar, an axe, a sword, a pink’d doublet, a rusty helmet, a pound and a
  • half of pot-ashes in an urn, or a three-halfpenny pickle pot--but above
  • all, a tender infant royally accoutred. --Tho’ if it was too young, and
  • the oration as long as _Tully’s_ second _Philippick_--it must certainly
  • have beshit the orator’s mantle. --And then again, if too old, --it must
  • have been unwieldy and incommodious to his action--so as to make him
  • lose by his child almost as much as he could gain by it. --Otherwise,
  • when a state orator has hit the precise age to a minute----hid his
  • BAMBINO in his mantle so cunningly that no mortal could smell it----and
  • produced it so critically, that no soul could say, it came in by head
  • and shoulders --Oh Sirs! it has done wonders --It has open’d the sluices,
  • and turn’d the brains, and shook the principles, and unhinged the
  • politicks of half a nation.
  • These feats however are not to be done, except in those states and
  • times, I say, where orators wore mantles----and pretty large ones too,
  • my brethren, with some twenty or five-and-twenty yards of good purple,
  • superfine, marketable cloth in them--with large flowing folds and
  • doubles, and in a great style of design. --All which plainly shews, may
  • it please your worships, that the decay of eloquence, and the little
  • good service it does at present, both within and without doors, is owing
  • to nothing else in the world, but short coats, and the disuse of
  • _trunk-hose_. ----We can conceal nothing under ours, Madam, worth
  • shewing.
  • CHAPTER XV
  • Dr. _Slop_ was within an ace of being an exception to all this
  • argumentation: for happening to have his green bays bag upon his knees,
  • when he began to parody my uncle _Toby_--’twas as good as the best
  • mantle in the world to him: for which purpose, when he foresaw the
  • sentence would end in his new-invented _forceps_, he thrust his hand
  • into the bag in order to have them ready to clap in, when your
  • reverences took so much notice of the ***, which had he managed----my
  • uncle _Toby_ had certainly been overthrown: the sentence and the
  • argument in that case jumping closely in one point, so like the two
  • lines which form the salient angle of a ravelin, ----Dr. _Slop_ would
  • never have given them up; --and my uncle _Toby_ would as soon have
  • thought of flying, as taking them by force: but Dr. _Slop_ fumbled so
  • vilely in pulling them out, it took off the whole effect, and what was a
  • ten times worse evil (for they seldom come alone in this life) in
  • pulling out his _forceps_, his _forceps_ unfortunately drew out the
  • _squirt_ along with it.
  • When a proposition can be taken in two senses--’tis a law in
  • disputation, That the respondent may reply to which of the two he
  • pleases, or finds most convenient for him. ----This threw the advantage
  • of the argument quite on my uncle _Toby’s_ side. ----“Good God!” cried
  • my uncle _Toby_, “_are children brought into the world with a squirt?_”
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • --Upon my honour, Sir, you have tore every bit of skin quite off the
  • back of both my hands with your forceps, cried my uncle _Toby_--and you
  • have crush’d all my knuckles into the bargain with them to a jelly. ’Tis
  • your own fault, said Dr. _Slop_----you should have clinch’d your two
  • fists together into the form of a child’s head as I told you, and sat
  • firm. I did so, answered my uncle _Toby_. ----Then the points of my
  • forceps have not been sufficiently arm’d, or the rivet wants closing--or
  • else the cut in my thumb has made me a little aukward--or possibly--’Tis
  • well, quoth my father, interrupting the detail of possibilities--that
  • the experiment was not first made upon my child’s head-piece. ------It
  • would not have been a cherry-stone the worse, answered Dr. _Slop_. --I
  • maintain it, said my uncle _Toby_, it would have broke the cerebellum
  • (unless indeed the skull had been as hard as a granado) and turn’d it
  • all into a perfect posset. ------Pshaw! replied Dr. _Slop_, a child’s
  • head is naturally as soft as the pap of an apple; --the sutures give
  • way--and besides, I could have extracted by the feet after. --Not you,
  • said she. ----I rather wish you would begin that way, quoth my father.
  • Pray do, added my uncle _Toby_.
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • ----And pray, good woman, after all, will you take upon you to say, it
  • may not be the child’s hip, as well as the child’s head? ------’Tis most
  • certainly the head, replied the midwife. Because, continued Dr. _Slop_
  • (turning to my father) as positive as these old ladies generally
  • are--’tis a point very difficult to know--and yet of the greatest
  • consequence to be known; ----because, Sir, if the hip is mistaken for
  • the head--there is a possibility (if it is a boy) that the forceps
  • * * * * * *
  • ----What the possibility was, Dr. _Slop_ whispered very low to my
  • father, and then to my uncle _Toby_. ----There is no such danger,
  • continued he, with the head. --No, in truth, quoth my father--but when
  • your possibility has taken place at the hip--you may as well take off
  • the head too.
  • ----It is morally impossible the reader should understand this----’tis
  • enough Dr. _Slop_ understood it; ----so taking the green bays bag in his
  • hand, with the help of _Obadiah’s_ pumps, he tripp’d pretty nimbly, for
  • a man of his size, across the room to the door------and from the door
  • was shewn the way, by the good old midwife, to my mother’s apartments.
  • CHAPTER XVIII
  • It is two hours, and ten minutes--and no more--cried my father, looking
  • at his watch, since Dr. _Slop_ and _Obadiah_ arrived--and I know not how
  • it happens, brother _Toby_--but to my imagination it seems almost an
  • age.
  • ----Here--pray, Sir, take hold of my cap--nay, take the bell along with
  • it, and my pantoufles too.
  • Now, Sir, they are all at your service; and I freely make you a present
  • of ’em, on condition you give me all your attention to this chapter.
  • Though my father said, “_he knew not how it happen’d_,” --yet he knew
  • very well how it happen’d; ----and at the instant he spoke it, was
  • pre-determined in his mind to give my uncle _Toby_ a clear account of
  • the matter by a metaphysical dissertation upon the subject of _duration
  • and its simple modes_, in order to shew my uncle _Toby_ by what
  • mechanism and mensurations in the brain it came to pass, that the rapid
  • succession of their ideas, and the eternal scampering of the discourse
  • from one thing to another, since Dr. _Slop_ had come into the room, had
  • lengthened out so short a period to so inconceivable an extent. ----“I
  • know not how it happens--cried my father, --but it seems an age.”
  • ----’Tis owing entirely, quoth my uncle _Toby_, to the succession of our
  • ideas.
  • My father, who had an itch, in common with all philosophers, of
  • reasoning upon everything which happened, and accounting for it
  • too--proposed infinite pleasure to himself in this, of the succession of
  • ideas, and had not the least apprehension of having it snatch’d out of
  • his hands by my uncle _Toby_, who (honest man!) generally took
  • everything as it happened; ----and who, of all things in the world,
  • troubled his brain the least with abstruse thinking; --the ideas of time
  • and space--or how we came by those ideas--or of what stuff they were
  • made----or whether they were born with us--or we picked them up
  • afterwards as we went along--or whether we did it in frocks----or not
  • till we had got into breeches--with a thousand other inquiries and
  • disputes about INFINITY, PRESCIENCE, LIBERTY, NECESSITY, and so forth,
  • upon whose desperate and unconquerable theories so many fine heads have
  • been turned and cracked----never did my uncle _Toby’s_ the least injury
  • at all; my father knew it--and was no less surprized than he was
  • disappointed, with my uncle’s fortuitous solution.
  • Do you understand the theory of that affair? replied my father.
  • Not I, quoth my uncle.
  • --But you have some ideas, said my father, of what you talk about?--
  • No more than my horse, replied my uncle _Toby_.
  • Gracious heaven! cried my father, looking upwards, and clasping his two
  • hands together----there is a worth in thy honest ignorance, brother
  • _Toby_----’twere almost a pity to exchange it for a knowledge. --But
  • I’ll tell thee.----
  • To understand what _time_ is aright, without which we never can
  • comprehend _infinity_, insomuch as one is a portion of the other----we
  • ought seriously to sit down and consider what idea it is we have of
  • _duration_, so as to give a satisfactory account how we came by it.
  • ----What is that to anybody? quoth my uncle _Toby_. [3.3]_For if you
  • will turn your eyes inwards upon your mind_, continued my father, _and
  • observe attentively, you will perceive, brother, that whilst you and I
  • are talking together, and thinking, and smoking our pipes, or whilst we
  • receive successively ideas in our minds, we know that we do exist, and
  • so we estimate the existence, or the continuation of the existence of
  • ourselves, or anything else, commensurate to the succession of any ideas
  • in our minds, the duration of ourselves, or any such other thing
  • co-existing with our thinking----and so according to that
  • preconceived_ ------You puzzle me to death, cried my uncle _Toby_.
  • ------’Tis owing to this, replied my father, that in our computations of
  • _time_, we are so used to minutes, hours, weeks, and months----and of
  • clocks (I wish there was not a clock in the kingdom) to measure out
  • their several portions to us, and to those who belong to us----that
  • ’twill be well, if in time to come, the _succession of our ideas_ be of
  • any use or service to us at all.
  • Now, whether we observe it or no, continued my father, in every sound
  • man’s head, there is a regular succession of ideas of one sort or other,
  • which follow each other in train just like ------A train of artillery?
  • said my uncle _Toby_ ----A train of a fiddle-stick! --quoth my
  • father--which follow and succeed one another in our minds at certain
  • distances, just like the images in the inside of a lanthorn turned round
  • by the heat of a candle. --I declare, quoth my uncle _Toby_, mine are
  • more like a smoak-jack. ------Then, brother _Toby_, I have nothing more
  • to say to you upon that subject, said my father.
  • [Footnote 3.3: Vide Locke.]
  • CHAPTER XIX
  • ----What a conjecture was here lost! ----My father in one of his best
  • explanatory moods--in eager pursuit of a metaphysical point into the
  • very regions, where clouds and thick darkness would soon have
  • encompassed it about; --my uncle _Toby_ in one of the finest
  • dispositions for it in the world; --his head like a smoak-jack; ----the
  • funnel unswept, and the ideas whirling round and round about in it, all
  • obfuscated and darkened over with fuliginous matter! --By the tomb-stone
  • of _Lucian_----if it is in being----if not, why then by his ashes! by
  • the ashes of my dear _Rabelais_, and dearer _Cervantes!_------my father
  • and my uncle _Toby’s_ discourse upon TIME and ETERNITY----was a
  • discourse devoutly to be wished for! and the petulancy of my father’s
  • humour, in putting a stop to it as he did, was a robbery of the
  • _Ontologic Treasury_ of such a jewel, as no coalition of great occasions
  • and great men are ever likely to restore to it again.
  • CHAPTER XX
  • Tho’ my father persisted in not going on with the discourse--yet he
  • could not get my uncle _Toby’s_ smoak-jack out of his head--piqued as he
  • was at first with it; --there was something in the comparison at the
  • bottom, which hit his fancy; for which purpose, resting his elbow upon
  • the table, and reclining the right side of his head upon the palm of his
  • hand----but looking first stedfastly in the fire----he began to commune
  • with himself, and philosophize about it: but his spirits being wore out
  • with the fatigues of investigating new tracts, and the constant exertion
  • of his faculties upon that variety of subjects which had taken their
  • turn in the discourse------the idea of the smoak-jack soon turned all
  • his ideas upside down--so that he fell asleep almost before he knew what
  • he was about.
  • As for my uncle _Toby_, his smoak-jack had not made a dozen revolutions,
  • before he fell asleep also. ----Peace be with them both! ----Dr. _Slop_
  • is engaged with the midwife and my mother above stairs. ----_Trim_ is
  • busy in turning an old pair of jackboots into a couple of mortars, to be
  • employed in the siege of _Messina_ next summer--and is this instant
  • boring the touch-holes with the point of a hot poker. ----All my heroes
  • are off my hands; --’tis the first time I have had a moment to
  • spare--and I’ll make use of it, and write my preface.
  • THE AUTHOR’S PREFACE
  • No, I’ll not say a word about it----here it is; --in publishing it --I
  • have appealed to the world----and to the world I leave it; --it must
  • speak for itself.
  • All I know of the matter is--when I sat down, my intent was to write a
  • good book; and as far as the tenuity of my understanding would hold
  • out--a wise, aye, and a discreet--taking care only, as I went along, to
  • put into it all the wit and the judgment (be it more or less) which the
  • great Author and Bestower of them had thought fit originally to give
  • me------so that, as your worships see--’tis just as God pleases.
  • Now, _Agelastes_ (speaking dispraisingly) sayeth, That there may be some
  • wit in it, for aught he knows----but no judgment at all. And
  • _Triptolemus_ and _Phutatorius_ agreeing thereto, ask, How is it
  • possible there should? for that wit and judgment in this world never go
  • together; inasmuch as they are two operations differing from each other
  • as wide as east from west ------So, says _Locke_----so are farting and
  • hickuping, say I. But in answer to this, _Didius_ the great church
  • lawyer, in his code _de fartendi et illustrandi fallaciis_, doth
  • maintain and make fully appear, That an illustration is no
  • argument----nor do I maintain the wiping of a looking-glass clean to be
  • a syllogism; ----but you all, may it please your worships, see the
  • better for it------so that the main good these things do is only to
  • clarify the understanding, previous to the application of the argument
  • itself, in order to free it from any little motes, or specks of opacular
  • matter, which, if left swimming therein, might hinder a conception and
  • spoil all.
  • Now, my dear anti-Shandeans, and thrice able criticks, and
  • fellow-labourers (for to you I write this Preface)------and to you,
  • most subtle statesmen and discreet doctors (do--pull off your beards)
  • renowned for gravity and wisdom; ----_Monopolus_, my politician--
  • _Didius_, my counsel; _Kysarcius_, my friend; --_Phutatorius_, my guide;
  • ----_Gastripheres_, the preserver of my life; _Somnolentius_, the balm
  • and repose of it----not forgetting all others, as well sleeping as
  • waking, ecclesiastical as civil, whom for brevity, but out of no
  • resentment to you, I lump all together. ------Believe me, right worthy,
  • My most zealous wish and fervent prayer in your behalf, and in my own
  • too, in case the thing is not done already for us----is, that the great
  • gifts and endowments both of wit and judgment, with everything which
  • usually goes along with them------such as memory, fancy, genius,
  • eloquence, quick parts, and what not, may this precious moment, without
  • stint or measure, let or hindrance, be poured down warm as each of us
  • could bear it--scum and sediment and all (for I would not have a drop
  • lost) into the several receptacles, cells, cellules, domiciles,
  • dormitories, refectories, and spare places of our brains------in such
  • sort, that they might continue to be injected and tunn’d into, according
  • to the true intent and meaning of my wish, until every vessel of them,
  • both great and small, be so replenish’d, saturated, and filled up
  • therewith, that no more, would it save a man’s life, could possibly be
  • got either in or out.
  • Bless us! --what noble work we should make! ----how should I tickle it
  • off! ----and what spirits should I find myself in, to be writing away
  • for such readers! ----and you--just heaven! ----with what raptures would
  • you sit and read--but oh! --’tis too much ----I am sick ----I faint away
  • deliciously at the thoughts of it--’tis more than nature can bear! --lay
  • hold of me ----I am giddy --I am stone blind --I’m dying --I am gone.
  • --Help! Help! Help! --But hold --I grow something better again, for I am
  • beginning to foresee, when this is over, that as we shall all of us
  • continue to be great wits--we should never agree amongst ourselves, one
  • day to an end: ----there would be so much satire and sarcasm----scoffing
  • and flouting, with raillying and reparteeing of it--thrusting and
  • parrying in one corner or another----there would be nothing but mischief
  • among us ----Chaste stars! what biting and scratching, and what a racket
  • and a clatter we should make, what with breaking of heads, rapping of
  • knuckles, and hitting of sore places--there would be no such thing as
  • living for us.
  • But then again, as we should all of us be men of great judgment, we
  • should make up matters as fast as ever they went wrong; and though we
  • should abominate each other ten times worse than so many devils or
  • devilesses, we should nevertheless, my dear creatures, be all courtesy
  • and kindness, milk and honey--’twould be a second land of promise--a
  • paradise upon earth, if there was such a thing to be had--so that upon
  • the whole we should have done well enough.
  • All I fret and fume at, and what most distresses my invention at
  • present, is how to bring the point itself to bear; for as your worships
  • well know, that of these heavenly emanations of _wit_ and _judgment_,
  • which I have so bountifully wished both for your worships and
  • myself--there is but a certain _quantum_ stored up for us all, for the
  • use and behoof of the whole race of mankind; and such small _modicums_
  • of ’em are only sent forth into this wide world, circulating here and
  • there in one bye corner or another--and in such narrow streams, and at
  • such prodigious intervals from each other, that one would wonder how it
  • holds out, or could be sufficient for the wants and emergencies of so
  • many great estates, and populous empires.
  • Indeed there is one thing to be considered, that in _Nova Zembla_,
  • _North Lapland_, and in all those cold and dreary tracts of the globe,
  • which lie more directly under the arctick and antarctick circles, where
  • the whole province of a man’s concernments lies for near nine months
  • together within the narrow compass of his cave--where the spirits are
  • compressed almost to nothing--and where the passions of a man, with
  • everything which belongs to them, are as frigid as the zone
  • itself--there the least quantity of _judgment_ imaginable does the
  • business--and of _wit_----there is a total and an absolute saving--for
  • as not one spark is wanted--so not one spark is given. Angels and
  • ministers of grace defend us! what a dismal thing would it have been to
  • have governed a kingdom, to have fought a battle, or made a treaty, or
  • run a match, or wrote a book, or got a child, or held a provincial
  • chapter there, with so _plentiful a lack_ of wit and judgment about us!
  • For mercy’s sake, let us think no more about it, but travel on as fast
  • as we can southwards into _Norway_--crossing over _Swedeland_, if you
  • please, through the small triangular province of _Angermania_ to the
  • lake of _Bothnia_; coasting along it through east and west _Bothnia_,
  • down to _Carelia_, and so on, through all those states and provinces
  • which border upon the far side of the _Gulf of Finland_, and the
  • north-east of the _Baltick_, up to _Petersbourg_, and just stepping into
  • _Ingria_; --then stretching over directly from thence through the north
  • parts of the _Russian_ empire--leaving _Siberia_ a little upon the left
  • hand, till we got into the very heart of _Russian_ and _Asiatick
  • Tartary_.
  • Now throughout this long tour which I have led you, you observe the good
  • people are better off by far, than in the polar countries which we have
  • just left: --for if you hold your hand over your eyes, and look very
  • attentively, you may perceive some small glimmerings (as it were) of
  • wit, with a comfortable provision of good plain _household_ judgment,
  • which, taking the quality and quantity of it together, they make a very
  • good shift with------and had they more of either the one or the other,
  • it would destroy the proper balance betwixt them, and I am satisfied
  • moreover they would want occasions to put them to use.
  • Now, Sir, if I conduct you home again into this warmer and more
  • luxuriant island, where you perceive the spring-tide of our blood and
  • humours runs high------where we have more ambition, and pride, and envy,
  • and lechery, and other whoreson passions upon our hands to govern and
  • subject to reason------the _height_ of our wit, and the _depth_ of our
  • judgment, you see, are exactly proportioned to the _length_ and
  • _breadth_ of our necessities------and accordingly we have them sent down
  • amongst us in such a flowing kind of descent and creditable plenty, that
  • no one thinks he has any cause to complain.
  • It must however be confessed on this head, that, as our air blows hot
  • and cold--wet and dry, ten times in a day, we have them in no regular
  • and settled way; --so that sometimes for near half a century together,
  • there shall be very little wit or judgment either to be seen or heard of
  • amongst us: ----the small channels of them shall seem quite dried
  • up----then all of a sudden the sluices shall break out, and take a fit
  • of running again like fury----you would think they would never stop:
  • ----and then it is, that in writing, and fighting, and twenty other
  • gallant things, we drive all the world before us.
  • It is by these observations, and a wary reasoning by analogy in that
  • kind of argumentative process, which _Suidas_ calls _dialectick
  • induction_------that I draw and set up this position as most true and
  • veritable;
  • That of these two luminaries so much of their irradiations are suffered
  • from time to time to shine down upon us, as he, whose infinite wisdom
  • which dispenses everything in exact weight and measure, knows will just
  • serve to light us on our way in this night of our obscurity; so that
  • your reverences and worships now find out, nor is it a moment longer in
  • my power to conceal it from you, That the fervent wish in your behalf
  • with which I set out, was no more than the first insinuating _How d’ye_
  • of a caressing prefacer, stifling his reader, as a lover sometimes does
  • a coy mistress, into silence. For alas! could this effusion of light
  • have been as easily procured, as the exordium wished it --I tremble to
  • think how many thousands for it, of benighted travellers (in the learned
  • sciences at least) must have groped and blundered on in the dark, all
  • the nights of their lives----running their heads against posts, and
  • knocking out their brains without ever getting to their journies end;
  • ----some falling with their noses perpendicularly into sinks----others
  • horizontally with their tails into kennels. Here one half of a learned
  • profession tilting full but against the other half of it, and then
  • tumbling and rolling one over the other in the dirt like hogs. --Here
  • the brethren of another profession, who should have run in opposition to
  • each other, flying on the contrary like a flock of wild geese, all in a
  • row the same way. --What confusion! --what mistakes! ----fiddlers and
  • painters judging by their eyes and ears--admirable! --trusting to the
  • passions excited--in an air sung, or a story painted to the
  • heart----instead of measuring them by a quadrant.
  • In the fore-ground of this picture, a _statesman_ turning the political
  • wheel, like a brute, the wrong way round----_against_ the stream of
  • corruption--by Heaven! ----instead of _with_ it.
  • In this corner, a son of the divine _Esculapius_, writing a book against
  • predestination; perhaps worse--feeling his patient’s pulse, instead of
  • his apothecary’s----a brother of the Faculty in the back-ground upon his
  • knees in tears--drawing the curtains of a mangled victim to beg his
  • forgiveness; --offering a fee--instead of taking one.
  • In that spacious HALL, a coalition of the gown, from all the bars of it,
  • driving a damn’d, dirty, vexatious cause before them, with all their
  • might and main, the wrong way! ----kicking it _out_ of the great doors,
  • instead of _in_----and with such fury in their looks, and such a degree
  • of inveteracy in their manner of kicking it, as if the laws had been
  • originally made for the peace and preservation of mankind: ----perhaps a
  • more enormous mistake committed by them still------a litigated point
  • fairly hung up; ------for instance, Whether _John o’Nokes_ his nose
  • could stand in _Tom o’Stiles_ his face, without a trespass, or
  • not--rashly determined by them in five-and-twenty minutes, which, with
  • the cautious pros and cons required in so intricate a proceeding, might
  • have taken up as many months----and if carried on upon a military plan,
  • as your honours know an ACTION should be, with all the stratagems
  • practicable therein, ------such as feints, ----forced marches,
  • ----surprizes----ambuscades----mask-batteries, and a thousand other
  • strokes of generalship, which consist in catching at all advantages on
  • both sides------might reasonably have lasted them as many years, finding
  • food and raiment all that term for a centumvirate of the profession.
  • As for the Clergy ------No----if I say a word against them, I’ll be shot.
  • ----I have no desire; --and besides, if I had --I durst not for my soul
  • touch upon the subject----with such weak nerves and spirits, and in the
  • condition I am in at present, ’twould be as much as my life was worth,
  • to deject and contrist myself with so bad and melancholy an account--and
  • therefore ’tis safer to draw a curtain across, and hasten from it, as
  • fast as I can, to the main and principal point I have undertaken to
  • clear up----and that is, How it comes to pass, that your men of least
  • _wit_ are reported to be men of most judgment. ----But mark --I say,
  • _reported to be_--for it is no more, my dear Sirs, than a report, and
  • which, like twenty others taken up every day upon trust, I maintain to
  • be a vile and a malicious report into the bargain.
  • This by the help of the observation already premised, and I hope already
  • weighed and perpended by your reverences and worships, I shall forthwith
  • make appear.
  • I hate set dissertations----and above all things in the world, ’tis one
  • of the silliest things in one of them, to darken your hypothesis by
  • placing a number of tall, opake words, one before another, in a right
  • line, betwixt your own and your reader’s conception--when in all
  • likelihood, if you had looked about, you might have seen something
  • standing, or hanging up, which would have cleared the point at once--
  • “for what hindrance, hurt, or harm doth the laudable desire of knowledge
  • bring to any man, if even from a sot, a pot, a fool, a stool,
  • a winter-mittain, a truckle for a pully, the lid of a goldsmith’s
  • crucible, an oil bottle, an old slipper, or a cane chair?” --I am this
  • moment sitting upon one. Will you give me leave to illustrate this
  • affair of wit and judgment, by the two knobs on the top of the back of
  • it? --they are fastened on, you see, with two pegs stuck slightly into
  • two gimlet-holes, and will place what I have to say in so clear a light,
  • as to let you see through the drift and meaning of my whole preface, as
  • plainly as if every point and particle of it was made up of sun-beams.
  • I enter now directly upon the point.
  • --Here stands _wit_--and there stands _judgment_, close beside it, just
  • like the two knobs I’m speaking of, upon the back of this self-same
  • chair on which I am sitting.
  • --You see, they are the highest and most ornamental parts of its
  • _frame_--as wit and judgment are of _ours_--and like them too,
  • indubitably both made and fitted to go together, in order, as we say in
  • all such cases of duplicated embellishments--------_to answer one
  • another_.
  • Now for the sake of an experiment, and for the clearer illustrating this
  • matter--let us for a moment take off one of these two curious ornaments
  • (I care not which) from the point or pinnacle of the chair it now stands
  • on--nay, don’t laugh at it, --but did you ever see, in the whole course
  • of your lives, such a ridiculous business as this has made of it? --Why,
  • ’tis as miserable a sight as a sow with one ear; and there is just as
  • much sense and symmetry in the one as in the other: ----do----pray, get
  • off your seats only to take a view of it. ----Now would any man who
  • valued his character a straw, have turned a piece of work out of his
  • hand in such a condition? --nay, lay your hands upon your hearts, and
  • answer this plain question, Whether this one single knob, which now
  • stands here like a blockhead by itself, can serve any purpose upon
  • earth, but to put one in mind of the want of the other? --and let me
  • farther ask, in case the chair was your own, if you would not in your
  • consciences think, rather than be as it is, that it would be ten times
  • better without any knob at all?
  • Now these two knobs------or top ornaments of the mind of man, which
  • crown the whole entablature----being, as I said, wit and judgment, which
  • of all others, as I have proved it, are the most needful----the most
  • priz’d--the most calamitous to be without, and consequently the hardest
  • to come at--for all these reasons put together, there is not a mortal
  • among us, so destitute of a love of good fame or feeding----or so
  • ignorant of what will do him good therein--who does not wish and
  • stedfastly resolve in his own mind, to be, or to be thought at least,
  • master of the one or the other, and indeed of both of them, if the thing
  • seems any way feasible, or likely to be brought to pass.
  • Now your graver gentry having little or no kind of chance in aiming at
  • the one--unless they laid hold of the other, ----pray what do you think
  • would become of them? ----Why, Sirs, in spite of all their _gravities_,
  • they must e’en have been contented to have gone with their insides
  • naked----this was not to be borne, but by an effort of philosophy not to
  • be supposed in the case we are upon----so that no one could well have
  • been angry with them, had they been satisfied with what little they
  • could have snatched up and secreted under their cloaks and great
  • perriwigs, had they not raised a _hue_ and _cry_ at the same time
  • against the lawful owners.
  • I need not tell your worships, that this was done with so much cunning
  • and artifice----that the great _Locke_, who was seldom outwitted by
  • false sounds------was nevertheless bubbled here. The cry, it seems, was
  • so deep and solemn a one, and what with the help of great wigs, grave
  • faces, and other implements of deceit, was rendered so general a one
  • against the _poor wits_ in this matter, that the philosopher himself was
  • deceived by it--it was his glory to free the world from the lumber of a
  • thousand vulgar errors; ----but this was not of the number; so that
  • instead of sitting down coolly, as such a philosopher should have done,
  • to have examined the matter of fact before he philosophised upon
  • it----on the contrary he took the fact for granted, and so joined in
  • with the cry, and halloo’d it as boisterously as the rest.
  • This has been made the _Magna Charta_ of stupidity ever since----but
  • your reverences plainly see, it has been obtained in such a manner, that
  • the title to it is not worth a groat: ----which by the bye is one of the
  • many and vile impositions which gravity and grave folks have to answer
  • for hereafter.
  • As for great wigs, upon which I may be thought to have spoken my mind
  • too freely ------I beg leave to qualify whatever has been unguardedly
  • said to their dispraise or prejudice, by one general declaration ----That
  • I have no abhorrence whatever, nor do I detest and abjure either great
  • wigs or long beards, any farther than when I see they are bespoke and
  • let grow on purpose to carry on this self-same imposture--for any
  • purpose----peace be with them! --[-->] mark only ----I write not for
  • them.
  • CHAPTER XXI
  • Every day for at least ten years together did my father resolve to have
  • it mended--’tis not mended yet; --no family but ours would have borne
  • with it an hour----and what is most astonishing, there was not a subject
  • in the world upon which my father was so eloquent, as upon that of
  • door-hinges. ----And yet at the same time, he was certainly one of the
  • greatest bubbles to them, I think, that history can produce: his
  • rhetorick and conduct were at perpetual handy-cuffs. --Never did the
  • parlour-door open--but his philosophy or his principles fell a victim to
  • it; ----three drops of oil with a feather, and a smart stroke of a
  • hammer, had saved his honour for ever.
  • ----Inconsistent soul that man is! ----languishing under wounds, which
  • he has the power to heal! --his whole life a contradiction to his
  • knowledge! --his reason, that precious gift of God to him--(instead of
  • pouring in oil) serving but to sharpen his sensibilities--to multiply
  • his pains, and render him more melancholy and uneasy under them --Poor
  • unhappy creature, that he should do so! ----Are not the necessary causes
  • of misery in this life enow, but he must add voluntary ones to his stock
  • of sorrow; --struggle against evils which cannot be avoided, and submit
  • to others, which a tenth part of the trouble they create him would
  • remove from his heart for ever?
  • By all that is good and virtuous, if there are three drops of oil to be
  • got, and a hammer to be found within ten miles of _Shandy Hall_------the
  • parlour door hinge shall be mended this reign.
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • When Corporal _Trim_ had brought his two mortars to bear, he was
  • delighted with his handy-work above measure; and knowing what a pleasure
  • it would be to his master to see them, he was not able to resist the
  • desire he had of carrying them directly into his parlour.
  • Now next to the moral lesson I had in view in mentioning the affair of
  • _hinges_, I had a speculative consideration arising out of it, and it is
  • this.
  • Had the parlour door opened and turn’d upon its hinges, as a door should
  • do--
  • Or for example, as cleverly as our government has been turning upon its
  • hinges----(that is, in case things have all along gone well with your
  • worship, --otherwise I give up my simile)--in this case, I say, there
  • had been no danger either to master or man, in Corporal _Trim’s_ peeping
  • in: the moment he had beheld my father and my uncle _Toby_ fast
  • asleep--the respectfulness of his carriage was such, he would have
  • retired as silent as death, and left them both in their arm-chairs,
  • dreaming as happy as he had found them: but the thing was, morally
  • speaking, so very impracticable, that for the many years in which this
  • hinge was suffered to be out of order, and amongst the hourly grievances
  • my father submitted to upon its account--this was one; that he never
  • folded his arms to take his nap after dinner, but the thoughts of being
  • unavoidably awakened by the first person who should open the door, was
  • always uppermost in his imagination, and so incessantly stepp’d in
  • betwixt him and the first balmy presage of his repose, as to rob him, as
  • he often declared, of the whole sweets of it.
  • “_When things move upon bad hinges_, an’ please your lordships, _how can
  • it be otherwise?_”
  • Pray what’s the matter? Who is there? cried my father, waking, the
  • moment the door began to creak. ----I wish the smith would give a peep
  • at that confounded hinge. ----’Tis nothing, an’ please your honour, said
  • _Trim_, but two mortars I am bringing in. --They shan’t make a clatter
  • with them here, cried my father hastily. --If Dr. _Slop_ has any drugs
  • to pound, let him do it in the kitchen. --May it please your honour,
  • cried _Trim_, they are two mortar-pieces for a siege next summer, which
  • I have been making out of a pair of jack-boots, which _Obadiah_ told me
  • your honour had left off wearing. --By Heaven! cried my father,
  • springing out of his chair, as he swore ----I have not one appointment
  • belonging to me, which I set so much store by as I do by these
  • jack-boots----they were our great grandfather’s, brother _Toby_--they
  • were _hereditary_. Then I fear, quoth my uncle _Toby_, _Trim_ has cut
  • off the entail. --I have only cut off the tops, an’ please your honour,
  • cried _Trim_ ----I hate _perpetuities_ as much as any man alive, cried my
  • father----but these jack-boots, continued he (smiling, though very angry
  • at the same time) have been in the family, brother, ever since the civil
  • wars; ----Sir _Roger Shandy_ wore them at the battle of _Marston-Moor_.
  • --I declare I would not have taken ten pounds for them. ----I’ll pay you
  • the money, brother _Shandy_, quoth my uncle _Toby_, looking at the two
  • mortars with infinite pleasure, and putting his hand into his breeches
  • pocket as he viewed them ----I’ll pay you the ten pounds this moment
  • with all my heart and soul.----
  • Brother _Toby_, replied my father, altering his tone, you care not what
  • money you dissipate and throw away, provided, continued he, ’tis but
  • upon a SIEGE. ----Have I not one hundred and twenty pounds a year,
  • besides my half pay? cried my uncle _Toby_. --What is that--replied my
  • father hastily--to ten pounds for a pair of jack-boots? --twelve guineas
  • for your _pontoons?_ --half as much for your _Dutch_ draw-bridge? --to
  • say nothing of the train of little brass artillery you bespoke last
  • week, with twenty other preparations for the siege of _Messina_: believe
  • me, dear brother _Toby_, continued my father, taking him kindly by the
  • hand--these military operations of yours are above your strength; --you
  • mean well, brother----but they carry you into greater expences than you
  • were first aware of; --and take my word, dear _Toby_, they will in the
  • end quite ruin your fortune, and make a beggar of you. --What signifies
  • it if they do, brother, replied my uncle _Toby_, so long as we know ’tis
  • for the good of the nation?----
  • My father could not help smiling for his soul--his anger at the worst
  • was never more than a spark; --and the zeal and simplicity of
  • _Trim_--and the generous (though hobby-horsical) gallantry of my uncle
  • _Toby_, brought him into perfect good humour with them in an instant.
  • Generous souls! --God prosper you both, and your mortar-pieces too!
  • quoth my father to himself.
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • All is quiet and hush, cried my father, at least above stairs --I hear
  • not one foot stirring. --Prithee, _Trim_, who’s in the kitchen? There is
  • no one soul in the kitchen, answered _Trim_, making a low bow as he
  • spoke, except Dr. _Slop_. --Confusion! cried my father (getting up upon
  • his legs a second time)--not one single thing was gone right this day!
  • had I faith in astrology, brother (which, by the bye, my father had),
  • I would have sworn some retrograde planet was hanging over this
  • unfortunate house of mine, and turning every individual thing in it out
  • of its place. ----Why, I thought Dr. _Slop_ had been above stairs with
  • my wife, and so said you. ----What can the fellow be puzzling about in
  • the kitchen! --He is busy, an’ please your honour, replied _Trim_, in
  • making a bridge. ----’Tis very obliging in him, quoth my uncle _Toby_:
  • ------pray, give my humble service to Dr. _Slop_, _Trim_, and tell him I
  • thank him heartily.
  • You must know, my uncle _Toby_ mistook the bridge--as widely as my
  • father mistook the mortars; ----but to understand how my uncle _Toby_
  • could mistake the bridge --I fear I must give you an exact account of
  • the road which led to it; --or to drop my metaphor (for there is nothing
  • more dishonest in an historian than the use of one)----in order to
  • conceive the probability of this error in my uncle _Toby_ aright, I must
  • give you some account of an adventure of _Trim’s_, though much against
  • my will, I say much against my will, only because the story, in one
  • sense, is certainly out of its place here; for by right it should come
  • in, either amongst the anecdotes of my uncle _Toby’s_ amours with widow
  • _Wadman_, in which corporal _Trim_ was no mean actor--or else in the
  • middle of his and my uncle _Toby’s_ campaigns on the bowling-green--for
  • it will do very well in either place; --but then if I reserve it for
  • either of those parts of my story ----I ruin the story I’m upon; ----and
  • if I tell it here --I anticipate matters, and ruin it there.
  • --What would your worships have me to do in this case?
  • --Tell it, Mr. _Shandy_, by all means. --You are a fool, _Tristram_, if
  • you do.
  • O ye powers! (for powers ye are, and great ones too)--which enable
  • mortal man to tell a story worth the hearing------that kindly shew him,
  • where he is to begin it--and where he is to end it----what he is to put
  • into it----and what he is to leave out--how much of it he is to cast
  • into a shade--and whereabouts he is to throw his light! --Ye, who
  • preside over this vast empire of biographical freebooters, and see how
  • many scrapes and plunges your subjects hourly fall into; ----will you do
  • one thing?
  • I beg and beseech you (in case you will do nothing better for us) that
  • wherever in any part of your dominions it so falls out, that three
  • several roads meet in one point, as they have done just here----that at
  • least you set up a guide-post in the centre of them, in mere charity, to
  • direct an uncertain devil which of the three he is to take.
  • CHAPTER XXIV
  • Tho’ the shock my uncle _Toby_ received the year after the demolition of
  • _Dunkirk_, in his affair with widow _Wadman_, had fixed him in a
  • resolution never more to think of the sex--or of aught which belonged to
  • it; --yet corporal _Trim_ had made no such bargain with himself. Indeed
  • in my uncle _Toby’s_ case there was a strange and unaccountable
  • concurrence of circumstances, which insensibly drew him in, to lay siege
  • to that fair and strong citadel. ----In _Trim’s_ case there was a
  • concurrence of nothing in the world, but of him and _Bridget_ in the
  • kitchen; --though in truth, the love and veneration he bore his master
  • was such, and so fond was he of imitating him in all he did, that had my
  • uncle _Toby_ employed his time and genius in tagging of points ----I am
  • persuaded the honest corporal would have laid down his arms, and
  • followed his example with pleasure. When therefore my uncle _Toby_ sat
  • down before the mistress--corporal _Trim_ incontinently took ground
  • before the maid.
  • Now, my dear friend _Garrick_, whom I have so much cause to esteem and
  • honour--(why, or wherefore, ’tis no matter)--can it escape your
  • penetration --I defy it--that so many playwrights, and opificers of
  • chit-chat have ever since been working upon _Trim’s_ and my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ pattern. ----I care not what _Aristotle_, or _Pacuvius_, or
  • _Bossu_, or _Ricaboni_ say--(though I never read one of them)----there
  • is not a greater difference between a single-horse chair and madam
  • _Pompadour’s_ _vis-à-vis_; than betwixt a single amour, and an amour
  • thus nobly doubled, and going upon all four, prancing throughout a grand
  • drama ----Sir, a simple, single, silly affair of that kind--is quite
  • lost in five acts; --but that is neither here nor there.
  • After a series of attacks and repulses in a course of nine months on my
  • uncle _Toby’s_ quarter, a most minute account of every particular of
  • which shall be given in its proper place, my uncle _Toby_, honest man!
  • found it necessary to draw off his forces and raise the siege somewhat
  • indignantly.
  • Corporal _Trim_, as I said, had made no such bargain either with
  • himself----or with any one else----the fidelity however of his heart not
  • suffering him to go into a house which his master had forsaken with
  • disgust----he contented himself with turning his part of the siege into
  • a blockade; --that is, he kept others off; --for though he never after
  • went to the house, yet he never met _Bridget_ in the village, but he
  • would either nod or wink, or smile, or look kindly at her--or
  • (as circumstances directed) he would shake her by the hand--or ask her
  • lovingly how she did--or would give her a ribbon--and now-and-then,
  • though never but when it could be done with decorum, would give
  • _Bridget_ a--
  • Precisely in this situation, did these things stand for five years; that
  • is, from the demolition of _Dunkirk_ in the year 13, to the latter end
  • of my uncle _Toby’s_ campaign in the year 18, which was about six or
  • seven weeks before the time I’m speaking of. ----When _Trim_, as his
  • custom was, after he had put my uncle _Toby_ to bed, going down one
  • moonshiny night to see that everything was right at his
  • fortifications----in the lane separated from the bowling-green with
  • flowering shrubs and holly--he espied his _Bridget_.
  • As the corporal thought there was nothing in the world so well worth
  • shewing as the glorious works which he and my uncle _Toby_ had made,
  • _Trim_ courteously and gallantly took her by the hand, and led her in:
  • this was not done so privately, but that the foul-mouth’d trumpet of
  • Fame carried it from ear to ear, till at length it reach’d my father’s,
  • with this untoward circumstance along with it, that my uncle _Toby’s_
  • curious drawbridge, constructed and painted after the _Dutch_ fashion,
  • and which went quite across the ditch--was broke down, and somehow or
  • other crushed all to pieces that very night.
  • My father, as you have observed, had no great esteem for my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ hobby-horse, he thought it the most ridiculous horse that ever
  • gentleman mounted; and indeed unless my uncle _Toby_ vexed him about it,
  • could never think of it once, without smiling at it----so that it could
  • never get lame or happen any mischance, but it tickled my father’s
  • imagination beyond measure; but this being an accident much more to his
  • humour than any one which had yet befall’n it, it proved an
  • inexhaustible fund of entertainment to him. ----Well----but dear _Toby!_
  • my father would say, do tell me seriously how this affair of the bridge
  • happened. ----How can you tease me so much about it? my uncle _Toby_
  • would reply --I have told it you twenty times, word for word as _Trim_
  • told it me. --Prithee, how was it then, corporal? my father would cry,
  • turning to _Trim_. --It was a mere misfortune, an’ please your honour;
  • ----I was shewing Mrs. _Bridget_ our fortifications, and in going too
  • near the edge of the fosse, I unfortunately slipp’d in ----Very well,
  • _Trim!_ my father would cry----(smiling mysteriously, and giving a
  • nod--but without interrupting him)----and being link’d fast, an’ please
  • your honour, arm in arm with Mrs. _Bridget_, I dragg’d her after me, by
  • means of which she fell backwards soss against the bridge----and
  • _Trim’s_ foot (my uncle _Toby_ would cry, taking the story out of his
  • mouth) getting into the cuvette, he tumbled full against the bridge too.
  • --It was a thousand to one, my uncle _Toby_ would add, that the poor
  • fellow did not break his leg. ------Ay truly, my father would say----
  • a limb is soon broke, brother _Toby_, in such encounters. ----And so,
  • an’ please your honour, the bridge, which your honour knows was a very
  • slight one, was broke down betwixt us, and splintered all to pieces.
  • At other times, but especially when my uncle _Toby_ was so unfortunate
  • as to say a syllable about cannons, bombs, or petards--my father would
  • exhaust all the stores of his eloquence (which indeed were very great)
  • in a panegyric upon the BATTERING-RAMS of the ancients--the VINEA which
  • _Alexander_ made use of at the siege of _Troy_. --He would tell my uncle
  • _Toby_ of the CATAPULTÆ of the _Syrians_, which threw such monstrous
  • stones so many hundred feet, and shook the strongest bulwarks from their
  • very foundation: --he would go on and describe the wonderful mechanism
  • of the BALLISTA which _Marcellinus_ makes so much rout about! --the
  • terrible effects of the PYROBOLI, which cast fire; ----the danger of the
  • TEREBRA and SCORPIO, which cast javelins. ----But what are these, would
  • he say, to the destructive machinery of corporal _Trim?_ ----Believe me,
  • brother _Toby_, no bridge, or bastion, or sally-port, that ever was
  • constructed in this world, can hold out against such artillery.
  • My uncle _Toby_ would never attempt any defence against the force of
  • this ridicule, but that of redoubling the vehemence of smoaking his
  • pipe; in doing which, he raised so dense a vapour one night after
  • supper, that it set my father, who was a little phthisical, into a
  • suffocating fit of violent coughing: my uncle _Toby_ leap’d up without
  • feeling the pain upon his groin--and, with infinite pity, stood beside
  • his brother’s chair, tapping his back with one hand, and holding his
  • head with the other, and from time to time wiping his eyes with a clean
  • cambrick handkerchief, which he pulled out of his pocket. ----The
  • affectionate and endearing manner in which my uncle _Toby_ did these
  • little offices--cut my father thro’ his reins, for the pain he had just
  • been giving him. ----May my brains be knock’d out with a battering-ram
  • or a catapulta, I care not which, quoth my father to himself--if ever I
  • insult this worthy soul more!
  • CHAPTER XXV
  • The draw-bridge being held irreparable, _Trim_ was ordered directly to
  • set about another------but not upon the same model: for cardinal
  • _Alberoni’s_ intrigues at that time being discovered, and my uncle
  • _Toby_ rightly foreseeing that a flame would inevitably break out
  • betwixt _Spain_ and the Empire, and that the operations of the ensuing
  • campaign must in all likelihood be either in _Naples_ or _Sicily_----he
  • determined upon an _Italian_ bridge--(my uncle _Toby_, by the bye, was
  • not far out of his conjectures)----but my father, who was infinitely the
  • better politician, and took the lead as far of my uncle _Toby_ in the
  • cabinet, as my uncle _Toby_ took it of him in the field------convinced
  • him, that if the king of _Spain_ and the Emperor went together by the
  • ears, _England_ and _France_ and _Holland_ must, by force of their
  • pre-engagements, all enter the lists too; ----and if so, he would say,
  • the combatants, brother _Toby_, as sure as we are alive, will fall to it
  • again, pell-mell, upon the old prizefighting stage of _Flanders_; --then
  • what will you do with your _Italian_ bridge?
  • --We will go on with it then upon the old model, cried my uncle _Toby_.
  • When Corporal _Trim_ had about half finished it in that style----my
  • uncle _Toby_ found out a capital defect in it, which he had never
  • thoroughly considered before. It turned, it seems, upon hinges at both
  • ends of it, opening in the middle, one half of which turning to one side
  • of the fosse, and the other to the other; the advantage of which was
  • this, that by dividing the weight of the bridge into two equal portions,
  • it impowered my uncle _Toby_ to raise it up or let it down with the end
  • of his crutch, and with one hand, which, as his garrison was weak, was
  • as much as he could well spare--but the disadvantages of such a
  • construction were insurmountable; ----for by this means, he would say,
  • I leave one half of my bridge in my enemy’s possession----and pray of
  • what use is the other?
  • The natural remedy for this was, no doubt, to have his bridge fast only
  • at one end with hinges, so that the whole might be lifted up together,
  • and stand bolt upright------but that was rejected for the reason given
  • above.
  • For a whole week after he was determined in his mind to have one of that
  • particular construction which is made to draw back horizontally, to
  • hinder a passage; and to thrust forwards again to gain a passage--of
  • which sorts your worship might have seen three famous ones at _Spires_
  • before its destruction--and one now at _Brisac_, if I mistake not; --but
  • my father advising my uncle _Toby_, with great earnestness, to have
  • nothing more to do with thrusting bridges--and my uncle foreseeing
  • moreover that it would but perpetuate the memory of the Corporal’s
  • misfortune--he changed his mind for that of the marquis _d’Hôpital’s_
  • invention, which the younger _Bernouilli_ has so well and learnedly
  • described, as your worships may see------_Act. Erud. Lips._ an. 1695--to
  • these a lead weight is an eternal balance, and keeps watch as well as a
  • couple of centinels, inasmuch as the construction of them was a curve
  • line approximating to a cycloid------if not a cycloid itself.
  • My uncle _Toby_ understood the nature of a parabola as well as any man
  • in _England_--but was not quite such a master of the cycloid; ----he
  • talked however about it every day----the bridge went not forwards.
  • ----We’ll ask somebody about it, cried my uncle _Toby_ to _Trim_.
  • CHAPTER XXVI
  • When _Trim_ came in and told my father, that Dr. _Slop_ was in the
  • kitchen, and busy in making a bridge--my uncle _Toby_----the affair of
  • the jack-boots having just then raised a train of military ideas in his
  • brain----took it instantly for granted that Dr. _Slop_ was making a
  • model of the marquis _d’Hôpital’s_ bridge. ----’Tis very obliging in
  • him, quoth my uncle _Toby_; --pray give my humble service to Dr. _Slop_,
  • _Trim_, and tell him I thank him heartily.
  • Had my uncle _Toby’s_ head been a _Savoyard’s_ box, and my father
  • peeping in all the time at one end of it----it could not have given him
  • a more distinct conception of the operations of my uncle _Toby’s_
  • imagination, than what he had; so, notwithstanding the catapulta and
  • battering-ram, and his bitter imprecation about them, he was just
  • beginning to triumph----
  • When _Trim’s_ answer, in an instant, tore the laurel from his brows, and
  • twisted it to pieces.
  • CHAPTER XXVII
  • ----This unfortunate draw-bridge of yours, quoth my father ----God bless
  • your honour, cried _Trim_, ’tis a bridge for master’s nose. ----In
  • bringing him into the world with his vile instruments, he has crushed
  • his nose, _Susannah_ says, as flat as a pancake to his face, and he is
  • making a false bridge with a piece of cotton and a thin piece of
  • whalebone out of _Susannah’s_ stays, to raise it up.
  • ----Lead me, brother _Toby_, cried my father, to my room this instant.
  • CHAPTER XXVIII
  • From the first moment I sat down to write my life for the amusement of
  • the world, and my opinions for its instruction, has a cloud insensibly
  • been gathering over my father. ----A tide of little evils and distresses
  • has been setting in against him. --Not one thing, as he observed
  • himself, has gone right: and now is the storm thicken’d and going to
  • break, and pour down full upon his head.
  • I enter upon this part of my story in the most pensive and melancholy
  • frame of mind that ever sympathetic breast was touched with. ----My
  • nerves relax as I tell it. ----Every line I write, I feel an abatement
  • of the quickness of my pulse, and of that careless alacrity with it,
  • which every day of my life prompts me to say and write a thousand things
  • I should not. ----And this moment that I last dipp’d my pen into my ink,
  • I could not help taking notice what a cautious air of sad composure and
  • solemnity there appear’d in my manner of doing it. ----Lord! how
  • different from the rash jerks and hair-brain’d squirts thou art wont,
  • _Tristram_, to transact it with in other humours--dropping thy
  • pen----spurting thy ink about thy table and thy books--as if thy pen and
  • thy ink, thy books and furniture cost thee nothing!
  • CHAPTER XXIX
  • ----I won’t go about to argue the point with you--’tis so----and I am
  • persuaded of it, madam, as much as can be, “That both man and woman bear
  • pain or sorrow (and, for aught I know, pleasure too) best in a
  • horizontal position.”
  • The moment my father got up into his chamber, he threw himself prostrate
  • across the bed in the wildest disorder imaginable, but at the same time
  • in the most lamentable attitude of a man borne down with sorrows, that
  • ever the eye of pity dropp’d a tear for. ----The palm of his right hand,
  • as he fell upon the bed, receiving his forehead, and covering the
  • greatest part of both his eyes, gently sunk down with his head (his
  • elbow giving way backwards) till his nose touch’d the quilt; ----his
  • left arm hung insensible over the side of the bed, his knuckles
  • reclining upon the handle of the chamber-pot, which peep’d out beyond
  • the valance--his right leg (his left being drawn up towards his body)
  • hung half over the side of the bed, the edge of it pressing upon his
  • shin-bone --He felt it not. A fix’d, inflexible sorrow took possession of
  • every line of his face. --He sigh’d once----heaved his breast often--but
  • uttered not a word.
  • An old set-stitch’d chair, valanced and fringed around with
  • party-coloured worsted bobs, stood at the bed’s head, opposite to the
  • side where my father’s head reclined. --My uncle _Toby_ sat him down in
  • it.
  • Before an affliction is digested--consolation ever comes too soon; --and
  • after it is digested--it comes too late: so that you see, madam, there
  • is but a mark between these two, as fine almost as a hair, for a
  • comforter to take aim at: my uncle _Toby_ was always either on this
  • side, or on that of it, and would often say, he believed in his heart he
  • could as soon hit the longitude; for this reason, when he sat down in
  • the chair, he drew the curtain a little forwards, and having a tear at
  • every one’s service----he pull’d out a cambrick handkerchief----gave a
  • low sigh----but held his peace.
  • CHAPTER XXX
  • ----“_All is not gain that is got into the purse._” --So that
  • notwithstanding my father had the happiness of reading the oddest books
  • in the universe, and had moreover, in himself, the oddest way of
  • thinking that ever man in it was bless’d with, yet it had this drawback
  • upon him after all------that it laid him open to some of the oddest and
  • most whimsical distresses; of which this particular one, which he sunk
  • under at present, is as strong an example as can be given.
  • No doubt, the breaking down of the bridge of a child’s nose, by the edge
  • of a pair of forceps--however scientifically applied--would vex any man
  • in the world, who was at so much pains in begetting a child, as my
  • father was--yet it will not account for the extravagance of his
  • affliction, nor will it justify the unchristian manner he abandoned and
  • surrendered him self up to.
  • To explain this, I must leave him upon the bed for half an hour--and my
  • uncle _Toby_ in his old fringed chair sitting beside him.
  • CHAPTER XXXI
  • ----I think it a very unreasonable demand--cried my great-grandfather,
  • twisting up the paper, and throwing it upon the table. ----By this
  • account, madam, you have but two thousand pounds fortune, and not a
  • shilling more--and you insist upon having three hundred pounds a year
  • jointure for it.------
  • --“Because,” replied my great-grandmother, “you have little or no nose,
  • Sir.”--
  • Now before I venture to make use of the word _Nose_ a second time--to
  • avoid all confusion in what will be said upon it, in this interesting
  • part of my story, it may not be amiss to explain my own meaning, and
  • define, with all possible exactness and precision, what I would
  • willingly be understood to mean by the term: being of opinion, that ’tis
  • owing to the negligence and perverseness of writers in despising this
  • precaution, and to nothing else----that all the polemical writings in
  • divinity are not as clear and demonstrative as those upon _a Will o’ the
  • Wisp_, or any other sound part of philosophy, and natural pursuit; in
  • order to which, what have you to do, before you set out, unless you
  • intend to go puzzling on to the day of judgment----but to give the world
  • a good definition, and stand to it, of the main word you have most
  • occasion for----changing it, Sir, as you would a guinea, into small
  • coin? --which done--let the father of confusion puzzle you, if he can;
  • or put a different idea either into your head, or your reader’s head, if
  • he knows how.
  • In books of strict morality and close reasoning, such as this I am
  • engaged in--the neglect is inexcusable; and Heaven is witness, how the
  • world has revenged itself upon me for leaving so many openings to
  • equivocal strictures--and for depending so much as I have done, all
  • along, upon the cleanliness of my readers’ imaginations.
  • ----Here are two senses, cried _Eugenius_, as we walk’d along, pointing
  • with the forefinger of his right hand to the word _Crevice_, in the one
  • hundred and seventy-eighth page of the first volume of this book of
  • books; ------here are two senses--quoth he --And here are two roads,
  • replied I, turning short upon him----a dirty and a clean one----which
  • shall we take? --The clean, by all means, replied _Eugenius_.
  • _Eugenius_, said I, stepping before him, and laying my hand upon his
  • breast----to define--is to distrust. ----Thus I triumph’d over
  • _Eugenius_; but I triumph’d over him as I always do, like a fool.
  • ----’Tis my comfort, however, I am not an obstinate one: therefore
  • I define a nose as follows--intreating only beforehand, and beseeching
  • my readers, both male and female, of what age, complexion, and condition
  • soever, for the love of God and their own souls, to guard against the
  • temptations and suggestions of the devil, and suffer him by no art or
  • wile to put any other ideas into their minds, than what I put into my
  • definition --For by the word _Nose_, throughout all this long chapter of
  • noses, and in every other part of my work, where the word _Nose_
  • occurs --I declare, by that word I mean a nose, and nothing more, or
  • less.
  • CHAPTER XXXII
  • ----“Because,” quoth my great-grandmother, repeating the words again--
  • “you have little or no nose, Sir.”------
  • S’death! cried my great-grandfather, clapping his hand upon his nose,
  • --’tis not so small as that comes to; ----’tis a full inch longer than
  • my father’s. --Now, my great-grandfather’s nose was for all the world
  • like unto the noses of all the men, women, and children, whom
  • _Pantagruel_ found dwelling upon the island of ENNASIN. ------By the
  • way, if you would know the strange way of getting a-kin amongst so
  • flat-nosed a people----you must read the book; ----find it out yourself,
  • you never can.----
  • --’Twas shaped, Sir, like an ace of clubs.
  • --’Tis a full inch, continued my grandfather, pressing up the ridge of
  • his nose with his finger and thumb; and repeating his assertion----’tis
  • a full inch longer, madam, than my father’s ----You must mean your
  • uncle’s, replied my great-grandmother.
  • ------My great-grandfather was convinced. --He untwisted the paper, and
  • signed the article.
  • CHAPTER XXXIII
  • ----What an unconscionable jointure, my dear, do we pay out of this
  • small estate of ours, quoth my grandmother to my grandfather.
  • My father, replied my grandfather, had no more nose, my dear, saving the
  • mark, than there is upon the back of my hand.
  • --Now, you must know, that my great-grandmother outlived my grandfather
  • twelve years; so that my father had the jointure to pay, a hundred and
  • fifty pounds half-yearly--(on _Michaelmas_ and _Lady-day_), --during all
  • that time.
  • No man discharged pecuniary obligations with a better grace than my
  • father. ------And as far as a hundred pounds went, he would fling it
  • upon the table, guinea by guinea, with that spirited jerk of an honest
  • welcome, which generous souls, and generous souls only, are able to
  • fling down money: but as soon as ever he enter’d upon the odd fifty--he
  • generally gave a loud _Hem!_ rubb’d the side of his nose leisurely with
  • the flat part of his fore finger----inserted his hand cautiously betwixt
  • his head and the cawl of his wig--look’d at both sides of every guinea
  • as he parted with it----and seldom could get to the end of the fifty
  • pounds, without pulling out his handkerchief, and wiping his temples.
  • Defend me, gracious Heaven! from those persecuting spirits who make no
  • allowances for these workings within us. --Never --O never may I lay
  • down in their tents, who cannot relax the engine, and feel pity for the
  • force of education, and the prevalence of opinions long derived from
  • ancestors!
  • For three generations at least this _tenet_ in favour of long noses had
  • gradually been taking root in our family. ------TRADITION was all along
  • on its side, and INTEREST was every half-year stepping in to strengthen
  • it; so that the whimsicality of my father’s brain was far from having
  • the whole honour of this, as it had of almost all his other strange
  • notions. --For in a great measure he might be said to have suck’d this
  • in with his mother’s milk. He did his part however. ----If education
  • planted the mistake (in case it was one) my father watered it, and
  • ripened it to perfection.
  • He would often declare, in speaking his thoughts upon the subject, that
  • he did not conceive how the greatest family in _England_ could stand it
  • out against an uninterrupted succession of six or seven short noses.
  • --And for the contrary reason, he would generally add, That it must be
  • one of the greatest problems in civil life, where the same number of
  • long and jolly noses, following one another in a direct line, did not
  • raise and hoist it up into the best vacancies in the kingdom. ------He
  • would often boast that the _Shandy_ family rank’d very high in King
  • _Harry_ the VIIIth’s time, but owed its rise to no state engine--he
  • would say--but to that only; ----but that, like other families, he would
  • add----it had felt the turn of the wheel, and had never recovered the
  • blow of my great-grandfather’s nose. ----It was an ace of clubs indeed,
  • he would cry, shaking his head--and as vile a one for an unfortunate
  • family as ever turn’d up trumps.
  • ------Fair and softly, gentle reader! ------where is thy fancy carrying
  • thee? ----If there is truth in man, by my great-grandfather’s nose,
  • I mean the external organ of smelling, or that part of man which stands
  • prominent in his face----and which painters say, in good jolly noses and
  • well-proportioned faces, should comprehend a full third----that is,
  • measured downwards from the setting on of the hair.----
  • ----What a life of it has an author, at this pass!
  • CHAPTER XXXIV
  • It is a singular blessing, that nature has form’d the mind of man with
  • the same happy backwardness and renitency against conviction, which is
  • observed in old dogs-- “of not learning new tricks.”
  • What a shuttlecock of a fellow would the greatest philosopher that ever
  • existed be whisk’d into at once, did he read such books, and observe
  • such facts, and think such thoughts, as would eternally be making him
  • change sides!
  • Now, my father, as I told you last year, detested all this --He pick’d up
  • an opinion, Sir, as a man in a state of nature picks up an apple. --It
  • becomes his own--and if he is a man of spirit, he would lose his life
  • rather than give it up.
  • I am aware that _Didius_, the great civilian, will contest this point;
  • and cry out against me, Whence comes this man’s right to this apple? _ex
  • confesso_, he will say--things were in a state of nature --The apple, as
  • much _Frank’s_ apple as _John’s_. Pray, Mr. _Shandy_, what patent has he
  • to shew for it? and how did it begin to be his? was it, when he set his
  • heart upon it? or when he gathered it? or when he chew’d it? or when he
  • roasted it? or when he peel’d, or when he brought it home? or when he
  • digested? --or when he----? ----For ’tis plain, Sir, if the first
  • picking up of the apple, made it not his--that no subsequent act could.
  • Brother _Didius_, _Tribonius_ will answer--(now _Tribonius_ the civilian
  • and church lawyer’s beard being three inches and a half and three
  • eighths longer than _Didius_ his beard --I’m glad he takes up the cudgels
  • for me, so I give myself no farther trouble about the answer). --Brother
  • _Didius_, _Tribonius_ will say, it is a decreed case, as you may find it
  • in the fragments of _Gregorius_ and _Hermogines’s_ codes, and in all the
  • codes from _Justinian’s_ down to the codes of _Louis_ and _Des
  • Eaux_ --That the sweat of a man’s brows, and the exsudations of a man’s
  • brains, are as much a man’s own property as the breeches upon his
  • backside; --which said exsudations, &c., being dropp’d upon the said
  • apple by the labour of finding it, and picking it up; and being moreover
  • indissolubly wasted, and as indissolubly annex’d, by the picker up, to
  • the thing pick’d up, carried home, roasted, peel’d, eaten, digested, and
  • so on; ----’tis evident that the gatherer of the apple, in so doing, has
  • mix’d up something which was his own, with the apple which was not his
  • own, by which means he has acquired a property; --or, in other words,
  • the apple is _John’s_ apple.
  • By the same learned chain of reasoning my father stood up for all his
  • opinions; he had spared no pains in picking them up, and the more they
  • lay out of the common way, the better still was his title. ----No mortal
  • claimed them; they had cost him moreover as much labour in cooking and
  • digesting as in the case above, so that they might well and truly be
  • said to be of his own goods and chattles. --Accordingly he held fast by
  • ’em, both by teeth and claws--would fly to whatever he could lay his
  • hands on--and, in a word, would intrench and fortify them round with as
  • many circumvallations and breast-works, as my uncle _Toby_ would a
  • citadel.
  • There was one plaguy rub in the way of this----the scarcity of materials
  • to make anything of a defence with, in case of a smart attack; inasmuch
  • as few men of great genius had exercised their parts in writing books
  • upon the subject of great noses: by the trotting of my lean horse, the
  • thing is incredible! and I am quite lost in my understanding, when I am
  • considering what a treasure of precious time and talents together has
  • been wasted upon worse subjects--and how many millions of books in all
  • languages, and in all possible types and bindings, have been fabricated
  • upon points not half so much tending to the unity and peace-making of
  • the world. What was to be had, however, he set the greater store by; and
  • though my father would oft-times sport with my uncle _Toby’s_
  • library--which, by the bye, was ridiculous enough--yet at the very same
  • time he did it, he collected every book and treatise which had been
  • systematically wrote upon noses, with as much care as my honest uncle
  • _Toby_ had done those upon military architecture. ----’Tis true, a much
  • less table would have held them--but that was not thy transgression, my
  • dear uncle.--
  • Here----but why here----rather than in any other part of my story ----I
  • am not able to tell: ------but here it is------my heart stops me to pay
  • to thee, my dear uncle _Toby_, once for all, the tribute I owe thy
  • goodness. ----Here let me thrust my chair aside, and kneel down upon the
  • ground, whilst I am pouring forth the warmest sentiment of love for
  • thee, and veneration for the excellency of thy character, that ever
  • virtue and nature kindled in a nephew’s bosom. ----Peace and comfort
  • rest for evermore upon thy head! --Thou enviedst no man’s
  • comforts----insultedst no man’s opinions ----Thou blackenedst no man’s
  • character--devouredst no man’s bread: gently, with faithful _Trim_
  • behind thee, didst thou amble round the little circle of thy pleasures,
  • jostling no creature in thy way: --for each one’s sorrow thou hadst a
  • tear, --for each man’s need, thou hadst a shilling.
  • Whilst I am worth one, to pay a weeder--thy path from thy door to thy
  • bowling-green shall never be grown up. ----Whilst there is a rood and a
  • half of land in the _Shandy_ family, thy fortifications, my dear uncle
  • _Toby_, shall never be demolish’d.
  • CHAPTER XXXV
  • My father’s collection was not great, but to make amends, it was
  • curious; and consequently he was some time in making it; he had the
  • great good fortune however, to set off well, in getting _Bruscambille’s_
  • prologue upon long noses, almost for nothing--for he gave no more for
  • _Bruscambille_ than three half-crowns; owing indeed to the strong fancy
  • which the stall-man saw my father had for the book the moment he laid
  • his hands upon it. ----There are not three _Bruscambilles_ in
  • _Christendom_--said the stall-man, except what are chain’d up in the
  • libraries of the curious. My father flung down the money as quick as
  • lightning----took _Bruscambille_ into his bosom----hied home from
  • _Piccadilly_ to _Coleman_-street with it, as he would have hied home
  • with a treasure, without taking his hand once off from _Bruscambille_
  • all the way.
  • To those who do not yet know of which gender _Bruscambille_
  • is------inasmuch as a prologue upon long noses might easily be done by
  • either------’twill be no objection against the simile--to say, That when
  • my father got home, he solaced himself with _Bruscambille_ after the
  • manner in which, ’tis ten to one, your worship solaced yourself with
  • your first mistress------that is, from morning even unto night: which,
  • by the bye, how delightful soever it may prove to the inamorato--is of
  • little or no entertainment at all to by-standers. ----Take notice, I go
  • no farther with the simile--my father’s eye was greater than his
  • appetite--his zeal greater than his knowledge--he cool’d--his affections
  • became divided----he got hold of _Prignitz_--purchased _Scroderus_,
  • _Andrea Paræus_, _Bouchet’s_ Evening Conferences, and above all, the
  • great and learned _Hafen Slawkenbergius_; of which, as I shall have much
  • to say by and by --I will say nothing now.
  • CHAPTER XXXVI
  • Of all the tracts my father was at the pains to procure and study in
  • support of his hypothesis, there was not any one wherein he felt a more
  • cruel disappointment at first, than in the celebrated dialogue between
  • _Pamphagus_ and _Cocles_, written by the chaste pen of the great and
  • venerable _Erasmus_, upon the various uses and seasonable applications
  • of long noses. ------Now don’t let Satan, my dear girl, in this chapter,
  • take advantage of any one spot of rising ground to get astride of your
  • imagination, if you can any ways help it; or if he is so nimble as to
  • slip on--let me beg of you, like an unback’d filly, _to frisk it, to
  • squirt it, to jump it, to rear it, to bound it--and to kick it, with
  • long kicks and short kicks_, till, like _Tickletoby’s_ mare, you break
  • a strap or a crupper and throw his worship into the dirt. --You need
  • not kill him.--
  • --And pray who was _Tickletoby’s_ mare? --’tis just as discreditable and
  • unscholarlike a question, Sir, as to have asked what year (_ab. urb.
  • con._) the second Punic war broke out. --Who was _Tickletoby’s_ mare?
  • ----Read, read, read, read, my unlearned reader! read--or by the
  • knowledge of the great saint _Paraleipomenon_ --I tell you before-hand,
  • you had better throw down the book at once; for without _much reading_,
  • by which your reverence knows I mean _much knowledge_, you will no more
  • be able to penetrate the moral of the next marbled page (motly emblem of
  • my work!) than the world with all its sagacity has been able to unravel
  • the many opinions, transactions, and truths which still lie mystically
  • hid under the dark veil of the black one.
  • [Illustration]
  • CHAPTER XXXVII
  • “_Nihil me pœnitet hujus nasi_,” quoth _Pamphagus_; ----that is-- “My
  • nose has been the making of me.” ----------“_Nec est cur pœniteat_,”
  • replies _Cocles_; that is, “How the duce should such a nose fail?”
  • The doctrine, you see, was laid down by _Erasmus_, as my father wished
  • it, with the utmost plainness; but my father’s disappointment was, in
  • finding nothing more from so able a pen, but the bare fact itself;
  • without any of that speculative subtilty or ambidexterity of
  • argumentation upon it, which Heaven had bestow’d upon man on purpose to
  • investigate truth, and fight for her on all sides. ----My father pish’d
  • and pugh’d at first most terribly------’tis worth something to have a
  • good name. As the dialogue was of _Erasmus_, my father soon came to
  • himself, and read it over and over again with great application,
  • studying every word and every syllable of it thro’ and thro’ in its most
  • strict and literal interpretation--he could still make nothing of it,
  • that way. Mayhap there is more meant, than is said in it, quoth my
  • father. ----Learned men, brother _Toby_, don’t write dialogues upon long
  • noses for nothing. ------I’ll study the mystick and the allegorick
  • sense----here is some room to turn a man’s self in, brother.
  • My father read on. ------Now I find it needful to inform your reverences
  • and worships, that besides the many nautical uses of long noses
  • enumerated by _Erasmus_, the dialogist affirmeth that a long nose is not
  • without its domestic conveniencies also; for that in a case of
  • distress--and for want of a pair of bellows, it will do excellently
  • well, _ad ixcitandum focum_ (to stir up the fire).
  • Nature had been prodigal in her gifts to my father beyond measure, and
  • had sown the seeds of verbal criticism as deep within him, as she had
  • done the seeds of all other knowledge------so that he had got out his
  • penknife, and was trying experiments upon the sentence, to see if he
  • could not scratch some better sense into it. ----I’ve got within a
  • single letter, brother _Toby_, cried my father, of _Erasmus_ his mystic
  • meaning. --You are near enough, brother, replied my uncle, in all
  • conscience. ------Pshaw! cried my father, scratching on ----I might as
  • well be seven miles off. --I’ve done it--said my father, snapping his
  • fingers --See, my dear brother _Toby_, how I have mended the sense.
  • ----But you have marr’d a word, replied my uncle _Toby_. ----My father
  • put on his spectacles----bit his lip------and tore out the leaf in a
  • passion.
  • CHAPTER XXXVIII
  • _O Slawkenbergius!_ thou faithful analyzer of my _Disgrazias_--thou sad
  • foreteller of so many of the whips and short turns which in one stage or
  • other of my life have come slap upon me from the shortness of my nose,
  • and no other cause, that I am conscious of. --Tell me, _Slawkenbergius!_
  • what secret impulse was it? what intonation of voice? whence came it?
  • how did it sound in thy ears? ----art thou sure thou heard’st it?
  • ----which first cried out to thee------go------go, _Slawkenbergius!_
  • dedicate the labours of thy life----neglect thy pastimes------call forth
  • all the powers and faculties of thy nature----macerate thyself in the
  • service of mankind, and write a grand FOLIO for them, upon the subject
  • of their noses.
  • How the communication was conveyed into _Slawkenbergius’s_
  • sensorium----so that _Slawkenbergius_ should know whose finger touch’d
  • the key--and whose hand it was that blew the bellows----as _Hafen
  • Slawkenbergius_ has been dead and laid in his grave above fourscore and
  • ten years------we can only raise conjectures.
  • _Slawkenbergius_ was play’d upon, for aught I know, like one of
  • _Whitefield’s_ disciples----that is, with such a distinct intelligence,
  • Sir, of which of the two _masters_ it was that had been practising upon
  • his _instrument_------as to make all reasoning upon it needless.
  • ------For in the account which _Hafen Slawkenbergius_ gives the world of
  • his motives and occasions for writing, and spending so many years of his
  • life upon this one work--towards the end of his prolegomena, which by
  • the bye should have come first----but the bookbinder has most
  • injudiciously placed it betwixt the analytical contents of the book, and
  • the book itself--he informs his reader, that ever since he had arrived
  • at the age of discernment, and was able to sit down coolly, and consider
  • within himself the true state and condition of man, and distinguish the
  • main end and design of his being; ----or--to shorten my translation, for
  • _Slawkenbergius’s_ book is in _Latin_, and not a little prolix in this
  • passage--ever since I understood, quoth _Slawkenbergius_, any
  • thing----or rather _what was what_----and could perceive that the point
  • of long noses had been too loosely handled by all who had gone before;
  • ----have I, _Slawkenbergius_, felt a strong impulse, with a mighty and
  • unresistible call within me, to gird up myself to this undertaking.
  • And to do justice to _Slawkenbergius_, he has entered the list with a
  • stronger lance, and taken a much larger career in it than any one man
  • who had ever entered it before him----and indeed, in many respects,
  • deserves to be _en-nich’d_ as a prototype for all writers, of voluminous
  • works at least, to model their books by----for he has taken in, Sir, the
  • whole subject--examined every part of it _dialectically_------then
  • brought it into full day; dilucidating it with all the light which
  • either the collision of his own natural parts could strike--or the
  • profoundest knowledge of the sciences had impowered him to cast upon
  • it--collating, collecting, and compiling------begging, borrowing, and
  • stealing, as he went along, all that had been wrote or wrangled
  • thereupon in the schools and porticos of the learned: so that
  • _Slawkenbergius_ his book may properly be considered, not only as a
  • model--but as a thorough-stitched DIGEST and regular institute of
  • _noses_, comprehending in it all that is or can be needful to be known
  • about them.
  • For this cause it is that I forbear to speak of so many (otherwise)
  • valuable books and treatises of my father’s collecting, wrote either,
  • plump upon noses----or collaterally touching them; ------such for
  • instance as _Prignitz_, now lying upon the table before me, who with
  • infinite learning, and from the most candid and scholar-like examination
  • of above four thousand different skulls, in upwards of twenty
  • charnel-houses in _Silesia_, which he had rummaged------has informed us,
  • that the mensuration and configuration of the osseous or bony parts of
  • human noses, in any _given_ tract of country, except _Crim Tartary_,
  • where they are all crush’d down by the thumb, so that no judgment can be
  • formed upon them--are much nearer alike, than the world imagines; --the
  • difference amongst them being, he says, a mere trifle, not worth taking
  • notice of; ----but that the size and jollity of every individual nose,
  • and by which one nose ranks above another, and bears a higher price, is
  • owing to the cartilaginous and muscular parts of it, into whose ducts
  • and sinuses the blood and animal spirits being impell’d and driven by
  • the warmth and force of the imagination, which is but a step from it
  • (bating the case of idiots, whom _Prignitz_, who had lived many years in
  • _Turky_, supposes under the more immediate tutelage of Heaven)--it so
  • happens, and ever must, says _Prignitz_, that the excellency of the nose
  • is in a direct arithmetical proportion to the excellency of the wearer’s
  • fancy.
  • It is for the same reason, that is, because ’tis all comprehended in
  • _Slawkenbergius_, that I say nothing likewise of _Scroderus_ (_Andrea_)
  • who, all the world knows, set himself to oppugn _Prignitz_ with great
  • violence--proving it in his own way, first _logically_, and then by a
  • series of stubborn facts, “That so far was _Prignitz_ from the truth, in
  • affirming that the fancy begat the nose, that on the contrary--the nose
  • begat the fancy.”
  • --The learned suspected _Scroderus_ of an indecent sophism in this--and
  • _Prignitz_ cried out aloud in the dispute, that _Scroderus_ had shifted
  • the idea upon him----but _Scroderus_ went on, maintaining his thesis.
  • My father was just balancing within himself, which of the two sides he
  • should take in this affair; when _Ambrose Paræus_ decided it in a
  • moment, and by overthrowing the systems, both of _Prignitz_ and
  • _Scroderus_, drove my father out of both sides of the controversy at
  • once.
  • Be witness------
  • I don’t acquaint the learned reader--in saying it, I mention it only to
  • shew the learned, I know the fact myself------
  • That this _Ambrose Paræus_ was chief surgeon and nose-mender to
  • _Francis_ the ninth of _France_, and in high credit with him and the two
  • preceding, or succeeding kings (I know not which)--and that, except in
  • the slip he made in his story of _Taliacotius’s_ noses, and his manner
  • of setting them on--he was esteemed by the whole college of physicians
  • at that time, as more knowing in matters of noses, than any one who had
  • ever taken them in hand.
  • Now _Ambrose Paræus_ convinced my father, that the true and efficient
  • cause of what had engaged so much the attention of the world, and upon
  • which _Prignitz_ and _Scroderus_ had wasted so much learning and fine
  • parts----was neither this nor that----but that the length and goodness
  • of the nose was owing simply to the softness and flaccidity in the
  • nurse’s breast------as the flatness and shortness of _puisne_ noses was
  • to the firmness and elastic repulsion of the same organ of nutrition in
  • the hale and lively--which, tho’ happy for the woman, was the undoing of
  • the child, inasmuch as his nose was so snubb’d, so rebuff’d, so rebated,
  • and so refrigerated thereby, as never to arrive _ad mensuram suam
  • legitimam_; ----but that in case of the flaccidity and softness of the
  • nurse or mother’s breast--by sinking into it, quoth _Paræus_, as into so
  • much butter, the nose was comforted, nourish’d, plump’d up, refresh’d,
  • refocillated, and set a growing for ever.
  • I have but two things to observe of _Paræus_; first, That he proves and
  • explains all this with the utmost chastity and decorum of expression:
  • --for which may his soul for ever rest in peace!
  • And, secondly, that besides the systems of _Prignitz_ and _Scroderus_,
  • which _Ambrose Paræus_ his hypothesis effectually overthrew--it
  • overthrew at the same time the system of peace and harmony of our
  • family; and for three days together, not only embroiled matters between
  • my father and my mother, but turn’d likewise the whole house and
  • everything in it, except my uncle _Toby_, quite upside down.
  • Such a ridiculous tale of a dispute between a man and his wife, never
  • surely in any age or country got vent through the key-hole of a
  • street-door.
  • My mother, you must know------but I have fifty things more necessary to
  • let you know first ----I have a hundred difficulties which I have
  • promised to clear up, and a thousand distresses and domestick
  • misadventures crowding in upon me thick and threefold, one upon the neck
  • of another. A cow broke in (to-morrow morning) to my uncle _Toby’s_
  • fortifications, and eat up two rations and a half of dried grass,
  • tearing up the sods with it, which faced his horn-work and covered way.
  • ----_Trim_ insists upon being tried by a court-martial--the cow to be
  • shot--_Slop_ to be _crucifix’d_--myself to be _tristram’d_ and at my
  • very baptism made a martyr of; ----poor unhappy devils that we all are!
  • ----I want swaddling------but there is no time to be lost in
  • exclamations ------I have left my father lying across his bed, and my
  • uncle _Toby_ in his old fringed chair, sitting beside him, and promised
  • I would go back to them in half an hour; and five-and-thirty minutes are
  • laps’d already. ------Of all the perplexities a mortal author was ever
  • seen in----this certainly is the greatest, for I have _Hafen
  • Slawkenbergius’s_ folio, Sir, to finish----a dialogue between my father
  • and my uncle _Toby_, upon the solution of _Prignitz_, _Scroderus_,
  • _Ambrose Paræus_, _Ponocrates_, and _Grangousier_ to relate--a tale out
  • of _Slawkenbergius_ to translate, and all this in five minutes less than
  • no time at all; ------such a head! --would to Heaven my enemies only saw
  • the inside of it!
  • CHAPTER XXXIX
  • There was not any one scene more entertaining in our family--and to do
  • it justice in this point; ----and I here put off my cap and lay it upon
  • the table close beside my ink-horn, on purpose to make my declaration to
  • the world concerning this one article the more solemn----that I believe
  • in my soul (unless my love and partiality to my understanding blinds me)
  • the hand of the supreme Maker and first Designer of all things never
  • made or put a family together (in that period at least of it which I
  • have sat down to write the story of)----where the characters of it were
  • cast or contrasted with so dramatick a felicity as ours was, for this
  • end; or in which the capacities of affording such exquisite scenes, and
  • the powers of shifting them perpetually from morning to night, were
  • lodged and intrusted with so unlimited a confidence, as in the SHANDY
  • FAMILY.
  • Not any one of these was more diverting, I say, in this whimsical
  • theatre of ours----than what frequently arose out of this self-same
  • chapter of long noses------especially when my father’s imagination was
  • heated with the enquiry, and nothing would serve him but to heat my
  • uncle _Toby’s_ too.
  • My uncle _Toby_ would give my father all possible fair play in this
  • attempt; and with infinite patience would sit smoaking his pipe for
  • whole hours together, whilst my father was practising upon his head, and
  • trying every accessible avenue to drive _Prignitz_ and _Scroderus’s_
  • solutions into it.
  • Whether they were above my uncle _Toby’s_ reason------or contrary to
  • it------or that his brain was like _damp_ timber, and no spark could
  • possibly take hold----or that it was so full of saps, mines, blinds,
  • curtins, and such military disqualifications to his seeing clearly into
  • _Prignitz_ and _Scroderus’s_ doctrines ----I say not--let
  • schoolmen--scullions, anatomists, and engineers, fight for it among
  • themselves----
  • ’Twas some misfortune, I make no doubt, in this affair, that my father
  • had every word of it to translate for the benefit of my uncle _Toby_,
  • and render out of _Slawkenbergius’s_ _Latin_, of which, as he was no
  • great master, his translation was not always of the purest----and
  • generally least so where ’twas most wanted. --This naturally open’d a
  • door to a second misfortune; ----that in the warmer paroxysms of his
  • zeal to open my uncle _Toby’s_ eyes------my father’s ideas ran on as
  • much faster than the translation, as the translation outmoved my uncle
  • _Toby’s_------ neither the one or the other added much to the
  • perspicuity of my father’s lecture.
  • CHAPTER XL
  • The gift of ratiocination and making syllogisms ----I mean in man--for in
  • superior classes of being, such as angels and spirits----’tis all done,
  • may it please your worships, as they tell me, by INTUITION; --and beings
  • inferior, as your worships all know----syllogize by their noses: though
  • there is an island swimming in the sea (though not altogether at its
  • ease) whose inhabitants, if my intelligence deceives me not, are so
  • wonderfully gifted, as to syllogize after the same fashion, and
  • oft-times to make very well out too: ------but that’s neither here nor
  • there------
  • The gift of doing it as it should be, amongst us, or--the great and
  • principal act of ratiocination in man, as logicians tell us, is the
  • finding out the agreement or disagreement of two ideas one with another,
  • by the intervention of a third (called the _medius terminus_); just as a
  • man, as _Locke_ well observes, by a yard, finds two men’s
  • nine-pin-alleys to be of the same length, which could not be brought
  • together, to measure their equality, by _juxta-position_.
  • Had the same great reasoner looked on, as my father illustrated his
  • systems of noses, and observed my uncle _Toby’s_ deportment--what great
  • attention he gave to every word--and as oft as he took his pipe from his
  • mouth, with what wonderful seriousness he contemplated the length of
  • it----surveying it transversely as he held it betwixt his finger and his
  • thumb------then fore-right------then this way, and then that, in all its
  • possible directions and foreshortenings------he would have concluded my
  • uncle _Toby_ had got hold of the _medius terminus_, and was syllogizing
  • and measuring with it the truth of each hypothesis of long noses, in
  • order, as my father laid them before him. This, by the bye, was more
  • than my father wanted----his aim in all the pains he was at in these
  • philosophick lectures--was to enable my uncle _Toby_ not to
  • _discuss_----but _comprehend_----to _hold_ the grains and scruples of
  • learning----not to _weigh_ them. ----My uncle _Toby_, as you will read
  • in the next chapter, did neither the one or the other.
  • CHAPTER XLI
  • ’Tis a pity, cried my father one winter’s night, after a three hours’
  • painful translation of _Slawkenbergius_----’tis a pity, cried my father,
  • putting my mother’s thread-paper into the book for a mark, as he
  • spoke----that truth, brother _Toby_, should shut herself up in such
  • impregnable fastnesses, and be so obstinate as not to surrender herself
  • sometimes up upon the closest siege.----
  • Now it happened then, as indeed it had often done before, that my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ fancy, during the time of my father’s explanation of _Prignitz_
  • to him------having nothing to stay it there, had taken a short flight to
  • the bowling-green! ------his body might as well have taken a turn there
  • too--so that with all the semblance of a deep school-man intent upon the
  • _medius terminus_------my uncle _Toby_ was in fact as ignorant of the
  • whole lecture, and all its pros and cons, as if my father had been
  • translating _Hafen Slawkenbergius_ from the _Latin_ tongue into the
  • _Cherokee_. But the word _siege_, like a talismanic power, in my
  • father’s metaphor, wafting back my uncle _Toby’s_ fancy, quick as a note
  • could follow the touch--he open’d his ears----and my father observing
  • that he took his pipe out of his mouth, and shuffled his chair nearer
  • the table, as with a desire to profit--my father with great pleasure
  • began his sentence again----changing only the plan, and dropping the
  • metaphor of the siege of it, to keep clear of some dangers my father
  • apprehended from it.
  • ’Tis a pity, said my father, that truth can only be on one side, brother
  • _Toby_------considering what ingenuity these learned men have all shewn
  • in their solutions of noses. ----Can noses be dissolved? replied my
  • uncle _Toby_.
  • ------My father thrust back his chair------rose up--put on his
  • hat------took four long strides to the door------jerked it
  • open----thrust his head half way out----shut the door again----took no
  • notice of the bad hinge----returned to the table--pluck’d my mother’s
  • thread-paper out of _Slawkenbergius’s_ book------went hastily to his
  • bureau--walked slowly back--twisted my mother’s thread-paper about his
  • thumb--unbutton’d his waistcoat--threw my mother’s thread-paper into the
  • fire----bit her sattin pin-cushion in two, fill’d his mouth with
  • bran--confounded it; --but mark! --the oath of confusion was levell’d at
  • my uncle _Toby’s_ brain--which was e’en confused enough already----the
  • curse came charged only with the bran--the bran, may it please your
  • honours, was no more than powder to the ball.
  • ’Twas well my father’s passions lasted not long; for so long as they did
  • last, they led him a busy life on’t; and it is one of the most
  • unaccountable problems that ever I met with in my observations of human
  • nature, that nothing should prove my father’s mettle so much, or make
  • his passions go off so like gunpowder, as the unexpected strokes his
  • science met with from the quaint simplicity of my uncle _Toby’s_
  • questions. ----Had ten dozen of hornets stung him behind in so many
  • different places all at one time--he could not have exerted more
  • mechanical functions in fewer seconds------or started half so much, as
  • with one single _quære_ of three words unseasonably popping in full upon
  • him in his hobby-horsical career.
  • ’Twas all one to my uncle _Toby_------he smoaked his pipe on with
  • unvaried composure----his heart never intended offence to his
  • brother--and as his head could seldom find out where the sting of it
  • lay----he always gave my father the credit of cooling by himself. ----He
  • was five minutes and thirty-five seconds about it in the present case.
  • By all that’s good! said my father, swearing, as he came to himself, and
  • taking the oath out of _Ernulphus’s_ digest of curses----(though to do
  • my father justice it was a fault (as he told Dr. _Slop_ in the affair of
  • _Ernulphus_) which he as seldom committed as any man upon earth) ------By
  • all that’s good and great! brother _Toby_, said my father, if it was not
  • for the aids of philosophy, which befriend one so much as they do--you
  • would put a man beside all temper. ----Why, by the _solutions_ of noses,
  • of which I was telling you, I meant, as you might have known, had you
  • favoured me with one grain of attention, the various accounts which
  • learned men of different kinds of knowledge have given the world of the
  • causes of short and long noses. ----There is no cause but one, replied
  • my uncle _Toby_----why one man’s nose is longer than another’s, but
  • because that God pleases to have it so. ----That is _Grangousier’s_
  • solution, said my father. --’Tis he, continued my uncle _Toby_, looking
  • up, and not regarding my father’s interruption, who makes us all, and
  • frames and puts us together in such forms and proportions, and for such
  • ends, as is agreeable to his infinite wisdom. ----’Tis a pious account,
  • cried my father, but not philosophical----there is more religion in it
  • than sound science. ’Twas no inconsistent part of my uncle _Toby’s_
  • character----that he feared God, and reverenced religion. ----So the
  • moment my father finished his remark----my uncle _Toby_ fell a whistling
  • _Lillabullero_ with more zeal (though more out of tune) than usual.--
  • What is become of my wife’s thread-paper?
  • CHAPTER XLII
  • No matter--as an appendage to seamstressy, the thread-paper might be of
  • some consequence to my mother--of none to my father, as a mark in
  • _Slawkenbergius_. _Slawkenbergius_ in every page of him was a rich
  • treasure of inexhaustible knowledge to my father--he could not open him
  • amiss; and he would often say in closing the book, that if all the arts
  • and sciences in the world, with the books which treated of them, were
  • lost--should the wisdom and policies of governments, he would say,
  • through disuse, ever happen to be forgot, and all that statesmen had
  • wrote or caused to be written, upon the strong or the weak sides of
  • courts and kingdoms, should they be forgot also--and _Slawkenbergius_
  • only left----there would be enough in him in all conscience, he would
  • say, to set the world a-going again. A treasure therefore was he indeed!
  • an institute of all that was necessary to be known of noses, and
  • everything else--at _matin_, noon, and vespers was _Hafen
  • Slawkenbergius_ his recreation and delight: ’twas for ever in his
  • hands----you would have sworn, Sir, it had been a canon’s
  • prayer-book--so worn, so glazed, so contrited and attrited was it with
  • fingers and with thumbs in all its parts, from one end even unto the
  • other.
  • I am not such a bigot to _Slawkenbergius_ as my father; ----there is a
  • fund in him, no doubt: but in my opinion, the best, I don’t say the most
  • profitable, but the most amusing part of _Hafen Slawkenbergius_, is his
  • tales------and, considering he was a _German_, many of them told not
  • without fancy: ------these take up his second book, containing nearly
  • one half of his folio, and are comprehended in ten decads, each decad
  • containing ten tales ------Philosophy is not built upon tales; and
  • therefore ’twas certainly wrong in _Slawkenbergius_ to send them into
  • the world by that name! ----there are a few of them in his eighth,
  • ninth, and tenth decads, which I own seem rather playful and sportive,
  • than speculative--but in general they are to be looked upon by the
  • learned as a detail of so many independent facts, all of them turning
  • round somehow or other upon the main hinges of his subject, and
  • collected by him with great fidelity, and added to his work as so many
  • illustrations upon the doctrines of noses.
  • As we have leisure enough upon our hands----if you give me leave, madam,
  • I’ll tell you the ninth tale of his tenth decad.
  • [Transcriber’s Note:
  • Like the Excommunication, the following section was printed on facing
  • pages. For this e-text it is given in consecutive paragraphs, with the
  • Latin text inset.]
  • BOOK IV
  • SLAWKENBERGII FABELLA[4.1]
  • SLAWKENBERGIUS’S TALE
  • _Vespera quâdam frigidulâ, posteriori in parte mensis _Augusti_,
  • peregrinus, mulo fusco colore insidens, manticâ a tergo, paucis
  • indusiis, binis calceis, braccisque sericis coccineis repleta,
  • _Argentoratum_ ingressus est._
  • It was one cool refreshing evening, at the close of a very sultry day,
  • in the latter end of the month of _August_, when a stranger, mounted
  • upon a dark mule, with a small cloak-bag behind him, containing a few
  • shirts, a pair of shoes, and a crimson-sattin pair of breeches, entered
  • the town of _Strasburg_.
  • _Militi eum percontanti, quum portas intraret dixit, se apud
  • Nasorum promontorium fuisse, Francofurtum proficisci, et
  • Argentoratum, transitu ad fines Sarmatiæ mensis intervallo,
  • reversurum._
  • He told the centinel, who questioned him as he entered the gates, that
  • he had been at the Promontory of NOSES--was going on to
  • _Frankfort_----and should be back again at _Strasburg_ that day month,
  • in his way to the borders of _Crim Tartary_.
  • _Miles peregrini in faciem suspexit ----Dî boni, nova forma nasi!_
  • The centinel looked up into the stranger’s face----he never saw such a
  • Nose in his life!
  • _At multum mihi profuit, inquit peregrinus, carpum amento extrahens,
  • e quo pependit acinaces: Loculo manum inseruit; et magnâ cum
  • urbanitate, pilei parte anteriore tactâ manu sinistrâ, ut extendit
  • dextram, militi florinum dedit et processit._
  • --I have made a very good venture of it, quoth the stranger--so slipping
  • his wrist out of the loop of a black ribbon, to which a short scymetar
  • was hung, he put his hand into his pocket, and with great courtesy
  • touching the fore part of his cap with his left hand, as he extended his
  • right----he put a florin into the centinel’s hand, and passed on.
  • _Dolet mihi, ait miles, tympanistam nanum et valgum alloquens, virum
  • adeo urbanum vaginam perdidisse: itinerari haud poterit nudâ
  • acinaci; neque vaginam toto _Argentorato_, habilem
  • inveniet. ------Nullam unquam habui, respondit peregrinus
  • respiciens------seque comiter inclinans--hoc more gesto, nudam
  • acinacem elevans, mulo lentò progrediente, ut nasum tueri possim._
  • It grieves me, said the centinel, speaking to a little dwarfish
  • bandy-legg’d drummer, that so courteous a soul should have lost his
  • scabbard------he cannot travel without one to his scymetar, and will not
  • be able to get a scabbard to fit it in all _Strasburg_. ----I never had
  • one, replied the stranger, looking back to the centinel, and putting his
  • hand up to his cap as he spoke ----I carry it, continued he,
  • thus----holding up his naked scymetar, his mule moving on slowly all the
  • time--on purpose to defend my nose.
  • _Non immerito, benigne peregrine, respondit miles._
  • It is well worth it, gentle stranger, replied the centinel.
  • _Nihili æstimo, ait ille tympanista, e pergamenâ factitius est._
  • ----’Tis not worth a single stiver, said the bandy-legg’d
  • drummer----’tis a nose of parchment.
  • _Prout christianus sum, inquit miles, nasus ille, ni sexties major
  • sit, meo esset conformis._
  • As I am a true catholic--except that it is six times as big--’tis a
  • nose, said the centinel, like my own.
  • _Crepitare audivi ait tympanista._
  • --I heard it crackle, said the drummer.
  • _Mehercule! sanguinem emisit, respondit miles._
  • By dunder, said the centinel, I saw it bleed.
  • _Miseret me, inquit tympanista, qui non ambo tetigimus!_
  • What a pity, cried the bandy-legg’d drummer, we did not both touch it!
  • _Eodem temporis puncto, quo hæc res argumentata fuit inter militem
  • et tympanistam, disceptabatur ibidem tubicine et uxore suâ qui tunc
  • accesserunt, et peregrino prætereunte, restiterunt._
  • At the very time that this dispute was maintaining by the centinel and
  • the drummer--was the same point debating betwixt a trumpeter and a
  • trumpeter’s wife, who were just then coming up, and had stopped to see
  • the stranger pass by.
  • _Quantus nasus! æque longus est, ait tubicina, ac tuba._
  • _Benedicity!_ ------What a nose! ’tis as long, said the trumpeter’s wife,
  • as a trumpet.
  • _Et ex eodem metallo, ait tubicen, velut sternutamento audias._
  • And of the same metal, said the trumpeter, as you hear by its sneezing.
  • _Tantum abest, respondit illa, quod fistulam dulcedine vincit._
  • ’Tis as soft as a flute, said she.
  • _Æneus est, ait tubicen._
  • --’Tis brass, said the trumpeter.
  • _Nequaquam, respondit uxor._
  • --’Tis a pudding’s end, said his wife.
  • _Rursum affirmo, ait tubicen, quod æneus est._
  • I tell thee again, said the trumpeter, ’tis a brazen nose.
  • _Rem penitus explorabo; prius, enim digito tangam, ait uxor, quam
  • dormivero._
  • I’ll know the bottom of it, said the trumpeter’s wife, for I will touch
  • it with my finger before I sleep.
  • _Mulus peregrini gradu lento progressus est, ut unumquodque verbum
  • controversiæ, non tantum inter militem et tympanistam, verum etiam
  • inter tubicinem et uxorem ejus, audiret._
  • The stranger’s mule moved on at so slow a rate, that he heard every word
  • of the dispute, not only betwixt the centinel and the drummer, but
  • betwixt the trumpeter and trumpeter’s wife.
  • _Nequaquam, ait ille, in muli collum fræna demittens, et manibus
  • ambabus in pectus positis, (mulo lentè progrediente) nequaquam, ait
  • ille respiciens, non necesse est ut res isthæc dilucidata foret.
  • Minime gentium! meus nasus nunquam tangetur, dum spiritus hos reget
  • artus --Ad quid agendum? ait uxor burgomagistri._
  • No! said he, dropping his reins upon his mule’s neck, and laying both
  • his hands upon his breast, the one over the other, in a saint-like
  • position (his mule going on easily all the time) No! said he, looking
  • up --I am not such a debtor to the world----slandered and disappointed as
  • I have been--as to give it that conviction----no! said he, my nose shall
  • never be touched whilst Heaven gives me strength ----To do what? said a
  • burgomaster’s wife.
  • _Peregrinus illi non respondit. Votum faciebat tunc temporis sancto
  • Nicolao; quo facto, in sinum dextrum inserens, e quâ negligenter
  • pependit acinaces, lento gradu processit per plateam Argentorati
  • latam quæ ad diversorium templo ex adversum ducit._
  • The stranger took no notice of the burgomaster’s wife------he was making
  • a vow to _Saint Nicolas_; which done, having uncrossed his arms with the
  • same solemnity with which he crossed them, he took up the reins of his
  • bridle with his left hand, and putting his right hand into his bosom,
  • with his scymetar hanging loosely to the wrist of it, he rode on, as
  • slowly as one foot of the mule could follow another, thro’ the principal
  • streets of _Strasburg_, till chance brought him to the great inn in the
  • market-place over against the church.
  • _Peregrinus mulo descendens stabulo includi, et manticam inferri
  • jussit: quâ apertâ et coccineis sericis femoralibus extractis cum
  • argenteo laciniato Περιζώματα, his sese induit, statimque, acinaci
  • in manu, ad forum deambulavit._
  • The moment the stranger alighted, he ordered his mule to be led into the
  • stable, and his cloak-bag to be brought in; then opening, and taking out
  • of it his crimson-sattin breeches, with a silver-fringed--(appendage to
  • them, which I dare not translate)--he put his breeches, with his fringed
  • codpiece on, and forthwith, with his short scymetar in his hand, walked
  • out on to the grand parade.
  • _Quod ubi peregrinus esset ingressus, uxorem tubicinis obviam euntem
  • aspicit; illico cursum flectit, metuens ne nasus suus exploraretur,
  • atque ad diversorium regressus est--exuit se vestibus; braccas
  • coccineas sericas manticæ imposuit mulumque educi jussit._
  • The stranger had just taken three turns upon the parade, when he
  • perceived the trumpeter’s wife at the opposite side of it--so turning
  • short, in pain lest his nose should be attempted, he instantly went back
  • to his inn--undressed himself, packed up his crimson-sattin breeches,
  • &c., in his cloak-bag, and called for his mule.
  • _Francofurtum proficiscor, ait ille, et Argentoratum quatuor abhinc
  • hebdomadis revertar._
  • I am going forwards, said the stranger, for _Frankfort_----and shall be
  • back at _Strasburg_ this day month.
  • _Bene curasti hoc jumentum? (ait) muli faciem manu demulcens--me,
  • manticamque mean, plus sexcentis mille passibus portavit._
  • I hope, continued the stranger, stroking down the face of his mule with
  • his left hand as he was going to mount it, that you have been kind to
  • this faithful slave of mine--it has carried me and my cloak-bag,
  • continued he, tapping the mule’s back, above six hundred leagues.
  • _Longa via est! respondet hospes, nisi plurimum esset
  • negoti. --Enimvero, ait peregrinus, a Nasorum promontorio redii, et
  • nasum speciosissimum, egregiosissimumque quem unquam quisquam
  • sortitus est, acquisivi._
  • ----’Tis a long journey, Sir, replied the master of the inn----unless a
  • man has great business. ----Tut! tut! said the stranger, I have been at
  • the Promontory of Noses; and have got me one of the goodliest, thank
  • Heaven, that ever fell to a single man’s lot.
  • _Dum peregrinus hanc miram rationem de seipso reddit, hospes et uxor
  • ejus, oculis intentis, peregrini nasum contemplantur ----Per sanctos
  • sanctasque omnes, ait hospitis uxor, nasis duodecim maximis in toto
  • Argentorato major est! --estne, ait illa mariti in aurem insusurrans,
  • nonne est nasus prægrandis?_
  • Whilst the stranger was giving this odd account of himself, the master
  • of the inn and his wife kept both their eyes fixed full upon the
  • stranger’s nose ----By saint _Radagunda_, said the inn-keeper’s wife to
  • herself, there is more of it than in any dozen of the largest noses put
  • together in all _Strasburg!_ is it not, said she, whispering her husband
  • in his ear, is it not a noble nose?
  • _Dolus inest, anime mî, ait hospes--nasus est falsus._
  • ’Tis an imposture, my dear, said the master of the inn----’tis a false
  • nose.
  • _Verus est, respondit uxor----_
  • ’Tis a true nose, said his wife.
  • _Ex abiete factus est, ait ille, terebinthinum olet------_
  • ’Tis made of fir-tree, said he, I smell the turpentine.------
  • _Carbunculus inest, ait uxor._
  • There’s a pimple on it, said she.
  • _Mortuus est nasus, respondit hospes._
  • ’Tis a dead nose, replied the inn-keeper.
  • _Vivus est ait illa, --et si ipsa vivam tangam._
  • ’Tis a live nose, and if I am alive myself, said the inn-keeper’s wife,
  • I will touch it.
  • _Votum feci sancto Nicolao, ait peregrinus, nasum meum intactum fore
  • usque ad --Quodnam tempus? illico respondit illa._
  • I have made a vow to saint _Nicolas_ this day, said the stranger, that
  • my nose shall not be touched till --Here the stranger, suspending his
  • voice, looked up. ------Till when? said she hastily.
  • _Minimo tangetur, inquit ille (manibus in pectus compositis) usque
  • ad illam horam ------Quam horam? ait illa ------Nullam, respondit
  • peregrinus, donec pervenio ad --Quem locum, --obsecro? ait
  • illa ----Peregrinus nil respondens mulo conscenso discessit._
  • It never shall be touched, said he, clasping his hands and bringing them
  • close to his breast, till that hour --What hour? cried the inn-keeper’s
  • wife. --Never! --never! said the stranger, never till I am got --For
  • Heaven’s sake, into what place? said she ------The stranger rode away
  • without saying a word.
  • The stranger had not got half a league on his way towards _Frankfort_
  • before all the city of _Strasburg_ was in an uproar about his nose. The
  • _Compline_ bells were just ringing to call the _Strasburgers_ to their
  • devotions, and shut up the duties of the day in prayer: --no soul in all
  • _Strasburg_ heard ’em--the city was like a swarm of bees------men,
  • women, and children (the _Compline_ bells tinkling all the time) flying
  • here and there--in at one door, out at another----this way and that
  • way--long ways and cross ways--up one street, down another street----in
  • at this alley, out of that------did you see it? did you see it? did you
  • see it? O! did you see it? ------who saw it? who did see it? for mercy’s
  • sake, who saw it?
  • Alack o’day! I was at vespers! --I was washing, I was starching, I was
  • scouring, I was quilting ----God help me! I never saw it ----I never
  • touch’d it! ----would I had been a centinel, a bandy-legg’d drummer,
  • a trumpeter, a trumpeter’s wife, was the general cry and lamentation in
  • every street and corner of _Strasburg_.
  • Whilst all this confusion and disorder triumphed throughout the great
  • city of _Strasburg_, was the courteous stranger going on as gently upon
  • his mule in his way to _Frankfort_, as if he had no concern at all in
  • the affair------talking all the way he rode in broken sentences,
  • sometimes to his mule--sometimes to himself--sometimes to his Julia.
  • O Julia, my lovely Julia! --nay, I cannot stop to let thee bite that
  • thistle----that ever the suspected tongue of a rival should have robbed
  • me of enjoyment when I was upon the point of tasting it.----
  • ----Pugh! --’tis nothing but a thistle--never mind it----thou shalt have
  • a better supper at night.
  • ----Banish’d from my country----my friends----from thee.----
  • Poor devil, thou’rt sadly tired with thy journey! ----come--get on a
  • little faster--there’s nothing in my cloak-bag but two shirts----a
  • crimson-sattin pair of breeches, and a fringed ----Dear Julia.
  • ----But why to _Frankfort_--is it that there is a hand unfelt, which
  • secretly is conducting me through these meanders and unsuspected tracts?
  • ----Stumbling! by saint _Nicolas!_ every step--why, at this rate we
  • shall be all night in getting in------
  • ----To happiness----or am I to be the sport of fortune and slander--
  • destined to be driven forth unconvicted----unheard----untouch’d----if
  • so, why did I not stay at _Strasburg_, where justice--but I had sworn!
  • Come, thou shalt drink--to _St. Nicolas_ --O Julia! ------What dost thou
  • prick up thy ears at? ----’tis nothing but a man, &c.
  • The stranger rode on communing in this manner with his mule and
  • Julia--till he arrived at his inn, where, as soon as he arrived, he
  • alighted------saw his mule, as he had promised it, taken good care
  • of----took off his cloak-bag, with his crimson-sattin breeches, &c., in
  • it--called for an omelet to his supper, went to his bed about twelve
  • o’clock, and in five minutes fell fast asleep.
  • It was about the same hour when the tumult in _Strasburg_ being abated
  • for that night, --the _Strasburgers_ had all got quietly into their
  • beds--but not like the stranger, for the rest either of their minds or
  • bodies; queen _Mab_, like an elf as she was, had taken the stranger’s
  • nose, and without reduction of its bulk, had that night been at the
  • pains of slitting and dividing it into as many noses of different cuts
  • and fashions, as there were heads in _Strasburg_ to hold them. The
  • abbess of _Quedlingberg_, who with the four great dignitaries of her
  • chapter, the prioress, the deaness, the sub-chantress, and senior
  • canoness, had that week come to _Strasburg_ to consult the university
  • upon a case of conscience relating to their placket-holes------was ill
  • all the night.
  • The courteous stranger’s nose had got perched upon the top of the pineal
  • gland of her brain, and made such rousing work in the fancies of the
  • four great dignitaries of her chapter, they could not get a wink of
  • sleep the whole night thro’ for it----there was no keeping a limb still
  • amongst them----in short, they got up like so many ghosts.
  • The penitentiaries of the third order of saint _Francis_----the nuns
  • of mount _Calvary_----the _Præmonstratenses_----the _Clunienses_[4.2]
  • ----the _Carthusians_, and all the severer orders of nuns who lay that
  • night in blankets or hair-cloth, were still in a worse condition than
  • the abbess of _Quedlingberg_--by tumbling and tossing, and tossing and
  • tumbling from one side of their beds to the other the whole night
  • long----the several sisterhoods had scratch’d and maul’d themselves all
  • to death----they got out of their beds almost flay’d alive--everybody
  • thought saint _Antony_ had visited them for probation with his fire----
  • they had never once, in short, shut their eyes the whole night long from
  • vespers to matins.
  • The nuns of saint _Ursula_ acted the wisest--they never attempted to go
  • to bed at all.
  • The dean of _Strasburg_, the prebendaries, the capitulars and
  • domiciliars (capitularly assembled in the morning to consider the case
  • of butter’d buns) all wished they had followed the nuns of saint
  • _Ursula’s_ example.------
  • In the hurry and confusion everything had been in the night before, the
  • bakers had all forgot to lay their leaven--there were no butter’d buns
  • to be had for breakfast in all _Strasburg_--the whole close of the
  • cathedral was in one eternal commotion----such a cause of restlessness
  • and disquietude, and such a zealous inquiry into the cause of that
  • restlessness, had never happened in _Strasburg_, since _Martin Luther_,
  • with his doctrines, had turned the city upside down.
  • If the stranger’s nose took this liberty of thrusting himself thus into
  • the dishes[4.3] of religious orders, &c., what a carnival did his nose
  • make of it, in those of the laity! --’tis more than my pen, worn to the
  • stump as it is, has power to describe; tho’ I acknowledge, (_cries
  • _Slawkenbergius_, with more gaiety of thought than I could have expected
  • from him_) that there is many a good simile now subsisting in the world
  • which might give my countrymen some idea of it; but at the close of such
  • a folio as this, wrote for their sakes, and in which I have spent the
  • greatest part of my life----tho’ I own to them the simile is in being,
  • yet would it not be unreasonable in them to expect I should have either
  • time or inclination to search for it? Let it suffice to say, that the
  • riot and disorder it occasioned in the _Strasburgers’_ fantasies was so
  • general--such an overpowering mastership had it got of all the faculties
  • of the _Strasburgers’_ minds--so many strange things, with equal
  • confidence on all sides, and with equal eloquence in all places, were
  • spoken and sworn to concerning it, that turned the whole stream of all
  • discourse and wonder towards it--every soul, good and bad--rich and
  • poor--learned and unlearned----doctor and student----mistress and
  • maid----gentle and simple----nun’s flesh and woman’s flesh, in
  • _Strasburg_ spent their time in hearing tidings about it--every eye in
  • _Strasburg_ languished to see it----every finger----every thumb in
  • _Strasburg_ burned to touch it.
  • Now what might add, if anything may be thought necessary to add, to so
  • vehement a desire--was this, that the centinel, the bandy-legg’d
  • drummer, the trumpeter, the trumpeter’s wife, the burgomaster’s widow,
  • the master of the inn, and the master of the inn’s wife, how widely
  • soever they all differed every one from another in their testimonies and
  • description of the stranger’s nose--they all agreed together in two
  • points--namely, that he was gone to _Frankfort_, and would not return to
  • _Strasburg_ till that day month; and secondly, whether his nose was true
  • or false, that the stranger himself was one of the most perfect paragons
  • of beauty--the finest-made man--the most genteel! --the most generous of
  • his purse--the most courteous in his carriage that had ever entered the
  • gates of _Strasburg_--that as he rode, with scymetar slung loosely to
  • his wrist, thro’ the streets--and walked with his crimson-sattin
  • breeches across the parade--’twas with so sweet an air of careless
  • modesty, and so manly withal----as would have put the heart in jeopardy
  • (had his nose not stood in his way) of every virgin who had cast her
  • eyes upon him.
  • I call not upon that heart which is a stranger to the throbs and
  • yearnings of curiosity, so excited, to justify the abbess of
  • _Quedlingberg_, the prioress, the deaness, and sub-chantress, for
  • sending at noon-day for the trumpeter’s wife: she went through the
  • streets of _Strasburg_ with her husband’s trumpet in her hand, ----the
  • best apparatus the straitness of the time would allow her, for the
  • illustration of her theory--she staid no longer than three days.
  • The centinel and bandy-legg’d drummer! ----nothing on this side of old
  • _Athens_ could equal them! they read their lectures under the city-gates
  • to comers and goers, with all the pomp of a _Chrysippus_ and a _Crantor_
  • in their porticos.
  • The master of the inn, with his ostler on his left-hand, read his also
  • in the same stile--under the portico or gateway of his stable-yard--his
  • wife, hers more privately in a back room: all flocked to their lectures;
  • not promiscuously--but to this or that, as is ever the way, as faith and
  • credulity marshal’d them----in a word, each _Strasburger_ came crouding
  • for intelligence----and every _Strasburger_ had the intelligence he
  • wanted.
  • ’Tis worth remarking, for the benefit of all demonstrators in natural
  • philosophy, &c., that as soon as the trumpeter’s wife had finished the
  • abbess of _Quedlingberg’s_ private lecture, and had begun to read in
  • public, which she did upon a stool in the middle of the great parade,
  • ----she incommoded the other demonstrators mainly, by gaining
  • incontinently the most fashionable part of the city of _Strasburg_ for
  • her auditory ----But when a demonstrator in philosophy (cries
  • _Slawkenbergius_) has a _trumpet_ for an apparatus, pray what rival in
  • science can pretend to be heard besides him?
  • Whilst the unlearned, thro’ these conduits of intelligence, were all
  • busied in getting down to the bottom of the well, where TRUTH keeps her
  • little court------were the learned in their way as busy in pumping her
  • up thro’ the conduits of dialect induction----they concerned themselves
  • not with facts------they reasoned------
  • Not one profession had thrown more light upon this subject than the
  • Faculty--had not all their disputes about it run into the affair of
  • _Wens_ and œdematous swellings, they could not keep clear of them for
  • their bloods and souls------the stranger’s nose had nothing to do either
  • with wens or œdematous swellings.
  • It was demonstrated however very satisfactorily, that such a ponderous
  • mass of heterogeneous matter could not be congested and conglomerated to
  • the nose, whilst the infant was _in Utero_, without destroying the
  • statical balance of the fœtus, and throwing it plump upon its head nine
  • months before the time.------
  • ----The opponents granted the theory----they denied the consequences.
  • And if a suitable provision of veins, arteries, &c., said they, was not
  • laid in, for the due nourishment of such a nose, in the very first
  • stamina and rudiments of its formation, before it came into the world
  • (bating the case of Wens) it could not regularly grow and be sustained
  • afterwards.
  • This was all answered by a dissertation upon nutriment, and the effect
  • which nutriment had in extending the vessels, and in the increase and
  • prolongation of the muscular parts of the greatest growth and expansion
  • imaginable --In the triumph of which theory, they went so far as to
  • affirm, that there was no cause in nature, why a nose might not grow to
  • the size of the man himself.
  • The respondents satisfied the world this event could never happen to
  • them so long as a man had but one stomach and one pair of lungs ----For
  • the stomach, said they, being the only organ destined for the reception
  • of food, and turning it into chyle--and the lungs the only engine of
  • sanguification--it could possibly work off no more, than what the
  • appetite brought it: or admitting the possibility of a man’s overloading
  • his stomach, nature had set bounds however to his lungs--the engine was
  • of a determined size and strength, and could elaborate but a certain
  • quantity in a given time------that is, it could produce just as much
  • blood as was sufficient for one single man, and no more; so that, if
  • there was as much nose as man----they proved a mortification must
  • necessarily ensue; and forasmuch as there could not be a support for
  • both, that the nose must either fall off from the man, or the man
  • inevitably fall off from his nose.
  • Nature accommodates herself to these emergencies, cried the
  • opponents--else what do you say to the case of a whole stomach--a whole
  • pair of lungs, and but _half_ a man, when both his legs have been
  • unfortunately shot off?
  • He dies of a plethora, said they--or must spit blood, and in a fortnight
  • or three weeks go off in a consumption.------
  • ----It happens otherwise--replied the opponents.----
  • It ought not, said they.
  • The more curious and intimate inquirers after nature and her doings,
  • though they went hand in hand a good way together, yet they all divided
  • about the nose at last, almost as much as the Faculty itself.
  • They amicably laid it down, that there was a just and geometrical
  • arrangement and proportion of the several parts of the human frame to
  • its several destinations, offices, and functions which could not be
  • transgressed but within certain limits--that nature, though she
  • sported----she sported within a certain circle; --and they could not
  • agree about the diameter of it.
  • The logicians stuck much closer to the point before them than any of the
  • classes of the literati; ------they began and ended with the word Nose;
  • and had it not been for a _petitio principii_, which one of the ablest
  • of them ran his head against in the beginning of the combat, the whole
  • controversy had been settled at once.
  • A nose, argued the logician, cannot bleed without blood--and not only
  • blood--but blood circulating in it to supply the phænomenon with a
  • succession of drops--(a stream being but a quicker succession of drops,
  • that is included, said he). ----Now death, continued the logician, being
  • nothing but the stagnation of the blood----
  • I deny the definition ----Death is the separation of the soul from the
  • body, said his antagonist ----Then we don’t agree about our weapons,
  • said the logician --Then there is an end of the dispute, replied the
  • antagonist.
  • The civilians were still more concise: what they offered being more in
  • the nature of a decree----than a dispute.
  • Such a monstrous nose, said they, had it been a true nose, could not
  • possibly have been suffered in civil society----and if false--to impose
  • upon society with such false signs and tokens, was a still greater
  • violation of its rights, and must have had still less mercy shewn it.
  • The only objection to this was, that if it proved anything, it proved
  • the stranger’s nose was neither true nor false.
  • This left room for the controversy to go on. It was maintained by the
  • advocates of the ecclesiastic court, that there was nothing to inhibit a
  • decree, since the stranger _ex mero motu_ had confessed he had been at
  • the Promontory of Noses, and had got one of the goodliest, &c. &c.
  • ------To this it was answered, it was impossible there should be such a
  • place as the Promontory of Noses, and the learned be ignorant where it
  • lay. The commissary of the bishop of _Strasburg_ undertook the
  • advocates, explained this matter in a treatise upon proverbial phrases,
  • shewing them, that the Promontory of Noses was a mere allegorick
  • expression, importing no more than that nature had given him a long
  • nose: in proof of which, with great learning, he cited the underwritten
  • authorities,[4.4] which had decided the point incontestably, had it not
  • appeared that a dispute about some franchises of dean and chapter-lands
  • had been determined by it nineteen years before.
  • It happened ----I must not say unluckily for Truth, because they were
  • giving her a lift another way in so doing; that the two universities of
  • _Strasburg_----the _Lutheran_, founded in the year 1538 by _Jacobus
  • Surmis_, counsellor of the senate, ----and the _Popish_, founded by
  • _Leopold_, arch-duke of _Austria_, were, during all this time, employing
  • the whole depth of their knowledge (except just what the affair of the
  • abbess of _Quedlingberg’s_ placket-holes required)----in determining the
  • point of _Martin Luther’s_ damnation.
  • The _Popish_ doctors had undertaken to demonstrate _à priori_, that from
  • the necessary influence of the planets on the twenty-second day of
  • _October_ 1483------when the moon was in the twelfth house, _Jupiter_,
  • _Mars_, and _Venus_ in the third, the _Sun_, _Saturn_, and _Mercury_,
  • all got together in the fourth--that he must in course, and unavoidably,
  • be a damn’d man--and that his doctrines, by a direct corollary, must be
  • damn’d doctrines too.
  • By inspection into his horoscope, where five planets were in coition all
  • at once with Scorpio[4.5] (in reading this my father would always shake
  • his head) in the ninth house, which the _Arabians_ allotted to
  • religion--it appeared that _Martin Luther_ did not care one stiver about
  • the matter------and that from the horoscope directed to the conjunction
  • of _Mars_--they made it plain likewise he must die cursing and
  • blaspheming----with the blast of which his soul (being steep’d in guilt)
  • sailed before the wind, in the lake of hell-fire.
  • The little objection of the _Lutheran_ doctors to this, was, that it
  • must certainly be the soul of another man, born _Oct._ 22, 83, which was
  • forced to sail down before the wind in that manner--inasmuch as it
  • appeared from the register of _Islaben_ in the county of _Mansfelt_,
  • that _Luther_ was not born in the year 1483, but in 84; and not on the
  • 22d day of _October_, but on the 10th of _November_, the eve of
  • _Martinmas_ day, from whence he had the name of _Martin_.
  • [----I must break off my translation for a moment; for if I did not,
  • I know I should no more be able to shut my eyes in bed, than the abbess
  • of _Quedlingberg_ ----It is to tell the reader, that my father never
  • read this passage of _Slawkenbergius_ to my uncle _Toby_, but with
  • triumph------not over my uncle _Toby_, for he never opposed him in
  • it----but over the whole world.
  • --Now you see, brother _Toby_, he would say, looking up, “that christian
  • names are not such indifferent things;” ------had _Luther_ here been
  • called by any other name but Martin, he would have been damn’d to all
  • eternity ------Not that I look upon _Martin_, he would add, as a good
  • name----far from it----’tis something better than a neutral, and but a
  • little----yet little as it is, you see it was of some service to him.
  • My father knew the weakness of this prop to his hypothesis, as well as
  • the best logician could shew him----yet so strange is the weakness of
  • man at the same time, as it fell in his way, he could not for his life
  • but make use of it; and it was certainly for this reason, that though
  • there are many stories in _Hafen Slawkenbergius’s_ Decads full as
  • entertaining as this I am translating, yet there is not one amongst them
  • which my father read over with half the delight------it flattered two of
  • his strangest hypotheses together----his NAMES and his NOSES. ----I will
  • be bold to say, he might have read all the books in the _Alexandrian_
  • Library, had not fate taken other care of them, and not have met with a
  • book or passage in one, which hit two such nails as these upon the head
  • at one stroke.]
  • The two universities of _Strasburg_ were hard tugging at this affair of
  • _Luther’s_ navigation. The Protestant doctors had demonstrated, that he
  • had not sailed right before the wind, as the Popish doctors had
  • pretended; and as every one knew there was no sailing full in the teeth
  • of it--they were going to settle, in case he had sailed, how many points
  • he was off; whether _Martin_ had doubled the cape, or had fallen upon a
  • lee-shore; and no doubt, as it was an enquiry of much edification, at
  • least to those who understood this sort of NAVIGATION, they had gone on
  • with it in spite of the size of the stranger’s nose, had not the size of
  • the stranger’s nose drawn off the attention of the world from what they
  • were about----it was their business to follow.
  • The abbess of _Quedlingberg_ and her four dignitaries was no stop; for
  • the enormity of the stranger’s nose running full as much in their
  • fancies as their case of conscience----the affair of their placket-holes
  • kept cold--in a word, the printers were ordered to distribute their
  • types----all controversies dropp’d.
  • ’Twas a square cap with a silver tassel upon the crown of it--to a
  • nut-shell--to have guessed on which side of the nose the two
  • universities would split.
  • ’Tis above reason, cried the doctors on one side.
  • ’Tis below reason, cried the others.
  • ’Tis faith, cried one.
  • ’Tis a fiddle-stick, said the other.
  • ’Tis possible, cried the one.
  • ’Tis impossible, said the other.
  • God’s power is infinite, cried the Nosarians, he can do anything.
  • He can do nothing, replied the Antinosarians, which implies
  • contradictions.
  • He can make matter think, said the Nosarians.
  • As certainly as you can make a velvet cap out of a sow’s ear, replied
  • the Antinosarians.
  • He cannot make two and two five, replied the Popish doctors. ----’Tis
  • false, said their other opponents.----
  • Infinite power is infinite power, said the doctors who maintained the
  • _reality_ of the nose. --It extends only to all possible things, replied
  • the _Lutherans_.
  • By God in heaven, cried the Popish doctors, he can make a nose, if he
  • thinks fit, as big as the steeple of _Strasburg_.
  • Now the steeple of _Strasburg_ being the biggest and the tallest
  • church-steeple to be seen in the whole world, the Antinosarians denied
  • that a nose of 575 geometrical feet in length could be worn, at least by
  • a middle-siz’d man ----The Popish doctors swore it could --The _Lutheran_
  • doctors said No; --it could not.
  • This at once started a new dispute, which they pursued a great way, upon
  • the extent and limitation of the moral and natural attributes of
  • God --That controversy led them naturally into _Thomas Aquinas_, and
  • _Thomas Aquinas_ to the devil.
  • The stranger’s nose was no more heard of in the dispute--it just served
  • as a frigate to launch them into the gulph of school-divinity----and
  • then they all sailed before the wind.
  • Heat is in proportion to the want of true knowledge.
  • The controversy about the attributes, &c., instead of cooling, on the
  • contrary had inflamed the _Strasburgers’_ imaginations to a most
  • inordinate degree ----The less they understood of the matter, the greater
  • was their wonder about it--they were left in all the distresses of
  • desire unsatisfied----saw their doctors, the _Parchmentarians_, the
  • _Brassarians_, the _Turpentarians_, on one side--the Popish doctors on
  • the other, like _Pantagruel_ and his companions in quest of the oracle
  • of the bottle, all embarked out of sight.
  • ----The poor _Strasburgers_ left upon the beach!
  • ----What was to be done? --No delay--the uproar increased----every one
  • in disorder----the city gates set open.----
  • Unfortunate _Strasburgers!_ was there in the storehouse of
  • nature------was there in the lumber-rooms of learning------was there in
  • the great arsenal of chance, one single engine left undrawn forth to
  • torture your curiosities, and stretch your desires, which was not
  • pointed by the hand of Fate to play upon your hearts? ----I dip not my
  • pen into my ink to excuse the surrender of yourselves--’tis to write
  • your panegyrick. Shew me a city so macerated with expectation----who
  • neither eat, or drank, or slept, or prayed, or hearkened to the calls
  • either of religion or nature for seven-and-twenty days together, who
  • could have held out one day longer.
  • On the twenty-eighth the courteous stranger had promised to return to
  • _Strasburg_.
  • Seven thousand coaches (_Slawkenbergius_ must certainly have made some
  • mistake in his numerical characters) 7000 coaches----15,000 single-horse
  • chairs--20,000 waggons, crowded as full as they could all hold with
  • senators, counsellors, syndicks--beguines, widows, wives, virgins,
  • canons, concubines, all in their coaches --The abbess of _Quedlingberg_,
  • with the prioress, the deaness and sub-chantress, leading the procession
  • in one coach, and the dean of _Strasburg_, with the four great
  • dignitaries of his chapter, on her left-hand--the rest following
  • higglety-pigglety as they could; some on horseback----some on
  • foot----some led----some driven----some down the _Rhine_----some this
  • way----some that----all set out at sun-rise to meet the courteous
  • stranger on the road.
  • Haste we now towards the catastrophe of my tale ------I say _Catastrophe_
  • (cries _Slawkenbergius_) inasmuch as a tale, with parts rightly
  • disposed, not only rejoiceth (_gaudet_) in the _Catastrophe_ and
  • _Peripetia_ of a DRAMA, but rejoiceth moreover in all the essential and
  • integrant parts of it----it has its _Protasis_, _Epitasis_,
  • _Catastasis_, its _Catastrophe_ or _Peripetia_ growing one out of the
  • other in it, in the order _Aristotle_ first planted them----without
  • which a tale had better never be told at all, says _Slawkenbergius_, but
  • be kept to a man’s self.
  • In all my ten tales, in all my ten decads, have I _Slawkenbergius_ tied
  • down every tale of them as tightly to this rule, as I have done this of
  • the stranger and his nose.
  • ----From his first parley with the sentinel, to his leaving the city of
  • _Strasburg_, after pulling off his crimson-sattin pair of breeches, is
  • the _Protasis_ or first entrance----where the characters of the _Personæ
  • Dramatis_ are just touched in, and the subject slightly begun.
  • The _Epitasis_, wherein the action is more fully entered upon and
  • heightened, till it arrives at its state or height called the
  • _Catastasis_, and which usually takes up the 2d and 3d act, is included
  • within that busy period of my tale, betwixt the first night’s uproar
  • about the nose, to the conclusion of the trumpeter’s wife’s lectures
  • upon it in the middle of the grand parade: and from the first embarking
  • of the learned in the dispute--to the doctors finally sailing away, and
  • leaving the _Strasburgers_ upon the beach in distress, is the
  • _Catastasis_ or the ripening of the incidents and passions for their
  • bursting forth in the fifth act.
  • This commences with the setting out of the _Strasburgers_ in the
  • _Frankfort_ road, and terminates in unwinding the labyrinth and bringing
  • the hero out of a state of agitation (as _Aristotle_ calls it) to a
  • state of rest and quietness.
  • This, says _Hafen Slawkenbergius_, constitutes the _Catastrophe_ or
  • _Peripetia_ of my tale--and that is the part of it I am going to relate.
  • We left the stranger behind the curtain asleep----he enters now upon the
  • stage.
  • --What dost thou prick up thy ears at? --’tis nothing but a man upon a
  • horse----was the last word the stranger uttered to his mule. It was not
  • proper then to tell the reader, that the mule took his master’s word for
  • it; and without any more _ifs_ or _ands_, let the traveller and his
  • horse pass by.
  • The traveller was hastening with all diligence to get to _Strasburg_
  • that night. What a fool am I, said the traveller to himself, when he had
  • rode about a league farther, to think of getting into _Strasburg_ this
  • night. --_Strasburg!_----the great _Strasburg!_----_Strasburg_, the
  • capital of all _Alsatia!_ _Strasburg_, an imperial city! _Strasburg_, a
  • sovereign state! _Strasburg_, garrisoned with five thousand of the best
  • troops in all the world! --Alas! if I was at the gates of _Strasburg_
  • this moment, I could not gain admittance into it for a ducat--nay a
  • ducat and half--’tis too much----better go back to the last inn I have
  • passed----than lie I know not where----or give I know not what. The
  • traveller, as he made these reflections in his mind, turned his horse’s
  • head about, and three minutes after the stranger had been conducted into
  • his chamber, he arrived at the same inn.
  • ------We have bacon in the house, said the host, and bread------and till
  • eleven o’clock this night had three eggs in it----but a stranger, who
  • arrived an hour ago, has had them dressed into an omelet, and we have
  • nothing.------
  • Alas! said the traveller, harassed as I am, I want nothing but a bed.
  • ------I have one as soft as is in _Alsatia_, said the host.
  • ----The stranger, continued he, should have slept in it, for ’tis my
  • best bed, but upon the score of his nose. --------He has got a
  • defluxion, said the traveller. ----Not that I know, cried the host.
  • ----But ’tis a camp-bed, and _Jacinta_, said he, looking towards the
  • maid, imagined there was not room in it to turn his nose in. ------Why
  • so? cried the traveller, starting back. --It is so long a nose, replied
  • the host. ----The traveller fixed his eyes upon _Jacinta_, then upon the
  • ground--kneeled upon his right knee--had just got his hand laid upon his
  • breast ------Trifle not with my anxiety, said he, rising up again.
  • ----’Tis no trifle, said _Jacinta_, ’tis the most glorious nose! ----The
  • traveller fell upon his knee again--laid his hand upon his breast--then,
  • said he, looking up to heaven, thou hast conducted me to the end of my
  • pilgrimage. --’Tis _Diego_.
  • The traveller was the brother of the _Julia_, so often invoked that
  • night by the stranger as he rode from _Strasburg_ upon his mule; and was
  • come, on her part, in quest of him. He had accompanied his sister from
  • _Valadolid_ across the _Pyrenean_ mountains through _France_, and had
  • many an entangled skein to wind off in pursuit of him through the many
  • meanders and abrupt turnings of a lover’s thorny tracks.
  • ----_Julia_ had sunk under it------and had not been able to go a step
  • farther than to _Lyons_, where, with the many disquietudes of a tender
  • heart, which all talk of----but few feel--she sicken’d, but had just
  • strength to write a letter to _Diego_; and having conjured her brother
  • never to see her face till he had found him out, and put the letter into
  • his hands, _Julia_ took to her bed.
  • _Fernandez_ (for that was her brother’s name)----tho’ the camp-bed was
  • as soft as any one in _Alsace_, yet he could not shut his eyes in it.
  • ----As soon as it was day he rose, and hearing _Diego_ was risen too, he
  • entered his chamber, and discharged his sister’s commission.
  • The letter was as follows:
  • “Seig. DIEGO,
  • “Whether my suspicions of your nose were justly excited or not------’tis
  • not now to inquire--it is enough I have not had firmness to put them to
  • farther tryal.
  • “How could I know so little of myself, when I sent my _Duenna_ to forbid
  • your coming more under my lattice? or how could I know so little of you,
  • _Diego_, as to imagine you would not have staid one day in _Valadolid_
  • to have given ease to my doubts? --Was I to be abandoned, _Diego_,
  • because I was deceived? or was it kind to take me at my word, whether my
  • suspicions were just or no, and leave me, as you did, a prey to much
  • uncertainty and sorrow?
  • “In what manner _Julia_ has resented this----my brother, when he puts
  • this letter into your hands, will tell you; He will tell you in how few
  • moments she repented of the rash message she had sent you----in what
  • frantic haste she flew to her lattice, and how many days and nights
  • together she leaned immoveably upon her elbow, looking through it
  • towards the way which _Diego_ was wont to come.
  • “He will tell you, when she heard of your departure--how her spirits
  • deserted her----how her heart sicken’d----how piteously she
  • mourned----how low she hung her head. O _Diego!_ how many weary steps
  • has my brother’s pity led me by the hand languishing to trace out yours;
  • how far has desire carried me beyond strength----and how oft have I
  • fainted by the way, and sunk into his arms, with only power to cry
  • out --O my _Diego!_
  • “If the gentleness of your carriage has not belied your heart, you will
  • fly to me, almost as fast as you fled from me--haste as you will----you
  • will arrive but to see me expire. ------’Tis a bitter draught, _Diego_,
  • but oh! ’tis embitter’d still more by dying _un_--------”
  • She could proceed no farther.
  • _Slawkenbergius_ supposes the word intended was _unconvinced_, but her
  • strength would not enable her to finish her letter.
  • The heart of the courteous _Diego_ overflowed as he read the
  • letter------he ordered his mule forthwith and _Fernandez’s_ horse to be
  • saddled; and as no vent in prose is equal to that of poetry in such
  • conflicts----chance, which as often directs us to remedies as to
  • _diseases_, having thrown a piece of charcoal into the window----_Diego_
  • availed himself of it, and whilst the hostler was getting ready his
  • mule, he eased his mind against the wall as follows.
  • ODE
  • _Harsh and untuneful are the notes of love,
  • Unless my _Julia_ strikes the key,
  • Her hand alone can touch the part,
  • Whose dulcet move-
  • ment charms the heart,
  • And governs all the man with sympathetick sway._
  • 2d
  • O Julia!
  • The lines were very natural----for they were nothing at all to the
  • purpose, says _Slawkenbergius_, and ’tis a pity there were no more of
  • them; but whether it was that Seig. _Diego_ was slow in composing
  • verses--or the hostler quick in saddling mules----is not averred;
  • certain it was, that _Diego’s_ mule and _Fernandez’s_ horse were ready
  • at the door of the inn, before _Diego_ was ready for his second stanza;
  • so without staying to finish his ode, they both mounted, sallied forth,
  • passed the _Rhine_, traversed _Alsace_, shaped their course towards
  • _Lyons_, and before the _Strasburgers_ and the abbess of _Quedlingberg_
  • had set out on their cavalcade, had _Fernandez_, _Diego_, and his
  • _Julia_, crossed the _Pyrenean_ mountains, and got safe to _Valadolid_.
  • ’Tis needless to inform the geographical reader, that when _Diego_ was
  • in _Spain_, it was not possible to meet the courteous stranger in the
  • _Frankfort_ road; it is enough to say, that of all restless desires,
  • curiosity being the strongest----the _Strasburgers_ felt the full force
  • of it; and that for three days and nights they were tossed to and fro in
  • the _Frankfort_ road, with the tempestuous fury of this passion, before
  • they could submit to return home. ----When alas! an event was prepared
  • for them, of all other, the most grievous that could befal a free
  • people.
  • As this revolution of the _Strasburgers’_ affairs is often spoken of,
  • and little understood, I will, in ten words, says _Slawkenbergius_, give
  • the world an explanation of it, and with it put an end to my tale.
  • Every body knows of the grand system of Universal Monarchy, wrote by
  • order of Mons. _Colbert_, and put in manuscript into the hands of
  • _Lewis_ the fourteenth, in the year 1664.
  • ’Tis as well known, that one branch out of many of that system, was the
  • getting possession of _Strasburg_, to favour an entrance at all times
  • into _Suabia_, in order to disturb the quiet of _Germany_----and that in
  • consequence of this plan, _Strasburg_ unhappily fell at length into
  • their hands.
  • It is the lot of a few to trace out the true springs of this and such
  • like revolutions --The vulgar look too high for them --Statesmen look
  • too low ----Truth (for once) lies in the middle.
  • What a fatal thing is the popular pride of a free city! cries one
  • historian --The _Strasburgers_ deemed it a diminution of their freedom
  • to receive an imperial garrison----so fell a prey to a _French_ one.
  • The fate, says another, of the _Strasburgers_, may be a warning to all
  • free people to save their money. ------They anticipated their
  • revenues----brought themselves under taxes, exhausted their strength,
  • and in the end became so weak a people, they had not strength to keep
  • their gates shut, and so the _French_ pushed them open.
  • Alas! alas! cries _Slawkenbergius_, ’twas not the _French_, ----’twas
  • CURIOSITY pushed them open ------The _French_ indeed, who are ever upon
  • the catch, when they saw the _Strasburgers_, men, women, and children,
  • all marched out to follow the stranger’s nose----each man followed his
  • own, and marched in.
  • Trade and manufactures have decayed and gradually grown down ever
  • since--but not from any cause which commercial heads have assigned; for
  • it is owing to this only, that Noses have ever so run in their heads,
  • that the _Strasburgers_ could not follow their business.
  • Alas! alas! cries _Slawkenbergius_, making an exclamation--it is not the
  • first----and I fear will not be the last fortress that has been either
  • won----or lost by NOSES.
  • The End Of
  • _Slawkenbergius’s_ TALE
  • [Footnote 4.1: As _Hafen Slawkenbergius de Nasis_ is extremely
  • scarce, it may not be unacceptable to the learned reader to see
  • the specimen of a few pages of his original; I will make no
  • reflection upon it, but that his story-telling Latin is much
  • more concise than his philosophic--and, I think, has more of
  • Latinity in it.]
  • [Footnote 4.2: _Hafen Slawkenbergius_ means the Benedictine nuns
  • of _Cluny_, founded in the year 940, by _Odo_, abbé de _Cluny_.]
  • [Footnote 4.3: Mr. _Shandy’s_ compliments to orators----is very
  • sensible that _Slawkenbergius_ has here changed his
  • metaphor------which he is very guilty of: ----that as a
  • translator, Mr. _Shandy_ has all along done what he could to
  • make him stick to it--but that here ’twas impossible.]
  • [Footnote 4.4: Nonnulli ex nostratibus eadem loquendi formulâ
  • utun. Quinimo & Logistæ & Canonistæ ----Vid. Parce Barne Jas in
  • d. L. Provincial. Constitut. de conjec. vid. Vol. Lib. 4. Titul.
  • 1. n. 7. quâ etiam in re conspir. Om de Promontorio Nas.
  • Tichmak. ff. d. tit. 3. fol. 189. passim. Vid. Glos. de
  • contrahend. empt, &c. necnon J. Scrudr, in cap. § refut. per
  • totum. Cum his cons. Rever. J. Tubal, Sentent. & Prov. cap. 9.
  • ff. 11, 12. obiter. V. & Librum, cui Tit. de Terris & Phras.
  • Belg. ad finem, cum comment, N. Bardy Belg. Vid. Scrip.
  • Argentotarens. de Antiq. Ecc. in Episc. Archiv. fid coll. per
  • Von Jacobum Koinshoven Folio Argent. 1583. præcip. ad finem.
  • Quibus add. Rebuff in L. obvenire de Signif. Nom. ff. fol. & de
  • jure Gent. & Civil. de protib. aliena feud. per federa, test.
  • Joha. Luxius in prolegom, quem velim videas, de Analy. Cap. 1,
  • 2, 3. Vid. Idea.]
  • [Footnote 4.5: Hæc mira, satisque horrenda. Planetarum coitio
  • sub Scorpio Asterismo in nona cœli statione, quam Arabes
  • religioni deputabant efficit _Martinum Lutherum_ sacrilegum
  • hereticum, Christianæ religionis hostem acerrimum atque
  • prophanum, ex horoscopi directione ad Martis coitum,
  • religiosissimus obiit, ejus Anima scelestissima ad infernos
  • navigavit--ab Alecto, Tisiphone & Megara flagellis igneis
  • cruciata perenniter.
  • ----Lucas Gaurieus in Tractatu astrologico de præteritis
  • multorum hominum accidentibus per genituras examinatis.]
  • CHAPTER I
  • With all this learning upon Noses running perpetually in my father’s
  • fancy----with so many family prejudices--and ten decads of such tales
  • running on for ever along with them----how was it possible with such
  • exquisite----was it a true nose? ----That a man with such exquisite
  • feelings as my father had, could bear the shock at all below
  • stairs----or indeed above stairs, in any other posture, but the very
  • posture I have described?
  • ----Throw yourself down upon the bed, a dozen times----taking care only
  • to place a looking-glass first in a chair on one side of it, before you
  • do it --But was the stranger’s nose a true nose, or was it a false one?
  • To tell that before-hand, madam, would be to do injury to one of the
  • best tales in the Christian-world; and that is the tenth of the tenth
  • decad, which immediately follows this.
  • This tale, cried _Slawkenbergius_, somewhat exultingly, has been
  • reserved by me for the concluding tale of my whole work; knowing right
  • well, that when I shall have told it, and my reader shall have read it
  • thro’--’twould be even high time for both of us to shut up the book;
  • inasmuch, continues _Slawkenbergius_, as I know of no tale which could
  • possibly ever go down after it.
  • ’Tis a tale indeed!
  • This sets out with the first interview in the inn at _Lyons_, when
  • _Fernandez_ left the courteous stranger and his sister _Julia_ alone in
  • her chamber, and is over-written
  • _THE INTRICACIES_
  • of
  • _Diego_ and _Julia_
  • Heavens! thou art a strange creature, _Slawkenbergius!_ what a whimsical
  • view of the involutions of the heart of woman hast thou opened! how this
  • can ever be translated, and yet if this specimen of _Slawkenbergius’s_
  • tales, and the exquisitiveness of his moral, should please the
  • world--translated shall a couple of volumes be. ------Else, how this can
  • ever be translated into good _English_, I have no sort of conception.
  • --There seems in some passages to want a sixth sense to do it rightly.
  • ----What can he mean by the lambent pupilability of slow, low, dry chat,
  • five notes below the natural tone----which you know, madam, is little
  • more than a whisper? The moment I pronounced the words, I could perceive
  • an attempt towards a vibration in the strings, about the region of the
  • heart. ------The brain made no acknowledgment. ----There’s often no good
  • understanding betwixt ’em --I felt as if I understood it. ----I had no
  • ideas. ----The movement could not be without cause. --I’m lost. I can
  • make nothing of it--unless, may it please your worships, the voice, in
  • that case being little more than a whisper, unavoidably forces the eyes
  • to approach not only within six inches of each other--but to look into
  • the pupils--is not that dangerous? ----But it can’t be avoided--for to
  • look up to the ceiling, in that case the two chins unavoidably
  • meet----and to look down into each other’s lap, the foreheads come to
  • immediate contact, which at once puts an end to the conference ----I mean
  • to the sentimental part of it. ----What is left, madam, is not worth
  • stooping for.
  • CHAPTER II
  • My father lay stretched across the bed as still as if the hand of death
  • had pushed him down, for a full hour and a half before he began to play
  • upon the floor with the toe of that foot which hung over the bed-side;
  • my uncle _Toby’s_ heart was a pound lighter for it. ------In a few
  • moments, his left-hand, the knuckles of which had all the time reclined
  • upon the handle of the chamber-pot, came to its feeling--he thrust it a
  • little more within the valance--drew up his hand, when he had done, into
  • his bosom--gave a hem! My good uncle _Toby_, with infinite pleasure,
  • answered it; and full gladly would have ingrafted a sentence of
  • consolation upon the opening it afforded: but having no talents, as I
  • said, that way, and fearing moreover that he might set out with
  • something which might make a bad matter worse, he contented himself with
  • resting his chin placidly upon the cross of his crutch.
  • Now whether the compression shortened my uncle _Toby’s_ face into a more
  • pleasurable oval--or that the philanthropy of his heart, in seeing his
  • brother beginning to emerge out of the sea of his afflictions, had
  • braced up his muscles----so that the compression upon his chin only
  • doubled the benignity which was there before, is not hard to decide.
  • ----My father, in turning his eyes, was struck with such a gleam of
  • sunshine in his face, as melted down the sullenness of his grief in a
  • moment.
  • He broke silence as follows.
  • CHAPTER III
  • Did ever man, brother _Toby_, cried my father, raising himself upon his
  • elbow, and turning himself round to the opposite side of the bed, where
  • my uncle _Toby_ was sitting in his old fringed chair, with his chin
  • resting upon his crutch----did ever a poor unfortunate man, brother
  • _Toby_, cried my father, receive so many lashes? ----The most I ever saw
  • given, quoth my uncle _Toby_ (ringing the bell at the bed’s head for
  • _Trim_) was to a grenadier, I think in _Mackay’s_ regiment.
  • ------Had my uncle _Toby_ shot a bullet through my father’s heart, he
  • could not have fallen down with his nose upon the quilt more suddenly.
  • Bless me! said my uncle _Toby_.
  • CHAPTER IV
  • Was it _Mackay’s_ regiment, quoth my uncle _Toby_, where the poor
  • grenadier was so unmercifully whipp’d at _Bruges_ about the ducats? --O
  • Christ! he was innocent! cried _Trim_, with a deep sigh. --And he was
  • whipp’d, may it please your honour, almost to death’s door. --They had
  • better have shot him outright, as he begg’d, and he had gone directly to
  • heaven, for he was as innocent as your honour. ------I thank thee,
  • _Trim_, quoth my uncle _Toby_. ----I never think of his, continued
  • _Trim_, and my poor brother _Tom’s_ misfortunes, for we were all three
  • school-fellows, but I cry like a coward. ----Tears are no proof of
  • cowardice, _Trim_. --I drop them oft-times myself, cried my uncle
  • _Toby_. ----I know your honour does, replied _Trim_, and so am not
  • ashamed of it myself. --But to think, may it please your honour,
  • continued _Trim_, a tear stealing into the corner of his eye as he
  • spoke--to think of two virtuous lads with hearts as warm in their
  • bodies, and as honest as God could make them--the children of honest
  • people, going forth with gallant spirits to seek their fortunes in the
  • world--and fall into such evils! --poor _Tom!_ to be tortured upon a
  • rack for nothing--but marrying a Jew’s widow who sold sausages--honest
  • _Dick Johnson’s_ soul to be scourged out of his body, for the ducats
  • another man put into his knapsack! --O! --these are misfortunes, cried
  • _Trim_, --pulling out his handkerchief--these are misfortunes, may it
  • please your honour, worth lying down and crying over.
  • --My father could not help blushing.
  • ’Twould be a pity, _Trim_, quoth my uncle _Toby_, thou shouldst ever
  • feel sorrow of thy own--thou feelest it so tenderly for others.
  • --Alack-o-day, replied the corporal, brightening up his face------your
  • honour knows I have neither wife or child ----I can have no sorrows in
  • this world. ----My father could not help smiling. --As few as any man,
  • _Trim_, replied my uncle _Toby_; nor can I see how a fellow of thy light
  • heart can suffer, but from the distress of poverty in thy old age--when
  • thou art passed all services, _Trim_--and hast outlived thy friends.
  • ----An’ please your honour, never fear, replied _Trim_, chearily.
  • ----But I would have thee never fear, _Trim_, replied my uncle _Toby_,
  • and therefore, continued my uncle _Toby_, throwing down his crutch, and
  • getting up upon his legs as he uttered the word _therefore_--in
  • recompence, _Trim_, of thy long fidelity to me, and that goodness of thy
  • heart I have had such proofs of--whilst thy master is worth a
  • shilling----thou shalt never ask elsewhere, _Trim_, for a penny. _Trim_
  • attempted to thank my uncle _Toby_--but had not power----tears trickled
  • down his cheeks faster than he could wipe them off --He laid his hands
  • upon his breast----made a bow to the ground, and shut the door.
  • ----I have left _Trim_ my bowling-green, cried my uncle _Toby_. ----My
  • father smiled. ------I have left him moreover a pension, continued my
  • uncle _Toby_. ----My father looked grave.
  • CHAPTER V
  • Is this a fit time, said my father to himself, to talk of PENSIONS and
  • GRENADIERS?
  • CHAPTER VI
  • When my uncle _Toby_ first mentioned the grenadier, my father, I said,
  • fell down with his nose flat to the quilt, and as suddenly as if my
  • uncle _Toby_ had shot him; but it was not added that every other limb
  • and member of my father instantly relapsed with his nose into the same
  • precise attitude in which he lay first described; so that when corporal
  • _Trim_ left the room, and my father found himself disposed to rise off
  • the bed--he had all the little preparatory movements to run over again,
  • before he could do it. Attitudes are nothing, madam----’tis the
  • transition from one attitude to another----like the preparation and
  • resolution of the discord into harmony, which is all in all.
  • For which reason my father played the same jig over again with his toe
  • upon the floor----pushed the chamber-pot still a little farther within
  • the valance--gave a hem--raised himself up upon his elbow--and was just
  • beginning to address himself to my uncle _Toby_--when recollecting the
  • unsuccessfulness of his first effort in that attitude----he got upon his
  • legs, and in making the third turn across the room, he stopped short
  • before my uncle _Toby_: and laying the three first fingers of his
  • right-hand in the palm of his left, and stooping a little, he addressed
  • himself to my uncle _Toby_ as follows:
  • CHAPTER VII
  • When I reflect, brother _Toby_, upon MAN; and take a view of that dark
  • side of him which represents his life as open to so many causes of
  • trouble--when I consider, brother _Toby_, how oft we eat the bread of
  • affliction, and that we are born to it, as to the portion of our
  • inheritance ------I was born to nothing, quoth my uncle _Toby_,
  • interrupting my father--but my commission. Zooks! said my father, did
  • not my uncle leave you a hundred and twenty pounds a year? ------What
  • could I have done without it? replied my uncle _Toby_ ------That’s
  • another concern, said my father testily --But I say, _Toby_, when one
  • runs over the catalogue of all the cross-reckonings and sorrowful
  • _Items_ with which the heart of man is overcharged, ’tis wonderful by
  • what hidden resources the mind is enabled to stand out, and bear itself
  • up, as it does, against the impositions laid upon our nature. ------’Tis
  • by the assistance of Almighty God, cried my uncle _Toby_, looking up,
  • and pressing the palms of his hands close together----’tis not from our
  • own strength, brother _Shandy_----a centinel in a wooden centry-box
  • might as well pretend to stand it out against a detachment of fifty men.
  • ----We are upheld by the grace and the assistance of the best of Beings.
  • ----That is cutting the knot, said my father, instead of untying it.
  • ----But give me leave to lead you, brother _Toby_, a little deeper into
  • the mystery.
  • With all my heart, replied my uncle _Toby_.
  • My father instantly exchanged the attitude he was in, for that in which
  • _Socrates_ is so finely painted by _Raffael_ in his school of _Athens_;
  • which your connoisseurship knows is so exquisitely imagined, that even
  • the particular manner of the reasoning of _Socrates_ is expressed by
  • it--for he holds the forefinger of his left hand between the forefinger
  • and the thumb of his right, and seems as if he was saying to the
  • libertine he is reclaiming------ “_You grant me_ this----and this: and
  • this, and this, I don’t ask of you--they follow of themselves in
  • course.”
  • So stood my father, holding fast his forefinger betwixt his finger and
  • his thumb, and reasoning with my uncle _Toby_ as he sat in his old
  • fringed chair, valanced around with party-coloured worsted bobs ----O
  • _Garrick!_--what a rich scene of this would thy exquisite powers make!
  • and how gladly would I write such another to avail myself of thy
  • immortality, and secure my own behind it.
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • Though man is of all others the most curious vehicle, said my father,
  • yet at the same time ’tis of so slight a frame, and so totteringly put
  • together, that the sudden jerks and hard jostlings it unavoidably meets
  • with in this rugged journey, would overset and tear it to pieces a dozen
  • times a day----was it not, brother _Toby_, that there is a secret spring
  • within us. --Which spring, said my uncle _Toby_, I take to be Religion.
  • --Will that set my child’s nose on? cried my father, letting go his
  • finger, and striking one hand against the other. ----It makes everything
  • straight for us, answered my uncle _Toby_. ----Figuratively speaking,
  • dear _Toby_, it may, for aught I know, said my father; but the spring I
  • am speaking of, is that great and elastic power within us of
  • counterbalancing evil, which, like a secret spring in a well-ordered
  • machine, though it can’t prevent the shock----at least it imposes upon
  • our sense of it.
  • Now, my dear brother, said my father, replacing his forefinger, as he
  • was coming closer to the point----had my child arrived safe into the
  • world, unmartyr’d in that precious part of him--fanciful and extravagant
  • as I may appear to the world in my opinion of christian names, and of
  • that magic bias which good or bad names irresistibly impress upon our
  • characters and conducts --Heaven is witness! that in the warmest
  • transports of my wishes for the prosperity of my child, I never once
  • wished to crown his head with more glory and honour than what GEORGE or
  • EDWARD would have spread around it.
  • But alas! continued my father, as the greatest evil has befallen
  • him ----I must counteract and undo it with the greatest good.
  • He shall be christened _Trismegistus_, brother.
  • I wish it may answer----replied my uncle _Toby_, rising up.
  • CHAPTER IX
  • What a chapter of chances, said my father, turning himself about upon
  • the first landing, as he and my uncle _Toby_ were going downstairs--what
  • a long chapter of chances do the events of this world lay open to us!
  • Take pen and ink in hand, brother _Toby_, and calculate it fairly ----I
  • know no more of calculation than this balluster, said my uncle _Toby_
  • (striking short of it with his crutch, and hitting my father a desperate
  • blow souse upon his shin-bone)----’Twas a hundred to one--cried my uncle
  • _Toby_ --I thought, quoth my father (rubbing his shin), you had known
  • nothing of calculations, brother _Toby_. ’Tis a mere chance, said my
  • uncle _Toby_. ------Then it adds one to the chapter----replied my
  • father.
  • The double success of my father’s repartees tickled off the pain of his
  • shin at once--it was well it so fell out--(chance! again)--or the world
  • to this day had never known the subject of my father’s calculation----to
  • guess it--there was no chance ----What a lucky chapter of chances has
  • this turned out! for it has saved me the trouble of writing one express,
  • and in truth I have enough already upon my hands without it. --Have not
  • I promised the world a chapter of knots? two chapters upon the right and
  • the wrong end of a woman? a chapter upon whiskers? a chapter upon
  • wishes? ----a chapter of noses? --No, I have done that--a chapter upon
  • my uncle _Toby’s_ modesty? to say nothing of a chapter upon chapters,
  • which I will finish before I sleep--by my great-grandfather’s whiskers,
  • I shall never get half of ’em through this year.
  • Take pen and ink in hand, and calculate it fairly, brother _Toby_, said
  • my father, and it will turn out a million to one, that of all the parts
  • of the body, the edge of the forceps should have the ill luck just to
  • fall upon and break down that one part, which should break down the
  • fortunes of our house with it.
  • It might have been worse, replied my uncle _Toby_. ----I don’t
  • comprehend, said my father. ------Suppose the hip had presented, replied
  • my uncle _Toby_, as Dr. _Slop_ foreboded.
  • My father reflected half a minute--looked down----touched the middle of
  • his forehead slightly with his finger------
  • --True, said he.
  • CHAPTER X
  • Is it not a shame to make two chapters of what passed in going down one
  • pair of stairs? for we are got no farther yet than to the first landing,
  • and there are fifteen more steps down to the bottom; and for aught I
  • know, as my father and my uncle _Toby_ are in a talking humour, there
  • may be as many chapters as steps: ----let that be as it will, Sir, I can
  • no more help it than my destiny: --A sudden impulse comes across
  • me----drop the curtain, _Shandy_ ----I drop it --Strike a line here
  • across the paper, _Tristram_ --I strike it--and hey for a new chapter.
  • The deuce of any other rule have I to govern myself by in this
  • affair--and if I had one--as I do all things out of all rule --I would
  • twist it and tear it to pieces, and throw it into the fire when I had
  • done --Am I warm? I am, and the cause demands it----a pretty story! is a
  • man to follow rules------or rules to follow him?
  • Now this, you must know, being my chapter upon chapters, which I
  • promised to write before I went to sleep, I thought it meet to ease my
  • conscience entirely before I laid down, by telling the world all I knew
  • about the matter at once: Is not this ten times better than to set out
  • dogmatically with a sententious parade of wisdom, and telling the world
  • a story of a roasted horse----that chapters relieve the mind--that they
  • assist--or impose upon the imagination--and that in a work of this
  • dramatic cast they are as necessary as the shifting of scenes----with
  • fifty other cold conceits, enough to extinguish the fire which roasted
  • him? --O! but to understand this, which is a puff at the fire of
  • _Diana’s_ temple--you must read _Longinus_--read away--if you are not a
  • jot the wiser by reading him the first time over--never fear--read him
  • again--_Avicenna_ and _Licetus_ read _Aristotle’s_ metaphysicks forty
  • times through apiece, and never understood a single word. --But mark the
  • consequence--_Avicenna_ turned out a desperate writer at all kinds of
  • writing--for he wrote books _de omni scribili_; and for _Licetus_
  • (_Fortunio_) though all the world knows he was born a fœtus,[4.6] of no
  • more than five inches and a half in length, yet he grew to that
  • astonishing height in literature, as to write a book with a
  • title as long as himself------the learned know I mean his
  • _Gonopsychanthropologia_, upon the origin of the human soul.
  • So much for my chapter upon chapters, which I hold to be the best
  • chapter in my whole work; and take my word, whoever reads it, is full as
  • well employed, as in picking straws.
  • [Footnote 4.6: _Ce Fœtus_ n’étoit pas plus grand que la paume de
  • la main; mais son pere l’ayant éxaminé en qualité de Médecin, &
  • ayant trouvé que c’etoit quâlque chose de plus qu’un Embryon, le
  • fit transporter tout vivant à Rapallo, ou il le fit voir à
  • Jerôme Bardi & à d’autres Médecins du lieu. On trouva qu’il ne
  • lui manquoit rien d’essentiel à la vie; & son pere pour faire
  • voir un essai de son experience, entreprit d’achever l’ouvrage
  • de la Nature, & de travailler à la formation de l’Enfant avec le
  • même artifice que celui dont on se sert pour faire écclorre les
  • Poulets en Egypte. Il instruisit une Nourisse de tout ce qu’elle
  • avoit à faire, & ayant fait mettre son fils dans un pour
  • proprement accommodé, il reussit à l’élever & à lui faire
  • prendre ses accroissemens necessaires, par l’uniformité d’une
  • chaleur étrangere mesurée éxactement sur les dégrés d’un
  • Thermométre, ou d’un autre instrument équivalent. (Vide Mich.
  • Giustinian, ne gli Scritt. Liguri à Cart. 223. 488.)
  • On auroit toujours été très satisfait de l’industrie d’un pere
  • si experimenté dans l’Art de la Generation, quand il n’auroit pû
  • prolonger la vie à son fils que pour quelques mois, ou pour peu
  • d’années.
  • Mais quand on se represente que l’Enfant a vecu près de
  • quatre-vingts ans, & qu’il a composé quatre-vingts Ouvrages
  • differents tous fruits d’une longue lecture--il faut convenir
  • que tout ce qui est incroyable n’est pas toujours faux, & que la
  • _Vraisemblance n’est pas toujours du côté de la Verité_.
  • Il n’avoit que dix neuf ans lorsqu’il composa
  • Gonopsychanthropologia de Origine Animæ humanæ.
  • (Les Enfans celebres, revûs & corrigés par M. de la Monnoye de
  • l’Academie Françoise.)]
  • CHAPTER XI
  • We shall bring all things to rights, said my father, setting his foot
  • upon the first step from the landing. --This _Trismegistus_, continued
  • my father, drawing his leg back and turning to my uncle _Toby_----was
  • the greatest (_Toby_) of all earthly beings--he was the greatest
  • king----the greatest law-giver----the greatest philosopher----and the
  • greatest priest----and engineer--said my uncle _Toby_.
  • ------In course, said my father.
  • CHAPTER XII
  • --And how does your mistress? cried my father, taking the same step over
  • again from the landing, and calling to _Susannah_, whom he saw passing
  • by the foot of the stairs with a huge pincushion in her hand--how does
  • your mistress? As well, said _Susannah_, tripping by, but without
  • looking up, as can be expected. --What a fool am I! said my father,
  • drawing his leg back again--let things be as they will, brother _Toby_,
  • ’tis ever the precise answer ----And how is the child, pray? ----No
  • answer. And where is Dr. _Slop?_ added my father, raising his voice
  • aloud, and looking over the ballusters--_Susannah_ was out of hearing.
  • Of all the riddles of a married life, said my father, crossing the
  • landing in order to set his back against the wall, whilst he propounded
  • it to my uncle _Toby_----of all the puzzling riddles, said he, in a
  • marriage state, ----of which you may trust me, brother _Toby_, there are
  • more asses loads than all _Job’s_ stock of asses could have
  • carried----there is not one that has more intricacies in it than
  • this--that from the very moment the mistress of the house is brought to
  • bed, every female in it, from my lady’s gentlewoman down to the
  • cinder-wench, becomes an inch taller for it; and give themselves more
  • airs upon that single inch, than all their other inches put together.
  • I think rather, replied my uncle _Toby_, that ’tis we who sink an inch
  • lower. --If I meet but a woman with child --I do it. --’Tis a heavy tax
  • upon that half of our fellow-creatures, brother _Shandy_, said my uncle
  • _Toby_--’Tis a piteous burden upon ’em, continued he, shaking his
  • head --Yes, yes, ’tis a painful thing--said my father, shaking his head
  • too----but certainly since shaking of heads came into fashion, never did
  • two heads shake together, in concert, from two such different springs.
  • God bless } ’em all------said my uncle _Toby_ and my
  • Deuce take } father, each to himself.
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • Holla! ----you, chairman! ----here’s sixpence----do step into that
  • bookseller’s shop, and call me a _day-tall_ critick. I am very willing
  • to give any one of ’em a crown to help me with his tackling, to get my
  • father and my uncle _Toby_ off the stairs, and to put them to bed.
  • --’Tis even high time; for except a short nap, which they both got
  • whilst _Trim_ was boring the jack-boots--and which, by the bye, did my
  • father no sort of good, upon the score of the bad hinge--they have not
  • else shut their eyes, since nine hours before the time that Dr. _Slop_
  • was led into the back parlour in that dirty pickle by _Obadiah_.
  • Was every day of my life to be as busy a day as this--and to take
  • up --Truce.
  • I will not finish that sentence till I have made an observation upon the
  • strange state of affairs between the reader and myself, just as things
  • stand at present--an observation never applicable before to any one
  • biographical writer since the creation of the world, but to myself--and
  • I believe, will never hold good to any other, until its final
  • destruction--and therefore, for the very novelty of it alone, it must be
  • worth your worships attending to.
  • I am this month one whole year older than I was this time twelve-month;
  • and having got, as you perceive, almost into the middle of my fourth
  • volume[4.7]--and no farther than to my first day’s life--’tis
  • demonstrative that I have three hundred and sixty-four days more life to
  • write just now, than when I first set out; so that instead of advancing,
  • as a common writer, in my work with what I have been doing at it--on the
  • contrary, I am just thrown so many volumes back--was every day of my
  • life to be as busy a day as this --And why not? ----and the transactions
  • and opinions of it to take up as much description --And for what reason
  • should they be cut short? as at this rate I should just live 364 times
  • faster than I should write --It must follow, an’ please your worships,
  • that the more I write, the more I shall have to write--and consequently,
  • the more your worships read, the more your worships will have to read.
  • Will this be good for your worships’ eyes?
  • It will do well for mine; and, was it not that my OPINIONS will be the
  • death of me, I perceive I shall lead a fine life of it out of this
  • self-same life of mine; or, in other words, shall lead a couple of fine
  • lives together.
  • As for the proposal of twelve volumes a year, or a volume a month, it no
  • way alters my prospect--write as I will, and rush as I may into the
  • middle of things, as _Horace_ advises --I shall never overtake myself
  • whipp’d and driven to the last pinch; at the worst I shall have one day
  • the start of my pen--and one day is enough for two volumes----and two
  • volumes will be enough for one year.--
  • Heaven prosper the manufacturers of paper under this propitious reign,
  • which is now opened to us----as I trust its providence will prosper
  • everything else in it that is taken in hand.----
  • As for the propagation of Geese --I give myself no concern --Nature is
  • all bountiful --I shall never want tools to work with.
  • --So then, friend! you have got my father and my uncle _Toby_ off the
  • stairs, and seen them to bed? ------And how did you manage it? ----You
  • dropp’d a curtain at the stair-foot --I thought you had no other way for
  • it ------Here’s a crown for your trouble.
  • [Footnote 4.7: According to the original Editions.]
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • --Then reach me my breeches off the chair, said my father to _Susannah_.
  • ----There is not a moment’s time to dress you, Sir, cried
  • _Susannah_--the child is as black in the face as my ----As your what?
  • said my father, for like all orators, he was a dear searcher into
  • comparisons. --Bless me, Sir, said _Susannah_, the child’s in a fit.
  • --And where’s Mr. _Yorick?_ --Never where he should be, said _Susannah_,
  • but his curate’s in the dressing-room, with the child upon his arm,
  • waiting for the name--and my mistress bid me run as fast as I could to
  • know, as captain _Shandy_ is the godfather, whether it should not be
  • called after him.
  • Were one sure, said my father to himself, scratching his eyebrow, that
  • the child was expiring, one might as well compliment my brother _Toby_
  • as not--and it would be a pity, in such a case, to throw away so great a
  • name as _Trismegistus_ upon him----but he may recover.
  • No, no, ----said my father to _Susannah_, I’ll get up ------There is no
  • time, cried _Susannah_, the child’s as black as my shoe. _Trismegistus_,
  • said my father ------But stay--thou art a leaky vessel, _Susannah_, added
  • my father; canst thou carry _Trismegistus_ in thy head, the length of
  • the gallery without scattering? ------Can I? cried _Susannah_, shutting
  • the door in a huff. ----If she can, I’ll be shot, said my father,
  • bouncing out of bed in the dark, and groping for his breeches.
  • _Susannah_ ran with all speed along the gallery.
  • My father made all possible speed to find his breeches.
  • _Susannah_ got the start, and kept it--’Tis _Tris_--something, cried
  • _Susannah_ --There is no christian-name in the world, said the curate,
  • beginning with _Tris_--but _Tristram_. Then ’tis _Tristram-gistus_,
  • quoth _Susannah_.
  • ----There is no _gistus_ to it, noodle! --’tis my own name, replied the
  • curate, dipping his hand, as he spoke, into the bason--_Tristram!_ said
  • he, &c. &c. &c. &c., so _Tristram_ was I called, and _Tristram_ shall I
  • be to the day of my death.
  • My father followed _Susannah_, with his night-gown across his arm, with
  • nothing more than his breeches on, fastened through haste with but a
  • single button, and that button through haste thrust only half into the
  • button-hole.
  • ----She has not forgot the name? cried my father, half opening the door.
  • ----No, no, said the curate, with a tone of intelligence. ----And the
  • child is better, cried _Susannah_. ----And how does your mistress? As
  • well, said _Susannah_, as can be expected. --Pish! said my father, the
  • button of his breeches slipping out of the button-hole --So that whether
  • the interjection was levelled at _Susannah_, or the button-hole--whether
  • Pish was an interjection of contempt or an interjection of modesty, is a
  • doubt, and must be a doubt till I shall have time to write the three
  • following favourite chapters, that is, my chapter of _chamber-maids_, my
  • chapter of _pishes_, and my chapter of _button-holes_.
  • All the light I am able to give the reader at present is this, that the
  • moment my father cried Pish! he whisk’d himself about--and with his
  • breeches held up by one hand, and his night-gown thrown across the arm
  • of the other, he turned along the gallery to bed, something slower than
  • he came.
  • CHAPTER XV
  • I wish I could write a chapter upon sleep.
  • A fitter occasion could never have presented itself, than what this
  • moment offers, when all the curtains of the family are drawn--the
  • candles put out--and no creature’s eyes are open but a single one, for
  • the other has been shut these twenty years, of my mother’s nurse.
  • It is a fine subject!
  • And yet, as fine as it is, I would undertake to write a dozen chapters
  • upon button-holes, both quicker and with more fame, than a single
  • chapter upon this.
  • Button-holes! there is something lively in the very idea of
  • ’em----and trust me, when I get amongst ’em ----You gentry with great
  • beards----look as grave as you will ------I’ll make merry work with my
  • button-holes --I shall have ’em all to myself--’tis a maiden subject
  • --I shall run foul of no man’s wisdom or fine sayings in it.
  • But for sleep ----I know I shall make nothing of it before I begin
  • --I am no dab at your fine sayings in the first place--and in the next,
  • I cannot for my soul set a grave face upon a bad matter, and tell the
  • world--’tis the refuge of the unfortunate--the enfranchisement of
  • the prisoner--the downy lap of the hopeless, the weary, and the
  • broken-hearted; nor could I set out with a lye in my mouth, by
  • affirming, that of all the soft and delicious functions of our nature,
  • by which the great Author of it, in his bounty, has been pleased to
  • recompense the sufferings wherewith his justice and his good pleasure
  • has wearied us----that this is the chiefest (I know pleasures worth ten
  • of it); or what a happiness it is to man, when the anxieties and
  • passions of the day are over, and he lies down upon his back, that his
  • soul shall be so seated within him, that whichever way she turns her
  • eyes, the heavens shall look calm and sweet above her--no desire--or
  • fear--or doubt that troubles the air, nor any difficulty past, present,
  • or to come, that the imagination may not pass over without offence, in
  • that sweet secession.
  • “God’s blessing,” said _Sancho Pança_, “be upon the man who first
  • invented this self-same thing called sleep--it covers a man all over
  • like a cloak.” Now there is more to me in this, and it speaks warmer to
  • my heart and affections, than all the dissertations squeez’d out of the
  • heads of the learned together upon the subject.
  • --Not that I altogether disapprove of what _Montaigne_ advances upon
  • it--’tis admirable in its way--(I quote by memory).
  • The world enjoys other pleasures, says he, as they do that of sleep,
  • without tasting or feeling it as it slips and passes by. --We should
  • study and ruminate upon it, in order to render proper thanks to him who
  • grants it to us. --For this end I cause myself to be disturbed in my
  • sleep, that I may the better and more sensibly relish it. ----And yet I
  • see few, says he again, who live with less sleep, when need requires; my
  • body is capable of a firm, but not of a violent and sudden agitation --I
  • evade of late all violent exercises ----I am never weary with
  • walking----but from my youth, I never liked to ride upon pavements.
  • I love to lie hard and alone, and even without my wife ----This last word
  • may stagger the faith of the world----but remember, “La Vraisemblance
  • (as _Bayle_ says in the affair of _Liceti_) n’est pas toujours du Côté
  • de la Verité.” And so much for sleep.
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • If my wife will but venture him--brother _Toby_, _Trismegistus_ shall be
  • dress’d and brought down to us, whilst you and I are getting our
  • breakfasts together.------
  • ----Go, tell _Susannah_, _Obadiah_, to step here.
  • She is run upstairs, answered _Obadiah_, this very instant, sobbing and
  • crying, and wringing her hands as if her heart would break.
  • We shall have a rare month of it, said my father, turning his head from
  • _Obadiah_, and looking wistfully in my uncle _Toby’s_ face for some
  • time--we shall have a devilish month of it, brother _Toby_, said my
  • father, setting his arms a-kimbo, and shaking his head; fire, water,
  • women, wind--brother _Toby!_--’Tis some misfortune, quoth my uncle
  • _Toby_. ----That it is, cried my father--to have so many jarring
  • elements breaking loose, and riding triumph in every corner of a
  • gentleman’s house --Little boots it to the peace of a family, brother
  • _Toby_, that you and I possess ourselves, and sit here silent and
  • unmoved----whilst such a storm is whistling over our heads.------
  • And what’s the matter, _Susannah?_ They have called the child
  • _Tristram_----and my mistress is just got out of an hysterick fit about
  • it ----No----’tis not my fault, said _Susannah_ --I told him it was
  • _Tristram-gistus_.
  • ----Make tea for yourself, brother _Toby_, said my father, taking down
  • his hat----but how different from the sallies and agitations of voice
  • and members which a common reader would imagine!
  • --For he spake in the sweetest modulation--and took down his hat with
  • the genteelest movement of limbs, that ever affliction harmonized and
  • attuned together.
  • ----Go to the bowling-green for corporal _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_,
  • speaking to _Obadiah_, as soon as my father left the room.
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • When the misfortune of my NOSE fell so heavily upon my father’s head;
  • --the reader remembers that he walked instantly up stairs, and cast
  • himself down upon his bed; and from hence, unless he has a great insight
  • into human nature, he will be apt to expect a rotation of the same
  • ascending and descending movements from him, upon his misfortune of my
  • NAME; ----no.
  • The different weight, dear Sir----nay even the different package of two
  • vexations of the same weight----makes a very wide difference in our
  • manner of bearing and getting through with them. ----It is not half an
  • hour ago, when (in the great hurry and precipitation of a poor devil’s
  • writing for daily bread) I threw a fair sheet, which I had just
  • finished, and carefully wrote out, slap into the fire, instead of the
  • foul one.
  • Instantly I snatch’d off my wig, and threw it perpendicularly, with all
  • imaginable violence, up to the top of the room--indeed I caught it as it
  • fell----but there was an end of the matter; nor do I think anything else
  • in _Nature_ would have given such immediate ease: She, dear Goddess, by
  • an instantaneous impulse, in all _provoking cases_, determines us to a
  • sally of this or that member--or else she thrusts us into this or that
  • place or posture of body, we know not why ----But mark, madam, we live
  • amongst riddles and mysteries----the most obvious things, which come in
  • our way, have dark sides, which the quickest sight cannot penetrate
  • into; and even the clearest and most exalted understandings amongst us
  • find ourselves puzzled and at a loss in almost every cranny of nature’s
  • works: so that this, like a thousand other things, falls out for us in a
  • way, which tho’ we cannot reason upon it--yet we find the good of it,
  • may it please your reverences and your worships----and that’s enough for
  • us.
  • Now, my father could not lie down with this affliction for his
  • life----nor could he carry it up stairs like the other--he walked
  • composedly out with it to the fish-pond.
  • Had my father leaned his head upon his hand, and reasoned an hour which
  • way to have gone------reason, with all her force, could not have
  • directed him to anything like it: there is something, Sir, in
  • fish-ponds----but what it is, I leave to system-builders and
  • fish-pond-diggers betwixt ’em to find out--but there is something, under
  • the first disorderly transport of the humours, so unaccountably
  • becalming in an orderly and a sober walk towards one of them, that I
  • have often wondered that neither _Pythagoras_, nor _Plato_, nor _Solon_,
  • nor _Lycurgus_, nor _Mahomet_, nor any one of your noted lawgivers, ever
  • gave order about them.
  • CHAPTER XVIII
  • Your honour, said _Trim_, shutting the parlour-door before he began to
  • speak, has heard, I imagine, of this unlucky accident ----O yes, _Trim_,
  • said my uncle _Toby_, and it gives me great concern. --I am heartily
  • concerned too, but I hope your honour, replied _Trim_, will do me the
  • justice to believe, that it was not in the least owing to me. ----To
  • thee--_Trim?_ --cried my uncle _Toby_, looking kindly in his
  • face------’twas _Susannah’s_ and the curate’s folly betwixt them.
  • ------What business could they have together, an’ please your honour, in
  • the garden? ----In the gallery thou meanest, replied my uncle _Toby_.
  • _Trim_ found he was upon a wrong scent, and stopped short with a low
  • bow ----Two misfortunes, quoth the corporal to himself, are twice as many
  • at least as are needful to be talked over at one time; ----the mischief
  • the cow has done in breaking into the fortifications, may be told his
  • honour hereafter. ----_Trim’s_ casuistry and address, under the cover of
  • his low bow, prevented all suspicion in my uncle _Toby_, so he went on
  • with what he had to say to _Trim_ as follows:
  • ------For my own part, _Trim_, though I can see little or no difference
  • betwixt my nephew’s being called _Tristram_ or _Trismegistus_--yet as
  • the thing sits so near my brother’s heart, _Trim_ ------I would freely
  • have given a hundred pounds rather than it should have happened. ----A
  • hundred pounds, an’ please your honour! replied _Trim_, ----I would not
  • give a cherry-stone to boot. ----Nor would I, _Trim_, upon my own
  • account, quoth my uncle _Toby_, --------but my brother, whom there is no
  • arguing with in this case--maintains that a great deal more depends,
  • _Trim_, upon christian-names, than what ignorant people imagine----for
  • he says there never was a great or heroic action performed since the
  • world began by one called _Tristram_--nay, he will have it, _Trim_, that
  • a man can neither be learned, or wise, or brave. ----’Tis all fancy, an’
  • please your honour --I fought just as well, replied the corporal, when
  • the regiment called me _Trim_, as when they called me _James Butler_.
  • ----And for my own part, said my uncle _Toby_, though I should blush to
  • boast of myself, _Trim_----yet had my name been _Alexander_, I could
  • have done no more at _Namur_ than my duty. --Bless your honour! cried
  • _Trim_, advancing three steps as he spoke, does a man think of his
  • christian-name when he goes upon the attack? ------Or when he stands in
  • the trench, _Trim?_ cried my uncle _Toby_, looking firm. ----Or when he
  • enters a breach? said _Trim_, pushing in between two chairs. ----Or
  • forces the lines? cried my uncle, rising up, and pushing his crutch like
  • a pike. ----Or facing a platoon? cried _Trim_, presenting his stick like
  • a fire-lock. ----Or when he marches up the glacis? cried my uncle
  • _Toby_, looking warm and setting his foot upon his stool.------
  • CHAPTER XIX
  • My father was returned from his walk to the fish-pond----and opened the
  • parlour-door in the very height of the attack, just as my uncle _Toby_
  • was marching up the glacis----_Trim_ recovered his arms----never was my
  • uncle _Toby_ caught in riding at such a desperate rate in his life!
  • Alas! my uncle _Toby!_ had not a weightier matter called forth all the
  • ready eloquence of my father--how hadst thou then and thy poor
  • HOBBY-HORSE too been insulted!
  • My father hung up his hat with the same air he took it down; and after
  • giving a slight look at the disorder of the room, he took hold of one of
  • the chairs which had formed the corporal’s breach, and placing it
  • over-against my uncle _Toby_, he sat down in it, and as soon as the
  • tea-things were taken away, and the door shut, he broke out in a
  • lamentation as follows.
  • MY FATHER’S LAMENTATION
  • It is in vain longer, said my father, addressing himself as much to
  • _Ernulphus’s_ curse, which was laid upon the corner of the
  • chimney-piece----as to my uncle _Toby_ who sat under it----it is in vain
  • longer, said my father, in the most querulous monotony imaginable, to
  • struggle as I have done against this most uncomfortable of human
  • persuasions ----I see it plainly, that either for my own sins, brother
  • _Toby_, or the sins and follies of the _Shandy_ family, Heaven has
  • thought fit to draw forth the heaviest of its artillery against me; and
  • that the prosperity of my child is the point upon which the whole force
  • of it is directed to play. ------Such a thing would batter the whole
  • universe about our ears, brother _Shandy_, said my uncle _Toby_--if it
  • was so --Unhappy _Tristram_: child of wrath! child of decrepitude!
  • interruption! mistake! and discontent! What one misfortune or disaster
  • in the book of embryotic evils, that could unmechanize thy frame, or
  • entangle thy filaments! which has not fallen upon thy head, or ever thou
  • camest into the world----what evils in thy passage into it! ------what
  • evils since! ----produced into being, in the decline of thy father’s
  • days----when the powers of his imagination and of his body were waxing
  • feeble----when radical heat and radical moisture, the elements which
  • should have temper’d thine, were drying up; and nothing left to found
  • thy stamina in, but negations--’tis pitiful------brother _Toby_, at the
  • best, and called out for all the little helps that care and attention on
  • both sides could give it. But how were we defeated! You know the event,
  • brother _Toby_----’tis too melancholy a one to be repeated now----when
  • the few animal spirits I was worth in the world, and with which memory,
  • fancy, and quick parts should have been convey’d------were all
  • dispersed, confused, confounded, scattered, and sent to the
  • devil.
  • ------
  • Here then was the time to have put a stop to this persecution against
  • him; ------and tried an experiment at least------whether calmness and
  • serenity of mind in your sister, with a due attention, brother _Toby_,
  • to her evacuations and repletions------and the rest of her non-naturals,
  • might not, in a course of nine months gestation, have set all things to
  • rights. ------My child was bereft of these! ------What a teazing life
  • did she lead herself, and consequently her fœtus too, with that
  • nonsensical anxiety of hers about lying-in in town? I thought my sister
  • submitted with the greatest patience, replied my uncle _Toby_ --------I
  • never heard her utter one fretful word about it. ------She fumed
  • inwardly, cried my father; and that, let me tell you, brother, was ten
  • times worse for the child--and then! what battles did she fight with me,
  • and what perpetual storms about the midwife. ------There she gave vent,
  • said my uncle _Toby_. ------Vent! cried my father, looking up.
  • But what was all this, my dear _Toby_, to the injuries done us by my
  • child’s coming head foremost into the world, when all I wished, in this
  • general wreck of his frame, was to have saved this little casket
  • unbroke, unrifled.------
  • With all my precautions, how was my system turned topside-turvy in the
  • womb with my child! his head exposed to the hand of violence, and a
  • pressure of 470 pounds avoirdupois weight acting so perpendicularly upon
  • its apex--that at this hour ’tis ninety _per Cent._ insurance, that the
  • fine net-work of the intellectual web be not rent and torn to a thousand
  • tatters.
  • ----Still we could have done. ----Fool, coxcomb, puppy----give him but a
  • NOSE ----Cripple, Dwarf, Driveller, Goosecap------(shape him as you will)
  • the door of fortune stands open--_O Licetus!_ _Licetus!_ had I been
  • blest with a fœtus five inches long and a half, like thee --Fate might
  • have done her worst.
  • Still, brother _Toby_, there was one cast of the dye left for our child
  • after all--_O Tristram!_ _Tristram!_ _Tristram!_
  • We will send for Mr. _Yorick_, said my uncle _Toby_.
  • ----You may send for whom you will, replied my father.
  • CHAPTER XX
  • What a rate have I gone on at, curvetting and frisking it away, two up
  • and two down for four volumes[4.8] together, without looking once
  • behind, or even on one side of me, to see whom I trod upon! --I’ll tread
  • upon no one----quoth I to myself when I mounted ------I’ll take a good
  • rattling gallop; but I’ll not hurt the poorest jackass upon the road.
  • ----So off I set----up one lane------down another, through this
  • turnpike----over that, as if the arch-jockey of jockeys had got behind
  • me.
  • Now ride at this rate with what good intention and resolution you
  • may----’tis a million to one you’ll do some one a mischief, if not
  • yourself ------He’s flung--he’s off--he’s lost his hat--he’s
  • down------he’ll break his neck----see! ----if he has not galloped full
  • among the scaffolding of the undertaking criticks! ----he’ll knock his
  • brains out against some of their posts--he’s bounced out! --look--he’s
  • now riding like a mad-cap full tilt through a whole crowd of painters,
  • fiddlers, poets, biographers, physicians, lawyers, logicians, players,
  • schoolmen, churchmen, statesmen, soldiers, casuists, connoisseurs,
  • prelates, popes, and engineers. --Don’t fear, said I --I’ll not hurt the
  • poorest jack-ass upon the king’s highway. --But your horse throws dirt;
  • see you’ve splash’d a bishop. ----I hope in God, ’twas only _Ernulphus_,
  • said I. ------But you have squirted full in the faces of Mess. _Le
  • Moyne_, _De Romigny_, and _De Marcilly_, doctors of the _Sorbonne_.
  • ------That was last year, replied I. --But you have trod this moment
  • upon a king. ----Kings have bad times on’t, said I, to be trod upon by
  • such people as me.
  • You have done it, replied my accuser.
  • I deny it, quoth I, and so have got off, and here am I standing with my
  • bridle in one hand, and with my cap in the other, to tell my story.
  • ------And what is it? You shall hear in the next chapter.
  • [Footnote 4.8: According to the original Editions.]
  • CHAPTER XXI
  • As _Francis_ the first of _France_ was one winterly night warming
  • himself over the embers of a wood fire, and talking with his first
  • minister of sundry things for the good of the state[4.9] --It would not
  • be amiss, said the king, stirring up the embers with his cane, if this
  • good understanding betwixt ourselves and _Switzerland_ was a little
  • strengthened. --There is no end, Sire, replied the minister, in giving
  • money to these people--they would swallow up the treasury of _France_.
  • --Poo! poo! answered the king--there are more ways, Mons. _le Premier_,
  • of bribing states, besides that of giving money --I’ll pay _Switzerland_
  • the honour of standing godfather for my next child. ----Your majesty,
  • said the minister, in so doing, would have all the grammarians in
  • _Europe_ upon your back; ----_Switzerland_, as a republick, being a
  • female, can in no construction be godfather. --She may be godmother,
  • replied _Francis_ hastily--so announce my intentions by a courier
  • to-morrow morning.
  • I am astonished, said _Francis_ the First, (that day fortnight) speaking
  • to his minister as he entered the closet, that we have had no answer
  • from _Switzerland_. ----Sire, I wait upon you this moment, said Mons.
  • _le Premier_, to lay before you my dispatches upon that business. --They
  • take it kindly, said the king. --They do, Sire, replied the minister,
  • and have the highest sense of the honour your majesty has done
  • them----but the republick, as godmother, claims her right, in this case,
  • of naming the child.
  • In all reason, quoth the king----she will christen him _Francis_, or
  • _Henry_, or _Lewis_, or some name that she knows will be agreeable to
  • us. Your majesty is deceived, replied the minister ----I have this hour
  • received a dispatch from our resident, with the determination of the
  • republick on that point also. ----And what name has the republick fixed
  • upon for the Dauphin? ----_Shadrach_, _Meshech_, _Abed-nego_, replied
  • the minister. --By Saint _Peter’s_ girdle, I will have nothing to do
  • with the _Swiss_, cried _Francis_ the First, pulling up his breeches and
  • walking hastily across the floor.
  • Your majesty, replied the minister calmly, cannot bring yourself off.
  • We’ll pay them in money------said the king.
  • Sire, there are not sixty thousand crowns in the treasury, answered the
  • minister. ----I’ll pawn the best jewel in my crown, quoth _Francis_ the
  • First.
  • Your honour stands pawn’d already in this matter, answered Monsieur _le
  • Premier_.
  • Then, Mons. _le Premier_, said the king, by------we’ll go to war with
  • ’em.
  • [Footnote 4.9: Vide Menagiana, Vol. I.]
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • Albeit, gentle reader, I have lusted earnestly, and endeavoured
  • carefully (according to the measure of such a slender skill as God has
  • vouchsafed me, and as convenient leisure from other occasions of needful
  • profit and healthful pastime have permitted) that these little books
  • which I here put into thy hands, might stand instead of many bigger
  • books--yet have I carried myself towards thee in such fanciful guise of
  • careless disport, that right sore am I ashamed now to intreat thy lenity
  • seriously------in beseeching thee to believe it of me, that in the story
  • of my father and his christian-names --I have no thoughts of treading
  • upon _Francis_ the First----nor in the affair of the nose--upon
  • _Francis_ the Ninth--nor in the character of my uncle _Toby_----of
  • characterizing the militiating spirits of my country--the wound upon his
  • groin, is a wound to every comparison of that kind--nor by _Trim_--that
  • I meant the duke of _Ormond_----or that my book is wrote against
  • predestination, or free-will, or taxes --If ’tis wrote against any thing,
  • ----’tis wrote, an’ please your worships, against the spleen! in order,
  • by a more frequent and a more convulsive elevation and depression of the
  • diaphragm, and the succussations of the intercostal and abdominal
  • muscles in laughter, to drive the _gall_ and other _bitter juices_ from
  • the gallbladder, liver, and sweet-bread of his majesty’s subjects, with
  • all the inimicitious passions which belong to them, down into their
  • duodenums.
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • --But can the thing be undone, _Yorick?_ said my father--for in my
  • opinion, continued he, it cannot. I am a vile canonist, replied
  • _Yorick_--but of all evils, holding suspense to be the most tormenting,
  • we shall at least know the worst of this matter. I hate these great
  • dinners----said my father --The size of the dinner is not the point,
  • answered _Yorick_----we want, Mr. _Shandy_, to dive into the bottom of
  • this doubt, whether the name can be changed or not--and as the beards of
  • so many commissaries, officials, advocates, proctors, registers, and of
  • the most eminent of our school-divines, and others, are all to meet in
  • the middle of one table, and _Didius_ has so pressingly invited you--who
  • in your distress would miss such an occasion? All that is requisite,
  • continued _Yorick_, is to apprize _Didius_, and let him manage a
  • conversation after dinner so as to introduce the subject. --Then my
  • brother _Toby_, cried my father, clapping his two hands together, shall
  • go with us.
  • ----Let my old tye-wig, quoth my uncle _Toby_, and my laced regimentals,
  • be hung to the fire all night, _Trim_.
  • CHAPTER XXV
  • --No doubt, Sir, --there is a whole chapter wanting here--and a chasm of
  • ten pages made in the book by it--but the bookbinder is neither a fool,
  • or a knave, or a puppy--nor is the book a jot more imperfect (at least
  • upon that score)----but, on the contrary, the book is more perfect and
  • complete by wanting the chapter, than having it, as I shall demonstrate
  • to your reverences in this manner. --I question first, by the bye,
  • whether the same experiment might not be made as successfully upon
  • sundry other chapters------but there is no end, an’ please your
  • reverences, in trying experiments upon chapters------we have had enough
  • of it ----So there’s an end of that matter.
  • But before I begin my demonstration, let me only tell you, that the
  • chapter which I have torn out, and which otherwise you would all have
  • been reading just now, instead of this----was the description of my
  • father’s, my uncle _Toby’s_, _Trim’s_, and _Obadiah’s_ setting out and
  • journeying to the visitation at ****.
  • We’ll go in the coach, said my father --Prithee, have the arms been
  • altered, _Obadiah?_ --It would have made my story much better to have
  • begun with telling you, that at the time my mother’s arms were added to
  • the _Shandy’s_, when the coach was re-painted upon my father’s marriage,
  • it had so fallen out, that the coach-painter, whether by performing all
  • his works with the left-hand, like _Turpilius_ the _Roman_, or _Hans
  • Holbein_ of _Basil_----or whether ’twas more from the blunder of his
  • head than hand----or whether, lastly, it was from the sinister turn
  • which every thing relating to our family was apt to take----it so fell
  • out, however, to our reproach, that instead of the _bend-dexter_, which
  • since _Harry_ the Eighth’s reign was honestly our due------a
  • _bend-sinister_, by some of these fatalities, had been drawn quite
  • across the field of the _Shandy_ arms. ’Tis scarce credible that the
  • mind of so wise a man as my father was, could be so much incommoded with
  • so small a matter. The word coach--let it be whose it would--or
  • coach-man, or coach-horse, or coach-hire, could never be named in the
  • family, but he constantly complained of carrying this vile mark of
  • illegitimacy upon the door of his own; he never once was able to step
  • into the coach, or out of it, without turning round to take a view of
  • the arms, and making a vow at the same time, that it was the last time
  • he would ever set his foot in it again, till the _bend-sinister_ was
  • taken out--but like the affair of the hinge, it was one of the many
  • things which the _Destinies_ had set down in their books ever to be
  • grumbled at (and in wiser families than ours)----but never to be mended.
  • --Has the _bend-sinister_ been brush’d out, I say? said my father.
  • ----There has been nothing brush’d out, Sir, answered _Obadiah_, but the
  • lining. We’ll go o’horseback, said my father, turning to _Yorick_.
  • ----Of all things in the world, except politicks, the clergy know the
  • least of heraldry, said _Yorick_. --No matter for that, cried my
  • father ----I should be sorry to appear with a blot in my escutcheon
  • before them. --Never mind the _bend-sinister_, said my uncle _Toby_,
  • putting on his tye-wig. ----No, indeed, said my father--you may go with
  • my aunt _Dinah_ to a visitation with a _bend-sinister_, if you think
  • fit --My poor uncle _Toby_ blush’d. My father was vexed at himself.
  • ------No----my dear brother _Toby_, said my father, changing his
  • tone----but the damp of the coach-lining about my loins, may give me the
  • sciatica again, as it did _December_, _January_, and _February_ last
  • _winter_--so if you please you shall ride my wife’s pad----and as you
  • are to preach, _Yorick_, you had better make the best of your way
  • before----and leave me to take care of my brother _Toby_, and to follow
  • at our own rates.
  • Now the chapter I was obliged to tear out, was the description of this
  • cavalcade, in which Corporal _Trim_ and _Obadiah_, upon two coach-horses
  • a-breast, led the way as slow as a patrole----whilst my uncle _Toby_, in
  • his laced regimentals and tye-wig, kept his rank with my father, in deep
  • roads and dissertations alternately upon the advantage of learning and
  • arms, as each could get the start.
  • --But the painting of this journey, upon reviewing it, appears to be so
  • much above the stile and manner of anything else I have been able to
  • paint in this book, that it could not have remained in it, without
  • depreciating every other scene; and destroying at the same time that
  • necessary equipoise and balance, (whether of good or bad) betwixt
  • chapter and chapter, from whence the just proportions and harmony of the
  • whole work results. For my own part, I am but just set up in the
  • business, so know little about it--but, in my opinion, to write a book
  • is for all the world like humming a song--but in tune with yourself,
  • madam, ’tis no matter how high or how low you take it.
  • --This is the reason, may it please your reverences, that some of the
  • lowest and flattest compositions pass off very well----(as _Yorick_ told
  • my uncle _Toby_ one night) by siege. ----My uncle _Toby_ looked brisk at
  • the sound of the word _siege_, but could make neither head or tail of
  • it.
  • I’m to preach at court next Sunday, said _Homenas_----run over my
  • notes----so I humm’d over doctor _Homenas’s_ notes--the modulation’s
  • very well----’twill do, _Homenas_, if it holds on at this rate----so on
  • I humm’d----and a tolerable tune I thought it was; and to this hour, may
  • it please your reverences, had never found out how low, how flat, how
  • spiritless and jejune it was, but that all of a sudden, up started an
  • air in the middle of it, so fine, so rich, so heavenly, --it carried my
  • soul up with it into the other world; now had I (as _Montaigne_
  • complained in a parallel accident)--had I found the declivity easy, or
  • the ascent accessible------certes I had been outwitted. ------Your
  • notes, _Homenas_, I should have said, are good notes; ----but it was so
  • perpendicular a precipice------so wholly cut off from the rest of the
  • work, that by the first note I humm’d I found myself flying into the
  • other world, and from thence discovered the vale from whence I came, so
  • deep, so low, and dismal, that I shall never have the heart to descend
  • into it again.
  • [-->] A dwarf who brings a standard along with him to measure his own
  • size--take my word, is a dwarf in more articles than one. --And so much
  • for tearing out of chapters.
  • CHAPTER XXVI
  • ----See if he is not cutting it into slips, and giving them about him to
  • light their pipes! ----’Tis abominable, answered _Didius_; it should not
  • go unnoticed, said doctor _Kysarcius_------ [-->] he was of the
  • _Kysarcii_ of the Low Countries.
  • Methinks, said _Didius_, half rising from his chair, in order to remove
  • a bottle and a tall decanter, which stood in a direct line betwixt him
  • and _Yorick_----you might have spared this sarcastic stroke, and have
  • hit upon a more proper place, Mr. _Yorick_--or at least upon a more
  • proper occasion to have shewn your contempt of what we have been about:
  • If the sermon is of no better worth than to light pipes with----’twas
  • certainly, Sir, not good enough to be preached before so learned a body;
  • and if ’twas good enough to be preached before so learned a
  • body----’twas certainly, Sir, too good to light their pipes with
  • afterwards.
  • ----I have got him fast hung up, quoth _Didius_ to himself, upon one of
  • the two horns of my dilemma----let him get off as he can.
  • I have undergone such unspeakable torments, in bringing forth this
  • sermon, quoth _Yorick_, upon this occasion------that I declare,
  • _Didius_, I would suffer martyrdom--and if it was possible my horse with
  • me, a thousand times over, before I would sit down and make such
  • another: I was delivered of it at the wrong end of me----it came from my
  • head instead of my heart------and it is for the pain it gave me, both in
  • the writing and preaching of it, that I revenge myself of it, in this
  • manner --To preach, to shew the extent of our reading, or the subtleties
  • of our wit--to parade in the eyes of the vulgar with the beggarly
  • accounts of a little learning, tinsel’d over with a few words which
  • glitter, but convey little light and less warmth----is a dishonest use
  • of the poor single half hour in a week which is put into our hands--’Tis
  • not preaching the gospel--but ourselves ----For my own part, continued
  • _Yorick_, I had rather direct five words point-blank to the heart.--
  • As _Yorick_ pronounced the word _point-blank_, my uncle _Toby_ rose up
  • to say something upon projectiles----when a single word and no more
  • uttered from the opposite side of the table drew every one’s ears
  • towards it--a word of all others in the dictionary the last in that
  • place to be expected--a word I am ashamed to write--yet must be
  • written----must be read--illegal--uncanonical--guess ten thousand
  • guesses, multiplied into themselves--rack--torture your invention for
  • ever, you’re where you was --------In short, I’ll tell it in the next
  • chapter.
  • CHAPTER XXVII
  • Zounds! -------------------------------------------------------------
  • --------------------------------------------------------------------
  • ------------Z------ds! cried _Phutatorius_, partly to himself----and yet
  • high enough to be heard--and what seemed odd, ’twas uttered in a
  • construction of look, and in a tone of voice, somewhat between that of a
  • man in amazement and one in bodily pain.
  • One or two who had very nice ears, and could distinguish the expression
  • and mixture of the two tones as plainly as a _third_ or a _fifth_, or
  • any other chord in musick--were the most puzzled and perplexed with
  • it--the concord was good in itself--but then ’twas quite out of the key,
  • and no way applicable to the subject started; ----so that with all their
  • knowledge, they could not tell what in the world to make of it.
  • Others who knew nothing of musical expression, and merely lent their
  • ears to the plain import of the _word_, imagined that _Phutatorius_, who
  • was somewhat of a cholerick spirit, was just going to snatch the cudgels
  • out of _Didius’s_ hands, in order to bemaul _Yorick_ to some
  • purpose--and that the desperate monosyllable Z------ds was the exordium
  • to an oration, which, as they judged from the sample, presaged but a
  • rough kind of handling of him; so that my uncle _Toby’s_ good-nature
  • felt a pang for what _Yorick_ was about to undergo. But seeing
  • _Phutatorius_ stop short, without any attempt or desire to go on--a
  • third party began to suppose, that it was no more than an involuntary
  • respiration, casually forming itself into the shape of a twelve-penny
  • oath--without the sin or substance of one.
  • Others, and especially one or two who sat next him, looked upon it on
  • the contrary as a real and substantial oath, propensly formed against
  • _Yorick_, to whom he was known to bear no good liking--which said oath,
  • as my father philosophized upon it, actually lay fretting and fuming at
  • that very time in the upper regions of _Phutatorius’s_ purtenance; and
  • so was naturally, and according to the due course of things, first
  • squeezed out by the sudden influx of blood which was driven into the
  • right ventricle of _Phutatorius’s_ heart, by the stroke of surprize
  • which so strange a theory of preaching had excited.
  • How finely we argue upon mistaken facts!
  • There was not a soul busied in all these various reasonings upon the
  • monosyllable which _Phutatorius_ uttered----who did not take this for
  • granted, proceeding upon it as from an axiom, namely, that
  • _Phutatorius’s_ mind was intent upon the subject of debate which was
  • arising between _Didius_ and _Yorick_; and indeed as he looked first
  • towards the one and then towards the other, with the air of a man
  • listening to what was going forwards--who would not have thought the
  • same? But the truth was, that _Phutatorius_ knew not one word or one
  • syllable of what was passing--but his whole thoughts and attention were
  • taken up with a transaction which was going forwards at that very
  • instant within the precincts of his own _Galligaskins_, and in a part of
  • them, where of all others he stood most interested to watch accidents:
  • So that notwithstanding he looked with all the attention in the world,
  • and had gradually skrewed up every nerve and muscle in his face, to the
  • utmost pitch the instrument would bear, in order, as it was thought, to
  • give a sharp reply to _Yorick_, who sat over-against him----yet, I say,
  • was _Yorick_ never once in any one domicile of _Phutatorius’s_
  • brain----but the true cause of his exclamation lay at least a yard
  • below.
  • This I will endeavour to explain to you with all imaginable decency.
  • You must be informed then, that _Gastripheres_, who had taken a turn
  • into the kitchen a little before dinner, to see how things went
  • on--observing a wicker-basket of fine chesnuts standing upon the
  • dresser, had ordered that a hundred or two of them might be roasted and
  • sent in, as soon as dinner was over---- _Gastripheres_ inforcing his
  • orders about them, that _Didius_, but _Phutatorius_ especially, were
  • particularly fond of ’em.
  • About two minutes before the time that my uncle _Toby_ interrupted
  • _Yorick’s_ harangue--_Gastripheres’s_ chesnuts were brought in--and as
  • _Phutatorius’s_ fondness for ’em was uppermost in the waiter’s head, he
  • laid them directly before _Phutatorius_, wrapt up hot in a clean damask
  • napkin.
  • Now whether it was physically impossible, with half a dozen hands all
  • thrust into the napkin at a time--but that some one chesnut, of more
  • life and rotundity than the rest, must be put in motion--it so fell out,
  • however, that one was actually sent rolling off the table; and as
  • _Phutatorius_ sat straddling under----it fell perpendicularly into that
  • particular aperture of _Phutatorius’s_ breeches, for which, to the shame
  • and indelicacy of our language be it spoke, there is no chaste word
  • throughout all _Johnson’s_ dictionary----let it suffice to say----it was
  • that particular aperture which, in all good societies, the laws of
  • decorum do strictly require, like the temple of _Janus_ (in peace at
  • least) to be universally shut up.
  • The neglect of this punctilio in _Phutatorius_ (which by the bye should
  • be a warning to all mankind) had opened a door to this accident.----
  • Accident I call it, in compliance to a received mode of
  • speaking------but in no opposition to the opinion either of _Acrites_ or
  • _Mythogeras_ in this matter; I know they were both prepossessed and
  • fully persuaded of it--and are so to this hour, That there was nothing
  • of accident in the whole event----but that the chesnut’s taking that
  • particular course and in a manner of its own accord--and then falling
  • with all its heat directly into that one particular place, and no
  • other----was a real judgment upon _Phutatorius_, for that filthy and
  • obscene treatise _de Concubinis retinendis_, which _Phutatorius_ had
  • published about twenty years ago----and was that identical week going to
  • give the world a second edition of.
  • It is not my business to dip my pen in this controversy----much
  • undoubtedly may be wrote on both sides of the question--all that
  • concerns me as an historian, is to represent the matter of fact, and
  • render it credible to the reader, that the hiatus in _Phutatorius’s_
  • breeches was sufficiently wide to receive the chesnut; ----and that the
  • chesnut, somehow or other, did fall perpendicularly and piping hot into
  • it, without _Phutatorius’s_ perceiving it, or any one else at that time.
  • The genial warmth which the chesnut imparted, was not undelectable for
  • the first twenty or five-and-twenty seconds----and did no more than
  • gently solicit _Phutatorius’s_ attention towards the part: ------But the
  • heat gradually increasing, and in a few seconds more getting beyond the
  • point of all sober pleasure, and then advancing with all speed into the
  • regions of pain, the soul of _Phutatorius_, together with all his ideas,
  • his thoughts, his attention, his imagination, judgment, resolution,
  • deliberation, ratiocination, memory, fancy, with ten battalions of
  • animal spirits, all tumultuously crowded down, through different defiles
  • and circuits, to the place of danger, leaving all his upper regions, as
  • you may imagine, as empty as my purse.
  • With the best intelligence which all these messengers could bring him
  • back, _Phutatorius_ was not able to dive into the secret of what was
  • going forwards below, nor could he make any kind of conjecture, what the
  • devil was the matter with it: However, as he knew not what the true
  • cause might turn out, he deemed it most prudent, in the situation he was
  • in at present, to bear it, if possible, like a Stoick; which, with the
  • help of some wry faces and compursions of the mouth, he had certainly
  • accomplished, had his imagination continued neuter; ----but the sallies
  • of the imagination are ungovernable in things of this kind--a thought
  • instantly darted into his mind, that tho’ the anguish had the sensation
  • of glowing heat--it might, notwithstanding that, be a bite as well as a
  • burn; and if so, that possibly a _Newt_ or an _Asker_, or some such
  • detested reptile, had crept up, and was fastening his teeth----the
  • horrid idea of which, with a fresh glow of pain arising that instant
  • from the chesnut, seized _Phutatorius_ with a sudden panick, and in the
  • first terrifying disorder of the passion, it threw him, as it has done
  • the best generals upon earth, quite off his guard: ----the effect of
  • which was this, that he leapt incontinently up, uttering as he rose that
  • interjection of surprise so much descanted upon, with the aposiopestic
  • break after it, marked thus, Z------ds--which, though not strictly
  • canonical, was still as little as any man could have said upon the
  • occasion; ------and which, by the bye, whether canonical or not,
  • _Phutatorius_ could no more help than he could the cause of it.
  • Though this has taken up some time in the narrative, it took up little
  • more time in the transaction, than just to allow for _Phutatorius_ to
  • draw forth the chesnut, and throw it down with violence upon the
  • floor--and for _Yorick_ to rise from his chair, and pick the chesnut up.
  • It is curious to observe the triumph of slight incidents over the mind:
  • ----What incredible weight they have in forming and governing our
  • opinions, both of men and things----that trifles, light as air, shall
  • waft a belief into the soul, and plant it so immoveably within
  • it----that _Euclid’s_ demonstrations, could they be brought to batter it
  • in breach, should not all have power to overthrow it.
  • _Yorick_, I said, picked up the chesnut which _Phutatorius’s_ wrath had
  • flung down----the action was trifling ----I am ashamed to account for
  • it--he did it, for no reason, but that he thought the chesnut not a jot
  • worse for the adventure--and that he held a good chesnut worth stooping
  • for. ------But this incident, trifling as it was, wrought differently in
  • _Phutatorius’s_ head: He considered this act of _Yorick’s_ in getting
  • off his chair and picking up the chesnut, as a plain acknowledgment in
  • him, that the chesnut was originally his--and in course, that it must
  • have been the owner of the chesnut, and no one else, who could have
  • played him such a prank with it: What greatly confirmed him in this
  • opinion, was this, that the table being parallelogramical and very
  • narrow, it afforded a fair opportunity for _Yorick_, who sat directly
  • over against _Phutatorius_, of slipping the chesnut in----and
  • consequently that he did it. The look of something more than suspicion,
  • which _Phutatorius_ cast full upon _Yorick_ as these thoughts arose, too
  • evidently spoke his opinion----and as _Phutatorius_ was naturally
  • supposed to know more of the matter than any person besides, his opinion
  • at once became the general one; ----and for a reason very different from
  • any which have been yet given----in a little time it was put out of all
  • manner of dispute.
  • When great or unexpected events fall out upon the stage of this
  • sublunary world----the mind of man, which is an inquisitive kind of
  • substance, naturally takes a flight behind the scenes to see what is the
  • cause and first spring of them. --The search was not long in this
  • instance.
  • It was well known that _Yorick_ had never a good opinion of the treatise
  • which _Phutatorius_ had wrote _de Concubinis retinendis_, as a thing
  • which he feared had done hurt in the world----and ’twas easily found
  • out, that there was a mystical meaning in _Yorick’s_ prank--and that his
  • chucking the chesnut hot into _Phutatorius’s_ ***----*****, was a
  • sarcastical fling at his book--the doctrines of which, they said, had
  • enflamed many an honest man in the same place.
  • This conceit awaken’d _Somnolentus_----made _Agelastes_ smile----and if
  • you can recollect the precise look and air of a man’s face intent in
  • finding out a riddle------it threw _Gastripheres’s_ into that form--and
  • in short was thought by many to be a master-stroke of arch-wit.
  • This, as the reader has seen from one end to the other, was as
  • groundless as the dreams of philosophy: _Yorick_, no doubt, as
  • _Shakespeare_ said of his ancestor------ “_was a man of jest_,” but it
  • was temper’d with something which withheld him from that, and many other
  • ungracious pranks, of which he as undeservedly bore the blame; --but it
  • was his misfortune all his life long to bear the imputation of saying
  • and doing a thousand things, of which (unless my esteem blinds me) his
  • nature was incapable. All I blame him for----or rather, all I blame and
  • alternately like him for, was that singularity of his temper, which
  • would never suffer him to take pains to set a story right with the
  • world, however in his power. In every ill usage of that sort, he acted
  • precisely as in the affair of his lean horse----he could have explained
  • it to his honour, but his spirit was above it; and besides, he ever
  • looked upon the inventor, the propagator and believer of an illiberal
  • report alike so injurious to him--he could not stoop to tell his story
  • to them--and so trusted to time and truth to do it for him.
  • This heroic cast produced him inconveniences in many respects--in the
  • present it was followed by the fixed resentment of _Phutatorius_, who,
  • as _Yorick_ had just made an end of his chesnut, rose up from his chair
  • a second time, to let him know it--which indeed he did with a smile;
  • saying only--that he would endeavour not to forget the obligation.
  • But you must mark and carefully separate and distinguish these two
  • things in your mind.
  • ----The smile was for the company.
  • ----The threat was for _Yorick_.
  • CHAPTER XXVIII
  • --Can you tell me, quoth _Phutatorius_, speaking to _Gastripheres_ who
  • sat next to him----for one would not apply to a surgeon in so foolish an
  • affair----can you tell me, _Gastripheres_, what is best to take out the
  • fire? ----Ask _Eugenius_, said _Gastripheres_. ----That greatly depends,
  • said _Eugenius_, pretending ignorance of the adventure, upon the nature
  • of the part ----If it is a tender part, and a part which can conveniently
  • be wrapt up ------It is both the one and the other, replied
  • _Phutatorius_, laying his hand as he spoke, with an emphatical nod of
  • his head, upon the part in question, and lifting up his right leg at the
  • same time to ease and ventilate it. ------If that is the case, said
  • _Eugenius_, I would advise you, _Phutatorius_, not to tamper with it by
  • any means; but if you will send to the next printer, and trust your cure
  • to such a simple thing as a soft sheet of paper just come off the
  • press--you need do nothing more than twist it round. --The damp paper,
  • quoth _Yorick_ (who sat next to his friend _Eugenius_) though I know it
  • has a refreshing coolness in it--yet I presume is no more than the
  • vehicle--and that the oil and lamp-black with which the paper is so
  • strongly impregnated, does the business. --Right, said _Eugenius_, and
  • is, of any outward application I would venture to recommend, the most
  • anodyne and safe.
  • Was it my case, said _Gastripheres_, as the main thing is the oil and
  • lamp-black, I should spread them thick upon a rag, and clap it on
  • directly. ------That would make a very devil of it, replied _Yorick_.
  • ----And besides, added _Eugenius_, it would not answer the intention,
  • which is the extreme neatness and elegance of the prescription, which
  • the Faculty hold to be half in half; ----for consider, if the type is a
  • very small one (which it should be) the sanative particles, which come
  • into contact in this form, have the advantage of being spread so
  • infinitely thin, and with such a mathematical equality (fresh paragraphs
  • and large capitals excepted) as no art or management of the spatula can
  • come up to. ------It falls out very luckily, replied _Phutatorius_, that
  • the second edition of my treatise _de Concubinis retinendis_ is at this
  • instant in the press. ------You may take any leaf of it, said
  • _Eugenius_------no matter which. ----Provided, quoth _Yorick_, there is
  • no bawdry in it.------
  • They are just now, replied _Phutatorius_, printing off the ninth
  • chapter----which is the last chapter but one in the book. ----Pray what
  • is the title of that chapter? said _Yorick_; making a respectful bow to
  • _Phutatorius_ as he spoke. ------I think, answered _Phutatorius_, ’tis
  • that _de re concubinariâ_.
  • For Heaven’s sake keep out of that chapter, quoth _Yorick_.
  • ----By all means--added _Eugenius_.
  • CHAPTER XXIX
  • --Now, quoth _Didius_, rising up, and laying his right hand with his
  • fingers spread upon his breast----had such a blunder about a
  • christian-name happened before the Reformation ------[It happened the
  • day before yesterday, quoth my uncle _Toby_ to himself] and when baptism
  • was administer’d in _Latin_ --[’Twas all in _English_, said my
  • uncle]------ many things might have coincided with it, and upon the
  • authority of sundry decreed cases, to have pronounced the baptism null,
  • with a power of giving the child a new name --Had a priest, for instance,
  • which was no uncommon thing, through ignorance of the _Latin_ tongue,
  • baptized a child of Tom-o’Stiles, _in nomine patriæ & filia & spiritum
  • sanctos_--the baptism was held null. ----I beg your pardon, replied
  • _Kysarcius_----in that case, as the mistake was only the _terminations_,
  • the baptism was valid----and to have rendered it null, the blunder of
  • the priest should have fallen upon the first syllable of each
  • noun------and not, as in your case, upon the last.
  • My father delighted in subtleties of this kind, and listen’d with
  • infinite attention.
  • _Gastripheres_, for example, continued _Kysarcius_, baptizes a child of
  • _John Stradling’s_ in _Gomine_ gatris, &c., &c., instead of _in Nomine_
  • patris, &c. ----Is this a baptism? No--say the ablest canonists; in as
  • much as the radix of each word is hereby torn up, and the sense and
  • meaning of them removed and changed quite to another object; for
  • _Gomine_ does not signify a name, nor _gatris_ a father. --What do they
  • signify? said my uncle _Toby_. --Nothing at all------quoth _Yorick_.
  • ----Ergo, such a baptism is null, said _Kysarcius_.----
  • In course, answered _Yorick_, in a tone two parts jest and one part
  • earnest.----
  • But in the case cited, continued _Kysarcius_, where _patriæ_ is put for
  • _patris_, _filia_ for _filii_, and so on----as it is a fault only in the
  • declension, and the roots of the words continue untouch’d, the
  • inflections of their branches either this way or that, does not in any
  • sort hinder the baptism, inasmuch as the same sense continues in the
  • words as before. ----But then, said _Didius_, the intention of the
  • priest’s pronouncing them grammatically must have been proved to have
  • gone along with it. ------------Right, answered _Kysarcius_; and of
  • this, brother _Didius_, we have an instance in a decree of the decretals
  • of Pope _Leo_ the IIId. ----But my brother’s child, cried my uncle
  • _Toby_, has nothing to do with the Pope------’tis the plain child of a
  • Protestant gentleman, christen’d _Tristram_ against the wills and wishes
  • both of his father and mother, and all who are a-kin to it.----
  • If the wills and wishes, said _Kysarcius_, interrupting my uncle _Toby_,
  • of those only who stand related to Mr. _Shandy’s_ child, were to have
  • weight in this matter, Mrs. _Shandy_, of all people, has the least to do
  • in it. ----My uncle _Toby_ lay’d down his pipe, and my father drew his
  • chair still closer to the table, to hear the conclusion of so strange an
  • introduction.
  • ----It has not only been a question, Captain _Shandy_, amongst the[4.10]
  • best lawyers and civilians in this land, continued _Kysarcius_,
  • “_Whether the mother be of kin to her child_,” --but, after much
  • dispassionate enquiry and jactitation of the arguments on all sides--it
  • has been abjudged for the negative--namely, “_That the mother is not of
  • kin to her child_.”[4.11] My father instantly clapp’d his hand upon my
  • uncle _Toby’s_ mouth, under colour of whispering in his ear; --the truth
  • was, he was alarmed for _Lillabullero_--and having a great desire to
  • hear more of so curious an argument--he begg’d my uncle _Toby_, for
  • Heaven’s sake, not to disappoint him in it. --My uncle _Toby_ gave a
  • nod--resumed his pipe, and contenting himself with whistling
  • _Lillabullero_ inwardly----_Kysarcius_, _Didius_, and _Triptolemus_ went
  • on with the discourse as follows.
  • This determination, continued _Kysarcius_, how contrary soever it may
  • seem to run to the stream of vulgar ideas, yet had reason strongly on
  • its side; and has been put out of all manner of dispute from the famous
  • case, known commonly by the name of the Duke of _Suffolk’s_ case.
  • ------It is cited in _Brook_, said _Triptolemus_ ------And taken notice
  • of by Lord _Coke_, added _Didius_. --And you may find it in _Swinburn_
  • on Testaments, said _Kysarcius_.
  • The case, Mr. _Shandy_, was this.
  • In the reign of _Edward_ the Sixth, _Charles_ duke of _Suffolk_ having
  • issue a son by one venter, and a daughter by another venter, made his
  • last will, wherein he devised goods to his son, and died; after whose
  • death the son died also----but without will, without wife, and without
  • child--his mother and his sister by the father’s side (for she was born
  • of the former venter) then living. The mother took the administration of
  • her son’s goods, according to the statute of the 21st of _Harry_ the
  • Eighth, whereby it is enacted, That in case any person die intestate the
  • administration of his goods shall be committed to the next of kin.
  • The administration being thus (surreptitiously) granted to the mother,
  • the sister by the father’s side commenced a suit before the
  • Ecclesiastical Judge, alledging, 1st, That she herself was next of kin;
  • and 2dly, That the mother was not of kin at all to the party deceased;
  • and therefore prayed the court, that the administration granted to the
  • mother might be revoked, and be committed unto her, as next of kin to
  • the deceased, by force of the said statute.
  • Hereupon, as it was a great cause, and much depending upon its
  • issue--and many causes of great property likely to be decided in times
  • to come, by the precedent to be then made----the most learned, as well
  • in the laws of this realm, as in the civil law, were consulted together,
  • whether the mother was of kin to her son, or no. --Whereunto not only
  • the temporal lawyers----but the church lawyers--the juris-consulti--the
  • juris-prudentes--the civilians--the advocates--the commissaries--the
  • judges of the consistory and prerogative courts of _Canterbury_ and
  • _York_, with the master of the faculties, were all unanimously of
  • opinion, That the mother was not of[4.12] kin to her child.----
  • And what said the duchess of _Suffolk_ to it? said my uncle _Toby_.
  • The unexpectedness of my uncle _Toby’s_ question, confounded _Kysarcius_
  • more than the ablest advocate ----He stopp’d a full minute, looking in
  • my uncle _Toby’s_ face without replying----and in that single minute
  • _Triptolemus_ put by him, and took the lead as follows.
  • ’Tis a ground and principle in the law, said _Triptolemus_, that things
  • do not ascend, but descend in it; and I make no doubt ’tis for this
  • cause, that however true it is, that the child may be of the blood and
  • seed of its parents----that the parents, nevertheless, are not of the
  • blood and seed of it; inasmuch as the parents are not begot by the
  • child, but the child by the parents --For so they write, _Liberi sunt de
  • sanguine patris & matris, sed pater & mater non sunt de sanguine
  • liberorum_.
  • ----But this, _Triptolemus_, cried _Didius_, proves too much--for from
  • this authority cited it would follow, not only what indeed is granted on
  • all sides, that the mother is not of kin to her child--but the father
  • likewise. ----It is held, said _Triptolemus_, the better opinion;
  • because the father, the mother, and the child, though they be three
  • persons, yet are they but (_una caro_[4.13]) one flesh; and consequently
  • no degree of kindred----or any method of acquiring one _in nature_.
  • ----There you push the argument again too far, cried _Didius_----for
  • there is no prohibition _in nature_, though there is in the Levitical
  • law----but that a man may beget a child upon his grandmother----in which
  • case, supposing the issue a daughter, she would stand in relation both
  • of ----But who ever thought, cried _Kysarcius_, of lying with his
  • grandmother? ------The young gentleman, replied _Yorick_, whom _Selden_
  • speaks of----who not only thought of it, but justified his intention to
  • his father by the argument drawn from the law of retaliation. --“You
  • lay, Sir, with my mother,” said the lad-- “why may not I lie with
  • yours?” ----’Tis the _Argumentum commune_, added _Yorick_. ----’Tis as
  • good, replied _Eugenius_, taking down his hat, as they deserve.
  • The company broke up.
  • [Footnote 4.10: Vide Swinburn on Testaments, Part 7, §8.]
  • [Footnote 4.11: Vide Brook, Abridg. Tit. Administr. N. 47.]
  • [Footnote 4.12: Mater non numeratur inter consanguineos, Bald.
  • in ult. C. de Verb. signific.]
  • [Footnote 4.13: Vide Brook, Abridg. tit. Administr. N. 47.]
  • CHAPTER XXX
  • --And pray, said my uncle _Toby_, leaning upon _Yorick_, as he and my
  • father were helping him leisurely down the stairs----don’t be terrified,
  • madam, this stair-case conversation is not so long as the last ----And
  • pray, _Yorick_, said my uncle _Toby_, which way is this said affair of
  • _Tristram_ at length settled by these learned men? Very satisfactorily,
  • replied _Yorick_; no mortal, Sir, has any concern with it----for Mrs.
  • _Shandy_ the mother is nothing at all a-kin to him----and as the
  • mother’s is the surest side ----Mr. _Shandy_, in course, is still less
  • than nothing ------In short, he is not as much a-kin to him, Sir, as I
  • am.----
  • ----That may well be, said my father, shaking his head.
  • ----Let the learned say what they will, there must certainly, quoth my
  • uncle _Toby_, have been some sort of consanguinity betwixt the duchess
  • of _Suffolk_ and her son.
  • The vulgar are of the same opinion, quoth _Yorick_, to this hour.
  • CHAPTER XXXI
  • Though my father was hugely tickled with the subtleties of these learned
  • discourses------’twas still but like the anointing of a broken
  • bone ------The moment he got home, the weight of his afflictions returned
  • upon him but so much the heavier, as is ever the case when the staff we
  • lean on slips from under us. --He became pensive--walked frequently
  • forth to the fish-pond--let down one loop of his hat----sigh’d
  • often----forbore to snap--and, as the hasty sparks of temper, which
  • occasion snapping, so much assist perspiration and digestion, as
  • _Hippocrates_ tells us--he had certainly fallen ill with the extinction
  • of them, had not his thoughts been critically drawn off, and his health
  • rescued by a fresh train of disquietudes left him, with a legacy of a
  • thousand pounds, by my aunt _Dinah_.
  • My father had scarce read the letter, when taking the thing by the right
  • end, he instantly began to plague and puzzle his head how to lay it out
  • mostly to the honour of his family. --A hundred-and-fifty odd projects
  • took possession of his brains by turns--he would do this, and that, and
  • t’other --He would go to _Rome_----he would go to law----he would buy
  • stock----he would buy _John Hobson’s_ farm--he would new fore-front his
  • house, and add a new wing to make it even ----There was a fine water-mill
  • on this side, and he would build a wind-mill on the other side of the
  • river in full view to answer it --But above all things in the world, he
  • would inclose the great _Ox-moor_, and send out my brother _Bobby_
  • immediately upon his travels.
  • But as the sum was _finite_, and consequently could not do
  • everything----and in truth very few of these to any purpose--of all the
  • projects which offered themselves upon this occasion, the two last
  • seemed to make the deepest impression; and he would infallibly have
  • determined upon both at once, but for the small inconvenience hinted at
  • above, which absolutely put him under a necessity of deciding in favour
  • either of the one or the other.
  • This was not altogether so easy to be done; for though ’tis certain my
  • father had long before set his heart upon this necessary part of my
  • brother’s education, and like a prudent man had actually determined to
  • carry it into execution, with the first money that returned from the
  • second creation of actions in the _Missisippi_-scheme, in which he was
  • an adventurer----yet the _Ox-moor_, which was a fine, large, whinny,
  • undrained, unimproved common, belonging to the _Shandy_-estate, had
  • almost as old a claim upon him: he had long and affectionately set his
  • heart upon turning it likewise to some account.
  • But having never hitherto been pressed with such a conjuncture of
  • things, as made it necessary to settle either the priority or justice of
  • their claims----like a wise man he had refrained entering into any nice
  • or critical examination about them: so that upon the dismission of every
  • other project at this crisis------the two old projects, the OX-MOOR and
  • my BROTHER, divided him again; and so equal a match were they for each
  • other, as to become the occasion of no small contest in the old
  • gentleman’s mind--which of the two should be set o’going first.
  • ----People may laugh as they will--but the case was this.
  • It had ever been the custom of the family, and by length of time was
  • almost become a matter of common right, that the eldest son of it should
  • have free ingress, egress, and regress into foreign parts before
  • marriage--not only for the sake of bettering his own private parts, by
  • the benefit of exercise and change of so much air--but simply for the
  • mere delectation of his fancy, by the feather put into his cap, of
  • having been abroad--_tantum valet_, my father would say, _quantum
  • sonat_.
  • Now as this was a reasonable, and in course a most christian
  • indulgence----to deprive him of it, without why or wherefore----and
  • thereby make an example of him, as the first _Shandy_ unwhirl’d about
  • _Europe_ in a post-chaise, and only because he was a heavy lad----would
  • be using him ten times worse than a Turk.
  • On the other hand, the case of the _Ox-moor_ was full as hard.
  • Exclusive of the original purchase-money, which was eight hundred
  • pounds----it had cost the family eight hundred pounds more in a law-suit
  • about fifteen years before--besides the Lord knows what trouble and
  • vexation.
  • It had been moreover in possession of the _Shandy_-family ever since the
  • middle of the last century; and though it lay full in view before the
  • house, bounded on one extremity by the water-mill, and on the other by
  • the projected wind-mill, spoken of above--and for all these reasons
  • seemed to have the fairest title of any part of the estate to the care
  • and protection of the family--yet by an unaccountable fatality, common
  • to men, as well as the ground they tread on----it had all along most
  • shamefully been overlook’d; and to speak the truth of it, had suffered
  • so much by it, that it would have made any man’s heart have bled
  • (_Obadiah_ said) who understood the value of the land, to have rode over
  • it, and only seen the condition it was in.
  • However, as neither the purchasing this tract of ground----nor indeed
  • the placing of it where it lay, were either of them, properly speaking,
  • of my father’s doing----he had never thought himself any way concerned
  • in the affair------till the fifteen years before, when the breaking out
  • of that cursed law-suit mentioned above (and which had arose about its
  • boundaries)------which being altogether my father’s own act and deed, it
  • naturally awakened every other argument in its favour, and upon summing
  • them all up together, he saw, not merely in interest, but in honour, he
  • was bound to do something for it----and that now or never was the time.
  • I think there must certainly have been a mixture of ill-luck in it, that
  • the reasons on both sides should happen to be so equally balanced by
  • each other; for though my father weigh’d them in all humours and
  • conditions------spent many an anxious hour in the most profound and
  • abstracted meditation upon what was best to be done--reading books of
  • farming one day------books of travels another----laying aside all
  • passion whatever--viewing the arguments on both sides in all their
  • lights and circumstances--communing every day with my uncle
  • _Toby_--arguing with _Yorick_, and talking over the whole affair of the
  • _Ox-moor_ with _Obadiah_------yet nothing in all that time appeared so
  • strongly in behalf of the one, which was not either strictly applicable
  • to the other, or at least so far counterbalanced by some consideration
  • of equal weight, as to keep the scales even.
  • For to be sure, with proper helps, and in the hands of some people, tho’
  • the _Ox-moor_ would undoubtedly have made a different appearance in the
  • world from what it did, or ever could do in the condition it lay----yet
  • every tittle of this was true, with regard to my brother _Bobby_----let
  • _Obadiah_ say what he would.------
  • In point of interest----the contest, I own, at first sight, did not
  • appear so undecisive betwixt them; for whenever my father took pen and
  • ink in hand, and set about calculating the simple expence of paring and
  • burning, and fencing in the _Ox-moor_ &c. &c. --with the certain profit
  • it would bring him in return----the latter turned out so prodigiously in
  • his way of working the account, that you would have sworn the _Ox-moor_
  • would have carried all before it. For it was plain he should reap a
  • hundred lasts of rape, at twenty pounds a last, the very first
  • year----besides an excellent crop of wheat the year following----and the
  • year after that, to speak within bounds, a hundred----but in all
  • likelihood, a hundred and fifty------if not two hundred quarters of
  • pease and beans----besides potatoes without end. ----But then, to think
  • he was all this while breeding up my brother, like a hog to eat
  • them----knocked all on the head again, and generally left the old
  • gentleman in such a state of suspence----that, as he often declared to
  • my uncle _Toby_----he knew no more than his heels what to do.
  • No body, but he who has felt it, can conceive what a plaguing thing it
  • is to have a man’s mind torn asunder by two projects of equal strength,
  • both obstinately pulling in a contrary direction at the same time: for
  • to say nothing of the havock, which by a certain consequence is
  • unavoidably made by it all over the finer system of the nerves, which
  • you know convey the animal spirits and more subtle juices from the heart
  • to the head, and so on----it is not to be told in what a degree such a
  • wayward kind of friction works upon the more gross and solid parts,
  • wasting the fat and impairing the strength of a man every time as it
  • goes backwards and forwards.
  • My father had certainly sunk under this evil, as certainly as he had
  • done under that of my CHRISTIAN NAME----had he not been rescued out of
  • it, as he was out of that, by a fresh evil------the misfortune of my
  • brother _Bobby’s_ death.
  • What is the life of man! Is it not to shift from side to side?
  • ------from sorrow to sorrow? ------to button up one cause of
  • vexation------and unbutton another?
  • CHAPTER XXXII
  • From this moment I am to be considered as heir-apparent to the _Shandy_
  • family----and it is from this point properly, that the story of my LIFE
  • and my OPINIONS sets out. With all my hurry and precipitation, I have
  • but been clearing the ground to raise the building----and such a
  • building do I foresee it will turn out, as never was planned, and as
  • never was executed since _Adam_. In less than five minutes I shall have
  • thrown my pen into the fire, and the little drop of thick ink which is
  • left remaining at the bottom of my ink-horn, after it --I have but half
  • a score things to do in the time ----I have a thing to name----a thing
  • to lament----a thing to hope----a thing to promise, and a thing to
  • threaten --I have a thing to suppose--a thing to declare----a thing to
  • conceal----a thing to choose, and a thing to pray for ------This chapter,
  • therefore, I _name_ the chapter of THINGS------and my next chapter to
  • it, that is, the first chapter of my next volume, if I live, shall be my
  • chapter upon WHISKERS, in order to keep up some sort of connection in my
  • works.
  • The thing I lament is, that things have crowded in so thick upon me,
  • that I have not been able to get into that part of my work, towards
  • which I have all the way looked forwards, with so much earnest desire;
  • and that is the Campaigns, but especially the amours of my uncle _Toby_,
  • the events of which are of so singular a nature, and so Cervantick a
  • cast, that if I can so manage it, as to convey but the same impressions
  • to every other brain, which the occurrences themselves excite in my
  • own --I will answer for it the book shall make its way in the world,
  • much better than its master has done before it. ----Oh _Tristram!_
  • _Tristram!_ can this but be once brought about----the credit, which will
  • attend thee as an author, shall counterbalance the many evils which have
  • befallen thee as a man----thou wilt feast upon the one----when thou hast
  • lost all sense and remembrance of the other!----
  • No wonder I itch so much as I do, to get at these amours --They are the
  • choicest morsel of my whole story! and when I do get at ’em----assure
  • yourselves, good folks--(nor do I value whose squeamish stomach takes
  • offence at it) I shall not be at all nice in the choice of my words!
  • ----and that’s the thing I have to _declare_. ------I shall never get
  • all through in five minutes, that I fear----and the thing I _hope_ is,
  • that your worships and reverences are not offended--if you are, depend
  • upon’t I’ll give you something, my good gentry, next year to be offended
  • at----that’s my dear _Jenny’s_ way--but who my _Jenny_ is--and which is
  • the right and which the wrong end of a woman, is the thing to be
  • _concealed_--it shall be told you in the next chapter but one to my
  • chapter of Button-holes----and not one chapter before.
  • And now that you have just got to the end of these[4.14] four
  • volumes----the thing I have to _ask_ is, how you feel your heads? my own
  • akes dismally! ------as for your healths, I know, they are much better.
  • --True _Shandeism_, think what you will against it, opens the heart and
  • lungs, and like all those affections which partake of its nature, it
  • forces the blood and other vital fluids of the body to run freely
  • through its channels, makes the wheel of life run long and chearfully
  • round.
  • Was I left, like _Sancho Panca_, to choose my kingdom, it should not be
  • maritime--or a kingdom of blacks to make a penny of; --no, it should be
  • a kingdom of hearty laughing subjects: And as the bilious and more
  • saturnine passions, by creating disorders in the blood and humours, have
  • as bad an influence, I see, upon the body politick as body
  • natural----and as nothing but a habit of virtue can fully govern those
  • passions, and subject them to reason ------I should add to my
  • prayer--that God would give my subjects grace to be as WISE as they were
  • MERRY; and then should I be the happiest monarch, and they the happiest
  • people under heaven.
  • And so, with this moral for the present, may it please your worships and
  • your reverences, I take my leave of you till this time twelve-month,
  • when, (unless this vile cough kills me in the meantime) I’ll have
  • another pluck at your beards, and lay open a story to the world you
  • little dream of.
  • [Footnote 4.14: According to the original Editions.]
  • THE LIFE AND OPINIONS
  • OF
  • TRISTRAM SHANDY
  • GENTLEMAN
  • Dixero si quid fortè jocosius, hoc mihi juris
  • Cum venia dabis. ---- HOR.
  • --Si quis calumnietur levius esse quam decet theologum, aut
  • mordacius quam deceat Christianum--non Ego, sed Democritus dixit. --
  • ERASMUS.
  • Si quis Clericus, aut Monachus, verba joculatoria, risum moventia,
  • sciebat, anathema esto. -- SECOND COUNCIL OF CARTHAGE.
  • TO THE RIGHT HONOURABLE
  • JOHN,
  • LORD VISCOUNT SPENCER
  • MY LORD,
  • I humbly beg leave to offer you these two Volumes;[D.1] they are the
  • best my talents, with such bad health as I have, could produce: --had
  • Providence granted me a larger stock of either, they had been a much
  • more proper present to your Lordship.
  • I beg your Lordship will forgive me, if, at the same time I dedicate
  • this work to you, I join Lady SPENCER, in the liberty I take of
  • inscribing the story of _Le Fever_ to her name; for which I have no
  • other motive, which my heart has informed me of, but that the story is a
  • humane one.
  • I am,
  • MY LORD,
  • Your Lordship’s most devoted
  • and most humble Servant,
  • LAUR. STERNE.
  • [Footnote D.1: Volumes V. and VI. in the first Edition.]
  • BOOK V
  • CHAPTER I
  • If it had not been for those two mettlesome tits, and that madcap of a
  • postillion who drove them from Stilton to Stamford, the thought had
  • never entered my head. He flew like lightning----there was a slope of
  • three miles and a half----we scarce touched the ground----the motion was
  • most rapid----most impetuous------’twas communicated to my brain--my
  • heart partook of it---- “By the great God of day,” said I, looking
  • towards the sun, and thrusting my arm out of the fore-window of the
  • chaise, as I made my vow, “I will lock up my study-door the moment I get
  • home, and throw the key of it ninety feet below the surface of the
  • earth, into the draw-well at the back of my house.”
  • The London waggon confirmed me in my resolution; it hung tottering upon
  • the hill, scarce progressive, drag’d--drag’d up by eight _heavy
  • beasts_-- “by main strength! ----quoth I, nodding----but your betters
  • draw the same way----and something of everybody’s! ----O rare!”
  • Tell me, ye learned, shall we for ever be adding so much to the
  • _bulk_--so little to the _stock?_
  • Shall we for ever make new books, as apothecaries make new mixtures, by
  • pouring only out of one vessel into another?
  • Are we for ever to be twisting, and untwisting the same rope? for ever
  • in the same track--for ever at the same pace?
  • Shall we be destined to the days of eternity, on holy-days, as well as
  • working-days, to be shewing the _relicks of learning_, as monks do the
  • relicks of their saints--without working one--one single miracle with
  • them?
  • Who made Man, with powers which dart him from earth to heaven in a
  • moment--that great, that most excellent, and most noble creature of the
  • world--the _miracle_ of nature, as Zoroaster in his book περι φύσεως
  • called him--the SHEKINAH of the divine presence, as Chrysostom----the
  • _image_ of God, as Moses----the _ray_ of divinity, as Plato--the
  • _marvel_ of _marvels_, as Aristotle--to go sneaking on at this
  • pitiful--pimping--pettifogging rate?
  • I scorn to be as abusive as Horace upon the occasion------but if there
  • is no catachresis in the wish, and no sin in it, I wish from my soul,
  • that every imitator in _Great Britain_, _France_, and _Ireland_, had the
  • farcy for his pains; and that there was a good farcical house, large
  • enough to hold--aye--and sublimate them, _shag rag and bob-tail_, male
  • and female, all together: and this leads me to the affair of
  • _Whiskers_----but, by what chain of ideas --I leave as a legacy in
  • _mort-main_ to Prudes and Tartufs, to enjoy and make the most of.
  • UPON WHISKERS
  • I’m sorry I made it----’twas as inconsiderate a promise as ever entered
  • a man’s head ----A chapter upon whiskers! alas! the world will not bear
  • it--’tis a delicate world----but I knew not of what mettle it was
  • made--nor had I ever seen the underwritten fragment; otherwise, as
  • surely as noses are noses, and whiskers are whiskers still (let the
  • world say what it will to the contrary); so surely would I have steered
  • clear of this dangerous chapter.
  • THE FRAGMENT
  • * * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * * * ------You are
  • half asleep, my good lady, said the old gentleman, taking hold of the
  • old lady’s hand, and giving it a gentle squeeze, as he pronounced the
  • word _Whiskers_----shall we change the subject? By no means, replied the
  • old lady --I like your account of those matters; so throwing a thin gauze
  • handkerchief over her head, and leaning it back upon the chair with her
  • face turned towards him, and advancing her two feet as she reclined
  • herself ----I desire, continued she, you will go on.
  • The old gentleman went on as follows: ------Whiskers! cried the queen of
  • _Navarre_, dropping her knotting ball, as _La Fosseuse_ uttered the
  • word ----Whiskers, madam, said _La Fosseuse_, pinning the ball to the
  • queen’s apron, and making a courtesy as she repeated it.
  • _La Fosseuse’s_ voice was naturally soft and low, yet ’twas an
  • articulate voice: and every letter of the word _Whiskers_ fell
  • distinctly upon the queen of _Navarre’s_ ear --Whiskers! cried the
  • queen, laying a greater stress upon the word, and as if she had still
  • distrusted her ears ----Whiskers! replied _La Fosseuse_, repeating the
  • word a third time ----There is not a cavalier, madam, of his age in
  • _Navarre_, continued the maid of honour, pressing the page’s interest
  • upon the queen, that has so gallant a pair ----Of what? cried _Margaret_,
  • smiling --Of whiskers, said _La Fosseuse_, with infinite modesty.
  • The word _Whiskers_ still stood its ground, and continued to be made use
  • of in most of the best companies throughout the little kingdom of
  • _Navarre_, notwithstanding the indiscreet use which _La Fosseuse_ had
  • made of it: the truth was, _La Fosseuse_ had pronounced the word, not
  • only before the queen, but upon sundry other occasions at court, with an
  • accent which always implied something of a mystery --And as the court of
  • _Margaret_, as all the world knows, was at that time a mixture of
  • gallantry and devotion----and whiskers being as applicable to the one,
  • as the other, the word naturally stood its ground----it gain’d full as
  • much as it lost; that is, the clergy were for it----the laity were
  • against it----and for the women, ----_they_ were divided.
  • The excellency of the figure and mien of the young Sieur _De Croix_, was
  • at that time beginning to draw the attention of the maids of honour
  • towards the terrace before the palace gate, where the guard was mounted.
  • The lady _De Baussiere_ fell deeply in love with him, ----_La
  • Battarelle_ did the same--it was the finest weather for it, that ever
  • was remembered in _Navarre_----_La Guyol_, _La Maronette_, _La
  • Sabatiere_, fell in love with the Sieur _De Croix_ also----_La Rebours_
  • and _La Fosseuse_ knew better----_De Croix_ had failed in an attempt to
  • recommend himself to _La Rebours_; and _La Rebours_ and _La Fosseuse_
  • were inseparable.
  • The queen of _Navarre_ was sitting with her ladies in the painted
  • bow-window, facing the gate of the second court, as _De Croix_ passed
  • through it --He is handsome, said the Lady _Baussiere_. ----He has a
  • good mien, said _La Battarelle_ ----He is finely shaped, said _La Guyol_
  • --I never saw an officer of the horse-guards in my life, said _La
  • Maronette_, with two such legs ----Or who stood so well upon them, said
  • _La Sabatiere_ ------But he has no whiskers, cried _La Fosseuse_ ----Not
  • a pile, said _La Rebours_.
  • The queen went directly to her oratory, musing all the way, as she
  • walked through the gallery, upon the subject; turning it this way and
  • that way in her fancy--_Ave Maria!_------what can _La Fosseuse_ mean?
  • said she, kneeling down upon the cushion.
  • _La Guyol_, _La Battarelle_, _La Maronette_, _La Sabatiere_, retired
  • instantly to their chambers ------Whiskers! said all four of them to
  • themselves, as they bolted their doors on the inside.
  • The Lady _Carnavallette_ was counting her beads with both hands,
  • unsuspected, under her farthingal----from St. _Antony_ down to St.
  • _Ursula_ inclusive, not a saint passed through her fingers without
  • whiskers; St. _Francis_, St. _Dominick_, St. _Bennet_, St. _Basil_, St.
  • _Bridget_, had all whiskers.
  • The Lady _Baussiere_ had got into a wilderness of conceits, with
  • moralizing too intricately upon _La Fosseuse’s_ text ----She mounted her
  • palfrey, her page followed her----the host passed by--the Lady
  • _Baussiere_ rode on.
  • One denier, cried the order of mercy--one single denier, in behalf of a
  • thousand patient captives, whose eyes look towards heaven and you for
  • their redemption.
  • ----The Lady _Baussiere_ rode on.
  • Pity the unhappy, said a devout, venerable, hoary-headed man, meekly
  • holding up a box, begirt with iron, in his withered hands ----I beg for
  • the unfortunate--good my Lady, ’tis for a prison--for an hospital--’tis
  • for an old man--a poor man undone by shipwreck, by suretyship, by
  • fire ----I call God and all his angels to witness----’tis to clothe the
  • naked----to feed the hungry----’tis to comfort the sick and the
  • broken-hearted.
  • The Lady _Baussiere_ rode on.
  • A decayed kinsman bowed himself to the ground.
  • ----The Lady _Baussiere_ rode on.
  • He ran begging bare-headed on one side of her palfrey, conjuring her by
  • the former bonds of friendship, alliance, consanguinity, etc.
  • ----Cousin, aunt, sister, mother, ----for virtue’s sake, for your own,
  • for mine, for Christ’s sake, remember me----pity me.
  • ----The Lady _Baussiere_ rode on.
  • Take hold of my whiskers, said the Lady _Baussiere_ ----The page took
  • hold of her palfrey. She dismounted at the end of the terrace.
  • There are some trains of certain ideas which leave prints of themselves
  • about our eyes and eye-brows; and there is a consciousness of it,
  • somewhere about the heart, which serves but to make these etchings the
  • stronger--we see, spell, and put them together without a dictionary.
  • Ha, ha! he, hee! cried _La Guyol_ and _La Sabatiere_, looking close at
  • each other’s prints ----Ho, ho! cried _La Battarelle_ and _Maronette_,
  • doing the same: --Whist! cried one--st, st, --said a second--hush, quoth
  • a third--poo, poo, replied a fourth--gramercy! cried the Lady
  • _Carnavallette_; ----’twas she who bewhisker’d St. _Bridget_.
  • _La Fosseuse_ drew her bodkin from the knot of her hair, and having
  • traced the outline of a small whisker, with the blunt end of it, upon
  • one side of her upper lip, put it into _La Rebours’_ hand--_La Rebours_
  • shook her head.
  • The Lady _Baussiere_ coughed thrice into the inside of her muff--_La
  • Guyol_ smiled --Fy, said the Lady _Baussiere_. The queen of _Navarre_
  • touched her eye with the tip of her fore-finger--as much as to say,
  • I understand you all.
  • ’Twas plain to the whole court the word was ruined: _La Fosseuse_ had
  • given it a wound, and it was not the better for passing through all
  • these defiles ----It made a faint stand, however, for a few months, by
  • the expiration of which, the Sieur _De Croix_, finding it high time to
  • leave _Navarre_ for want of whiskers----the word in course became
  • indecent, and (after a few efforts) absolutely unfit for use.
  • The best word, in the best language of the best world, must have
  • suffered under such combinations. ------The curate of _d’Estella_ wrote
  • a book against them, setting forth the dangers of accessory ideas, and
  • warning the _Navarois_ against them.
  • Does not all the world know, said the curate _d’Estella_ at the
  • conclusion of his work, that Noses ran the same fate some centuries ago
  • in most parts of _Europe_, which Whiskers have now done in the kingdom
  • of _Navarre?_ --The evil indeed spread no farther then--but have not
  • beds and bolsters, and nightcaps and chamber-pots stood upon the brink
  • of destruction ever since? Are not trouse, and placket-holes, and
  • pump-handles--and spigots and faucets, in danger still from the same
  • association? ----Chastity, by nature, the gentlest of all
  • affections--give it but its head----’tis like a ramping and a roaring
  • lion.
  • The drift of the curate _d’Estella’s_ argument was not understood.
  • --They ran the scent the wrong way. --The world bridled his ass at the
  • tail. --And when the _extremes_ of DELICACY, and the _beginnings_ of
  • CONCUPISCENCE, hold their next provincial chapter together, they may
  • decree that bawdy also.
  • CHAPTER II
  • When my father received the letter which brought him the melancholy
  • account of my brother _Bobby’s_ death, he was busy calculating the
  • expence of his riding post from _Calais_ to _Paris_, and so on to
  • _Lyons_.
  • ’Twas a most inauspicious journey; my father having had every foot of it
  • to travel over again, and his calculation to begin afresh, when he had
  • almost got to the end of it, by _Obadiah’s_ opening the door to acquaint
  • him the family was out of yeast--and to ask whether he might not take
  • the great coach-horse early in the morning and ride in search of some.
  • --With all my heart, _Obadiah_, said my father (pursuing his
  • journey)--take the coach-horse, and welcome. ----But he wants a shoe,
  • poor creature! said _Obadiah_. ----Poor creature! said my uncle _Toby_,
  • vibrating the note back again, like a string in unison. Then ride the
  • _Scotch_ horse, quoth my father hastily. --He cannot bear a saddle upon
  • his back, quoth _Obadiah_, for the whole world. ----The devil’s in that
  • horse; then take PATRIOT, cried my father, and shut the door.
  • ----PATRIOT is sold, said _Obadiah_. Here’s for you! cried my father,
  • making a pause, and looking in my uncle _Toby’s_ face, as if the thing
  • had not been a matter of fact. --Your worship ordered me to sell him
  • last _April_, said _Obadiah_. --Then go on foot for your pains, cried my
  • father ----I had much rather walk than ride, said _Obadiah_, shutting
  • the door.
  • What plagues, cried my father, going on with his calculation. ----But
  • the waters are out, said _Obadiah_, --opening the door again.
  • Till that moment, my father, who had a map of _Sanson’s_, and a book of
  • the post-roads before him, had kept his hand upon the head of his
  • compasses, with one foot of them fixed upon _Nevers_, the last stage he
  • had paid for--purposing to go on from that point with his journey and
  • calculation, as soon as _Obadiah_ quitted the room: but this second
  • attack of _Obadiah’s_, in opening the door and laying the whole country
  • under water, was too much. ----He let go his compasses--or rather with a
  • mixed motion between accident and anger, he threw them upon the table;
  • and then there was nothing for him to do, but to return back to _Calais_
  • (like many others) as wise as he had set out.
  • When the letter was brought into the parlour, which contained the news
  • of my brother’s death, my father had got forwards again upon his journey
  • to within a stride of the compasses of the very same stage of _Nevers_.
  • ----By your leave, Mons. _Sanson_, cried my father, striking the point
  • of his compasses through _Nevers_ into the table--and nodding to my
  • uncle _Toby_ to see what was in the letter--twice of one night, is too
  • much for an _English_ gentleman and his son, Mons. _Sanson_, to be
  • turned back from so lousy a town as _Nevers_ --What think’st thou,
  • _Toby?_ added my father in a sprightly tone. ----Unless it be a garrison
  • town, said my uncle _Toby_----for then ----I shall be a fool, said my
  • father, smiling to himself, as long as I live. --So giving a second
  • nod--and keeping his compasses still upon _Nevers_ with one hand, and
  • holding his book of the post-roads in the other--half calculating and
  • half listening, he leaned forwards upon the table with both elbows, as
  • my uncle _Toby_ hummed over the letter.
  • ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ----
  • ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ----
  • ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ----
  • ---- ---- ---- --he’s gone! said my uncle _Toby_. ----Where ----Who?
  • cried my father. ----My nephew, said my uncle _Toby_. ----What--without
  • leave--without money--without governor? cried my father in amazement.
  • No: ----he is dead, my dear brother, quoth my uncle _Toby_. --Without
  • being ill? cried my father again. --I dare say not, said my uncle
  • _Toby_, in a low voice, and fetching a deep sigh from the bottom of his
  • heart, he has been ill enough, poor lad! I’ll answer for him----for he
  • is dead.
  • When _Agrippina_ was told of her son’s death, _Tacitus_ informs us,
  • that, not being able to moderate the violence of her passions, she
  • abruptly broke off her work. --My father stuck his compasses into
  • _Nevers_, but so much the faster. --What contrarieties! his, indeed, was
  • matter of calculation! --_Agrippina’s_ must have been quite a different
  • affair; who else could pretend to reason from history?
  • How my father went on, in my opinion, deserves a chapter to itself.--
  • CHAPTER III
  • ---- ----And a chapter it shall have, and a devil of a one too--so look
  • to yourselves.
  • ’Tis either _Plato_, or _Plutarch_, or _Seneca_, or _Xenophon_, or
  • _Epictetus_, or _Theophrastus_, or _Lucian_--or some one perhaps of
  • later date--either _Cardan_, or _Budæus_, or _Petrarch_, or _Stella_--or
  • possibly it may be some divine or father of the church, St. _Austin_, or
  • St. _Cyprian_, or _Barnard_, who affirms that it is an irresistible and
  • natural passion to weep for the loss of our friends or children--and
  • _Seneca_ (I’m positive) tells us somewhere, that such griefs evacuate
  • themselves best by that particular channel --And accordingly we find,
  • that _David_ wept for his son _Absalom_--_Adrian_ for his
  • _Antinous_--_Niobe_ for her children, and that _Apollodorus_ and _Crito_
  • both shed tears for _Socrates_ before his death.
  • My father managed his affliction otherwise; and indeed differently from
  • most men either ancient or modern; for he neither wept it away, as the
  • _Hebrews_ and the _Romans_--or slept it off, as the _Laplanders_--or
  • hanged it, as the _English_, or drowned it, as the _Germans_--nor did he
  • curse it, or damn it, or excommunicate it, or rhyme it, or lillabullero
  • it.----
  • ----He got rid of it, however.
  • Will your worships give me leave to squeeze in a story between these two
  • pages?
  • When _Tully_ was bereft of his dear daughter _Tullia_, at first he laid
  • it to his heart, --he listened to the voice of nature, and modulated his
  • own unto it. --O my _Tullia!_ my daughter! my child! --still, still,
  • still, --’twas O my _Tullia!_--my _Tullia!_ Methinks I see my _Tullia_,
  • I hear my _Tullia_, I talk with my _Tullia_. --But as soon as he began
  • to look into the stores of philosophy, and consider how many excellent
  • things might be said upon the occasion--nobody upon earth can conceive,
  • says the great orator, how happy, how joyful it made me.
  • My father was as proud of his eloquence as MARCUS TULLIUS CICERO could
  • be for his life, and, for aught I am convinced of to the contrary at
  • present, with as much reason: it was indeed his strength--and his
  • weakness too. ----His strength--for he was by nature eloquent; and his
  • weakness--for he was hourly a dupe to it; and, provided an occasion in
  • life would but permit him to shew his talents, or say either a wise
  • thing, a witty, or a shrewd one--(bating the case of a systematic
  • misfortune)--he had all he wanted. --A blessing which tied up my
  • father’s tongue, and a misfortune which let it loose with a good grace,
  • were pretty equal: sometimes, indeed, the misfortune was the better of
  • the two; for instance, where the pleasure of the harangue was as _ten_,
  • and the pain of the misfortune but as _five_--my father gained half in
  • half, and consequently was as well again off, as if it had never
  • befallen him.
  • This clue will unravel what otherwise would seem very inconsistent in my
  • father’s domestic character; and it is this, that, in the provocations
  • arising from the neglects and blunders of servants, or other mishaps
  • unavoidable in a family, his anger or rather the duration of it,
  • eternally ran counter to all conjecture.
  • My father had a favourite little mare, which he had consigned over to a
  • most beautiful Arabian horse, in order to have a pad out of her for his
  • own riding: he was sanguine in all his projects; so talked about his pad
  • every day with as absolute a security, as if it had been reared, broke,
  • --and bridled and saddled at his door ready for mounting. By some
  • neglect or other in _Obadiah_, it so fell out, that my father’s
  • expectations were answered with nothing better than a mule, and as ugly
  • a beast of the kind as ever was produced.
  • My mother and my uncle _Toby_ expected my father would be the death of
  • _Obadiah_--and that there never would be an end of the disaster. ----See
  • here! you rascal, cried my father, pointing to the mule, what you have
  • done! ----It was not me, said _Obadiah_. ----How do I know that? replied
  • my father.
  • Triumph swam in my father’s eyes, at the repartee--the _Attic_ salt
  • brought water into them--and so _Obadiah_ heard no more about it.
  • Now let us go back to my brother’s death.
  • Philosophy has a fine saying for everything. --For _Death_ it has an
  • entire set; the misery was, they all at once rushed into my father’s
  • head, that ’twas difficult to string them together, so as to make
  • anything of a consistent show out of them. --He took them as they came.
  • “’Tis an inevitable chance--the first statute in _Magna Charta_--it is
  • an everlasting act of parliament, my dear brother, ----_All must die._
  • “If my son could not have died, it had been matter of wonder, --not that
  • he is dead.
  • “Monarchs and princes dance in the same ring with us.
  • “--_To die_, is the great debt and tribute due unto nature: tombs and
  • monuments, which should perpetuate our memories, pay it themselves; and
  • the proudest pyramid of them all, which wealth and science have erected,
  • has lost its apex, and stands obtruncated in the traveller’s horizon.”
  • (My father found he got great ease, and went on)-- “Kingdoms and
  • provinces, and towns and cities, have they not their periods? and when
  • those principles and powers, which at first cemented and put them
  • together, have performed their several evolutions, they fall back.”
  • --Brother _Shandy_, said my uncle _Toby_, laying down his pipe at the
  • word _evolutions_ --Revolutions, I meant, quoth my father, --by heaven!
  • I meant revolutions, brother _Toby_--evolutions is nonsense. ----’Tis
  • not nonsense, --said my uncle _Toby_. ----But is it not nonsense to
  • break the thread of such a discourse upon such an occasion? cried my
  • father--do not--dear _Toby_, continued he, taking him by the hand, do
  • not--do not, I beseech thee, interrupt me at this crisis. ----My uncle
  • _Toby_ put his pipe into his mouth.
  • “Where is _Troy_ and _Mycenæ_, and _Thebes_ and _Delos_, and
  • _Persepolis_ and _Agrigentum?_” --continued my father, taking up his
  • book of post-cards, which he had laid down. --“What is become, brother
  • _Toby_, of _Nineveh_ and _Babylon_, of _Cizicum_ and _Mitylenæ?_ The
  • fairest towns that ever the sun rose upon, are now no more; the names
  • only are left, and those (for many of them are wrong spelt) are falling
  • themselves by piece-meals to decay, and in length of time will be
  • forgotten, and involved with everything in a perpetual night: the world
  • itself, brother _Toby_, must--must come to an end.
  • “Returning out of _Asia_, when I sailed from _Ægina_ towards _Megara_,”
  • (_when can this have been? thought my uncle Toby_) “I began to view the
  • country round about. _Ægina_ was behind me, _Megara_ was before,
  • _Pyræus_ on the right hand, _Corinth_ on the left. --What flourishing
  • towns now prostrate upon the earth! Alas! alas! said I to myself, that
  • man should disturb his soul for the loss of a child, when so much as
  • this lies awfully buried in his presence ----Remember, said I to myself
  • again--remember thou art a man.”--
  • Now my uncle _Toby_ knew not that this last paragraph was an extract of
  • _Servius Sulpicius’s_ consolatory letter to _Tully_. --He had as little
  • skill, honest man, in the fragments, as he had in the whole pieces of
  • antiquity. --And as my father, whilst he was concerned in the _Turkey_
  • trade, had been three or four different times in the _Levant_, in one of
  • which he had staid a whole year and an half at _Zant_, my uncle _Toby_
  • naturally concluded, that, in some one of these periods, he had taken a
  • trip across the _Archipelago_ into _Asia_; and that all this sailing
  • affair with _Ægina_ behind, and _Megara_ before, and _Pyræus_ on the
  • right hand, &c., &c., was nothing more than the true course of my
  • father’s voyage and reflections. --’Twas certainly in his _manner_, and
  • many an undertaking critic would have built two stories higher upon
  • worse foundations. --And pray, brother, quoth my uncle _Toby_, laying
  • the end of his pipe upon my father’s hand in a kindly way of
  • interruption--but waiting till he finished the account--what year of our
  • Lord was this? --’Twas no year of our Lord, replied my father. --That’s
  • impossible, cried my uncle _Toby_. --Simpleton! said my father, --’twas
  • forty years before Christ was born.
  • My uncle _Toby_ had but two things for it; either to suppose his brother
  • to be the wandering _Jew_, or that his misfortunes had disordered his
  • brain. --“May the Lord God of heaven and earth protect him and restore
  • him,” said my uncle _Toby_, praying silently for my father, and with
  • tears in his eyes.
  • --My father placed the tears to a proper account, and went on with his
  • harangue with great spirit.
  • “There is not such great odds, brother _Toby_, betwixt good and evil, as
  • the world imagines”----(this way of setting off, by the bye, was not
  • likely to cure my uncle _Toby’s_ suspicions.)---- “Labour, sorrow,
  • grief, sickness, want, and woe, are the sauces of life.” --Much good may
  • it do them--said my uncle _Toby_ to himself.------
  • “My son is dead! --so much the better; --’tis a shame in such a tempest
  • to have but one anchor.”
  • “But he is gone for ever from us! --be it so. He is got from under the
  • hands of his barber before he was bald--he is but risen from a feast
  • before he was surfeited--from a banquet before he had got drunken.”
  • “The _Thracians_ wept when a child was born”--(and we were very near it,
  • quoth my uncle _Toby_)-- “and feasted and made merry when a man went out
  • of the world; and with reason. ----Death opens the gate of fame, and
  • shuts the gate of envy after it, --it unlooses the chain of the captive,
  • and puts the bondsman’s task into another man’s hands.”
  • “Shew me the man, who knows what life is, who dreads it, and I’ll shew
  • thee a prisoner who dreads his liberty.”
  • Is it not better, my dear brother _Toby_, (for mark--our appetites are
  • but diseases)--is it not better not to hunger at all, than to eat? --not
  • to thirst, than to take physic to cure it?
  • Is it not better to be freed from cares and agues, from love and
  • melancholy, and the other hot and cold fits of life, than, like a galled
  • traveller, who comes weary to his inn, to be bound to begin his journey
  • afresh?
  • There is no terrour, brother _Toby_, in its looks, but what it borrows
  • from groans and convulsions--and the blowing of noses and the wiping
  • away of tears with the bottoms of curtains, in a dying man’s room.
  • --Strip it of these, what is it? --’Tis better in battle than in bed,
  • said my uncle _Toby_. --Take away its herses, its mutes, and its
  • mourning, --its plumes, scutcheons, and other mechanic aids --What is
  • it? ----_Better in battle!_ continued my father, smiling, for he had
  • absolutely forgot my brother _Bobby_--’tis terrible no way--for
  • consider, brother _Toby_, --when we _are_--death is _not_; --and when
  • death _is_--we are _not_. My uncle _Toby_ laid down his pipe to consider
  • the proposition; my father’s eloquence was too rapid to stay for any
  • man--away it went, --and hurried my uncle _Toby’s_ ideas along with
  • it.----
  • For this reason, continued my father, ’tis worthy to recollect how
  • little alteration, in great men, the approaches of death have made.
  • --_Vespasian_ died in a jest upon his close-stool--_Galba_ with a
  • sentence--_Septimus Severus_ in a dispatch--_Tiberius_ in dissimulation,
  • and _Cæsar Augustus_ in a compliment. --I hope ’twas a sincere
  • one--quoth my uncle _Toby_.
  • --’Twas to his wife, --said my father.
  • CHAPTER IV
  • ----And lastly--for all the choice anecdotes which history can produce
  • of this matter, continued my father, --this, like the gilded dome which
  • covers in the fabric--crowns all.--
  • ’Tis of _Cornelius Gattus_, the prætor--which, I dare say, brother
  • _Toby_, you have read, --I dare say I have not, replied my uncle. ----He
  • died, said my father, as *************** --And if it was with his wife,
  • said my uncle _Toby_--there could be no hurt in it --That’s more than I
  • know--replied my father.
  • CHAPTER V
  • My mother was going very gingerly in the dark along the passage which
  • led to the parlour, as my uncle _Toby_ pronounced the word _wife_.
  • --’Tis a shrill penetrating sound of itself, and _Obadiah_ had helped it
  • by leaving the door a little a-jar, so that my mother heard enough of it
  • to imagine herself the subject of the conversation; so laying the edge
  • of her finger across her two lips--holding in her breath, and bending
  • her head a little downwards, with a twist of her neck--(not towards the
  • door, but from it, by which means her ear was brought to the chink)--she
  • listened with all her powers: ----the listening slave, with the Goddess
  • of Silence at his back, could not have given a finer thought for an
  • intaglio.
  • In this attitude I am determined to let her stand for five minutes: till
  • I bring up the affairs of the kitchen (as _Rapin_ does those of the
  • church) to the same period.
  • CHAPTER VI
  • Though in one sense, our family was certainly a simple machine, as it
  • consisted of a few wheels; yet there was thus much to be said for it,
  • that these wheels were set in motion by so many different springs, and
  • acted one upon the other from such a variety of strange principles and
  • impulses----that though it was a simple machine, it had all the honour
  • and advantages of a complex one, ----and a number of as odd movements
  • within it, as ever were beheld in the inside of a _Dutch_ silk-mill.
  • Amongst these there was one, I am going to speak of, in which, perhaps,
  • it was not altogether so singular, as in many others; and it was this,
  • that whatever motion, debate, harangue, dialogue, project, or
  • dissertation, was going forwards in the parlour, there was generally
  • another at the same time, and upon the same subject, running parallel
  • along with it in the kitchen.
  • Now to bring this about, whenever an extraordinary message, or letter,
  • was delivered in the parlour--or a discourse suspended till a servant
  • went out--or the lines of discontent were observed to hang upon the
  • brows of my father or mother--or, in short, when anything was supposed
  • to be upon the tapis worth knowing or listening to, ’twas the rule to
  • leave the door, not absolutely shut, but somewhat a-jar--as it stands
  • just now, --which, under covert of the bad hinge (and that possibly
  • might be one of the many reasons why it was never mended), it was not
  • difficult to manage; by which means, in all these cases, a passage was
  • generally left, not indeed as wide as the _Dardanelles_, but wide
  • enough, for all that, to carry on as much of this wind-ward trade, as
  • was sufficient to save my father the trouble of governing his house;
  • --my mother at this moment stands profiting by it. --_Obadiah_ did the
  • same thing, as soon as he had left the letter upon the table which
  • brought the news of my brother’s death, so that before my father had
  • well got over his surprise, and entered upon this harangue, --had _Trim_
  • got upon his legs, to speak his sentiments upon the subject.
  • A curious observer of nature, had he been worth the inventory of all
  • Job’s stock--though by the by, _your curious observers are seldom worth
  • a groat_--would have given the half of it, to have heard Corporal _Trim_
  • and my father, two orators so contrasted by nature and education,
  • haranguing over the same bier.
  • My father--a man of deep reading--prompt memory--with _Cato_, and
  • _Seneca_, and _Epictetus_, at his fingers ends.--
  • The corporal--with nothing--to remember--of no deeper reading than his
  • muster-roll--or greater names at his fingers end, than the contents of
  • it.
  • The one proceeding from period to period, by metaphor and allusion, and
  • striking the fancy as he went along (as men of wit and fancy do) with
  • the entertainment and pleasantry of his pictures and images.
  • The other, without wit or antithesis, or point, or turn, this way or
  • that; but leaving the images on one side, and the picture on the other,
  • going straight forwards as nature could lead him, to the heart.
  • O _Trim!_ would to heaven thou had’st a better historian! --would thy
  • historian had a better pair of breeches! ----O ye critics! will nothing
  • melt you?
  • CHAPTER VII
  • ------My young master in _London_ is dead! said _Obadiah_.--
  • ------A green sattin night-gown of my mother’s which had been twice
  • scoured, was the first idea which _Obadiah’s_ exclamation brought into
  • _Susannah’s_ head. --Well might _Locke_ write a chapter upon the
  • imperfection of words. --Then, quoth _Susannah_, we must all go into
  • mourning. --But note a second time: the word _mourning_, notwithstanding
  • _Susannah_ made use of it herself--failed also of doing its office; it
  • excited not one single idea, tinged either with grey or black, --all was
  • green. ----The green sattin night-gown hung there still.
  • --O! ’twill be the death of my poor mistress, cried _Susannah_. --My
  • mother’s whole wardrobe followed. --What a procession! her red damask,
  • --her orange tawney, --her white and yellow lutestrings, --her brown
  • taffata, --her bone-laced caps, her bed-gowns, and comfortable
  • under-petticoats. --Not a rag was left behind. --“_No, --she will never
  • look up again_,” said _Susannah_.
  • We had a fat, foolish scullion--my father, I think, kept her for her
  • simplicity; --she had been all autumn struggling with a dropsy. --He is
  • dead, said _Obadiah_, --he is certainly dead! --So am not I, said the
  • foolish scullion.
  • ----Here is sad news, _Trim_, cried _Susannah_, wiping her eyes as
  • _Trim_ stepp’d into the kitchen, --master _Bobby_ is dead and
  • _buried_--the funeral was an interpolation of _Susannah’s_--we shall
  • have all to go into mourning, said _Susannah_.
  • I hope not, said _Trim_. --You hope not! cried _Susannah_ earnestly.
  • --The mourning ran not in _Trim’s_ head, whatever it did in
  • _Susannah’s_. --I hope--said _Trim_, explaining himself, I hope in God
  • the news is not true. --I heard the letter read with my own ears,
  • answered _Obadiah_; and we shall have a terrible piece of work of it in
  • stubbing the Ox-moor. --Oh! he’s dead, said _Susannah_. --As sure, said
  • the scullion, as I’m alive.
  • I lament for him from my heart and my soul, said _Trim_, fetching a
  • sigh. --Poor creature! --poor boy! --poor gentleman.
  • --He was alive last _Whitsontide!_ said the coachman. --_Whitsontide!_
  • alas! cried _Trim_, extending his right arm, and falling instantly into
  • the same attitude in which he read the sermon, --what is _Whitsontide_,
  • _Jonathan_ (for that was the coachman’s name), or _Shrovetide_, or any
  • tide or time past, to this? Are we not here now, continued the corporal
  • (striking the end of his stick perpendicularly upon the floor, so as to
  • give an idea of health and stability)--and are we not--(dropping his hat
  • upon the ground) gone! in a moment! --’Twas infinitely striking!
  • _Susannah_ burst into a flood of tears. --We are not stocks and stones.
  • --_Jonathan_, _Obadiah_, the cook-maid, all melted. --The foolish fat
  • scullion herself, who was scouring a fish-kettle upon her knees, was
  • rous’d with it. --The whole kitchen crowded about the corporal.
  • Now, as I perceive plainly, that the preservation of our constitution in
  • church and state, --and possibly the preservation of the whole world--or
  • what is the same thing, the distribution and balance of its property and
  • power, may in time to come depend greatly upon the right understanding
  • of this stroke of the corporal’s eloquence --I do demand your
  • attention--your worships and reverences, for any ten pages together,
  • take them where you will in any other part of the work, shall sleep for
  • it at your ease.
  • I said, “we were not stocks and stones”--’tis very well. I should have
  • added, nor are we angels, I wish we were, --but men clothed with bodies,
  • and governed by our imaginations; --and what a junketing piece of work
  • of it there is, betwixt these and our seven senses, especially some of
  • them, for my own part, I own it, I am ashamed to confess. Let it suffice
  • to affirm, that of all the senses, the eye (for I absolutely deny the
  • touch, though most of your _Barbati_, I know, are for it) has the
  • quickest commerce with the soul, --gives a smarter stroke, and leaves
  • something more inexpressible upon the fancy, than words can either
  • convey--or sometimes, get rid of.
  • --I’ve gone a little about--no matter, ’tis for health--let us only
  • carry it back in our mind to the mortality of _Trim’s_ hat. --“Are we
  • not here now, --and gone in a moment?” --There was nothing in the
  • sentence--’twas one of your self-evident truths we have the advantage of
  • hearing every day; and if _Trim_ had not trusted more to his hat than
  • his head--he had made nothing at all of it.
  • ------“Are we not here now;” continued the corporal, “and are we
  • not”--(dropping his hat plump upon the ground--and pausing, before he
  • pronounced the word)-- “gone! in a moment?” The descent of the hat was
  • as if a heavy lump of clay had been kneeded into the crown of it.
  • ----Nothing could have expressed the sentiment of mortality, of which it
  • was the type and fore-runner, like it, --his hand seemed to vanish from
  • under it, --it fell dead, --the corporal’s eye fixed upon it, as upon a
  • corpse, --and _Susannah_ burst into a flood of tears.
  • Now --Ten thousand, and ten thousand times ten thousand (for matter and
  • motion are infinite) are the ways by which a hat may be dropped upon the
  • ground, without any effect. ----Had he flung it, or thrown it, or cast
  • it, or skimmed it, or squirted it, or let it slip or fall in any
  • possible direction under heaven, --or in the best direction that could
  • be given to it, --had he dropped it like a goose--like a puppy--like an
  • ass--or in doing it, or even after he had done, had he looked like a
  • fool--like a ninny--like a nincompoop--it had fail’d, and the effect
  • upon the heart had been lost.
  • Ye who govern this mighty world and its mighty concerns with the
  • _engines_ of eloquence, --who heat it, and cool it, and melt it, and
  • mollify it, ----and then harden it again to _your purpose_----
  • Ye who wind and turn the passions with this great windlass, and, having
  • done it, lead the owners of them, whither ye think meet--
  • Ye, lastly, who drive----and why not, Ye also who are driven, like
  • turkeys to market with a stick and a red clout--meditate--meditate,
  • I beseech you, upon _Trim’s_ hat.
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • Stay ----I have a small account to settle with the reader before _Trim_
  • can go on with his harangue. --It shall be done in two minutes.
  • Amongst many other book-debts, all of which I shall discharge in due
  • time, --I own myself a debtor to the world for two items, --a chapter
  • upon _chamber-maids and button-holes_, which, in the former part of my
  • work, I promised and fully intended to pay off this year: but some of
  • your worships and reverences telling me, that the two subjects,
  • especially so connected together, might endanger the morals of the
  • world, --I pray the chapter upon chamber-maids and button-holes may be
  • forgiven me, --and that they will accept of the last chapter in lieu of
  • it; which is nothing, an’t please your reverences, but a chapter of
  • _chamber-maids, green gowns, and old hats_.
  • _Trim_ took his off the ground, --put it upon his head, --and then went
  • on with his oration upon death, in manner and form following.
  • CHAPTER IX
  • ------To us, _Jonathan_, who know not what want or care is--who live
  • here in the service of two of the best of masters--(bating in my own
  • case his majesty King _William_ the Third, whom I had the honour to
  • serve both in _Ireland_ and _Flanders_) --I own it, that from
  • _Whitsontide_ to within three weeks of _Christmas_, --’tis not
  • long--’tis like nothing; --but to those, _Jonathan_, who know what death
  • is, and what havock and destruction he can make, before a man can well
  • wheel about--’tis like a whole age. --O _Jonathan!_ ’twould make a
  • good-natured man’s heart bleed, to consider, continued the corporal
  • (standing perpendicularly), how low many a brave and upright fellow has
  • been laid since that time! --And trust me, _Susy_, added the corporal,
  • turning to _Susannah_, whose eyes were swimming in water, --before that
  • time comes round again, --many a bright eye will be dim. --_Susannah_
  • placed it to the right side of the page--she wept--but she court’sied
  • too. --Are we not, continued _Trim_, looking still at _Susannah_ --are
  • we not like a flower of the field--a tear of pride stole in betwixt
  • every two tears of humiliation--else no tongue could have described
  • _Susannah’s_ affliction--is not all flesh grass? --’Tis clay, --’tis
  • dirt. --They all looked directly at the scullion, --the scullion had
  • just been scouring a fish-kettle. --It was not fair.----
  • --What is the finest face that ever man looked at! --I could hear _Trim_
  • talk so for ever, cried _Susannah_, --what is it! (_Susannah_ laid her
  • hand upon _Trim’s_ shoulder)--but corruption? ----_Susannah_ took it
  • off.
  • Now I love you for this--and ’tis this delicious mixture within you
  • which makes you dear creatures what you are--and he who hates you for
  • it------all I can say of the matter is --That he has either a pumpkin
  • for his head--or a pippin for his heart, --and whenever he is dissected
  • ’twill be found so.
  • CHAPTER X
  • Whether _Susannah_, by taking her hand too suddenly from off the
  • corporal’s shoulder (by the whisking about of her passions)----broke a
  • little the chain of his reflexions----
  • Or whether the corporal began to be suspicious, he had got into the
  • doctor’s quarters, and was talking more like the chaplain than
  • himself------
  • Or whether - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - Or
  • whether----for in all such cases a man of invention and parts may with
  • pleasure fill a couple of pages with suppositions----which of all these
  • was the cause, let the curious physiologist, or the curious anybody
  • determine----’tis certain, at least, the corporal went on thus with his
  • harangue.
  • For my own part, I declare it, that out of doors, I value not death at
  • all: --not this ... added the corporal, snapping his fingers, --but with
  • an air which no one but the corporal could have given to the sentiment.
  • --In battle, I value death not this . . . and let him not take me
  • cowardly, like poor _Joe Gibbins_, in scouring his gun --What is he?
  • A pull of a trigger--a push of a bayonet an inch this way or that--makes
  • the difference. --Look along the line--to the right--see! _Jack’s_ down!
  • well, --’tis worth a regiment of horse to him. --No--’tis _Dick_. Then
  • _Jack’s_ no worse. --Never mind which, --we pass on, --in hot pursuit
  • the wound itself which brings him is not felt, --the best way is to
  • stand up to him, --the man who flies, is in ten times more danger than
  • the man who marches up into his jaws. --I’ve look’d him, added the
  • corporal, an hundred times in the face, --and know what he is. --He’s
  • nothing, _Obadiah_, at all in the field. --But he’s very frightful in a
  • house, quoth _Obadiah_. ----I never mind it myself, said _Jonathan_,
  • upon a coach-box. --It must, in my opinion, be most natural in bed,
  • replied _Susannah_. --And could I escape him by creeping into the worst
  • calf’s skin that ever was made into a knapsack, I would do it
  • there--said _Trim_--but that is nature.
  • ----Nature is nature, said _Jonathan_. --And that is the reason, cried
  • _Susannah_, I so much pity my mistress. --She will never get the better
  • of it. --Now I pity the captain the most of any one in the family,
  • answered _Trim_. ----Madam will get ease of heart in weeping, --and the
  • Squire in talking about it, --but my poor master will keep it all in
  • silence to himself, --I shall hear him sigh in his bed for a whole month
  • together, as he did for lieutenant _Le Fever_. --An’ please your honour,
  • do not sigh so piteously, I would say to him as I laid besides him.
  • I cannot help it, _Trim_, my master would say, ----’tis so melancholy an
  • accident --I cannot get it off my heart. --Your honour fears not death
  • yourself. --I hope, _Trim_, I fear nothing, he would say, but the doing
  • a wrong thing. ----Well, he would add, whatever betides, I will take
  • care of _Le Fever’s_ boy. --And with that, like a quieting draught, his
  • honour would fall asleep.
  • I like to hear _Trim’s_ stories about the captain, said _Susannah_. --He
  • is a kindly-hearted gentleman, said _Obadiah_, as ever lived. --Aye, and
  • as brave a one too, said the corporal, as ever stept before a platoon.
  • --There never was a better officer in the king’s army, --or a better man
  • in God’s world; for he would march up to the mouth of a cannon, though
  • he saw the lighted match at the very touch-hole, --and yet, for all
  • that, he has a heart as soft as a child for other people. ----He would
  • not hurt a chicken. ----I would sooner, quoth _Jonathan_, drive such a
  • gentleman for seven pounds a year--than some for eight. --Thank thee,
  • _Jonathan!_ for thy twenty shillings, --as much, _Jonathan_, said the
  • corporal, shaking him by the hand, as if thou hadst put the money into
  • my own pocket. ----I would serve him to the day of my death out of love.
  • He is a friend and a brother to me, --and could I be sure my poor
  • brother _Tom_ was dead, --continued the corporal, taking out his
  • handkerchief, --was I worth ten thousand pounds, I would leave every
  • shilling of it to the captain. ----_Trim_ could not refrain from tears
  • at this testamentary proof he gave of his affection to his master.
  • ----The whole kitchen was affected. --Do tell us the story of the poor
  • lieutenant, said _Susannah_. ----With all my heart, answered the
  • corporal.
  • _Susannah_, the cook, _Jonathan_, _Obadiah_, and corporal _Trim_, formed
  • a circle about the fire; and as soon as the scullion had shut the
  • kitchen door, --the corporal begun.
  • CHAPTER XI
  • I am a _Turk_ if I had not as much forgot my mother, as if Nature had
  • plaistered me up, and set me down naked upon the banks of the river
  • _Nile_, without one. ----Your most obedient servant, Madam --I’ve cost
  • you a great deal of trouble, --I wish it may answer; --but you have left
  • a crack in my back, --and here’s a great piece fallen off here before,
  • --and what must I do with this foot? ----I shall never reach _England_
  • with it.
  • For my own part, I never wonder at any thing; --and so often has my
  • judgment deceived me in my life, that I always suspect it, right or
  • wrong, --at least I am seldom hot upon cold subjects. For all this,
  • I reverence truth as much as any body; and when it has slipped us, if a
  • man will but take me by the hand, and go quietly and search for it, as
  • for a thing we have both lost, and can neither of us do well without,
  • --I’ll go to the world’s end with him: ----But I hate disputes, --and
  • therefore (bating religious points, or such as touch society) I would
  • almost subscribe to any thing which does not choak me in the first
  • passage, rather than be drawn into one. ----But I cannot bear
  • suffocation, ----and bad smells worst of all. ----For which reasons,
  • I resolved from the beginning, That if ever the army of martyrs was to
  • be augmented, --or a new one raised, --I would have no hand in it, one
  • way or t’other.
  • CHAPTER XII
  • ----But to return to my mother.
  • My uncle _Toby’s_ opinion, Madam, “that there could be no harm in
  • _Cornelius Gallus_, the _Roman_ prætor’s lying with his wife;” ----or
  • rather the last word of that opinion, --(for it was all my mother heard
  • of it) caught hold of her by the weak part of the whole sex: ----You
  • shall not mistake me, --I mean her curiosity, --she instantly concluded
  • herself the subject of the conversation, and with that prepossession
  • upon her fancy, you will readily conceive every word my father said, was
  • accommodated either to herself, or her family concerns.
  • ----Pray, Madam, in what street does the lady live, who would not have
  • done the same?
  • From the strange mode of _Cornelius’s_ death, my father had made a
  • transition to that of _Socrates_, and was giving my uncle _Toby_ an
  • abstract of his pleading before his judges; ----’twas irresistible:
  • ----not the oration of _Socrates_, --but my father’s temptation to it.
  • ----He had wrote the Life of _Socrates_[5.1] himself the year before he
  • left off trade, which, I fear, was the means of hastening him out of it;
  • ----so that no one was able to set out with so full a sail, and in so
  • swelling a tide of heroic loftiness upon the occasion, as my father was.
  • Not a period in _Socrates’s_ oration, which closed with a shorter word
  • than _transmigration_, or _annihilation_, --or a worse thought in the
  • middle of it than _to be--or not to be_, --the entering upon a new and
  • untried state of things, --or, upon a long, a profound and peaceful
  • sleep, without dreams, without disturbance? ----_That we and our
  • children were born to die, --but neither of us born to be slaves_.
  • ----No--there I mistake; that was part of _Eleazer’s_ oration, as
  • recorded by _Josephus_ (_de Bell. Judaic._)----_Eleazer_ owns he had it
  • from the philosophers of _India_; in all likelihood _Alexander_ the
  • Great, in his irruption into _India_, after he had over-run _Persia_,
  • amongst the many things he stole, --stole that sentiment also; by which
  • means it was carried, if not all the way by himself (for we all know he
  • died at _Babylon_), at least by some of his maroders, into _Greece_,
  • --from _Greece_ it got to _Rome_, --from _Rome_ to _France_, --and from
  • _France_ to _England_: ----So things come round.----
  • By land carriage, I can conceive no other way.----
  • By water the sentiment might easily have come down the _Ganges_ into the
  • _Sinus Gangeticus_, or _Bay of Bengal_, and so into the _Indian Sea_;
  • and following the course of trade (the way from _India_ by the _Cape of
  • Good Hope_ being then unknown), might be carried with other drugs and
  • spices up the _Red Sea_ to _Joddah_, the port of _Mekka_, or else to
  • _Tor_ or _Sues_, towns at the bottom of the gulf; and from thence by
  • karrawans to _Coptos_, but three days’ journey distant, so down the
  • _Nile_ directly to _Alexandria_, where the SENTIMENT would be landed at
  • the very foot of the great stair-case of the _Alexandrian_ library,
  • ----and from that store-house it would be fetched. ------Bless me! what
  • a trade was driven by the learned in those days!
  • [Footnote 5.1: This book my father would never consent to
  • publish; ’tis in manuscript, with some other tracts of his, in
  • the family, all, or most of which will be printed in due time.]
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • ----Now my father had a way, a little like that of _Job’s_ (in case
  • there ever was such a man----if not, there’s an end of the matter.----
  • Though, by the bye, because your learned men find some difficulty in
  • fixing the precise æra in which so great a man lived; --whether, for
  • instance, before or after the patriarchs, &c. ----to vote, therefore,
  • that he never lived _at all_, is a little cruel, --’tis not doing as
  • they would be done by, --happen that as it may) ----My father, I say,
  • had a way, when things went extremely wrong with him, especially upon
  • the first sally of his impatience, --of wondering why he was begot,
  • --wishing himself dead; --sometimes worse: ----And when the provocation
  • ran high, and grief touched his lips with more than ordinary
  • powers --Sir, you scarce could have distinguished him from _Socrates_
  • himself. ----Every word would breathe the sentiments of a soul
  • disdaining life, and careless about all its issues; for which reason,
  • though my mother was a woman of no deep reading, yet the abstract of
  • _Socrates’s_ oration, which my father was giving my uncle _Toby_, was
  • not altogether new to her. --She listened to it with composed
  • intelligence, and would have done so to the end of the chapter, had not
  • my father plunged (which he had no occasion to have done) into that part
  • of the pleading where the great philosopher reckons up his connections,
  • his alliances, and children; but renounces a security to be so won by
  • working upon the passions of his judges. --“I have friends --I have
  • relations, --I have three desolate children,” --says _Socrates_.--
  • ----Then, cried my mother, opening the door, ----you have one more, Mr.
  • _Shandy_, than I know of.
  • By heaven! I have one less, --said my father, getting up and walking out
  • of the room.
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • ----They are _Socrates’s_ children, said my uncle _Toby_. He has been
  • dead a hundred years ago, replied my mother.
  • My uncle _Toby_ was no chronologer--so not caring to advance one step
  • but upon safe ground, he laid down his pipe deliberately upon the table,
  • and rising up, and taking my mother most kindly by the hand, without
  • saying another word, either good or bad, to her, he led her out after my
  • father, that he might finish the ecclaircissement himself.
  • CHAPTER XV
  • Had this volume been a farce, which, unless every one’s life and
  • opinions are to be looked upon as a farce as well as mine, I see no
  • reason to suppose--the last chapter, Sir, had finished the first act of
  • it, and then this chapter must have set off thus.
  • Ptr..r..r..ing--twing--twang--prut--trut----’tis a cursed bad fiddle.
  • --Do you know whether my fiddle’s in tune or no? --trut..prut.. --They
  • should be _fifths_. ----’Tis wickedly strung--tr...a.e.i.o.u.-twang.
  • --The bridge is a mile too high, and the sound post absolutely down,
  • --else--trut . . prut--hark! ’tis not so bad a tone. --Diddle diddle,
  • diddle diddle, diddle diddle, dum. There is nothing in playing before
  • good judges, --but there’s a man there--no--not him with the bundle
  • under his arm--the grave man in black. --’Sdeath! not the gentleman with
  • the sword on. --Sir, I had rather play a _Caprichio_ to _Calliope_
  • herself, than draw my bow across my fiddle before that very man; and yet
  • I’ll stake my _Cremona_ to a _Jew’s_ trump, which is the greatest
  • musical odds that ever were laid, that I will this moment stop three
  • hundred and fifty leagues out of tune upon my fiddle, without punishing
  • one single nerve that belongs to him --Twaddle diddle, tweddle diddle,
  • --twiddle diddle, ----twoddle diddle, --twuddle diddle, ----prut
  • trut--krish--krash--krush. --I’ve undone you, Sir, --but you see he’s no
  • worse, --and was _Apollo_ to take his fiddle after me, he can make him
  • no better.
  • Diddle diddle, diddle diddle, diddle diddle--hum--dum--drum.
  • --Your worships and your reverences love music--and God has made you all
  • with good ears--and some of you play delightfully yourselves--trut-prut,
  • --prut-trut.
  • O! there is--whom I could sit and hear whole days, --whose talents lie
  • in making what he fiddles to be felt, --who inspires me with his joys
  • and hopes, and puts the most hidden springs of my heart into motion.
  • --If you would borrow five guineas of me, Sir, --which is generally ten
  • guineas more than I have to spare--or you Messrs. Apothecary and Taylor,
  • want your bills paying, --that’s your time.
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • The first thing which entered my father’s head, after affairs were a
  • little settled in the family, and _Susannah_ had got possession of my
  • mother’s green sattin night-gown, --was to sit down coolly, after the
  • example of _Xenophon_, and write a TRISTRA-pædia, or system of education
  • for me; collecting first for that purpose his own scattered thoughts,
  • counsels, and notions; and binding them together, so as to form an
  • INSTITUTE for the government of my childhood and adolescence. I was my
  • father’s last stake--he had lost my brother _Bobby_ entirely, --he had
  • lost, by his own computation, full three-fourths of me--that is, he had
  • been unfortunate in his three first great casts for me--my geniture,
  • nose, and name, --there was but this one left; and accordingly my father
  • gave himself up to it with as much devotion as ever my uncle _Toby_ had
  • done to his doctrine of projectils. --The difference between them was,
  • that my uncle _Toby_ drew his whole knowledge of projectils from
  • _Nicholas Tartaglia_ --My father spun his, every thread of it, out of
  • his own brain, --or reeled and cross-twisted what all other spinners and
  • spinsters had spun before him, that ’twas pretty near the same torture
  • to him.
  • In about three years, or something more, my father had got advanced
  • almost into the middle of his work. --Like all other writers, he met
  • with disappointments. --He imagined he should be able to bring whatever
  • he had to say, into so small a compass, that when it was finished and
  • bound, it might be rolled up in my mother’s hussive. --Matter grows
  • under our hands. --Let no man say, --“Come --I’ll write a duodecimo.”
  • My father gave himself up to it, however, with the most painful
  • diligence, proceeding step by step in every line, with the same kind of
  • caution and circumspection (though I cannot say upon quite so religious
  • a principle) as was used by _John de la Casse_, the lord archbishop of
  • _Benevento_, in compassing his _Galatea_; in which his Grace of
  • _Benevento_ spent near forty years of his life; and when the thing came
  • out, it was not of above half the size or the thickness of a _Rider’s_
  • Almanack. --How the holy man managed the affair, unless he spent the
  • greatest part of his time in combing his whiskers, or playing at
  • _primero_ with his chaplain, --would pose any mortal not let into the
  • true secret; --and therefore ’tis worth explaining to the world, was it
  • only for the encouragement of those few in it, who write not so much to
  • be fed--as to be famous.
  • I own had _John de la Casse_, the archbishop of _Benevento_, for whose
  • memory (notwithstanding his _Galatea_) I retain the highest veneration,
  • --had he been, Sir, a slender clerk--of dull wit--slow parts--costive
  • head, and so forth, --he and his _Galatea_ might have jogged on together
  • to the age of _Methuselah_ for me, --the phænomenon had not been worth a
  • parenthesis.--
  • But the reverse of this was the truth: _John de la Casse_ was a genius
  • of fine parts and fertile fancy; and yet with all these advantages of
  • nature, which should have pricked him forwards with his _Galatea_, he
  • lay under an impuissance at the same time of advancing above a line and
  • a half in the compass of a whole summer’s day: this disability in his
  • Grace arose from an opinion he was afflicted with, --which opinion was
  • this, --_viz._ that whenever a Christian was writing a book (not for his
  • private amusement, but) where his intent and purpose was, _bonâ fide_,
  • to print and publish it to the world, his first thoughts were always the
  • temptations of the evil one. --This was the state of ordinary writers:
  • but when a personage of venerable character and high station, either in
  • church or state, once turned author, --he maintained, that from the very
  • moment he took pen in hand--all the devils in hell broke out of their
  • holes to cajole him. --’Twas Term-time with them, --every thought, first
  • and last, was captious; --how specious and good soever, --’twas all one;
  • --in whatever form or colour it presented itself to the imagination,
  • --’twas still a stroke of one or other of ’em levell’d at him, and was
  • to be fenced off. --So that the life of a writer, whatever he might
  • fancy to the contrary, was not so much a state of _composition_, as a
  • state of _warfare_; and his probation in it, precisely that of any other
  • man militant upon earth, --both depending alike, not half so much upon
  • the degrees of his WIT--as his RESISTANCE.
  • My father was hugely pleased with this theory of _John de la Casse_,
  • archbishop of _Benevento_; and (had it not cramped him a little in his
  • creed) I believe would have given ten of the best acres in the _Shandy_
  • estate, to have been the broacher of it. --How far my father actually
  • believed in the devil, will be seen, when I come to speak of my father’s
  • religious notions, in the progress of this work: ’tis enough to say
  • here, as he could not have the honour of it, in the literal sense of the
  • doctrine--he took up with the allegory of it; and would often say,
  • especially when his pen was a little retrograde, there was as much good
  • meaning, truth, and knowledge, couched under the veil of _John de la
  • Casse’s_ parabolical representation, --as was to be found in any one
  • poetic fiction or mystic record of antiquity. --Prejudice of education,
  • he would say, _is the devil_, --and the multitudes of them which we suck
  • in with our mother’s milk--_are the devil and all_. ----We are haunted
  • with them, brother _Toby_, in all our lucubrations and researches; and
  • was a man fool enough to submit tamely to what they obtruded upon him,
  • --what would his book be? Nothing, --he would add, throwing his pen away
  • with a vengeance, --nothing but a farrago of the clack of nurses, and of
  • the nonsense of the old women (of both sexes) throughout the kingdom.
  • This is the best account I am determined to give of the slow progress my
  • father made in his _Tristra-pædia_; at which (as I said) he was three
  • years, and something more, indefatigably at work, and, at last, had
  • scarce completed, by his own reckoning, one half of his undertaking: the
  • misfortune was, that I was all that time totally neglected and abandoned
  • to my mother: and what was almost as bad, by the very delay, the first
  • part of the work, upon which my father had spent the most of his pains,
  • was rendered entirely useless, ----every day a page or two became of no
  • consequence.----
  • ----Certainly it was ordained as a scourge upon the pride of human
  • wisdom, That the wisest of us all should thus outwit ourselves, and
  • eternally forego our purposes, in the intemperate act of pursuing them.
  • In short, my father was so long in all his acts of resistance, --or in
  • other words, --he advanced so very slow with his work, and I began to
  • live and get forwards at such a rate, that if an event had not happened,
  • ----which, when we get to it, if it can be told with decency, shall not
  • be concealed a moment from the reader ----I verily believe, I had put by
  • my father, and left him drawing a sun-dial, for no better purpose than
  • to be buried underground.
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • ----’Twas nothing, --I did not lose two drops of blood by it----
  • ----’twas not worth calling in a surgeon, had he lived next door to
  • us----thousands suffer by choice, what I did by accident. ----Doctor
  • _Slop_ made ten times more of it, than there was occasion: ----some men
  • rise, by the art of hanging great weights upon small wires, --and I am
  • this day (_August_ the 10th, 1761) paying part of the price of this
  • man’s reputation. ----O ’twould provoke a stone, to see how things are
  • carried on in this world! ----The chamber-maid had left no ******* ***
  • under the bed: ----Cannot you contrive, master, quoth _Susannah_,
  • lifting up the sash with one hand, as she spoke, and helping me up into
  • the window-seat with the other, --cannot you manage, my dear, for a
  • single time, to **** *** ** *** ******?
  • I was five years old. ----_Susannah_ did not consider that nothing was
  • well hung in our family, ----so slap came the sash down like lightning
  • upon us; --Nothing is left, --cried _Susannah_, --nothing is left--for
  • me, but to run my country.----
  • My uncle _Toby’s_ house was a much kinder sanctuary; and so _Susannah_
  • fled to it.
  • CHAPTER XVIII
  • When _Susannah_ told the corporal the misadventure of the sash, with all
  • the circumstances which attended the _murder_ of me, --(as she
  • called it)-- the blood forsook his cheeks, --all accessaries in murder
  • being principals, --_Trim’s_ conscience told him he was as much to blame
  • as _Susannah_, --and if the doctrine had been true, my uncle _Toby_ had
  • as much of the bloodshed to answer for to heaven, as either of ’em; --so
  • that neither reason or instinct, separate or together, could possibly
  • have guided _Susannah’s_ steps to so proper an asylum. It is in vain to
  • leave this to the Reader’s imagination: --to form any kind of hypothesis
  • that will render these propositions feasible, he must cudgel his brains
  • sore, --and to do it without, --he must have such brains as no reader
  • ever had before him. ----Why should I put them either to trial or to
  • torture? ’Tis my own affair: I’ll explain it myself.
  • CHAPTER XIX
  • ’Tis a pity, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_, resting with his hand upon
  • the corporal’s shoulder, as they both stood surveying their works,
  • --that we have not a couple of field-pieces to mount in the gorge of
  • that new redoubt; ----’twould secure the lines all along there, and make
  • the attack on that side quite complete: ----get me a couple cast,
  • _Trim_.
  • Your honour shall have them, replied _Trim_, before to-morrow morning.
  • It was the joy of _Trim’s_ heart, --nor was his fertile head ever at a
  • loss for expedients in doing it, to supply my uncle _Toby_ in his
  • campaigns, with whatever his fancy called for; had it been his last
  • crown, he would have sate down and hammered it into a paderero, to have
  • prevented a single wish in his Master. The corporal had already, --what
  • with cutting off the ends of my uncle _Toby’s_ spouts--hacking and
  • chiseling up the sides of his leaden gutters, --melting down his pewter
  • shaving-bason, --and going at last, like _Lewis_ the Fourteenth, on to
  • the top of the church, for spare ends, &c. ----he had that very campaign
  • brought no less than eight new battering cannons, besides three
  • demi-culverins, into the field; my uncle _Toby’s_ demand for two more
  • pieces for the redoubt, had set the corporal at work again; and no
  • better resource offering, he had taken the two leaden weights from the
  • nursery window: and as the sash pullies, when the lead was gone, were of
  • no kind of use, he had taken them away also, to make a couple of wheels
  • for one of their carriages.
  • He had dismantled every sash-window in my uncle _Toby’s_ house long
  • before, in the very same way, --though not always in the same order; for
  • sometimes the pullies have been wanted, and not the lead, --so then he
  • began with the pullies, --and the pullies being picked out, then the
  • lead became useless, --and so the lead went to pot too.
  • ----A great MORAL might be picked handsomely out of this, but I have not
  • time--’tis enough to say, wherever the demolition began, ’twas equally
  • fatal to the sash window.
  • CHAPTER XX
  • The corporal had not taken his measures so badly in this stroke of
  • artilleryship, but that he might have kept the matter entirely to
  • himself, and left _Susannah_ to have sustained the whole weight of the
  • attack, as she could; --true courage is not content with coming off so.
  • ----The corporal, whether as general or comptroller of the train,
  • --’twas no matter, ----had done that, without which, as he imagined, the
  • misfortune could never have happened, --_at least in_ Susannah’s
  • _hands_; ----How would your honours have behaved? ----He determined at
  • once, not to take shelter behind _Susannah_, --but to give it; and with
  • this resolution upon his mind, he marched upright into the parlour, to
  • lay the whole _manœuvre_ before my uncle _Toby_.
  • My uncle _Toby_ had just then been giving _Yorick_ an account of the
  • battle of _Steenkirk_, and of the strange conduct of count _Solmes_ in
  • ordering the foot to halt, and the horse to march where it could not
  • act; which was directly contrary to the king’s commands, and proved the
  • loss of the day.
  • There are incidents in some families so pat to the purpose of what is
  • going to follow, --they are scarce exceeded by the invention of a
  • dramatic writer; --I mean of ancient days.------
  • _Trim_, by the help of his forefinger, laid flat upon the table, and the
  • edge of his hand striking across it at right angles, made a shift to
  • tell his story so, that priests and virgins might have listened to it;
  • --and the story being told, --the dialogue went on as follows.
  • CHAPTER XXI
  • ----I would be picquetted to death, cried the corporal, as he concluded
  • _Susannah’s_ story, before I would suffer the woman to come to any harm,
  • --’twas my fault, an’ please your honour, --not hers.
  • Corporal _Trim_, replied my uncle _Toby_, putting on his hat which lay
  • upon the table, ----if anything can be said to be a fault, when the
  • service absolutely requires it should be done, --’tis I certainly who
  • deserve the blame, ----you obeyed your orders.
  • Had count _Solmes_, _Trim_, done the same at the battle of _Steenkirk_,
  • said _Yorick_, drolling a little upon the corporal, who had been run
  • over by a dragoon in the retreat, ----he had saved thee; ----Saved!
  • cried _Trim_, interrupting _Yorick_, and finishing the sentence for him
  • after his own fashion, ----he had saved five battalions, an’ please your
  • reverence, every soul of them: ----there was _Cutts’s_--continued the
  • corporal, clapping the forefinger of his right hand upon the thumb of
  • his left, and counting round his hand, ----there was _Cutts’s_,
  • ----_Mackay’s_, ----_Angus’s_, ----_Graham’s_, ----and _Leven’s_, all
  • cut to pieces; ----and so had the _English_ life-guards too, had it not
  • been for some regiments upon the right, who marched up boldly to their
  • relief, and received the enemy’s fire in their faces, before any one of
  • their own platoons discharged a musket, ----they’ll go to heaven for it,
  • --added _Trim_. --_Trim_ is right, said my uncle _Toby_, nodding to
  • _Yorick_, ----he’s perfectly right. What signified his marching the
  • horse, continued the corporal, where the ground was so straight, that
  • the _French_ had such a nation of hedges, and copses, and ditches, and
  • fell’d trees laid this way and that to cover them; (as they always
  • have). ----Count _Solmes_ should have sent us, ----we would have fired
  • muzzle to muzzle with them for their lives. ----There was nothing to be
  • done for the horse: ----he had his foot shot off however for his pains,
  • continued the corporal, the very next campaign at _Landen_. --Poor
  • _Trim_ got his wound there, quoth my uncle _Toby_. ----’Twas owing, an’
  • please your honour, entirely to count _Solmes_, ----had he drubb’d them
  • soundly at _Steenkirk_, they would not have fought us at _Landen_.
  • ----Possibly not, ----_Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_; ----though if they
  • have the advantage of a wood, or you give them a moment’s time to
  • intrench themselves, they are a nation which will pop and pop for ever
  • at you. ----There is no way but to march coolly up to them, ----receive
  • their fire, and fall in upon them, pell-mell ----Ding dong, added _Trim_.
  • ----Horse and foot, said my uncle _Toby_. ----Helter skelter, said
  • _Trim_. ----Right and left, cried my uncle _Toby_. ----Blood an’ ounds,
  • shouted the corporal; ----the battle raged, ----_Yorick_ drew his chair
  • a little to one side for safety, and after a moment’s pause, my uncle
  • _Toby_ sinking his voice a note, --resumed the discourse as follows.
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • King _William_, said my uncle _Toby_, addressing himself to _Yorick_,
  • was so terribly provoked at count _Solmes_ for disobeying his orders,
  • that he would not suffer him to come into his presence for many months
  • after. ----I fear, answered _Yorick_, the squire will be as much
  • provoked at the corporal, as the King at the count. ----But ’twould be
  • singularly hard in this case, continued he, if corporal _Trim_, who has
  • behaved so diametrically opposite to count _Solmes_, should have the
  • fate to be rewarded with the same disgrace: ----too oft in this world,
  • do things take that train. ----I would spring a mine, cried my uncle
  • _Toby_, rising up, ----and blow up my fortifications, and my house with
  • them, and we would perish under their ruins, ere I would stand by and
  • see it. ----_Trim_ directed a slight, ----but a grateful bow towards his
  • master, ----and so the chapter ends.
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • ----Then, _Yorick_, replied my uncle _Toby_, you and I will lead the way
  • abreast, ----and do you, corporal, follow a few paces behind us. ----And
  • _Susannah_, an’ please your honour, said _Trim_, shall be put in the
  • rear. ----’Twas an excellent disposition, --and in this order, without
  • either drums beating, or colours flying, they marched slowly from my
  • uncle _Toby’s_ house to _Shandy-hall_.
  • ----I wish, said _Trim_, as they entered the door, --instead of the sash
  • weights, I had cut off the church spout, as I once thought to have done.
  • --You have cut off spouts enow, replied _Yorick_.----
  • CHAPTER XXIV
  • As many pictures as have been given of my father, how like him soever in
  • different airs and attitudes, --not one, or all of them, can ever help
  • the reader to any kind of preconception of how my father would think,
  • speak, or act, upon any untried occasion or occurrence of life. --There
  • was that infinitude of oddities in him, and of chances along with it, by
  • which handle he would take a thing, --it baffled, Sir, all calculations.
  • ----The truth was, his road lay so very far on one side, from that
  • wherein most men travelled, --that every object before him presented a
  • face and section of itself to his eye, altogether different from the
  • plan and elevation of it seen by the rest of mankind. --In other words,
  • ’twas a different object, and in course was differently considered:
  • This is the true reason, that my dear _Jenny_ and I, as well as all the
  • world besides us, have such eternal squabbles about nothing. --She looks
  • at her outside, --I, at her in--. How is it possible we should agree
  • about her value?
  • CHAPTER XXV
  • ’Tis a point settled, --and I mention it for the comfort of
  • _Confucius_,[5.2] who is apt to get entangled in telling a plain
  • story--that provided he keeps along the line of his story, --he may go
  • backwards and forwards as he will, --’tis still held to be no
  • digression.
  • This being premised, I take the benefit of the _act of going backwards_
  • myself.
  • [Footnote 5.2: Mr. _Shandy_ is supposed to mean ******** ***
  • Esq.; member for ******, ----and not the _Chinese_ Legislator.]
  • CHAPTER XXVI
  • Fifty thousand pannier loads of devils--(not of the Archbishop of
  • _Benevento’s_, --I mean of _Rabelais’s_ devils) with their tails chopped
  • off by their rumps, could not have made so diabolical a scream of it, as
  • I did--when the accident befel me: it summoned up my mother instantly
  • into the nursery, --so that _Susannah_ had but just time to make her
  • escape down the back stairs, as my mother came up the fore.
  • Now, though I was old enough to have told the story myself, --and young
  • enough, I hope, to have done it without malignity; yet _Susannah_, in
  • passing by the kitchen, for fear of accidents, had left it in shorthand
  • with the cook--the cook had told it with a commentary to _Jonathan_, and
  • _Jonathan_ to _Obadiah_; so that by the time my father had rung the bell
  • half a dozen times, to know what was the matter above, --was _Obadiah_
  • enabled to give him a particular account of it, just as it had happened.
  • --I thought as much, said my father, tucking up his night-gown; --and so
  • walked up stairs.
  • One would imagine from this----(though for my own part I somewhat
  • question it)--that my father, before that time, had actually wrote that
  • remarkable character in the _Tristra-pædia_, which to me is the most
  • original and entertaining one in the whole book; --and that is the
  • _chapter upon sash-windows_, with a bitter _Philippick_ at the end of
  • it, upon the forgetfulness of chamber-maids. --I have but two reasons
  • for thinking otherwise.
  • First, Had the matter been taken into consideration, before the event
  • happened, my father certainly would have nailed up the sash window for
  • good an’ all; --which, considering with what difficulty he composed
  • books, --he might have done with ten times less trouble, than he could
  • have wrote the chapter: this argument I foresee holds good against his
  • writing a chapter, even after the event; but ’tis obviated under the
  • second reason, which I have the honour to offer to the world in support
  • of my opinion, that my father did not write the chapter upon
  • sash-windows and chamber-pots, at the time supposed, --and it is this.
  • ----That, in order to render the _Tristra-pædia_ complete, --I wrote the
  • chapter myself.
  • CHAPTER XXVII
  • My father put on his spectacles--looked, --took them off, --put them
  • into the case--all in less than a statutable minute; and without opening
  • his lips, turned about and walked precipitately down stairs: my mother
  • imagined he had stepped down for lint and basilicon; but seeing him
  • return with a couple of folios under his arm, and _Obadiah_ following
  • him with a large reading-desk, she took it for granted ’twas an herbal,
  • and so drew him a chair to the bedside, that he might consult upon the
  • case at his ease.
  • ----If it be but right done, --said my father, turning to the
  • _Section--de sede vel subjecto circumcisionis_, ----for he had brought
  • up _Spenser de Legibus Hebræorum Ritualibus_--and _Maimonides_, in order
  • to confront and examine us altogether.--
  • ----If it be but right done, quoth he: --only tell us, cried my mother,
  • interrupting him, what herbs? ----For that, replied my father, you must
  • send for Dr. _Slop_.
  • My mother went down, and my father went on, reading the section as
  • follows,
  • * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * ------Very well, --said my father,
  • * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * *
  • * * --nay, if it has that convenience----and so without
  • stopping a moment to settle it first in his mind, whether the _Jews_ had
  • it from the _Egyptians_, or the _Egyptians_ from the _Jews_, --he rose
  • up, and rubbing his forehead two or three times across with the palm of
  • his hand, in the manner we rub out the footsteps of care, when evil has
  • trod lighter upon us than we foreboded, --he shut the book, and walked
  • down stairs. --Nay, said he, mentioning the name of a different great
  • nation upon every step as he set his foot upon it--if the EGYPTIANS,
  • --the SYRIANS, --the PHOENICIANS, --the ARABIANS, --the CAPPADOCIANS,
  • ----if the COLCHI, and TROGLODYTES did it----if SOLON and PYTHAGORAS
  • submitted, --what is TRISTRAM? ----Who am I, that I should fret or fume
  • one moment about the matter?
  • CHAPTER XXVIII
  • Dear _Yorick_, said my father, smiling (for _Yorick_ had broke his rank
  • with my uncle _Toby_ in coming through the narrow entry, and so had
  • stept first into the parlour)--this _Tristram_ of ours, I find, comes
  • very hardly by all his religious rites. --Never was the son of _Jew_,
  • _Christian_, _Turk_, or _Infidel_ initiated into them in so oblique and
  • slovenly a manner. --But he is no worse, I trust, said _Yorick_. --There
  • has been certainly, continued my father, the deuce and all to do in some
  • part or other of the ecliptic, when this offspring of mine was formed.
  • --That, you are a better judge of than I, replied _Yorick_.
  • --Astrologers, quoth my father, know better than us both: --the trine
  • and sextil aspects have jumped awry, --or the opposite of their
  • ascendants have not hit it, as they should, --or the lords of the
  • genitures (as they call them) have been at _bo-peep_, --or something has
  • been wrong above, or below with us.
  • ’Tis possible, answered _Yorick_. --But is the child, cried my uncle
  • _Toby_, the worse? --The _Troglodytes_ say not, replied my father. And
  • your theologists, _Yorick_, tell us --Theologically? said _Yorick_, --or
  • speaking after the manner of apothecaries?[5.3]--statesmen?[5.4]--or
  • washer-women?[5.5]
  • ----I’m not sure, replied my father, --but they tell us, brother _Toby_,
  • he’s the better for it. ----Provided, said _Yorick_, you travel him into
  • _Egypt_. ----Of that, answered my father, he will have the advantage,
  • when he sees the _Pyramids_.----
  • Now every word of this, quoth my uncle _Toby_, is _Arabick_ to me. ----I
  • wish, said _Yorick_, ’twas so, to half the world.
  • ----ILUS,[5.6] continued my father, circumcised his whole army one
  • morning. --Not without a court martial? cried my uncle _Toby_.
  • ----Though the learned, continued he, taking no notice of my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ remark, but turning to _Yorick_, --are greatly divided still
  • who _Ilus_ was; --some say _Saturn_; --some the Supreme Being; --others,
  • no more than a brigadier general under _Pharaoh-neco_. ----Let him be
  • who he will, said my uncle _Toby_, I know not by what article of war he
  • could justify it.
  • The controvertists, answered my father, assign two-and-twenty different
  • reasons for it: --others, indeed, who have drawn their pens on the
  • opposite side of the question, have shewn the world the futility of the
  • greatest part of them. --But then again, our best polemic divines --I
  • wish there was not a polemic divine, said _Yorick_, in the kingdom;
  • --one ounce of practical divinity--is worth a painted ship-load of all
  • their reverences have imported these fifty years. --Pray, Mr. _Yorick_,
  • quoth my uncle _Toby_, --do tell me what a polemic divine is? ----The
  • best description, captain _Shandy_, I have ever read, is of a couple of
  • ’em, replied _Yorick_, in the account of the battle fought single hands
  • betwixt _Gymnast_ and captain _Tripet_; which I have in my pocket. ----I
  • beg I may hear it, quoth my uncle _Toby_ earnestly. --You shall, said
  • _Yorick_. --And as the corporal is waiting for me at the door, --and I
  • know the description of a battle will do the poor fellow more good than
  • his supper, --I beg, brother, you’ll give him leave to come in. --With
  • all my soul, said my father. ----_Trim_ came in, erect and happy as an
  • emperor; and having shut the door, _Yorick_ took a book from his
  • right-hand coat-pocket, and read, or pretended to read, as follows.
  • [Footnote 5.3: Χαλεπῆς νόσου, καὶ δυσιάτου ἀπαλλαγὴν, ἣν ἄνθρακα
  • καλοῦσιν. --PHILO.]
  • [Footnote 5.4: Τὰ τεμνόμενα τῶν ἐθνῶν τολυγονώτατα, καὶ
  • πολυανθρωπότατα εἶναι.]
  • [Footnote 5.5: Καθαριότητος εἵνεκεν. --BOCHART.]
  • [Footnote 5.6: Ὁ Ἶλος, τὰ αἰδοῖα περιτέμνεται, ταὐτὸ ποιῆσαι καὶ
  • τοὺς ἅμ’ αυτῷ συμμάχους καταναγκάσας. --SANCHUNIATHO.]
  • CHAPTER XXIX
  • ----“which words being heard by all the soldiers which were there,
  • divers of them being inwardly terrified, did shrink back and make room
  • for the assailant: all this did _Gymnast_ very well remark and consider;
  • and therefore, making as if he would have alighted from off his horse,
  • as he was poising himself on the mounting side, he most nimbly (with his
  • short sword by his thigh) shifting his feet in the stirrup, and
  • performing the stirrup-leather feat, whereby, after the inclining of his
  • body downwards, he forthwith launched himself aloft into the air, and
  • placed both his feet together upon the saddle, standing upright, with
  • his back turned towards his horse’s head, --Now (said he) my case goes
  • forward. Then suddenly in the same posture wherein he was, he fetched a
  • gambol upon one foot, and turning to the left-hand, failed not to carry
  • his body perfectly round, just into his former position, without missing
  • one jot. ----Ha! said _Tripet_, I will not do that at this time, --and
  • not without cause. Well, said _Gymnast_, I have failed, --I will undo
  • this leap; then with a marvellous strength and agility, turning towards
  • the right-hand, he fetched another frisking gambol as before; which
  • done, he set his right-hand thumb upon the bow of the saddle, raised
  • himself up, and sprung into the air, poising and upholding his whole
  • weight upon the muscle and nerve of the said thumb, and so turned and
  • whirled himself about three times: at the fourth, reversing his body,
  • and overturning it upside down, and foreside back, without _touching
  • anything_, he brought himself betwixt the horse’s two ears, and then
  • giving himself a jerking swing, he seated himself upon the crupper----”
  • (This can’t be fighting, said my uncle _Toby_. ----The corporal shook
  • his head at it. ----Have patience, said _Yorick_.)
  • “Then (_Tripet_) pass’d his right leg over his saddle, and placed
  • himself _en croup_. --But, said he, ’twere better for me to get into the
  • saddle; then putting the thumbs of both hands upon the crupper before
  • him, and thereupon leaning himself, as upon the only supporters of his
  • body, he incontinently turned heels over head in the air, and strait
  • found himself betwixt the bow of the saddle in a tolerable seat; then
  • springing into the air with a summerset, he turned him about like a
  • wind-mill, and made above a hundred frisks, turns, and demi-pommadas.”
  • --Good God! cried _Trim_, losing all patience, --one home thrust of a
  • bayonet is worth it all. ----I think so too, replied _Yorick_.----
  • I am of a contrary opinion, quoth my father.
  • CHAPTER XXX
  • ----No, --I think I have advanced nothing, replied my father, making
  • answer to a question which _Yorick_ had taken the liberty to put to him,
  • --I have advanced nothing in the _Tristra-pædia_, but what is as clear
  • as any one proposition in _Euclid_. --Reach me, _Trim_, that book from
  • off the scrutoir: ----it has oft-times been in my mind, continued my
  • father, to have read it over both to you, _Yorick_, and to my brother
  • _Toby_, and I think it a little unfriendly in myself, in not having done
  • it long ago: ----shall we have a short chapter or two now, --and a
  • chapter or two hereafter, as occasions serve; and so on, till we get
  • through the whole? My uncle _Toby_ and _Yorick_ made the obeisance which
  • was proper; and the corporal, though he was not included in the
  • compliment, laid his hand upon his breast, and made his bow at the same
  • time. ----The company smiled. _Trim_, quoth my father, has paid the full
  • price for staying out the _entertainment_. ----He did not seem to relish
  • the play, replied _Yorick_. ----’Twas a Tom-fool-battle, an’ please your
  • reverence, of captain _Tripet’s_ and that other officer, making so many
  • summersets, as they advanced; ----the _French_ come on capering now and
  • then in that way, --but not quite so much.
  • My uncle _Toby_ never felt the consciousness of his existence with more
  • complacency than what the corporal’s, and his own reflections, made him
  • do at that moment; ----he lighted his pipe, ----_Yorick_ drew his chair
  • closer to the table, --_Trim_ snuff’d the candle, --my father stirr’d up
  • the fire, --took up the book, --cough’d twice, and begun.
  • CHAPTER XXXI
  • The first thirty pages, said my father, turning over the leaves, --are a
  • little dry; and as they are not closely connected with the subject,
  • ----for the present we’ll pass them by: ’tis a prefatory introduction,
  • continued my father, or an introductory preface (for I am not determined
  • which name to give it) upon political or civil government; the
  • foundation of which being laid in the first conjunction betwixt male and
  • female, for procreation of the species ----I was insensibly led into it.
  • ----’Twas natural, said _Yorick_.
  • The original of society, continued my father, I’m satisfied is, what
  • _Politian_ tells us, _i.e._, merely conjugal; and nothing more than the
  • getting together of one man and one woman; --to which, (according to
  • _Hesiod_) the philosopher adds a servant: ----but supposing in the first
  • beginning there were no men servants born----he lays the foundation of
  • it, in a man, --a woman--and a bull. ----I believe ’tis an ox, quoth
  • _Yorick_, quoting the passage (οἶκον μὲν πρώτιστα, γυναῖκα τε, βοῦν τ’
  • ἀροτῆρα). ----A bull must have given more trouble than his head was
  • worth. ----But there is a better reason still, said my father (dipping
  • his pen into his ink); for the ox being the most patient of animals, and
  • the most useful withal in tilling the ground for their nourishment,
  • --was the properest instrument, and emblem too, for the new joined
  • couple, that the creation could have associated with them. --And there
  • is a stronger reason, added my uncle _Toby_, than them all for the ox.
  • --My father had not power to take his pen out of his ink-horn, till he
  • had heard my uncle _Toby’s_ reason. --For when the ground was tilled,
  • said my uncle _Toby_, and made worth inclosing, then they began to
  • secure it by walls and ditches, which was the origin of fortification.
  • ----True, true, dear _Toby_, cried my father, striking out the bull, and
  • putting the ox in his place.
  • My father gave _Trim_ a nod, to snuff the candle, and resumed his
  • discourse.
  • ----I enter upon this speculation, said my father carelessly, and half
  • shutting the book, as he went on, merely to shew the foundation of the
  • natural relation between a father and his child; the right and
  • jurisdiction over whom he acquires these several ways--
  • 1st, by marriage.
  • 2d, by adoption.
  • 3d, by legitimation.
  • And 4th, by procreation; all which I consider in their order.
  • I lay a slight stress upon one of them, replied _Yorick_----the act,
  • especially where it ends there, in my opinion lays as little obligation
  • upon the child, as it conveys power to the father. --You are wrong,
  • --said my father argutely, and for this plain reason * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * --I own, added my
  • father, that the offspring, upon this account, is not so under the power
  • and jurisdiction of the mother. --But the reason, replied _Yorick_,
  • equally holds good for her. ----She is under authority herself, said my
  • father: --and besides, continued my father, nodding his head, and laying
  • his finger upon the side of his nose, as he assigned his reason, --_she
  • is not the principal agent, _Yorick_._ --In what, quoth my uncle _Toby?_
  • stopping his pipe. --Though by all means, added my father (not attending
  • to my uncle _Toby_) “_The son ought to pay her respect_,” as you may
  • read, _Yorick_, at large in the first book of the Institutes of
  • _Justinian_, at the eleventh title and the tenth section, --I can read
  • it as well, replied _Yorick_, in the Catechism.
  • CHAPTER XXXII
  • Trim can repeat every word of it by heart, quoth my uncle _Toby_.
  • --Pugh! said my father, not caring to be interrupted with _Trim’s_
  • saying his Catechism. He can, upon my honour, replied my uncle _Toby_.
  • --Ask him, Mr. _Yorick_, any question you please.----
  • --The fifth Commandment, _Trim_--said _Yorick_, speaking mildly, and
  • with a gentle nod, as to a modest Catechumen. The corporal stood silent.
  • --You don’t ask him right, said my uncle _Toby_, raising his voice, and
  • giving it rapidly like the word of command: ----The fifth--------cried
  • my uncle _Toby_. --I must begin with the first, an’ please your honour,
  • said the corporal.----
  • --_Yorick_ could not forbear smiling. --Your reverence does not
  • consider, said the corporal, shouldering his stick like a musket, and
  • marching into the middle of the room, to illustrate his position, --that
  • ’tis exactly the same thing, as doing one’s exercise in the field.--
  • “_Join your right-hand to your firelock_,” cried the corporal, giving
  • the word of command, and performing the motion.--
  • “_Poise your firelock_,” cried the corporal, doing the duty still both
  • of adjutant and private man.
  • “_Rest your firelock_;” --one motion, an’ please your reverence, you see
  • leads into another. --If his honour will begin but with the _first_--
  • THE FIRST--cried my uncle _Toby_, setting his hand upon his side--
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * *
  • THE SECOND--cried my uncle _Toby_, waving his tobacco-pipe, as he would
  • have done his sword at the head of a regiment. --The corporal went
  • through his _manual_ with exactness! and having _honoured his father and
  • mother_, made a low bow, and fell back to the side of the room.
  • Everything in this world, said my father, is big with jest, --and has
  • wit in it, and instruction too, --if we can but find it out.
  • --Here is the _scaffold work_ of INSTRUCTION, its true point of folly,
  • without the BUILDING behind it.
  • --Here is the glass for pedagogues, preceptors, tutors, governors,
  • gerund-grinders, and bear-leaders, to view themselves in, in their true
  • dimensions.--
  • Oh! there is a husk and shell, _Yorick_, which grows up with learning,
  • which their unskilfulness knows not how to fling away!
  • --SCIENCES MAY BE LEARNED BY ROTE, BUT WISDOM NOT.
  • _Yorick_ thought my father inspired. --I will enter into obligations
  • this moment, said my father, to lay out all my aunt _Dinah’s_ legacy in
  • charitable uses (of which, by the bye, my father had no high opinion),
  • if the corporal has any one determinate idea annexed to any one word he
  • has repeated. --Prythee, _Trim_, quoth my father, turning round to him,
  • --What dost thou mean, by “_honouring thy father and mother?_”
  • Allowing them, an’ please your honour, three half-pence a day out of my
  • pay, when they grow old. --And didst thou do that, _Trim?_ said
  • _Yorick_. --He did indeed, replied my uncle _Toby_. --Then, _Trim_, said
  • _Yorick_, springing out of his chair, and taking the corporal by the
  • hand, thou art the best commentator upon that part of the _Decalogue_;
  • and I honour thee more for it, corporal _Trim_, than if thou hadst had a
  • hand in the _Talmud_ itself.
  • CHAPTER XXXIII
  • O blessed health! cried my father, making an exclamation, as he turned
  • over the leaves to the next chapter, thou art above all gold and
  • treasure; ’tis thou who enlargest the soul, --and openest all its powers
  • to receive instruction and to relish virtue. --He that has thee, has
  • little more to wish for; --and he that is so wretched as to want thee,
  • --wants everything with thee.
  • I have concentrated all that can be said upon this important head, said
  • my father, into a very little room, therefore we’ll read the chapter
  • quite through.
  • My father read as follows:
  • “The whole secret of health depending upon the due contention for
  • mastery betwixt the radical heat and the radical moisture” --You have
  • proved that matter of fact, I suppose, above, said _Yorick_.
  • Sufficiently, replied my father.
  • In saying this, my father shut the book, --not as if he resolved to read
  • no more of it, for he kept his forefinger in the chapter: ----nor
  • pettishly, --for he shut the book slowly; his thumb resting, when he had
  • done it, upon the upper-side of the cover, as his three fingers
  • supported the lower side of it, without the least compressive
  • violence.----
  • I have demonstrated the truth of that point, quoth my father, nodding to
  • _Yorick_, most sufficiently in the preceding chapter.
  • Now could the man in the moon be told, that a man in the earth had wrote
  • a chapter, sufficiently demonstrating, That the secret of all health
  • depended upon the due contention for mastery betwixt the _radical heat_
  • and the _radical moisture_, --and that he had managed the point so well,
  • that there was not one single word wet or dry upon radical heat or
  • radical moisture, throughout the whole chapter, --or a single syllable
  • in it, _pro_ or _con_, directly or indirectly, upon the contention
  • betwixt these two powers in any part of the animal œconomy----
  • “O thou eternal Maker of all beings!” --he would cry, striking his
  • breast with his right hand (in case he had one)-- “Thou whose power and
  • goodness can enlarge the faculties of thy creatures to this infinite
  • degree of excellence and perfection, --What have we MOONITES done?”
  • CHAPTER XXXIV
  • With two strokes, the one at _Hippocrates_, the other at Lord _Verulam_,
  • did my father achieve it.
  • The stroke at the prince of physicians, with which he began, was no more
  • than a short insult upon his sorrowful complaint of the _Ars longa_,
  • --and _Vita brevis_. ----Life short, cried my father, --and the art of
  • healing tedious! And who are we to thank for both the one and the other,
  • but the ignorance of quacks themselves, --and the stage-loads of
  • chymical nostrums, and peripatetic lumber, with which, in all ages, they
  • have first flatter’d the world, and at last deceived it?
  • ----O my lord _Verulam!_ cried my father, turning from _Hippocrates_,
  • and making his second stroke at him, as the principal of
  • nostrum-mongers, and the fittest to be made an example of to the rest,
  • ----What shall I say to thee, my great lord _Verulam?_ What shall I say
  • to thy internal spirit, --thy opium, --thy salt-petre, ----thy greasy
  • unctions, --thy daily purges, --thy nightly clysters, and succedaneums?
  • ----My father was never at a loss what to say to any man, upon any
  • subject; and had the least occasion for the exordium of any man
  • breathing: how he dealt with his lordship’s opinion, ----you shall see;
  • ----but when --I know not; ----we must first see what his lordship’s
  • opinion was.
  • CHAPTER XXXV
  • “The two great causes, which conspire with each other to shorten life,
  • says lord _Verulam_, are first----
  • “The internal spirit, which, like a gentle flame, wastes the body down
  • to death: --And secondly, the external air, that parches the body up to
  • ashes: --which two enemies attacking us on both sides of our bodies
  • together, at length destroy our organs, and render them unfit to carry
  • on the functions of life.”
  • This being the state of the case, the road to Longevity was plain;
  • nothing more being required, says his lordship, but to repair the waste
  • committed by the internal spirit, by making the substance of it more
  • thick and dense, by a regular course of opiates on one side, and by
  • refrigerating the heat of it on the other, by three grains and a half of
  • salt-petre every morning before you got up.----
  • Still this frame of ours was left exposed to the inimical assaults of
  • the air without; --but this was fenced off again by a course of greasy
  • unctions, which so fully saturated the pores of the skin, that no
  • spicula could enter; ----nor could any one get out. ----This put a stop
  • to all perspiration, sensible and insensible, which being the cause of
  • so many scurvy distempers--a course of clysters was requisite to carry
  • off redundant humours, --and render the system complete.
  • What my father had to say to my lord of _Verulam’s_ opiates, his
  • salt-petre, and greasy unctions and clysters, you shall read, --but not
  • to-day--or to-morrow: time presses upon me, --my reader is impatient --I
  • must get forwards. ----You shall read the chapter at your leisure
  • (if you chuse it), as soon as ever the _Tristra-pædia_ is
  • published.----
  • Sufficeth it at present, to say, my father levelled the hypothesis with
  • the ground, and in doing that, the learned know, he built up and
  • established his own.----
  • CHAPTER XXXVI
  • The whole secret of health, said my father, beginning the sentence
  • again, depending evidently upon the due contention betwixt the radical
  • heat and radical moisture within us; --the least imaginable skill had
  • been sufficient to have maintained it, had not the schoolmen confounded
  • the talk, merely (as _Van Helmont_, the famous chymist, has proved) by
  • all along mistaking the radical moisture for the tallow and fat of
  • animal bodies.
  • Now the radical moisture is not the tallow or fat of animals, but an
  • oily and balsamous substance; for the fat and tallow, as also the phlegm
  • or watery parts, are cold; whereas the oily and balsamous parts are of a
  • lively heat and spirit, which accounts for the observation of
  • _Aristotle_, “_Quod omne animal post coitum est _triste_._”
  • Now it is certain, that the radical heat lives in the radical moisture,
  • but whether _vice versâ_, is a doubt: however, when the one decays, the
  • other decays also; and then is produced, either an unnatural heat, which
  • causes an unnatural dryness----or an unnatural moisture, which causes
  • dropsies. ----So that if a child, as he grows up, can but be taught to
  • avoid running into fire or water, as either of ’em threaten his
  • destruction, ----’twill be all that is needful to be done upon that
  • head.----
  • CHAPTER XXXVII
  • The description of the siege of _Jericho_ itself, could not have engaged
  • the attention of my uncle _Toby_ more powerfully than the last chapter;
  • --his eyes were fixed upon my father throughout it; --he never mentioned
  • radical heat and radical moisture, but my uncle _Toby_ took his pipe out
  • of his mouth, and shook his head; and as soon as the chapter was
  • finished, he beckoned to the corporal to come close to his chair,
  • to ask him the following question, --_aside_. ---- * *
  • * * * * * * * It was at
  • the siege of _Limerick_, an’ please your honour, replied the corporal,
  • making a bow.
  • The poor fellow and I, quoth my uncle _Toby_, addressing himself to my
  • father, were scarce able to crawl out of our tents, at the time the
  • siege of _Limerick_ was raised, upon the very account you mention.
  • ----Now what can have got into that precious noddle of thine, my dear
  • brother _Toby?_ cried my father, mentally. ----By Heaven! continued he,
  • communing still with himself, it would puzzle an _Œdipus_ to bring it in
  • point.----
  • I believe, an’ please your honour, quoth the corporal, that if it had
  • not been for the quantity of brandy we set fire to every night, and the
  • claret and cinnamon with which I plyed your honour off; --And the
  • geneva, _Trim_, added my uncle _Toby_, which did us more good than
  • all ----I verily believe, continued the corporal, we had both, an’ please
  • your honour, left our lives in the trenches, and been buried in them
  • too. ----The noblest grave, corporal! cried my uncle _Toby_, his eyes
  • sparkling as he spoke, that a soldier could wish to lie down in. ----But
  • a pitiful death for him! an’ please your honour, replied the corporal.
  • All this was as much _Arabick_ to my father, as the rites of the
  • _Colchi_ and _Troglodites_ had been before to my uncle _Toby_; my father
  • could not determine whether he was to frown or to smile.----
  • My uncle _Toby_, turning to _Yorick_, resumed the case at _Limerick_,
  • more intelligibly than he had begun it, --and so settled the point for
  • my father at once.
  • CHAPTER XXXVIII
  • It was undoubtedly, said my uncle _Toby_, a great happiness for myself
  • and the corporal, that we had all along a burning fever, attended with a
  • most raging thirst, during the whole five-and-twenty days the flux was
  • upon us in the camp; otherwise what my brother calls the radical
  • moisture, must, as I conceive it, inevitably have got the better. ----My
  • father drew in his lungs top-full of air, and looking up, blew it forth
  • again, as slowly as he possibly could.----
  • ------It was Heaven’s mercy to us, continued my uncle _Toby_, which put
  • it into the corporal’s head to maintain that due contention betwixt the
  • radical heat and the radical moisture, by reinforcing the fever, as he
  • did all along, with hot wine and spices; whereby the corporal kept up
  • (as it were) a continual firing, so that the radical heat stood its
  • ground from the beginning to the end, and was a fair match for the
  • moisture, terrible as it was. ----Upon my honour, added my uncle _Toby_,
  • you might have heard the contention within our bodies, brother _Shandy_,
  • twenty toises. --If there was no firing, said _Yorick_.
  • Well--said my father, with a full aspiration, and pausing a while after
  • the word --Was I a judge, and the laws of the country which made me one
  • permitted it, I would condemn some of the worst malefactors, provided
  • they had had their clergy-------- ----_Yorick_, foreseeing the sentence
  • was likely to end with no sort of mercy, laid his hand upon my father’s
  • breast, and begged he would respite it for a few minutes, till he asked
  • the corporal a question. ----Prithee, _Trim_, said _Yorick_, without
  • staying for my father’s leave, --tell us honestly--what is thy opinion
  • concerning this self-same radical heat and radical moisture?
  • With humble submission to his honour’s better judgment, quoth the
  • corporal, making a bow to my uncle _Toby_ --Speak thy opinion freely,
  • corporal, said my uncle _Toby_. --The poor fellow is my servant, --not
  • my slave, --added my uncle _Toby_, turning to my father.----
  • The corporal put his hat under his left arm, and with his stick hanging
  • upon the wrist of it, by a black thong split into a tassel about the
  • knot, he marched up to the ground where he had performed his catechism;
  • then touching his under-jaw with the thumb and fingers of his right-hand
  • before he opened his mouth, ----he delivered his notion thus.
  • CHAPTER XXXIX
  • Just as the corporal was humming, to begin--in waddled Dr. _Slop_.
  • --’Tis not two-pence matter--the corporal shall go on in the next
  • chapter, let who will come in.----
  • Well, my good doctor, cried my father sportively, for the transitions of
  • his passions were unaccountably sudden, --and what has this whelp of
  • mine to say to the matter?
  • Had my father been asking after the amputation of the tail of a
  • puppy-dog--he could not have done it in a more careless air: the system
  • which Dr. _Slop_ had laid down, to treat the accident by, no way allowed
  • of such a mode of enquiry. --He sat down.
  • Pray, Sir, quoth my uncle _Toby_, in a manner which could not go
  • unanswered, --in what condition is the boy? --’Twill end in a
  • _phimosis_, replied Dr. _Slop_.
  • I am no wiser than I was, quoth my uncle _Toby_--returning his pipe into
  • his mouth. ----Then let the corporal go on, said my father, with his
  • medical lecture. --The corporal made a bow to his old friend, Dr.
  • _Slop_, and then delivered his opinion concerning radical heat and
  • radical moisture, in the following words.
  • CHAPTER XL
  • The city of _Limerick_, the siege of which was begun under his majesty
  • king _William_ himself, the year after I went into the army--lies, an’
  • please your honours, in the middle of a devilish wet, swampy country.
  • --’Tis quite surrounded, said my uncle _Toby_, with the _Shannon_, and
  • is, by its situation, one of the strongest fortified places in
  • _Ireland_.----
  • I think this is a new fashion, quoth Dr. _Slop_, of beginning a medical
  • lecture. --’Tis all true, answered _Trim_. --Then I wish the faculty
  • would follow the cut of it, said _Yorick_. --’Tis all cut through, an’
  • please your reverence, said the corporal, with drains and bogs; and
  • besides, there was such a quantity of rain fell during the siege, the
  • whole country was like a puddle, --’twas that, and nothing else, which
  • brought on the flux, and which had like to have killed both his honour
  • and myself; now there was no such thing, after the first ten days,
  • continued the corporal, for a soldier to lie dry in his tent, without
  • cutting a ditch round it, to draw off the water; --nor was that enough,
  • for those who could afford it, as his honour could, without setting fire
  • every night to a pewter dish full of brandy, which took off the damp of
  • the air, and made the inside of the tent as warm as a stove.------
  • And what conclusion dost thou draw, corporal _Trim_, cried my father,
  • from all these premises?
  • I infer, an’ please your worship, replied _Trim_, that the radical
  • moisture is nothing in the world but ditch-water--and that the radical
  • heat, of those who can go to the expence of it, is burnt brandy, --the
  • radical heat and moisture of a private man, an’ please your honour, is
  • nothing but ditch-water--and a dram of geneva----and give us but enough
  • of it, with a pipe of tobacco, to give us spirits, and drive away the
  • vapours--we know not what it is to fear death.
  • I am at a loss, Captain _Shandy_, quoth Dr. _Slop_, to determine in
  • which branch of learning your servant shines most, whether in physiology
  • or divinity. --_Slop_ had not forgot _Trim’s_ comment upon the
  • sermon.--
  • It is but an hour ago, replied _Yorick_, since the corporal was examined
  • in the latter, and pass’d muster with great honour.----
  • The radical heat and moisture, quoth Dr. _Slop_, turning to my father,
  • you must know, is the basis and foundation of our being--as the root of
  • a tree is the source and principle of its vegetation. --It is inherent
  • in the seeds of all animals, and may be preserved sundry ways, but
  • principally in my opinion by _consubstantials_, _impriments_, and
  • _occludents_. ----Now this poor fellow, continued Dr. _Slop_, pointing
  • to the corporal, has had the misfortune to have heard some superficial
  • empiric discourse upon this nice point. ----That he has, --said my
  • father. ----Very likely, said my uncle. --I’m sure of it--quoth
  • _Yorick_.----
  • CHAPTER XLI
  • Doctor _Slop_ being called out to look at a cataplasm he had ordered, it
  • gave my father an opportunity of going on with another chapter in the
  • _Tristra-pædia_. ----Come! cheer up, my lads; I’ll shew you
  • land------for when we have tugged through that chapter, the book shall
  • not be opened again this twelve-month. --Huzza!--
  • CHAPTER XLII
  • ----Five years with a bib under his chin;
  • Four years in travelling from Christ-cross-row to _Malachi_;
  • A year and a half in learning to write his own name;
  • Seven long years and more τυπτω-ing it, at Greek and Latin;
  • Four years at his _probations_ and his _negations_--the fine statue
  • still lying in the middle of the marble block, --and nothing done, but
  • his tools sharpened to hew it out! --’Tis a piteous delay! --Was not the
  • great _Julius Scaliger_ within an ace of never getting his tools
  • sharpened at all? ------Forty-four years old was he before he could
  • manage his Greek; --and _Peter Damianus_, lord bishop of _Ostia_, as all
  • the world knows, could not so much as read, when he was of man’s estate.
  • --And _Baldus_ himself, as eminent as he turned out after, entered upon
  • the law so late in life, that everybody imagined he intended to be an
  • advocate in the other world: no wonder, when _Eudamidas_, the son of
  • _Archidamas_, heard _Xenocrates_ at seventy-five disputing about
  • _wisdom_, that he asked gravely, --_If the old man be yet disputing and
  • enquiring concerning wisdom, --what time will he have to make use of
  • it?_
  • _Yorick_ listened to my father with great attention; there was a
  • seasoning of wisdom unaccountably mixed up with his strangest whims, and
  • he had sometimes such illuminations in the darkest of his eclipses, as
  • almost atoned for them: --be wary, Sir, when you imitate him.
  • I am convinced, _Yorick_, continued my father, half reading and half
  • discoursing, that there is a North-west passage to the intellectual
  • world; and that the soul of man has shorter ways of going to work, in
  • furnishing itself with knowledge and instruction, than we generally take
  • with it. ----But, alack! all fields have not a river or a spring running
  • besides them; --every child, _Yorick_, has not a parent to point it out.
  • ----The whole entirely depends, added my father, in a low voice, upon
  • the _auxiliary verbs_, Mr. _Yorick_.
  • Had _Yorick_ trod upon _Virgil’s_ snake, he could not have looked more
  • surprised. --I am surprised too, cried my father, observing it, --and I
  • reckon it as one of the greatest calamities which ever befel the
  • republic of letters, That those who have been entrusted with the
  • education of our children, and whose business it was to open their
  • minds, and stock them early with ideas, in order to set the imagination
  • loose upon them, have made so little use of the auxiliary verbs in doing
  • it, as they have done ----So that, except _Raymond Lullius_, and the
  • elder _Pelegrini_, the last of which arrived to such perfection in the
  • use of ’em, with his topics, that, in a few lessons, he could teach a
  • young gentleman to discourse with plausibility upon any subject, _pro_
  • and _con_, and to say and write all that could be spoken or written
  • concerning it, without blotting a word, to the admiration of all who
  • beheld him. --I should be glad, said _Yorick_, interrupting my father,
  • to be made to comprehend this matter. You shall, said my father.
  • The highest stretch of improvement a single word is capable of, is a
  • high metaphor, ----for which, in my opinion, the idea is generally the
  • worse, and not the better; ----but be that as it may, --when the mind
  • has done that with it--there is an end, --the mind and the idea are at
  • rest, --until a second idea enters; ----and so on.
  • Now the use of the _Auxiliaries_ is, at once to set the soul a-going by
  • herself upon the materials as they are brought her; and by the
  • versability of this great engine, round which they are twisted, to open
  • new tracts of enquiry, and make every idea engender millions.
  • You excite my curiosity greatly, said _Yorick_.
  • For my own part, quoth my uncle _Toby_, I have given it up. ----The
  • _Danes_, an’ please your honour, quoth the corporal, who were on the
  • left at the siege of _Limerick_, were all auxiliaries. ----And very good
  • ones, said my uncle _Toby_. --But the auxiliaries, _Trim_, my brother is
  • talking about, --I conceive to be different things.----
  • ----You do? said my father, rising up.
  • CHAPTER XLIII
  • My father took a single turn across the room, then sat down, and
  • finished the chapter.
  • The verbs auxiliary we are concerned in here, continued my father, are,
  • _am_; _was_; _have_; _had_; _do_; _did_; _make_; _made_; _suffer_;
  • _shall_; _should_; _will_; _would_; _can_; _could_; _owe_; _ought_;
  • _used_; or _is wont_. --And these varied with tenses, _present_, _past_,
  • _future_, and conjugated with the verb _see_, --or with these questions
  • added to them; --_Is it?_ _Was it?_ _Will it be?_ _Would it be?_ _May it
  • be?_ _Might it be?_ And these again put negatively, _Is it not?_ _Was it
  • not?_ _Ought it not?_ --Or affirmatively, --_It is_; _It was_; _It ought
  • to be_. Or chronologically, --_Has it been always?_ _Lately?_ _How long
  • ago?_ --Or hypothetically, --_If it was?_ _If it was not?_ What would
  • follow? ----If the _French_ should beat the _English?_ If the _Sun_ go
  • out of the _Zodiac?_
  • Now, by the right use and application of these, continued my father, in
  • which a child’s memory should be exercised, there is no one idea can
  • enter his brain, how barren soever, but a magazine of conceptions and
  • conclusions may be drawn forth from it. ----Didst thou ever see a white
  • bear? cried my father, turning his head round to _Trim_, who stood at
  • the back of his chair: --No, an’ please your honour, replied the
  • corporal. ----But thou couldst discourse about one, _Trim_, said my
  • father, in case of need? --How is it possible, brother, quoth my uncle
  • _Toby_, if the corporal never saw one? ----’Tis the fact I want, replied
  • my father, --and the possibility of it is as follows.
  • A WHITE BEAR! Very well. Have I ever seen one? Might I ever have seen
  • one? Am I ever to see one? Ought I ever to have seen one? Or can I ever
  • see one?
  • Would I had seen a white bear! (for how can I imagine it?)
  • If I should see a white bear, what would I say? If I should never see a
  • white bear, what then?
  • If I never have, can, must, or shall see a white bear alive; have I ever
  • seen the skin of one? Did I ever see one painted? --described? Have I
  • never dreamed of one?
  • Did my father, mother, uncle, aunt, brothers or sisters, ever see a
  • white bear? What would they give? How would they behave? How would the
  • white bear have behaved? Is he wild? Tame? Terrible? Rough? Smooth?
  • --Is the white bear worth seeing?--
  • --Is there no sin in it?--
  • Is it better than a BLACK ONE?
  • BOOK VI
  • CHAPTER I
  • ----We’ll not stop two moments, my dear Sir, --only, as we have got
  • through these five volumes,[6.1] (do, Sir, sit down upon a set----they
  • are better than nothing) let us just look back upon the country we have
  • pass’d through.----
  • ----What a wilderness has it been! and what a mercy that we have not
  • both of us been lost, or devoured by wild beasts in it!
  • Did you think the world itself, Sir, had contained such a number of Jack
  • Asses? ----How they view’d and review’d us as we passed over the rivulet
  • at the bottom of that little valley! ----and when we climbed over that
  • hill, and were just getting out of sight--good God! what a braying did
  • they all set up together!
  • ----Prithee, shepherd! who keeps all those Jack Asses? * * *
  • ----Heaven be their comforter ----What! are they never curried? ----Are
  • they never taken in in winter? ----Bray bray--bray. Bray on, --the world
  • is deeply your debtor; ----louder still--that’s nothing: --in good
  • sooth, you are ill-used: ----Was I a Jack Asse, I solemnly declare,
  • I would bray in G-fol-re-ut from morning, even unto night.
  • [Footnote 6.1: In the first edition, the sixth volume began with
  • this chapter.]
  • CHAPTER II
  • When my father had danced his white bear backwards and forwards through
  • half a dozen pages, he closed the book for good an’ all, --and in a kind
  • of triumph redelivered it into _Trim’s_ hand, with a nod to lay it upon
  • the ’scrutoire, where he found it. ----_Tristram_, said he, shall be
  • made to conjugate every word in the dictionary, backwards and forwards
  • the same way; ----every word, _Yorick_, by this means, you see, is
  • converted into a thesis or an hypothesis; --every thesis and hypothesis
  • have an offspring of propositions; --and each proposition has its own
  • consequences and conclusions; every one of which leads the mind on
  • again, into fresh tracks of enquiries and doubtings. ----The force of
  • this engine, added my father, is incredible in opening a child’s head.
  • ----’Tis enough, brother _Shandy_, cried my uncle _Toby_, to burst it
  • into a thousand splinters.----
  • I presume, said _Yorick_, smiling, --it must be owing to this, ----(for
  • let logicians say what they will, it is not to be accounted for
  • sufficiently from the bare use of the ten predicaments) ----That the
  • famous _Vincent Quirino_, amongst the many other astonishing feats of
  • his childhood, of which the Cardinal _Bembo_ has given the world so
  • exact a story, --should be able to paste up in the public schools at
  • _Rome_, so early as in the eighth year of his age, no less than four
  • thousand five hundred and fifty different theses, upon the most abstruse
  • points of the most abstruse theology; --and to defend and maintain them
  • in such sort, as to cramp and dumbfound his opponents. ----What is that,
  • cried my father, to what is told us of _Alphonsus Tostatus_, who, almost
  • in his nurse’s arms, learned all the sciences and liberal arts without
  • being taught any one of them? ----What shall we say of the great
  • _Piereskius?_ --That’s the very man, cried my uncle _Toby_, I once told
  • you of, brother _Shandy_, who walked a matter of five hundred miles,
  • reckoning from _Paris_ to _Shevling_, and from _Shevling_ back again,
  • merely to see _Stevinus’s_ flying chariot. ----He was a very great man!
  • added my uncle _Toby_ (meaning _Stevinus_) --He was so, brother _Toby_,
  • said my father (meaning _Piereskius_)----and had multiplied his ideas so
  • fast, and increased his knowledge to such a prodigious stock, that, if
  • we may give credit to an anecdote concerning him, which we cannot
  • withhold here, without shaking the authority of all anecdotes
  • whatever--at seven years of age, his father committed entirely to his
  • care the education of his younger brother, a boy of five years old,
  • --with the sole management of all his concerns. --Was the father as wise
  • as the son? quoth my uncle _Toby_: --I should think not, said _Yorick_:
  • --But what are these, continued my father--(breaking out in a kind of
  • enthusiasm)--what are these, to those prodigies of childhood in
  • _Grotius_, _Scioppius_, _Heinsius_, _Politian_, _Pascal_, _Joseph
  • Scaliger_, _Ferdinand de Cordouè_, and others--some of which left off
  • their _substantial forms_ at nine years old, or sooner, and went on
  • reasoning without them; --others went through their classics at seven;
  • --wrote tragedies at eight; --_Ferdinand de Cordouè_ was so wise at
  • nine, --’twas thought the Devil was in him; --and at _Venice_ gave such
  • proofs of his knowledge and goodness, that the monks imagined he was
  • _Antichrist_, or nothing. ----Others were masters of fourteen languages
  • at ten, --finished the course of their rhetoric, poetry, logic, and
  • ethics, at eleven, --put forth their commentaries upon _Servius_ and
  • _Martianus Capella_ at twelve, --and at thirteen received their degrees
  • in philosophy, laws, and divinity: ----But you forget the great
  • _Lipsius_, quoth _Yorick_, who composed a work[6.2] the day he was born:
  • ----They should have wiped it up, said my uncle _Toby_, and said no more
  • about it.
  • [Footnote 6.2: Nous aurions quelque interêt, says _Baillet_, de
  • montrer qu’il n’a rien de ridicule s’il étoit veritable, au
  • moins dans le sens énigmatique que _Nicius Erythræus_ a tâché de
  • lui donner. Cet auteur dit que pour comprendre comme _Lipse_, il
  • a pû composer un ouvrage le premier jour de sa vie, il faut
  • s’imaginer, que ce premier jour n’est pas celui de sa naissance
  • charnelle, mais celui au quel il a commencé d’user de la raison;
  • il veut que ç’ait été à l’âge de _neuf_ ans; et il nous veut
  • persuader que ce fut en cet âge, que _Lipse_ fit un poëme. ----Le
  • tour est ingénieux, &c. &c.]
  • CHAPTER III
  • When the cataplasm was ready, a scruple of _decorum_ had unseasonably
  • rose up in _Susannah’s_ conscience about holding the candle, whilst
  • _Slop_ tied it on; _Slop_ had not treated _Susannah’s_ distemper with
  • anodynes, --and so a quarrel had ensued betwixt them.
  • ----Oh! oh! ----said _Slop_, casting a glance of undue freedom in
  • _Susannah’s_ face, as she declined the office; ----then, I think I know
  • you, madam ----You know me, Sir! cried _Susannah_ fastidiously, and with
  • a toss of her head, levelled evidently, not at his profession, but at
  • the doctor himself, ----you know me! cried _Susannah_ again. ----Doctor
  • _Slop_ clapped his finger and his thumb instantly upon his nostrils;
  • ----_Susannah’s_ spleen was ready to burst at it; ----’Tis false, said
  • _Susannah_. --Come, come, Mrs. Modesty, said _Slop_, not a little elated
  • with the success of his last thrust, ----If you won’t hold the candle,
  • and look--you may hold it and shut your eyes: --That’s one of your
  • popish shifts, cried _Susannah_: --’Tis better, said _Slop_, with a nod,
  • than no shift at all, young woman; ----I defy you, Sir, cried
  • _Susannah_, pulling her shift sleeve below her elbow.
  • It was almost impossible for two persons to assist each other in a
  • surgical case with a more splenetic cordiality.
  • _Slop_ snatched up the cataplasm, ----_Susannah_ snatched up the candle;
  • ----a little this way, said _Slop_; _Susannah_ looking one way, and
  • rowing another, instantly set fire to _Slop’s_ wig, which being somewhat
  • bushy and unctuous withal, was burnt out before it was well kindled.
  • ------You impudent whore! cried _Slop_, --(for what is passion, but a
  • wild beast?)--you impudent whore, cried _Slop_, getting upright, with
  • the cataplasm in his hand; ----I never was the destruction of anybody’s
  • nose, said _Susannah_, --which is more than you can say: ----Is it?
  • cried _Slop_, throwing the cataplasm in her face; ----Yes, it is, cried
  • _Susannah_, returning the compliment with what was left in the pan.
  • CHAPTER IV
  • Doctor _Slop_ and _Susannah_ filed cross-bills against each other in the
  • parlour; which done, as the cataplasm had failed, they retired into the
  • kitchen to prepare a fomentation for me; --and whilst that was doing, my
  • father determined the point as you will read.
  • CHAPTER V
  • You see ’tis high time, said my father, addressing himself equally to my
  • uncle _Toby_ and _Yorick_, to take this young creature out of these
  • women’s hands, and put him into those of a private governor. _Marcus
  • Antoninus_ provided fourteen governors all at once to superintend his
  • son _Commodus’s_ education, --and in six weeks he cashiered five of
  • them; --I know very well, continued my father, that _Commodus’s_ mother
  • was in love with a gladiator at the time of her conception, which
  • accounts for a great many of _Commodus’s_ cruelties when he became
  • emperor; --but still I am of opinion, that those five whom _Antoninus_
  • dismissed, did _Commodus’s_ temper, in that short time, more hurt than
  • the other nine were able to rectify all their lives long.
  • Now as I consider the person who is to be about my son, as the mirror in
  • which he is to view himself from morning to night, and by which he is to
  • adjust his looks, his carriage, and perhaps the inmost sentiments of his
  • heart; --I would have one, _Yorick_, if possible, polished at all
  • points, fit for my child to look into. ----This is very good sense,
  • quoth my uncle _Toby_ to himself.
  • ----There is, continued my father, a certain mien and motion of the body
  • and all its parts, both in acting and speaking, which argues a man _well
  • within_; and I am not at all surprised that _Gregory_ of _Nazianzum_,
  • upon observing the hasty and untoward gestures of _Julian_, should
  • foretel he would one day become an apostate; ----or that St. _Ambrose_
  • should turn his _Amanuensis_ out of doors, because of an indecent motion
  • of his head, which went backwards and forwards like a flail; ----or that
  • _Democritus_ should conceive _Protagoras_ to be a scholar, from seeing
  • him bind up a faggot, and thrusting, as he did it, the small twigs
  • inwards. ----There are a thousand unnoticed openings, continued my
  • father, which let a penetrating eye at once into a man’s soul; and I
  • maintain it, added he, that a man of sense does not lay down his hat in
  • coming into a room, --or take it up in going out of it, but something
  • escapes, which discovers him.
  • It is for these reasons, continued my father, that the governor I make
  • choice of shall neither[6.3] lisp, or squint, or wink, or talk loud, or
  • look fierce, or foolish; ----or bite his lips, or grind his teeth, or
  • speak through his nose, or pick it, or blow it with his fingers.----
  • He shall neither walk fast, --or slow, or fold his arms, --for that is
  • laziness; --or hang them down, --for that is folly; or hide them in his
  • pocket, for that is nonsense.----
  • He shall neither strike, or pinch, or tickle, --or bite, or cut his
  • nails, or hawk, or spit, or snift, or drum with his feet or fingers in
  • company; ----nor (according to _Erasmus_) shall he speak to any one in
  • making water, --nor shall he point to carrion or excrement. ----Now this
  • is all nonsense again, quoth my uncle _Toby_ to himself.----
  • I will have him, continued my father, chearful, faceté, jovial; at the
  • same time, prudent, attentive to business, vigilant, acute, argute,
  • inventive, quick in resolving doubts and speculative questions; ----he
  • shall be wise, and judicious, and learned: ----And why not humble, and
  • moderate, and gentle-tempered, and good? said _Yorick_: ----And why not,
  • cried my uncle _Toby_, free, and generous, and bountiful, and brave?
  • ----He shall, my dear _Toby_, replied my father, getting up and shaking
  • him by the hand. --Then, brother _Shandy_, answered my uncle _Toby_,
  • raising himself off the chair, and laying down his pipe to take hold of
  • my father’s other hand, --I humbly beg I may recommend poor _Le Fever’s_
  • son to you; ----a tear of joy of the first water sparkled in my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ eye, and another, the fellow to it, in the corporal’s, as the
  • proposition was made; ----you will see why when you read _Le Fever’s_
  • story: ----fool that I was! nor can I recollect (nor perhaps you)
  • without turning back to the place, what it was that hindered me from
  • letting the corporal tell it in his own words; --but the occasion is
  • lost, --I must tell it now in my own.
  • [Footnote 6.3: Vid. _Pellegrina_.]
  • CHAPTER VI
  • THE STORY OF LE FEVER
  • It was some time in the summer of that year in which _Dendermond_ was
  • taken by the allies, --which was about seven years before my father came
  • into the country, --and about as many, after the time, that my uncle
  • _Toby_ and _Trim_ had privately decamped from my father’s house in town,
  • in order to lay some of the finest sieges to some of the finest
  • fortified cities in _Europe_----when my uncle _Toby_ was one evening
  • getting his supper, with _Trim_ sitting behind him at a small sideboard,
  • --I say, sitting--for in consideration of the corporal’s lame knee
  • (which sometimes gave him exquisite pain)--when my uncle _Toby_ dined or
  • supped alone, he would never suffer the corporal to stand; and the poor
  • fellow’s veneration for his master was such, that, with a proper
  • artillery, my uncle _Toby_ could have taken _Dendermond_ itself, with
  • less trouble than he was able to gain this point over him; for many a
  • time when my uncle _Toby_ supposed the corporal’s leg was at rest, he
  • would look back, and detect him standing behind him with the most
  • dutiful respect: this bred more little squabbles betwixt them, than all
  • other causes for five-and-twenty years together --But this is neither
  • here nor there--why do I mention it? ----Ask my pen, --it governs me,
  • --I govern not it.
  • He was one evening sitting thus at his supper, when the landlord of a
  • little inn in the village came into the parlour, with an empty phial in
  • his hand, to beg a glass or two of sack; ’Tis for a poor gentleman, --I
  • think, of the army, said the landlord, who has been taken ill at my
  • house four days ago, and has never held up his head since, or had a
  • desire to taste anything, till just now, that he has a fancy for a glass
  • of sack and a thin toast, ----_I think_, says he, taking his hand from
  • his forehead, _it would comfort me_.
  • ----If I could neither beg, borrow, or buy such a thing--added the
  • landlord, --I would almost steal it for the poor gentleman, he is so
  • ill. ----I hope in God he will still mend, continued he, --we are all of
  • us concerned for him.
  • Thou art a good-natured soul, I will answer for thee, cried my uncle
  • _Toby_; and thou shalt drink the poor gentleman’s health in a glass of
  • sack thyself, --and take a couple of bottles with my service, and tell
  • him he is heartily welcome to them, and to a dozen more if they will do
  • him good.
  • Though I am persuaded, said my uncle _Toby_, as the landlord shut the
  • door, he is a very compassionate fellow--_Trim_, --yet I cannot help
  • entertaining a high opinion of his guest too; there must be something
  • more than common in him, that in so short a time should win so much upon
  • the affections of his host; ----And of his whole family, added the
  • corporal, for they are all concerned for him. ----Step after him, said
  • my uncle _Toby_, --do, _Trim_, --and ask if he knows his name.
  • ----I have quite forgot it truly, said the landlord, coming back into
  • the parlour with the corporal, --but I can ask his son again: ----Has he
  • a son with him then? said my uncle _Toby_. --A boy, replied the
  • landlord, of about eleven or twelve years of age; --but the poor
  • creature has tasted almost as little as his father; he does nothing but
  • mourn and lament for him night and day: ----He has not stirred from the
  • bed-side these two days.
  • My uncle _Toby_ laid down his knife and fork, and thrust his plate from
  • before him, as the landlord gave him the account; and _Trim_, without
  • being ordered, took away, without saying one word, and in a few minutes
  • after brought him his pipe and tobacco.
  • ----Stay in the room a little, said my uncle _Toby_.
  • _Trim!_----said my uncle _Toby_, after he lighted his pipe, and smoak’d
  • about a dozen whiffs. ----_Trim_ came in front of his master, and made
  • his bow; --my uncle _Toby_ smoak’d on, and said no more. ----Corporal!
  • said my uncle _Toby_----the corporal made his bow. ----My uncle _Toby_
  • proceeded no farther, but finished his pipe.
  • _Trim!_ said my uncle _Toby_, I have a project in my head, as it is a
  • bad night, of wrapping myself up warm in my roquelaure, and paying a
  • visit to this poor gentleman. ----Your honour’s roquelaure, replied the
  • corporal, has not once been had on, since the night before your honour
  • received your wound, when we mounted guard in the trenches before the
  • gate of St. _Nicolas_; ----and besides, it is so cold and rainy a night,
  • that what with the roquelaure, and what with the weather, ’twill be
  • enough to give your honour your death, and bring on your honour’s
  • torment in your groin. I fear so, replied my uncle _Toby_; but I am not
  • at rest in my mind, _Trim_, since the account the landlord has given me.
  • ----I wish I had not known so much of this affair, --added my uncle
  • _Toby_, --or that I had known more of it: ----How shall we manage it?
  • Leave it, an’t please your honour, to me, quoth the corporal; ----I’ll
  • take my hat and stick and go to the house and reconnoitre, and act
  • accordingly; and I will bring your honour a full account in an hour.
  • ----Thou shalt go, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_, and here’s a shilling
  • for thee to drink with his servant. ----I shall get it all out of him,
  • said the corporal, shutting the door.
  • My uncle _Toby_ filled his second pipe; and had it not been, that he now
  • and then wandered from the point, with considering whether it was not
  • full as well to have the curtain of the tenaille a straight line, as a
  • crooked one, --he might be said to have thought of nothing else but poor
  • _Le Fever_ and his boy the whole time he smoaked it.
  • CHAPTER VII
  • THE STORY OF LE FEVER CONTINUED
  • It was not till my uncle _Toby_ had knocked the ashes out of his third
  • pipe, that corporal _Trim_ returned from the inn, and gave him the
  • following account.
  • I despaired, at first, said the corporal, of being able to bring back
  • your honour any kind of intelligence concerning the poor sick
  • lieutenant --Is he in the army, then? said my uncle _Toby_ ----He is,
  • said the corporal ----And in what regiment? said my uncle _Toby_
  • ----I’ll tell your honour, replied the corporal, everything straight
  • forwards, as I learnt it. --Then, _Trim_, I’ll fill another pipe, said
  • my uncle _Toby_, and not interrupt thee till thou hast done; so sit down
  • at thy ease, _Trim_, in the window-seat, and begin thy story again. The
  • corporal made his old bow, which generally spoke as plain as a bow could
  • speak it--_Your honour is good_: ----And having done that, he sat down,
  • as he was ordered, --and began the story to my uncle _Toby_ over again
  • in pretty near the same words.
  • I despaired at first, said the corporal, of being able to bring back any
  • intelligence to your honour, about the lieutenant and his son; for when
  • I asked where his servant was, from whom I made myself sure of knowing
  • everything which was proper to be asked, --That’s a right distinction,
  • _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_ --I was answered, an’ please your honour,
  • that he had no servant with him; ----that he had come to the inn with
  • hired horses, which, upon finding himself unable to proceed (to join,
  • I suppose, the regiment), he had dismissed the morning after he came.
  • --If I get better, my dear, said he, as he gave his purse to his son to
  • pay the man, --we can hire horses from hence. ----But alas! the poor
  • gentleman will never get from hence, said the landlady to me, --for I
  • heard the death-watch all night long; ----and when he dies, the youth,
  • his son, will certainly die with him, for he is broken-hearted already.
  • I was hearing this account, continued the corporal, when the youth came
  • into the kitchen, to order the thin toast the landlord spoke of; ----but
  • I will do it for my father myself, said the youth. ----Pray let me save
  • you the trouble, young gentleman, said I, taking up a fork for the
  • purpose, and offering him my chair to sit down upon by the fire, whilst
  • I did it. ----I believe, Sir, said he, very modestly, I can please him
  • best myself. ----I am sure, said I, his honour will not like the toast
  • the worse for being toasted by an old soldier. ----The youth took hold
  • of my hand, and instantly burst into tears. ----Poor youth! said my
  • uncle _Toby_, --he has been bred up from an infant in the army, and the
  • name of a soldier, _Trim_, sounded in his ears like the name of a
  • friend; --I wish I had him here.
  • ----I never, in the longest march, said the corporal, had so great a
  • mind to my dinner, as I had to cry with him for company: --What could be
  • the matter with me, an’ please your honour? Nothing in the world,
  • _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_, blowing his nose, --but that thou art a
  • good-natured fellow.
  • When I gave him the toast, continued the corporal, I thought it was
  • proper to tell him I was captain _Shandy’s_ servant, and that your
  • honour (though a stranger) was extremely concerned for his father; --and
  • that if there was any thing in your house or cellar----(And thou
  • might’st have added my purse too, said my uncle _Toby_)----he was
  • heartily welcome to it: ----He made a very low bow (which was meant to
  • your honour), but no answer--for his heart was full--so he went up
  • stairs with the toast; --I warrant you, my dear, said I, as I opened the
  • kitchen-door, your father will be well again. ----Mr. _Yorick’s_ curate
  • was smoaking a pipe by the kitchen fire, --but said not a word good or
  • bad to comfort the youth. ----I thought it wrong; added the
  • corporal ----I think so too, said my uncle _Toby_.
  • When the lieutenant had taken his glass of sack and toast, he felt
  • himself a little revived, and sent down into the kitchen, to let me
  • know, that in about ten minutes he should be glad if I would step up
  • stairs. ----I believe, said the landlord, he is going to say his
  • prayers, ----for there was a book laid upon the chair by his bed-side,
  • and as I shut the door, I saw his son take up a cushion.----
  • I thought, said the curate, that you gentlemen of the army, Mr. _Trim_,
  • never said your prayers at all. ----I heard the poor gentleman say his
  • prayers last night, said the landlady, very devoutly, and with my own
  • ears, or I could not have believed it. ----Are you sure of it? replied
  • the curate. ----A soldier, an’ please your reverence, said I, prays as
  • often (of his own accord) as a parson; ----and when he is fighting for
  • his king, and for his own life, and for his honour too, he has the most
  • reason to pray to God of any one in the whole world----’Twas well said
  • of thee, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_. ----But when a soldier, said I,
  • an’ please your reverence, has been standing for twelve hours together
  • in the trenches, up to his knees in cold water, --or engaged, said I,
  • for months together in long and dangerous marches; --harassed, perhaps,
  • in his rear to-day; --harassing others to-morrow; --detached here;
  • --countermanded there; --resting this night out upon his arms; --beat up
  • in his shirt the next; --benumbed in his joints; --perhaps without straw
  • in his tent to kneel on; --must say his prayers _how_ and _when_ he can.
  • --I believe, said I, --for I was piqued, quoth the corporal, for the
  • reputation of the army, --I believe, an’ please your reverence, said I,
  • that when a soldier gets time to pray, --he prays as heartily as a
  • parson, --though not with all his fuss and hypocrisy. ----Thou shouldst
  • not have said that, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_, --for God only knows
  • who is a hypocrite, and who is not: ----At the great and general review
  • of us all, corporal, at the day of judgment (and not till then)--it will
  • be seen who has done their duties in this world, --and who has not; and
  • we shall be advanced, _Trim_, accordingly. ----I hope we shall, said
  • _Trim_. ----It is in the Scripture, said my uncle _Toby_; and I will
  • shew it thee to-morrow: --In the mean time we may depend upon it,
  • _Trim_, for our comfort, said my uncle _Toby_, that God Almighty is so
  • good and just a governor of the world, that if we have but done our
  • duties in it, --it will never be enquired into, whether we have done
  • them in a red coat or a black one: ----I hope not, said the
  • corporal ----But go on, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_, with thy story.
  • When I went up, continued the corporal, into the lieutenant’s room,
  • which I did not do till the expiration of the ten minutes, --he was
  • lying in his bed with his head raised upon his hand, with his elbow upon
  • the pillow, and a clean white cambrick handkerchief beside it: ----The
  • youth was just stooping down to take up the cushion, upon which I
  • supposed he had been kneeling, --the book was laid upon the bed, --and,
  • as he rose, in taking up the cushion with one hand, he reached out his
  • other to take it away at the same time. ----Let it remain there, my
  • dear, said the lieutenant.
  • He did not offer to speak to me, till I had walked up close to his
  • bed-side: --If you are captain _Shandy’s_ servant, said he, you must
  • present my thanks to your master, with my little boy’s thanks along with
  • them, for his courtesy to me; --if he was of _Leven’s_--said the
  • lieutenant. --I told him your honour was --Then, said he, I served three
  • campaigns with him in _Flanders_, and remember him, --but ’tis most
  • likely, as I had not the honour of any acquaintance with him, that he
  • knows nothing of me. ----You will tell him, however, that the person his
  • good-nature has laid under obligations to him, is one _Le Fever_, a
  • lieutenant in _Angus’s_----but he knows me not, --said he, a second
  • time, musing; ----possibly he may my story--added he--pray tell the
  • captain, I was the ensign at _Breda_, whose wife was most unfortunately
  • killed with a musket-shot, as she lay in my arms in my tent. ----I
  • remember the story, an’t please your honour, said I, very well. ----Do
  • you so? said he, wiping his eyes with his handkerchief, --then well may
  • I. --In saying this, he drew a little ring out of his bosom, which
  • seemed tied with a black ribband about his neck, and kiss’d it
  • twice ----Here, _Billy_, said he, ----the boy flew across the room to the
  • bed-side, --and falling down upon his knee, took the ring in his hand,
  • and kissed it too, --then kissed his father, and sat down upon the bed
  • and wept.
  • I wish, said my uncle _Toby_, with a deep sigh, --I wish, _Trim_, I was
  • asleep.
  • Your honour, replied the corporal, is too much concerned; --shall I pour
  • your honour out a glass of sack to your pipe? ----Do, _Trim_, said my
  • uncle _Toby_.
  • I remember, said my uncle _Toby_, sighing again, the story of the ensign
  • and his wife, with a circumstance his modesty omitted; --and
  • particularly well that he, as well as she, upon some account or other
  • (I forget what) was universally pitied by the whole regiment; --but
  • finish the story thou art upon: --’Tis finished already, said the
  • corporal, --for I could stay no longer, --so wished his honour a good
  • night; young _Le Fever_ rose from off the bed, and saw me to the bottom
  • of the stairs; and as we went down together, told me, they had come from
  • _Ireland_, and were on their route to join the regiment in _Flanders_.
  • ----But alas! said the corporal, --the lieutenant’s last day’s march is
  • over. --Then what is to become of his poor boy? cried my uncle _Toby_.
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • THE STORY OF LE FEVER CONTINUED
  • It was to my uncle _Toby’s_ eternal honour, ----though I tell it only
  • for the sake of those, who, when coop’d in betwixt a natural and a
  • positive law, know not, for their souls, which way in the world to turn
  • themselves ----That notwithstanding my uncle _Toby_ was warmly engaged
  • at that time in carrying on the siege of _Dendermond_, parallel with the
  • allies, who pressed theirs on so vigorously, that they scarce allowed
  • him time to get his dinner----that nevertheless he gave up _Dendermond_,
  • though he had already made a lodgment upon the counterscarp; --and bent
  • his whole thoughts towards the private distresses at the inn; and except
  • that he ordered the garden gate to be bolted up, by which he might be
  • said to have turned the siege of _Dendermond_ into a blockade, --he left
  • _Dendermond_ to itself--to be relieved or not by the _French_ king, as
  • the _French_ king thought good; and only considered how he himself
  • should relieve the poor lieutenant and his son.
  • ----That kind BEING, who is a friend to the friendless, shall recompence
  • thee for this.
  • Thou hast left this matter short, said my uncle _Toby_ to the corporal,
  • as he was putting him to bed, ----and I will tell thee in what, _Trim_.
  • ----In the first place, when thou madest an offer of my services to _Le
  • Fever_, ----as sickness and travelling are both expensive, and thou
  • knowest he was but a poor lieutenant, with a son to subsist as well as
  • himself out of his pay, --that thou didst not make an offer to him of my
  • purse; because, had he stood in need, thou knowest, _Trim_, he had been
  • as welcome to it as myself. ----Your honour knows, said the corporal,
  • I had no orders; ----True, quoth my uncle _Toby_, --thou didst very
  • right, _Trim_, as a soldier, --but certainly very wrong as a man.
  • In the second place, for which, indeed, thou hast the same excuse,
  • continued my uncle _Toby_, ----when thou offeredst him whatever was in
  • my house, ----thou shouldst have offered him my house too: ----A sick
  • brother officer should have the best quarters, _Trim_, and if we had him
  • with us, --we could tend and look to him: ----Thou art an excellent
  • nurse thyself, _Trim_, --and what with thy care of him, and the old
  • woman’s, and his boy’s, and mine together, we might recruit him again at
  • once, and set him upon his legs.------
  • ----In a fortnight or three weeks, added my uncle _Toby_, smiling,
  • ----he might march. ----He will never march; an’ please your honour, in
  • this world, said the corporal: ----He will march; said my uncle _Toby_,
  • rising up, from the side of the bed, with one shoe off: ----An’ please
  • your honour, said the corporal, he will never march but to his grave:
  • ----He shall march, cried my uncle _Toby_, marching the foot which had a
  • shoe on, though without advancing an inch, --he shall march to his
  • regiment. ----He cannot stand it, said the corporal; ----He shall be
  • supported, said my uncle _Toby_; ----He’ll drop at last, said the
  • corporal, and what will become of his boy? ----He shall not drop, said
  • my uncle _Toby_, firmly. ----A-well-o’-day, --do what we can for him,
  • said _Trim_, maintaining his point, --the poor soul will die: ----He
  • shall not die, by G--, cried my uncle _Toby_.
  • --The ACCUSING SPIRIT, which flew up to heaven’s chancery with the oath,
  • blush’d as he gave it in; --and the RECORDING ANGEL, as he wrote it
  • down, dropp’d a tear upon the word, and blotted it out for ever.
  • CHAPTER IX
  • ----My uncle _Toby_ went to his bureau, --put his purse into his
  • breeches pocket, and having ordered the corporal to go early in the
  • morning for a physician, --he went to bed, and fell asleep.
  • CHAPTER X
  • THE STORY OF LE FEVER CONTINUED
  • The sun looked bright the morning after, to every eye in the village but
  • _Le Fever’s_ and his afflicted son’s; the hand of death press’d heavy
  • upon his eye-lids, ----and hardly could the wheel at the cistern turn
  • round its circle, --when my uncle _Toby_, who had rose up an hour before
  • his wonted time, entered the lieutenant’s room, and without preface or
  • apology, sat himself down upon the chair by the bed-side, and,
  • independently of all modes and customs, opened the curtain in the manner
  • an old friend and brother officer would have done it, and asked him how
  • he did, --how he had rested in the night, --what was his complaint,
  • --where was his pain, --and what he could do to help him: ----and
  • without giving him time to answer any one of the enquiries, went on, and
  • told him of the little plan which he had been concerting with the
  • corporal the night before for him.----
  • ----You shall go home directly, _Le Fever_, said my uncle _Toby_, to my
  • house, --and we’ll send for a doctor to see what’s the matter, --and
  • we’ll have an apothecary, --and the corporal shall be your nurse;
  • ----and I’ll be your servant, _Le Fever_.
  • There was a frankness in my uncle _Toby_, --not the _effect_ of
  • familiarity, --but the _cause_ of it, --which let you at once into his
  • soul, and shewed you the goodness of his nature; to this, there was
  • something in his looks, and voice, and manner, superadded, which
  • eternally beckoned to the unfortunate to come and take shelter under
  • him; so that before my uncle _Toby_ had half finished the kind offers he
  • was making to the father, had the son insensibly pressed up close to his
  • knees, and had taken hold of the breast of his coat, and was pulling it
  • towards him. ----The blood and spirits of _Le Fever_, which were waxing
  • cold and slow within him, and were retreating to their last citadel, the
  • heart--rallied back, --the film forsook his eyes for a moment, --he
  • looked up wishfully in my uncle _Toby’s_ face, --then cast a look upon
  • his boy, ----and that _ligament_, fine as it was, --was never
  • broken.------
  • Nature instantly ebb’d again, --the film returned to its place, ----the
  • pulse fluttered----stopp’d----went on----throbb’d----stopp’d
  • again----moved----stopp’d----shall I go on? ----No.
  • CHAPTER XI
  • I am so impatient to return to my own story, that what remains of young
  • _Le Fever’s_, that is, from this turn of his fortune, to the time my
  • uncle _Toby_ recommended him for my preceptor, shall be told in a very
  • few words in the next chapter. --All that is necessary to be added to
  • this chapter is as follows.--
  • That my uncle _Toby_, with young _Le Fever_ in his hand, attended the
  • poor lieutenant, as chief mourners, to his grave.
  • That the governor of _Dendermond_ paid his obsequies all military
  • honours, --and that _Yorick_, not to be behind-hand--paid him all
  • ecclesiastic--for he buried him in his chancel: --And it appears
  • likewise, he preached a funeral sermon over him ----I say it _appears_,
  • --for it was _Yorick’s_ custom, which I suppose a general one with those
  • of his profession, on the first leaf of every sermon which he composed,
  • to chronicle down the time, the place, and the occasion of its being
  • preached: to this, he was ever wont to add some short comment or
  • stricture upon the sermon itself, seldom, indeed, much to its credit:
  • --For instance, _This sermon upon the Jewish dispensation --I don’t like
  • it at all; --Though I own there is a world of WATER-LANDISH knowledge in
  • it, --but ’tis all tritical, and most tritically put together.
  • ------This is but a flimsy kind of a composition; what was in my head
  • when I made it?_
  • ----N. B. _The excellency of this text is, that it will suit any sermon,
  • --and of this sermon, ----that it will suit any text. ------_
  • _ ----For this sermon I shall be hanged, --for I have stolen the greatest
  • part of it. Doctor _Paidagunes_ found me out. [-->] Set a thief to catch
  • a thief. ------_
  • On the back of half a dozen I find written, _So, so_, and no more----and
  • upon a couple _Moderato_; by which, as far as one may gather from
  • _Altieri’s_ _Italian_ dictionary, --but mostly from the authority of a
  • piece of green whipcord, which seemed to have been the unravelling of
  • _Yorick’s_ whip-lash, with which he has left us the two sermons marked
  • _Moderato_, and the half dozen of _So, so_, tied fast together in one
  • bundle by themselves, --one may safely suppose he meant pretty near the
  • same thing.
  • There is but one difficulty in the way of this conjecture, which is
  • this, that the _moderato’s_ are five times better than the _so, so’s_;
  • --show ten times more knowledge of the human heart; --have seventy times
  • more wit and spirit in them; --(and, to rise properly in my
  • climax)--discovered a thousand times more genius; --and to crown all,
  • are infinitely more entertaining than those tied up with them: --for
  • which reason, whene’er _Yorick’s_ _dramatic_ sermons are offered to the
  • world, though I shall admit but one out of the whole number of the _so,
  • so’s_, I shall, nevertheless, adventure to print the two _moderato’s_
  • without any sort of scruple.
  • What _Yorick_ could mean by the words _lentamente_, --_tenutè_,
  • --_grave_, --and sometimes _adagio_, --as applied to _theological_
  • compositions, and with which he has characterised some of these sermons,
  • I dare not venture to guess. ----I am more puzzled still upon finding
  • _a l’octava alta!_ upon one; ----_Con strepito_ upon the back of
  • another; ----_Siciliana_ upon a third; ----_Alla capella_ upon a fourth;
  • ----_Con l’arco_ upon this; ----_Senza l’arco_ upon that. ----All I know
  • is, that they are musical terms, and have a meaning; ----and as he was a
  • musical man, I will make no doubt, but that by some quaint application
  • of such metaphors to the compositions in hand, they impressed very
  • distinct ideas of their several characters upon his fancy, --whatever
  • they may do upon that of others.
  • Amongst these, there is that particular sermon which has unaccountably
  • led me into this digression ----The funeral sermon upon poor _Le Fever_,
  • wrote out very fairly, as if from a hasty copy. --I take notice of it
  • the more, because it seems to have been his favourite composition ----It
  • is upon mortality; and is tied lengthways and cross-ways with a yarn
  • thrum, and then rolled up and twisted round with a half-sheet of dirty
  • blue paper, which seems to have been once the cast cover of a general
  • review, which to this day smells horribly of horse drugs. ----Whether
  • these marks of humiliation were designed, --I something doubt;
  • ----because at the end of the sermon (and not at the beginning
  • of it)--very different from his way of treating the rest, he had
  • wrote----
  • Bravo!
  • ----Though not very offensively, ----for it is at two inches, at least,
  • and a half’s distance from, and below the concluding line of the sermon,
  • at the very extremity of the page, and in that right hand corner of it,
  • which, you know, is generally covered with your thumb; and, to do it
  • justice, it is wrote besides with a crow’s quill so faintly in a small
  • _Italian_ hand, as scarce to solicit the eye towards the place, whether
  • your thumb is there or not, --so that from the _manner of it_, it stands
  • half excused; and being wrote moreover with very pale ink, diluted
  • almost to nothing, --’tis more like a _ritratto_ of the shadow of
  • vanity, than of VANITY herself--of the two; resembling rather a faint
  • thought of transient applause, secretly stirring up in the heart of the
  • composer; than a gross mark of it, coarsely obtruded upon the world.
  • With all these extenuations, I am aware, that in publishing this, I do
  • no service to _Yorick’s_ character as a modest man; --but all men have
  • their failings! and what lessens this still farther, and almost wipes it
  • away, is this; that the word was struck through sometime afterwards
  • (as appears from a different tint of the ink) with a line quite across
  • it in this manner, [BRAVO]----as if he had retracted, or was ashamed of
  • the opinion he had once entertained of it.
  • These short characters of his sermons were always written, excepting in
  • this one instance, upon the first leaf of his sermon, which served as a
  • cover to it; and usually upon the inside of it, which was turned towards
  • the text; --but at the end of his discourse, where, perhaps, he had five
  • or six pages, and sometimes, perhaps, a whole score to turn himself in,
  • --he took a large circuit, and, indeed, a much more mettlesome one; --as
  • if he had snatched the occasion of unlacing himself with a few more
  • frolicksome strokes at vice, than the straitness of the pulpit allowed.
  • --These, though hussar-like, they skirmish lightly and out of all order,
  • are still auxiliaries on the side of virtue; --tell me then, Mynheer
  • Vander Blonederdondergewdenstronke, why they should not be printed
  • together?
  • CHAPTER XII
  • When my uncle _Toby_ had turned everything into money, and settled all
  • accounts betwixt the agent of the regiment and _Le Fever_, and betwixt
  • _Le Fever_ and all mankind, ----there remained nothing more in my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ hands, than an old regimental coat and a sword; so that my
  • uncle _Toby_ found little or no opposition from the world in taking
  • administration. The coat my uncle _Toby_ gave the corporal; ----Wear it,
  • _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_, as long as it will hold together, for the
  • sake of the poor lieutenant ----And this, ----said my uncle _Toby_,
  • taking up the sword in his hand, and drawing it out of the scabbard as
  • he spoke----and this, _Le Fever_, I’ll save for thee, --’tis all the
  • fortune, continued my uncle _Toby_, hanging it up upon a crook, and
  • pointing to it, --’tis all the fortune, my dear _Le Fever_, which God
  • has left thee; but if he has given thee a heart to fight thy way with it
  • in the world, --and thou doest it like a man of honour, --’tis enough
  • for us.
  • As soon as my uncle _Toby_ had laid a foundation, and taught him to
  • inscribe a regular polygon in a circle, he sent him to a public school,
  • where, excepting _Whitsontide_ and _Christmas_, at which times the
  • corporal was punctually dispatched for him, --he remained to the spring
  • of the year, seventeen; when the stories of the emperor’s sending his
  • army into _Hungary_ against the _Turks_, kindling a spark of fire in his
  • bosom, he left his _Greek_ and _Latin_ without leave, and throwing
  • himself upon his knees before my uncle _Toby_, begged his father’s
  • sword, and my uncle _Toby’s_ leave along with it, to go and try his
  • fortune under _Eugene_. --Twice did my uncle _Toby_ forget his wound and
  • cry out, _Le Fever!_ I will go with thee, and thou shalt fight beside
  • me ----And twice he laid his hand upon his groin, and hung down his head
  • in sorrow and disconsolation.----
  • My uncle _Toby_ took down the sword from the crook, where it had hung
  • untouched ever since the lieutenant’s death, and delivered it to the
  • corporal to brighten up; ----and having detained _Le Fever_ a single
  • fortnight to equip him, and contract for his passage to _Leghorn_, --he
  • put the sword into his hand. ----If thou art brave, _Le Fever_, said my
  • uncle _Toby_, this will not fail thee, ----but Fortune, said he (musing
  • a little), ----Fortune may ----And if she does, --added my uncle _Toby_,
  • embracing him, come back again to me, _Le Fever_, and we will shape thee
  • another course.
  • The greatest injury could not have oppressed the heart of _Le Fever_
  • more than my uncle _Toby’s_ paternal kindness; ----he parted from my
  • uncle _Toby_, as the best of sons from the best of fathers----both
  • dropped tears----and as my uncle _Toby_ gave him his last kiss, he
  • slipped sixty guineas, tied up in an old purse of his father’s, in which
  • was his mother’s ring, into his hand,---- and bid God bless him.
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • Le Fever got up to the Imperial army just time enough to try what metal
  • his sword was made of, at the defeat of the _Turks_ before _Belgrade_;
  • but a series of unmerited mischances had pursued him from that moment,
  • and trod close upon his heels for four years together after; he had
  • withstood these buffetings to the last, till sickness overtook him at
  • _Marseilles_, from whence he wrote my uncle _Toby_ word, he had lost his
  • time, his services, his health, and, in short, everything but his sword;
  • ----and was waiting for the first ship to return back to him.
  • As this letter came to hand about six weeks before _Susannah’s_
  • accident, _Le Fever_ was hourly expected; and was uppermost in my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ mind all the time my father was giving him and _Yorick_ a
  • description of what kind of a person he would chuse for a preceptor to
  • me: but as my uncle _Toby_ thought my father at first somewhat fanciful
  • in the accomplishments he required, he forebore mentioning _Le Fever’s_
  • name, ----till the character, by _Yorick’s_ interposition, ending
  • unexpectedly, in one, who should be gentle-tempered, and generous, and
  • good, it impressed the image of _Le Fever_, and his interest, upon my
  • uncle _Toby_ so forcibly, he rose instantly off his chair; and laying
  • down his pipe, in order to take hold of both my father’s hands ----I beg,
  • brother _Shandy_, said my uncle _Toby_, I may recommend poor _Le
  • Fever’s_ son to you ----I beseech you do, added _Yorick_ ----He has a
  • good heart, said my uncle _Toby_ ----And a brave one too, an’ please
  • your honour, said the corporal.
  • ----The best hearts, _Trim_, are ever the bravest, replied my uncle
  • _Toby_. ----And the greatest cowards, an’ please your honour, in our
  • regiment, were the greatest rascals in it. ----There was serjeant
  • _Kumber_, and ensign------
  • ----We’ll talk of them, said my father, another time.
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • What a jovial and a merry world would this be, may it please your
  • worships, but for that inextricable labyrinth of debts, cares, woes,
  • want, grief, discontent, melancholy, large jointures, impositions, and
  • lies!
  • Doctor _Slop_, like a son of a w----, as my father called him for it,
  • --to exalt himself, --debased me to death, --and made ten thousand times
  • more of _Susannah’s_ accident, than there was any grounds for; so that
  • in a week’s time, or less, it was in everybody’s mouth, _That poor
  • Master Shandy_ * * * * * *
  • * * entirely. --And FAME, who loves to double everything, --in
  • three days more, had sworn, positively she saw it, --and all the world,
  • as usual, gave credit to her evidence---- “That the nursery window had
  • not only * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * ;----but that * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * ’s also.”
  • Could the world have been sued like a BODY-CORPORATE, --my father had
  • brought an action upon the case, and trounced it sufficiently; but to
  • fall foul of individuals about it----as every soul who had mentioned the
  • affair, did it with the greatest pity imaginable; ----’twas like flying
  • in the very face of his best friends: ----And yet to acquiesce under the
  • report, in silence--was to acknowledge it openly, --at least in the
  • opinion of one half of the world; and to make a bustle again, in
  • contradicting it, --was to confirm it as strongly in the opinion of the
  • other half.------
  • ----Was ever poor devil of a country gentleman so hampered? said my
  • father.
  • I would shew him publickly, said my uncle _Toby_, at the market cross.
  • ----’Twill have no effect, said my father.
  • CHAPTER XV
  • ----I’ll put him, however, into breeches, said my father, --let the
  • world say what it will.
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • There are a thousand resolutions, Sir, both in church and state, as well
  • as in matters, Madam, of a more private concern; --which though they
  • have carried all the appearance in the world of being taken, and entered
  • upon in a hasty, hare-brained, and unadvised manner, were,
  • notwithstanding this (and could you or I have got into the cabinet, or
  • stood behind the curtain, we should have found it was so), weighed,
  • poized, and perpended----argued upon--canvassed through----entered into,
  • and examined on all sides with so much coolness, that the GODDESS of
  • COOLNESS herself (I do not take upon me to prove her existence) could
  • neither have wished it, or done it better.
  • Of the number of these was my father’s resolution of putting me into
  • breeches; which, though determined at once, --in a kind of huff, and a
  • defiance of all mankind, had, nevertheless, been _pro’d_ and _conn’d_,
  • and judicially talked over betwixt him and my mother about a month
  • before, in two several _beds of justice_, which my father had held for
  • that purpose. I shall explain the nature of these beds of justice in my
  • next chapter; and in the chapter following that, you shall step with me,
  • Madam, behind the curtain, only to hear in what kind of manner my father
  • and my mother debated between themselves, this affair of the breeches,
  • --from which you may form an idea, how they debated all lesser matters.
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • The ancient _Goths_ of _Germany_, who (the learned _Cluverius_ is
  • positive) were first seated in the country between the _Vistula_ and the
  • _Oder_, and who afterwards incorporated the _Herculi_, the _Bugians_,
  • and some other _Vandallick_ clans to ’em--had all of them a wise custom
  • of debating everything of importance to their state, twice; that is,
  • --once drunk, and once sober: ----Drunk, --that their councils might not
  • want vigour; ----and sober--that they might not want discretion.
  • Now my father being entirely a water-drinker, --was a long time
  • gravelled almost to death, in turning this as much to his advantage, as
  • he did every other thing which the ancients did or said; and it was not
  • till the seventh year of his marriage, after a thousand fruitless
  • experiments and devices, that he hit upon an expedient which answered
  • the purpose; ----and that was, when any difficult and momentous point
  • was to be settled in the family, which required great sobriety, and
  • great spirit too, in its determination, ----he fixed and set apart the
  • first _Sunday_ night in the month, and the _Saturday_ night which
  • immediately preceded it, to argue it over, in bed, with my mother: By
  • which contrivance, if you consider, Sir, with yourself, * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * *
  • These my father, humorously enough, called his _beds of justice_;
  • ----for from the two different counsels taken in these two different
  • humours, a middle one was generally found out which touched the point of
  • wisdom as well, as if he had got drunk and sober a hundred times.
  • It must not be made a secret of to the world, that this answers full as
  • well in literary discussions, as either in military or conjugal; but it
  • is not every author that can try the experiment as the _Goths_ and
  • _Vandals_ did it----or, if he can, may it be always for his body’s
  • health; and to do it, as my father did it, --am I sure it would be
  • always for his soul’s.
  • My way is this:----
  • In all nice and ticklish discussions--(of which, heaven knows, there are
  • but too many in my book), --where I find I cannot take a step without
  • the danger of having either their worships or their reverences upon my
  • back ----I write one-half _full_, --and t’other _fasting_; ----or write
  • it all full, --and correct it fasting: ----or write it fasting, --and
  • correct it full, for they all come to the same thing: ----So that with a
  • less variation from my father’s plan, than my father’s from the
  • _Gothick_ ----I feel myself upon a par with him in his first bed of
  • justice, --and no way inferior to him in his second. ----These different
  • and almost irreconcileable effects, flow uniformly from the wise and
  • wonderful mechanism of nature, --of which, --be her’s the honour.
  • ----All that we can do, is to turn and work the machine to the
  • improvement and better manufactory of the arts and sciences.----
  • Now, when I write full, --I write as if I was never to write fasting
  • again as long as I live; ----that is, I write free from the cares as
  • well as the terrors of the world. ----I count not the number of my
  • scars, --nor does my fancy go forth into dark entries and bye-corners to
  • antedate my stabs. ----In a word, my pen takes its course; and I write
  • on as much from the fulness of my heart, as my stomach.----
  • But when, an’ please your honours, I indite fasting, ’tis a different
  • history. ----I pay the world all possible attention and respect, --and
  • have as great a share (whilst it lasts) of that under-strapping virtue
  • of discretion as the best of you. ----So that betwixt both, I write a
  • careless kind of a civil, nonsensical, good-humoured _Shandean_ book,
  • which will do all your hearts good------
  • ----And all your heads too, --provided you understand it.
  • CHAPTER XVIII
  • We should begin, said my father, turning himself half round in bed, and
  • shifting his pillow a little towards my mother’s, as he opened the
  • debate ----We should begin to think, Mrs. _Shandy_, of putting this boy
  • into breeches.----
  • We should so, --said my mother. ----We defer it, my dear, quoth my
  • father, shamefully.------
  • I think we do, Mr. _Shandy_, --said my mother.
  • ----Not but the child looks extremely well, said my father, in his vests
  • and tunicks.------
  • ------He does look very well in them, --replied my mother.------
  • ----And for that reason it would be almost a sin, added my father, to
  • take him out of ’em.----
  • ----It would so, --said my mother: ----But indeed he is growing a very
  • tall lad, --rejoined my father.
  • ----He is very tall for his age, indeed, --said my mother.----
  • ----I can not (making two syllables of it) imagine, quoth my father, who
  • the deuce he takes after.----
  • I cannot conceive, for my life, --said my mother.----
  • Humph! ----said my father.
  • (The dialogue ceased for a moment.)
  • ----I am very short myself, --continued my father gravely.
  • You are very short, Mr. _Shandy_, --said my mother.
  • Humph! quoth my father to himself, a second time: in muttering which, he
  • plucked his pillow a little further from my mother’s--and turning about
  • again, there was an end of the debate for three minutes and a half.
  • ----When he gets these breeches made, cried my father in a higher tone,
  • he’ll look like a beast in ’em.
  • He will be very awkward in them at first, replied my mother.----
  • ----And ’twill be lucky, if that’s the worst on’t, added my father.
  • It will be very lucky, answered my mother.
  • I suppose, replied my father, --making some pause first, --he’ll be
  • exactly like other people’s children.----
  • Exactly, said my mother.------
  • ----Though I shall be sorry for that, added my father: and so the debate
  • stopp’d again.
  • ----They should be of leather, said my father, turning him about
  • again.--
  • They will last him, said my mother, the longest.
  • But he can have no linings to ’em, replied my father.------
  • He cannot, said my mother.
  • ’Twere better to have them of fustian, quoth my father.
  • Nothing can be better, quoth my mother.------
  • --Except dimity, --replied my father: ----’Tis best of all, --replied my
  • mother.
  • ----One must not give him his death, however, --interrupted my father.
  • By no means, said my mother: ----and so the dialogue stood still again.
  • I am resolved, however, quoth my father, breaking silence the fourth
  • time, he shall have no pockets in them.--
  • ----There is no occasion for any, said my mother.------
  • I mean in his coat and waistcoat, --cried my father.
  • ----I mean so too, --replied my mother.
  • ----Though if he gets a gig or top ----Poor souls! it is a crown and a
  • sceptre to them, --they should have where to secure it.------
  • Order it as you please, Mr. _Shandy_, replied my mother.------
  • ----But don’t you think it right? added my father, pressing the point
  • home to her.
  • Perfectly, said my mother, if it pleases you, Mr. _Shandy_.------
  • ----There’s for you! cried my father, losing temper ----Pleases me!
  • ----You never will distinguish, Mrs. _Shandy_, nor shall I ever teach
  • you to do it, betwixt a point of pleasure and a point of convenience.
  • ----This was on the _Sunday_ night: ----and further this chapter sayeth
  • not.
  • CHAPTER XIX
  • After my father had debated the affair of the breeches with my mother,
  • --he consulted _Albertus Rubenius_ upon it; and _Albertus Rubenius_ used
  • my father ten times worse in the consultation (if possible) than even my
  • father had used my mother: For as _Rubenius_ had wrote a quarto
  • _express_, _De re Vestiaria Veterum_, --it was _Rubenius’s_ business to
  • have given my father some lights. --On the contrary, my father might as
  • well have thought of extracting the seven cardinal virtues out of a long
  • beard, --as of extracting a single word out of _Rubenius_ upon the
  • subject.
  • Upon every other article of ancient dress, _Rubenius_ was very
  • communicative to my father; --gave him a full and satisfactory account
  • of
  • The Toga, or loose gown.
  • The Chlamys.
  • The Ephod.
  • The Tunica, or Jacket.
  • The Synthesis.
  • The Pænula.
  • The Lacema, with its Cucullus.
  • The Paludamentum.
  • The Prætexta.
  • The Sagum, or soldier’s jerkin.
  • The Trabea: of which, according to _Suetonius_, there were three
  • kinds.--
  • ----But what are all these to the breeches? said my father.
  • _Rubenius_ threw him down upon the counter all kinds of shoes which had
  • been in fashion with the _Romans_.------
  • There was,
  • The open shoe.
  • The close shoe.
  • The slip shoe.
  • The wooden shoe.
  • The soc.
  • The buskin.
  • And The military shoe with hobnails in it, which _Juvenal_
  • takes notice of.
  • There were, The clogs.
  • The pattins.
  • The pantoufles.
  • The brogues.
  • The sandals, with latchets to them.
  • There was, The felt shoe.
  • The linen shoe.
  • The laced shoe.
  • The braided shoe.
  • The calceus incisus.
  • And The calceus rostratus.
  • _Rubenius_ shewed my father how well they all fitted, --in what manner
  • they laced on, --with what points, straps, thongs, latchets, ribbands,
  • jaggs, and ends.------
  • ----But I want to be informed about the breeches, said my father.
  • _Albertus Rubenius_ informed my father that the _Romans_ manufactured
  • stuffs of various fabrics, ----some plain, --some striped, --others
  • diapered throughout the whole contexture of the wool, with silk and
  • gold ----That linen did not begin to be in common use till towards the
  • declension of the empire, when the _Egyptians_ coming to settle amongst
  • them, brought it into vogue.
  • ----That persons of quality and fortune distinguished themselves by the
  • fineness and whiteness of their clothes; which colour (next to purple,
  • which was appropriated to the great offices) they most affected, and
  • wore on their birthdays and public rejoicings. ----That it appeared from
  • the best historians of those times, that they frequently sent their
  • clothes to the fuller, to be clean’d and whitened: ----but that the
  • inferior people, to avoid that expence, generally wore brown clothes,
  • and of a something coarser texture, --till towards the beginning of
  • _Augustus’s_ reign, when the slave dressed like his master, and almost
  • every distinction of habiliment was lost, but the _Latus Clavus_.
  • And what was the _Latus Clavus?_ said my father.
  • _Rubenius_ told him, that the point was still litigating amongst the
  • learned: ----That _Egnatius_, _Sigonius_, _Bossius Ticinensis_,
  • _Bayfius_, _Budæus_, _Salmasius_, _Lipsius_, _Lazius_, _Isaac Casaubon_,
  • and _Joseph Scaliger_, all differed from each other, --and he from them:
  • That some took it to be the button, --some the coat itself, --others
  • only the colour of it: --That the great _Bayfius_, in his Wardrobe of
  • the Ancients, chap. 12--honestly said, he knew not what it was,
  • --whether a tibula, --a stud, --a button, --a loop, --a buckle, --or
  • clasps and keepers.------
  • ----My father lost the horse, but not the saddle ----They are _hooks and
  • eyes_, said my father----and with hooks and eyes he ordered my breeches
  • to be made.
  • CHAPTER XX
  • We are now going to enter upon a new scene of events.------
  • ----Leave we then the breeches in the taylor’s hands, with my father
  • standing over him with his cane, reading him as he sat at work a lecture
  • upon the _latus clavus_, and pointing to the precise part of the
  • waistband, where he was determined to have it sewed on.----
  • Leave we my mother--(truest of all the _Pococurantes_ of her
  • sex!)--careless about it, as about everything else in the world which
  • concerned her; --that is, --indifferent whether it was done this way or
  • that, --provided it was but done at all.----
  • Leave we _Slop_ likewise to the full profits of all my dishonours.------
  • Leave we poor _Le Fever_ to recover, and get home from _Marseilles_ as
  • he can. ----And last of all, --because the hardest of all----
  • Let us leave, if possible, _myself_: ----But ’tis impossible, --I must
  • go along with you to the end of the work.
  • CHAPTER XXI
  • If the reader has not a clear conception of the rood and the half of
  • ground which lay at the bottom of my uncle _Toby’s_ kitchen-garden, and
  • which was the scene of so many of his delicious hours, --the fault is
  • not in me, --but in his imagination; --for I am sure I gave him so
  • minute a description, I was almost ashamed of it.
  • When FATE was looking forwards one afternoon, into the great
  • transactions of future times, --and recollected for what purposes this
  • little plot, by a decree fast bound down in iron, had been destined,
  • ---she gave a nod to NATURE, --’twas enough --Nature threw half a spade
  • full of her kindliest compost upon it, with just so _much_ clay in it,
  • as to retain the forms of angles and indentings, --and so _little_ of it
  • too, as not to cling to the spade, and render works of so much glory,
  • nasty in foul weather.
  • My uncle _Toby_ came down, as the reader has been informed, with plans
  • along with him, of almost every fortified town in _Italy_ and
  • _Flanders_; so let the Duke of _Marlborough_, or the allies, have set
  • down before what town they pleased, my uncle _Toby_ was prepared for
  • them.
  • His way, which was the simplest one in the world, was this; as soon as
  • ever a town was invested--(but sooner when the design was known) to take
  • the plan of it (let it be what town it would), and enlarge it upon a
  • scale to the exact size of his bowling-green; upon the surface of which,
  • by means of a large role of packthread, and a number of small piquets
  • driven into the ground, at the several angles and redans, he transferred
  • the lines from his paper; then taking the profile of the place, with its
  • works, to determine the depths and slopes of the ditches, --the talus of
  • the glacis, and the precise height of the several banquets, parapets,
  • &c. --he set the corporal to work----and sweetly went it on: ----The
  • nature of the soil, --the nature of the work itself, --and above all,
  • the good-nature of my uncle _Toby_ sitting by from morning to night, and
  • chatting kindly with the corporal upon past-done deeds, --left LABOUR
  • little else but the ceremony of the name.
  • When the place was finished in this manner, and put into a proper
  • posture of defence, --it was invested, --and my uncle _Toby_ and the
  • corporal began to run their first parallel. ----I beg I may not be
  • interrupted in my story, by being told, _That the first parallel should
  • be at least three hundred toises distant from the main body of the
  • place, --and that I have not left a single inch for it_; ------for my
  • uncle _Toby_ took the liberty of incroaching upon his kitchen-garden,
  • for the sake of enlarging his works on the bowling-green, and for that
  • reason generally ran his first and second parallels betwixt two rows of
  • his cabbages and his cauliflowers; the conveniences and inconveniences
  • of which will be considered at large in the history of my uncle _Toby’s_
  • and the corporal’s campaigns, of which, this I’m now writing is but a
  • sketch, and will be finished, if I conjecture right, in three pages (but
  • there is no guessing) ----The campaigns themselves will take up as many
  • books; and therefore I apprehend it would be hanging too great a weight
  • of one kind of matter in so flimsy a performance as this, to rhapsodize
  • them, as I once intended, into the body of the work----surely they had
  • better be printed apart, ----we’ll consider the affair----so take the
  • following sketch of them in the meantime.
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • When the town, with its works, was finished, my uncle _Toby_ and the
  • corporal began to run their first parallel----not at random, or any
  • how----but from the same points and distances the allies had begun to
  • run theirs; and regulating their approaches and attacks, by the accounts
  • my uncle _Toby_ received from the daily papers, --they went on, during
  • the whole siege, step by step with the allies.
  • When the duke of _Marlborough_ made a lodgment, ----my uncle _Toby_ made
  • a lodgment too, ----And when the face of a bastion was battered down, or
  • a defence ruined, --the corporal took his mattock and did as much, --and
  • so on; ----gaining ground, and making themselves masters of the works
  • one after another, till the town fell into their hands.
  • To one who took pleasure in the happy state of others, --there could not
  • have been a greater sight in the world, than, on a post-morning, in
  • which a practicable breach had been made by the duke of _Marlborough_,
  • in the main body of the place, --to have stood behind the horn-beam
  • hedge, and observed the spirit with which my uncle _Toby_, with _Trim_
  • behind him, sallied forth; ----the one with the _Gazette_ in his hand,
  • --the other with a spade on his shoulder to execute the contents.
  • ----What an honest triumph in my uncle _Toby’s_ looks as he marched up
  • to the ramparts! What intense pleasure swimming in his eye as he stood
  • over the corporal, reading the paragraph ten times over to him, as he
  • was at work, lest, peradventure, he should make the breach an inch too
  • wide, --or leave it an inch too narrow. ----But when the _chamade_ was
  • beat, and the corporal helped my uncle up it, and followed with the
  • colours in his hand, to fix them upon the ramparts --Heaven! Earth! Sea!
  • ----but what avails apostrophes? ----with all your elements, wet or dry,
  • ye never compounded so intoxicating a draught.
  • In this track of happiness for many years, without one interruption to
  • it, except now and then when the wind continued to blow due west for a
  • week or ten days together, which detained the _Flanders_ mail, and kept
  • them so long in torture, --but still ’twas the torture of the
  • happy ----In this track, I say, did my uncle _Toby_ and _Trim_ move for
  • many years, every year of which, and sometimes every month, from the
  • invention of either the one or the other of them, adding some new
  • conceit or quirk of improvement to their operations, which always opened
  • fresh springs of delight in carrying them on.
  • The first year’s campaign was carried on from beginning to end, in the
  • plain and simple method I’ve related.
  • In the second year, in which my uncle _Toby_ took _Liege_ and
  • _Ruremond_, he thought he might afford the expence of four handsome
  • draw-bridges, of two of which I have given an exact description in the
  • former part of my work.
  • At the latter end of the same year he added a couple of gates with
  • portcullises: ----These last were converted afterwards into orgues, as
  • the better thing; and during the winter of the same year, my uncle
  • _Toby_, instead of a new suit of clothes, which he always had at
  • _Christmas_, treated himself with a handsome sentry-box, to stand at the
  • corner of the bowling-green, betwixt which point and the foot of the
  • glacis, there was left a little kind of an esplanade for him and the
  • corporal to confer and hold councils of war upon.
  • ----The sentry-box was in case of rain.
  • All these were painted white three times over the ensuing spring, which
  • enabled my uncle _Toby_ to take the field with great splendour.
  • My father would often say to _Yorick_, that if any mortal in the whole
  • universe had done such a thing, except his brother _Toby_, it would have
  • been looked upon by the world as one of the most refined satires upon
  • the parade and prancing manner in which _Lewis_ XIV. from the beginning
  • of the war, but particularly that very year, had taken the field ----But
  • ’tis not my brother _Toby’s_ nature, kind soul! my father would add, to
  • insult any one.
  • ----But let us go on.
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • I must observe, that although in the first year’s campaign, the word
  • _town_ is often mentioned, --yet there was no town at that time within
  • the polygon; that addition was not made till the summer following the
  • spring in which the bridges and sentry-box were painted, which was the
  • third year of my uncle _Toby’s_ campaigns, --when upon his taking
  • _Amberg_, _Bonn_, and _Rhinberg_, and _Huy_ and _Limbourg_, one after
  • another, a thought came into the corporal’s head, that to talk of taking
  • so many towns, _without one TOWN to shew for it_, --was a very
  • nonsensical way of going to work, and so proposed to my uncle _Toby_,
  • that they should have a little model of a town built for them, --to be
  • run up together of slit deals, and then painted, and clapped within the
  • interior polygon to serve for all.
  • My uncle _Toby_ felt the good of the project instantly, and instantly
  • agreed to it, but with the addition of two singular improvements, of
  • which he was almost as proud as if he had been the original inventor of
  • the project itself.
  • The one was, to have the town built exactly in the style of those of
  • which it was most likely to be the representative: ----with grated
  • windows, and the gable ends of the houses, facing the streets, &c. &c.
  • --as those in _Ghent_ and _Bruges_, and the rest of the towns in
  • _Brabant_ and _Flanders_.
  • The other was, not to have the houses run up together, as the corporal
  • proposed, but to have every house independent, to hook on, or off, so as
  • to form into the plan of whatever town they pleased. This was put
  • directly into hand, and many and many a look of mutual congratulation
  • was exchanged between my uncle _Toby_ and the corporal, as the carpenter
  • did the work.
  • ----It answered prodigiously the next summer----the town was a perfect
  • _Proteus_ ----It was _Landen_, and _Trerebach_, and _Santvliet_, and
  • _Drusen_, and _Hagenau_, --and then it was _Ostend_ and _Menin_, and
  • _Aeth_ and _Dendermond_.
  • ----Surely never did any TOWN act so many parts, since _Sodom_ and
  • _Gomorah_, as my uncle _Toby’s_ town did.
  • In the fourth year, my uncle _Toby_ thinking a town looked foolishly
  • without a church, added a very fine one with a steeple. ----_Trim_ was
  • for having bells in it; ----my uncle _Toby_ said, the metal had better
  • be cast into cannon.
  • This led the way the next campaign for half a dozen brass field-pieces,
  • to be planted three and three on each side of my uncle _Toby’s_
  • sentry-box; and in a short time, these led the way for a train of
  • somewhat larger, --and so on--(as must always be the case in
  • hobby-horsical affairs) from pieces of half an inch bore, till it came
  • at last to my father’s jack boots.
  • The next year, which was that in which _Lisle_ was besieged, and at the
  • close of which both _Ghent_ and _Bruges_ fell into our hands, --my uncle
  • _Toby_ was sadly put to it for _proper_ ammunition; ----I say proper
  • ammunition----because his great artillery would not bear powder; and
  • ’twas well for the _Shandy_ family they would not ----For so full were
  • the papers, from the beginning to the end of the siege, of the incessant
  • firings kept up by the besiegers, ----and so heated was my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ imagination with the accounts of them, that he had infallibly
  • shot away all his estate.
  • SOMETHING therefore was wanting as a _succedaneum_, especially in one or
  • two of the more violent paroxysms of the siege, to keep up something
  • like a continual firing in the imagination, ----and this _something_,
  • the corporal, whose principal strength lay in invention, supplied by an
  • entire new system of battering of his own, --without which, this had
  • been objected to by military critics, to the end of the world, as one of
  • the great _desiderata_ of my uncle _Toby’s_ apparatus.
  • This will not be explained the worse, for setting off, as I generally
  • do, at a little distance from the subject.
  • CHAPTER XXIV
  • With two or three other trinkets, small in themselves, but of great
  • regard, which poor _Tom_, the corporal’s unfortunate brother, had sent
  • him over, with the account of his marriage with the _Jew’s_
  • widow----there was
  • A _Montero_-cap and two _Turkish_ tobacco-pipes.
  • The _Montero_-cap I shall describe by and bye. ----The _Turkish_
  • tobacco-pipes had nothing particular in them, they were fitted up and
  • ornamented as usual, with flexible tubes of _Morocco_ leather and gold
  • wire, and mounted at their ends, the one of them with ivory, --the other
  • with black ebony, tipp’d with silver.
  • My father, who saw all things in lights different from the rest of the
  • world, would say to the corporal, that he ought to look upon these two
  • presents more as tokens of his brother’s nicety, than his affection.
  • ----_Tom_ did not care, _Trim_, he would say, to put on the cap, or to
  • smoke in the tobacco-pipe of a _Jew_. ----God bless your honour, the
  • corporal would say, (giving a strong reason to the contrary)--how can
  • that be?
  • The Montero-cap was scarlet, of a superfine _Spanish_ cloth, dyed in
  • grain, and mounted all round with fur, except about four inches in the
  • front, which was faced with a light blue, slightly embroidered, --and
  • seemed to have been the property of a _Portuguese_ quartermaster, not of
  • foot, but of horse, as the word denotes.
  • The corporal was not a little proud of it, as well for its own sake, as
  • the sake of the giver, so seldom or never put it on but upon GALA-days;
  • and yet never was a Montero-cap put to so many uses; for in all
  • controverted points, whether military or culinary, provided the corporal
  • was sure he was in the right, --it was either his _oath_, --his _wager_,
  • --or his _gift_.
  • ----’Twas his gift in the present case.
  • I’ll be bound, said the corporal, speaking to himself, to _give_ away my
  • Montero-cap to the first beggar who comes to the door, if I do not
  • manage this matter to his honour’s satisfaction.
  • The completion was no further off than the very next morning; which was
  • that of the storm of the counterscarp betwixt the _Lower Deule_, to the
  • right, and the gate _St. Andrew_, --and on the left, between St.
  • _Magdalen’s_ and the river.
  • As this was the most memorable attack in the whole war, --the most
  • gallant and obstinate on both sides, --and I must add the most bloody
  • too, for it cost the allies themselves that morning above eleven hundred
  • men, --my uncle _Toby_ prepared himself for it with a more than ordinary
  • solemnity.
  • The eve which preceded, as my uncle _Toby_ went to bed, he ordered his
  • ramallie wig, which had laid inside out for many years in the corner of
  • an old compaigning trunk, which stood by his bedside, to be taken out
  • and laid upon the lid of it, ready for the morning; --and the very first
  • thing he did in his shirt, when he had stepped out of bed, my uncle
  • _Toby_, after he had turned the rough side outwards, --put it on:
  • ----This done, he proceeded next to his breeches, and having buttoned
  • the waistband, he forthwith buckled on his sword-belt, and had got his
  • sword half way in, --when he considered he should want shaving, and that
  • it would be very inconvenient doing it with his sword on, --so took it
  • off: ----In assaying to put on his regimental coat and waistcoat, my
  • uncle _Toby_ found the same objection in his wig, --so that went off
  • too: --So that what with one thing and what with another, as always
  • falls out when a man is in the most haste, --’twas ten o’clock, which
  • was half an hour later than his usual time, before my uncle _Toby_
  • sallied out.
  • CHAPTER XXV
  • My uncle _Toby_ had scarce turned the corner of his yew hedge, which
  • separated his kitchen-garden from his bowling-green, when he perceived
  • the corporal had begun the attack without him.------
  • Let me stop and give you a picture of the corporal’s apparatus; and of
  • the corporal himself in the height of his attack, just as it struck my
  • uncle _Toby_, as he turned towards the sentry-box, where the corporal
  • was at work, ----for in nature there is not such another, ----nor can
  • any combination of all that is grotesque and whimsical in her works
  • produce its equal.
  • The corporal------
  • ----Tread lightly on his ashes, ye men of genius, ----for he was your
  • kinsman:
  • Weed his grave clean, ye men of goodness, --for he was your brother.
  • --Oh corporal! had I thee, but now, --now, that I am able to give thee a
  • dinner and protection, --how would I cherish thee! thou should’st wear
  • thy Montero-cap every hour of the day, and every day of the week, --and
  • when it was worn out, I would purchase thee a couple like it: ----But
  • alas! alas! alas! now that I can do this in spite of their
  • reverences--the occasion is lost--for thou art gone; --thy genius fled
  • up to the stars from whence it came; --and that warm heart of thine,
  • with all its generous and open vessels, compressed into a _clod of the
  • valley!_
  • ----But what----what is this, to that future and dreaded page, where I
  • look towards the velvet pall, decorated with the military ensigns of thy
  • master--the first--the foremost of created beings; ----where, I shall
  • see thee, faithful servant! laying his sword and scabbard with a
  • trembling hand across his coffin, and then returning pale as ashes to
  • the door, to take his mourning horse by the bridle, to follow his
  • hearse, as he directed thee; ----where--all my father’s systems shall be
  • baffled by his sorrows; and, in spite of his philosophy, I shall behold
  • him, as he inspects the lackered plate, twice taking his spectacles from
  • off his nose, to wipe away the dew which nature has shed upon
  • them ----When I see him cast in the rosemary with an air of
  • disconsolation, which cries through my ears, ----O _Toby!_ in what
  • corner of the world shall I seek thy fellow?
  • ----Gracious powers! which erst have opened the lips of the dumb in his
  • distress, and made the tongue of the stammerer speak plain----when I
  • shall arrive at this dreaded page, deal not with me, then, with a
  • stinted hand.
  • CHAPTER XXVI
  • The corporal, who the night before had resolved in his mind to supply
  • the grand _desideratum_, of keeping up something like an incessant
  • firing upon the enemy during the heat of the attack, --had no further
  • idea in his fancy at that time, than a contrivance of smoking tobacco
  • against the town, out of one of my uncle _Toby’s_ six field-pieces,
  • which were planted on each side of his sentry-box; the means of
  • effecting which occurring to his fancy at the time same, though he had
  • pledged his cap, he thought it in no danger from the miscarriage of his
  • projects.
  • Upon turning it this way, and that, a little in his mind, he soon began
  • to find out, that by means of his two _Turkish_ tobacco-pipes, with the
  • supplement of three smaller tubes of wash-leather at each of their lower
  • ends, to be tagg’d by the same number of tin-pipes fitted to the
  • touch-holes, and sealed with clay next the cannon, and then tied
  • hermetically with waxed silk at their several insertions into the
  • _Morocco_ tube, --he should be able to fire the six field-pieces all
  • together, and with the same ease as to fire one.------
  • ----Let no man say from what taggs and jaggs hints may not be cut out
  • for the advancement of human knowledge. Let no man, who has read my
  • father’s first and second _beds of justice_, ever rise up and say again,
  • from collision of what kinds of bodies light may or may not be struck
  • out, to carry the arts and sciences up to perfection. ----Heaven! thou
  • knowest how I love them; ----thou knowest the secrets of my heart, and
  • that I would this moment give my shirt ----Thou art a fool, _Shandy_,
  • says _Eugenius_, for thou hast but a dozen in the world, --and ’twill
  • break thy set.----
  • No matter for that, _Eugenius_; I would give the shirt off my back to be
  • burned into tinder, were it only to satisfy one feverish enquirer, how
  • many sparks at one good stroke, a good flint and steel could strike into
  • the tail of it. ----Think ye not that in striking these _in_, --he
  • might, peradventure, strike something _out?_ as sure as a gun.----
  • ----But this project, by the bye.
  • The corporal sat up the best part of the night, in bringing _his_ to
  • perfection; and having made a sufficient proof of his cannon, with
  • charging them to the top with tobacco, --he went with contentment to
  • bed.
  • CHAPTER XXVII
  • The corporal had slipped out about ten minutes before my uncle _Toby_,
  • in order to fix his apparatus, and just give the enemy a shot or two
  • before my uncle _Toby_ came.
  • He had drawn the six field-pieces for this end, all close up together in
  • front of my uncle _Toby’s_ sentry-box, leaving only an interval of about
  • a yard and a half betwixt the three, on the right and left, for the
  • convenience of charging, &c. --and the sake possibly of two batteries,
  • which he might think double the honour of one.
  • In the rear and facing this opening, with his back to the door of the
  • sentry-box, for fear of being flanked, had the corporal wisely taken his
  • post: ----He held the ivory pipe, appertaining to the battery on the
  • right, betwixt the finger and thumb of his right hand, --and the ebony
  • pipe tipp’d with silver, which appertained to the battery on the left,
  • betwixt the finger and thumb of the other----and with his right knee
  • fixed firm upon the ground, as if in the front rank of his platoon, was
  • the corporal with his Montero-cap upon his head, furiously playing off
  • his two cross batteries at the same time against the counter-guard,
  • which faced the counter-scarp, where the attack was to be made that
  • morning. His first intention, as I said, was no more than giving the
  • enemy a single puff or two; --but the pleasure of the _puffs_, as well
  • as the _puffing_, had insensibly got hold of the corporal, and drawn him
  • on from puff to puff, into the very height of the attack, by the time my
  • uncle _Toby_ joined him.
  • ’Twas well for my father, that my uncle _Toby_ had not his will to make
  • that day.
  • CHAPTER XXVIII
  • My uncle _Toby_ took the ivory pipe out of the corporal’s hand, --looked
  • at it for half a minute, and returned it.
  • In less than two minutes, my uncle _Toby_ took the pipe from the
  • corporal again, and raised it half way to his mouth----then hastily gave
  • it back a second time.
  • The corporal redoubled the attack, ----my uncle _Toby_ smiled, ----then
  • looked grave, ----then smiled for a moment, ----then looked serious for
  • a long time; ----Give me hold of the ivory pipe, _Trim_, said my uncle
  • _Toby_----my uncle _Toby_ put it to his lips, ----drew it back directly,
  • --gave a peep over the horn-beam hedge; ----never did my uncle _Toby’s_
  • mouth water so much for a pipe in his life. ----My uncle _Toby_ retired
  • into the sentry-box with the pipe in his hand.------
  • ----Dear uncle _Toby!_ don’t go into the sentry-box with the pipe,
  • --there’s no trusting a man’s self with such a thing in such a corner.
  • CHAPTER XXIX
  • I beg the reader will assist me here, to wheel off my uncle _Toby’s_
  • ordnance behind the scenes, ----to remove his sentry-box, and clear the
  • theatre, _if possible_, of horn-works and half moons, and get the rest
  • of his military apparatus out of the way; ----that done, my dear friend
  • _Garrick_, we’ll snuff the candles bright, --sweep the stage with a new
  • broom, --draw up the curtain, and exhibit my uncle _Toby_ dressed in a
  • new character, throughout which the world can have no idea how he will
  • act: and yet, if pity be a-kin to love, --and bravery no alien to it,
  • you have seen enough of my uncle _Toby_ in these, to trace these family
  • likenesses betwixt the two passions (in case there is one) to your
  • heart’s content.
  • Vain science! thou assistest us in no case of this kind--and thou
  • puzzlest us in every one.
  • There was, Madam, in my uncle _Toby_, a singleness of heart which misled
  • him so far out of the little serpentine tracks in which things of this
  • nature usually go on; you can--you can have no conception of it: with
  • this, there was a plainness and simplicity of thinking, with such an
  • unmistrusting ignorance of the plies and foldings of the heart of woman;
  • ----and so naked and defenceless did he stand before you (when a siege
  • was out of his head), that you might have stood behind any one of your
  • serpentine walks, and shot my uncle _Toby_ ten times in a day, through
  • his liver, if nine times in a day, Madam, had not served your purpose.
  • With all this, Madam, --and what confounded everything as much on the
  • other hand, my uncle _Toby_ had that unparalleled modesty of nature I
  • once told you of, and which, by the bye, stood eternal sentry upon his
  • feelings, that you might as soon ----But where am I going? these
  • reflections crowd in upon me ten pages at least too soon, and take up
  • that time, which I ought to bestow upon facts.
  • CHAPTER XXX
  • Of the few legitimate sons of _Adam_ whose breasts never felt what the
  • sting of love was, --(maintaining first, all mysogynists to be
  • bastards)--the greatest heroes of ancient and modern story have carried
  • off amongst them nine parts in ten of the honour; and I wish for their
  • sakes I had the key of my study, out of my draw-well, only for five
  • minutes, to tell you their names--recollect them I cannot--so be content
  • to accept of these, for the present, in their stead.------
  • There was the great king _Aldrovandus_, and _Bosphorus_, and
  • _Cappadocius_, and _Dardanus_, and _Pontus_, and _Asius_, ----to say
  • nothing of the iron-hearted _Charles_ the XIIth, whom the Countess of
  • K***** herself could make nothing of. ----There was _Babylonicus_, and
  • _Mediterraneus_, and _Polixenes_, and _Persicus_, and _Prusicus_, not
  • one of whom (except _Cappadocius_ and _Pontus_, who were both a little
  • suspected) ever once bowed down his breast to the goddess ----The truth
  • is, they had all of them something else to do--and so had my uncle
  • _Toby_--till Fate--till Fate I say, envying his name the glory of being
  • handed down to posterity with _Aldrovandus’s_ and the rest, --she basely
  • patched up the peace of _Utrecht_.
  • ----Believe me, Sirs, ’twas the worst deed she did that year.
  • CHAPTER XXXI
  • Amongst the many ill consequences of the treaty of _Utrecht_, it was
  • within a point of giving my uncle _Toby_ a surfeit of sieges; and though
  • he recovered his appetite afterwards, yet _Calais_ itself left not a
  • deeper scar in _Mary’s_ heart, than _Utrecht_ upon my uncle _Toby’s_. To
  • the end of his life he never could hear _Utrecht_ mentioned upon any
  • account whatever, --or so much as read an article of news extracted out
  • of the _Utrecht Gazette_, without fetching a sigh, as if his heart would
  • break in twain.
  • My father, who was a great MOTIVE-MONGER, and consequently a very
  • dangerous person for a man to sit by, either laughing or crying, --for
  • he generally knew your motive for doing both, much better than you knew
  • it yourself--would always console my uncle _Toby_ upon these occasions,
  • in a way, which shewed plainly, he imagined my uncle _Toby_ grieved for
  • nothing in the whole affair, so much as the loss of his _hobby-horse_.
  • ----Never mind, brother _Toby_, he would say, --by God’s blessing we
  • shall have another war break out again some of these days; and when it
  • does, --the belligerent powers, if they would hang themselves, cannot
  • keep us out of play. ----I defy ’em, my dear _Toby_, he would add, to
  • take countries without taking towns, ----or towns without sieges.
  • My uncle _Toby_ never took this back-stroke of my father’s at his
  • hobby-horse kindly. ----He thought the stroke ungenerous; and the more
  • so, because in striking the horse he hit the rider too, and in the most
  • dishonourable part a blow could fall; so that upon these occasions, he
  • always laid down his pipe upon the table with more fire to defend
  • himself than common.
  • I told the reader, this time two years, that my uncle _Toby_ was not
  • eloquent; and in the very same page gave an instance to the contrary:
  • ----I repeat the observation, and a fact which contradicts it again.
  • --He was not eloquent, --it was not easy to my uncle _Toby_ to make long
  • harangues, --and he hated florid ones; but there were occasions where
  • the stream overflowed the man, and ran so counter to its usual course,
  • that in some parts my uncle _Toby_, for a time, was at least equal to
  • _Tertullus_----but in others, in my own opinion, infinitely above him.
  • My father was so highly pleased with one of these apologetical orations
  • of my uncle _Toby’s_, which he had delivered one evening before him and
  • _Yorick_, that he wrote it down before he went to bed.
  • I have had the good fortune to meet with it amongst my father’s papers,
  • with here and there an insertion of his own, betwixt two crooks, thus
  • [ ], and is endorsed,
  • MY BROTHER TOBY’S JUSTIFICATION OF HIS OWN PRINCIPLES AND CONDUCT IN
  • WISHING TO CONTINUE THE WAR
  • I may safely say, I have read over this apologetical oration of my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ a hundred times, and think it so fine a model of defence, --and
  • shows so sweet a temperament of gallantry and good principles in him,
  • that I give it the world, word for word (interlineations and all), as I
  • find it.
  • CHAPTER XXXII
  • MY UNCLE TOBY’S APOLOGETICAL ORATION
  • I am not insensible, brother _Shandy_, that when a man whose profession
  • is arms, wishes, as I have done, for war, --it has an ill aspect to the
  • world; ----and that, how just and right soever his motives and
  • intentions may be, --he stands in an uneasy posture in vindicating
  • himself from private views in doing it.
  • For this cause, if a soldier is a prudent man, which he may be without
  • being a jot the less brave, he will be sure not to utter his wish in the
  • hearing of an enemy; for say what he will, an enemy will not believe
  • him. ----He will be cautious of doing it even to a friend, --lest he may
  • suffer in his esteem: ----But if his heart is overcharged, and a secret
  • sigh for arms must have its vent, he will reserve it for the ear of a
  • brother, who knows his character to the bottom, and what his true
  • notions, dispositions, and principles of honour are: What, I _hope_, I
  • have been in all these, brother _Shandy_, would be unbecoming in me to
  • say: ----much worse, I know, have I been than I ought, --and something
  • worse, perhaps, than I think: But such as I am, you, my dear brother
  • _Shandy_, who have sucked the same breasts with me, --and with whom I
  • have been brought up from my cradle, --and from whose knowledge, from
  • the first hours of our boyish pastimes, down to this, I have concealed
  • no one action of my life, and scarce a thought in it ----Such as I am,
  • brother, you must by this time know me, with all my vices, and with all
  • my weaknesses too, whether of my age, my temper, my passions, or my
  • understanding.
  • Tell me then, my dear brother _Shandy_, upon which of them it is, that
  • when I condemned the peace of _Utrecht_, and grieved the war was not
  • carried on with vigour a little longer, you should think your brother
  • did it upon unworthy views; or that in wishing for war, he should be bad
  • enough to wish more of his fellow-creatures slain, --more slaves made,
  • and more families driven from their peaceful habitations, merely for his
  • own pleasure: ----Tell me, brother _Shandy_, upon what one deed of mine
  • do you ground it? [_The devil a deed do I know of, dear _Toby_, but one
  • for a hundred pounds, which I lent thee to carry on these cursed
  • sieges._]
  • If, when I was a school-boy, I could not hear a drum beat, but my heart
  • beat with it--was it my fault? Did I plant the propensity there? ----Did
  • I sound the alarm within, or Nature?
  • When _Guy_, Earl of _Warwick_, and _Parismus_ and _Parismenus_, and
  • _Valentine_ and _Orson_, and the _Seven Champions of England_, were
  • handed around the school, --were they not all purchased with my own
  • pocket-money? Was that selfish, brother _Shandy?_ When we read over the
  • siege of _Troy_, which lasted ten years and eight months, ----though
  • with such a train of artillery as we had at _Namur_, the town might have
  • been carried in a week--was I not as much concerned for the destruction
  • of the _Greeks_ and _Trojans_ as any boy of the whole school? Had I not
  • three strokes of a ferula given me, two on my right hand, and one on my
  • left, for calling _Helena_ a bitch for it? Did any one of you shed more
  • tears for _Hector?_ And when king _Priam_ came to the camp to beg his
  • body, and returned weeping back to _Troy_ without it, --you know,
  • brother, I could not eat my dinner.------
  • ----Did that bespeak me cruel? Or because, brother _Shandy_, my blood
  • flew out into the camp, and my heart panted for war, --was it a proof it
  • could not ache for the distresses of war too?
  • O brother! ’tis one thing for a soldier to gather laurels, --and ’tis
  • another to scatter cypress. ----[_Who told thee, my dear _Toby_, that
  • cypress was used by the antients on mournful occasions?_]
  • ----’Tis one thing, brother _Shandy_, for a soldier to hazard his own
  • life--to leap first down into the trench, where he is sure to be cut in
  • pieces: ----’Tis one thing, from public spirit and a thirst of glory, to
  • enter the breach the first man, --To stand in the foremost rank, and
  • march bravely on with drums and trumpets, and colours flying about his
  • ears: ----’Tis one thing, I say, brother _Shandy_, to do this, --and
  • ’tis another thing to reflect on the miseries of war; --to view the
  • desolations of whole countries, and consider the intolerable fatigues
  • and hardships which the soldier himself, the instrument who works them,
  • is forced (for sixpence a day, if he can get it) to undergo.
  • Need I be told, dear _Yorick_, as I was by you, in _Le Fever’s_ funeral
  • sermon, _That so soft and gentle a creature, born to love, to mercy, and
  • kindness, as man is, was not shaped for this?_ ----But why did you not
  • add, _Yorick_, --if not by NATURE--that he is so by NECESSITY? ----For
  • what is war? what is it, _Yorick_, when fought as ours has been, upon
  • principles of _liberty_, and upon principles of _honour_----what is it,
  • but the getting together of quiet and harmless people, with their swords
  • in their hands, to keep the ambitious and the turbulent within bounds?
  • And heaven is my witness, brother _Shandy_, that the pleasure I have
  • taken in these things, --and that infinite delight, in particular, which
  • has attended my sieges in my bowling-green, has arose within me, and I
  • hope in the corporal too, from the consciousness we both had, that in
  • carrying them on, we were answering the great ends of our creation.
  • CHAPTER XXXIII
  • I told the Christian reader ----I say _Christian_----hoping he is
  • one----and if he is not, I am sorry for it----and only beg he will
  • consider the matter with himself, and not lay the blame entirely upon
  • this book----
  • I told him, Sir----for in good truth, when a man is telling a story in
  • the strange way I do mine, he is obliged continually to be going
  • backwards and forwards to keep all tight together in the reader’s
  • fancy----which, for my own part, if I did not take heed to do more than
  • at first, there is so much unfixed and equivocal matter starting up,
  • with so many breaks and gaps in it, --and so little service do the stars
  • afford, which, nevertheless, I hang up in some of the darkest passages,
  • knowing that the world is apt to lose its way, with all the lights the
  • sun itself at noon-day can give it----and now you see, I am lost
  • myself!------
  • ----But ’tis my father’s fault; and whenever my brains come to be
  • dissected, you will perceive, without spectacles, that he has left a
  • large uneven thread, as you sometimes see in an unsaleable piece of
  • cambrick, running along the whole length of the web, and so untowardly,
  • you cannot so much as cut out a * *, (here I hang up a couple of lights
  • again)----or a fillet, or a thumb-stall, but it is seen or felt.------
  • _Quanto id diligentius in liberis procreandis cavendum_, sayeth
  • _Cardan_. All which being considered, and that you see ’tis morally
  • impracticable for me to wind this round to where I set out------
  • I begin the chapter over again.
  • CHAPTER XXXIV
  • I told the Christian reader in the beginning of the chapter which
  • preceded my uncle _Toby’s_ apologetical oration, --though in a different
  • trope from what I should make use of now, That the peace of _Utrecht_
  • was within an ace of creating the same shyness betwixt my uncle _Toby_
  • and his hobby-horse, as it did betwixt the queen and the rest of the
  • confederating powers.
  • There is an indignant way in which a man sometimes dismounts his horse,
  • which as good as says to him, “I’ll go afoot, Sir, all the days of my
  • life, before I would ride a single mile upon your back again.” Now my
  • uncle _Toby_ could not be said to dismount his horse in this manner; for
  • in strictness of language, he could not be said to dismount his horse at
  • all----his horse rather flung him----and somewhat _viciously_, which
  • made my uncle _Toby_ take it ten times more unkindly. Let this matter be
  • settled by state-jockies as they like. ----It created, I say, a sort of
  • shyness betwixt my uncle _Toby_ and his hobby-horse. ----He had no
  • occasion for him from the month of _March_ to _November_, which was the
  • summer after the articles were signed, except it was now and then to
  • take a short ride out, just to see that the fortifications and harbour
  • of _Dunkirk_ were demolished, according to stipulation.
  • The _French_ were so backwards all that summer in setting about that
  • affair, and Monsieur _Tugghe_, the Deputy from the magistrates of
  • _Dunkirk_, presented so many affecting petitions to the queen,
  • --beseeching her majesty to cause only her thunder-bolts to fall upon
  • the martial works, which might have incurred her displeasure, --but to
  • spare--to spare the mole, for the mole’s sake; which, in its naked
  • situation, could be no more than an object of pity----and the queen (who
  • was but a woman) being of a pitiful disposition, --and her ministers
  • also, they not wishing in their hearts to have the town dismantled, for
  • these private reasons, * * * *
  • * * * * * * * ----
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * ; so that the whole went heavily on with my uncle
  • _Toby_; insomuch, that it was not within three full months, after he and
  • the corporal had constructed the town, and put it in a condition to be
  • destroyed, that the several commandants, commissaries, deputies,
  • negociators, and intendants, would permit him to set about it. ----Fatal
  • interval of inactivity!
  • The corporal was for beginning the demolition, by making a breach in the
  • ramparts, or main fortifications of the town ----No, --that will never
  • do, corporal, said my uncle _Toby_, for in going that way to work with
  • the town, the _English_ garrison will not be safe in it an hour; because
  • if the _French_ are treacherous ----They are as treacherous as devils,
  • an’ please your honour, said the corporal ----It gives me concern always
  • when I hear it, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_, --for they don’t want
  • personal bravery; and if a breach is made in the ramparts, they may
  • enter it, and make themselves masters of the place when they please:
  • ----Let them enter it, said the corporal, lifting up his pioneer’s spade
  • in both his hands, as if he was going to lay about him with it, --let
  • them enter, an’ please your honour, if they dare. ----In cases like
  • this, corporal, said my uncle _Toby_, slipping his right hand down to
  • the middle of his cane, and holding it afterwards truncheon-wise with
  • his forefinger extended, ----’tis no part of the consideration of a
  • commandant, what the enemy dare, --or what they dare not do; he must act
  • with prudence. We will begin with the outworks both towards the sea and
  • the land, and particularly with fort _Louis_, the most distant of them
  • all, and demolish it first, --and the rest, one by one, both on our
  • right and left, as we retreat towards the town; ----then we’ll demolish
  • the mole, --next fill up the harbour, --then retire into the citadel,
  • and blow it up into the air: and having done that, corporal, we’ll
  • embark for _England_. ----We are there, quoth the corporal, recollecting
  • himself ----Very true, said my uncle _Toby_--looking at the church.
  • CHAPTER XXXV
  • A delusive, delicious consultation or two of this kind, betwixt my uncle
  • _Toby_ and _Trim_, upon the demolition of _Dunkirk_, --for a moment
  • rallied back the ideas of those pleasures, which were slipping from
  • under him: ----still--still all went on heavily----the magic left the
  • mind the weaker --STILLNESS, with SILENCE at her back, entered the
  • solitary parlour, and drew their gauzy mantle over my uncle _Toby’s_
  • head; ----and LISTLESSNESS, with her lax fibre and undirected eye, sat
  • quietly down beside him in his arm-chair. ----No longer _Amberg_ and
  • _Rhinberg_, and _Limbourg_, and _Huy_, and _Bonn_, in one year, --and
  • the prospect of _Landen_, and _Trerebach_, and _Drusen_, and
  • _Dendermond_, the next, --hurried on the blood: --No longer did saps,
  • and mines, and blinds, and gabions, and palisadoes, keep out this fair
  • enemy of man’s repose: ----No more could my uncle _Toby_, after passing
  • the _French_ lines, as he eat his egg at supper, from thence break into
  • the heart of _France_, --cross over the _Oyes_, and with all _Picardie_
  • open behind him, march up to the gates of _Paris_, and fall asleep with
  • nothing but ideas of glory: ----No more was he to dream he had fixed the
  • royal standard upon the tower of the _Bastile_, and awake with it
  • streaming in his head.
  • ----Softer visions, --gentler vibrations stole sweetly in upon his
  • slumbers; --the trumpet of war fell out of his hands, --he took up the
  • lute, sweet instrument! of all others the most delicate! the most
  • difficult! ----how wilt thou touch it, my dear uncle _Toby?_
  • CHAPTER XXXVI
  • Now, because I have once or twice said, in my inconsiderate way of
  • talking, That I was confident the following memoirs of my uncle _Toby’s_
  • courtship of widow _Wadman_, whenever I got time to write them, would
  • turn out one of the most complete systems, both of the elementary and
  • practical part of love and love-making, that ever was addressed to the
  • world----are you to imagine from thence, that I shall set out with a
  • description of _what love is?_ whether part God and part Devil, as
  • _Plotinus_ will have it----
  • ----Or by a more critical equation, and supposing the whole of love to
  • be as ten----to determine with _Ficinus_, “_How many parts of it--the
  • one, --and how many the other_;” --or whether it is _all of it one great
  • Devil_, from head to tail, as _Plato_ has taken upon him to pronounce;
  • concerning which conceit of his, I shall not offer my opinion: --but my
  • opinion of _Plato_ is this; that he appears, from this instance, to have
  • been a man of much the same temper and way of reasoning with doctor
  • _Baynyard_, who being a great enemy to blisters, as imagining that half
  • a dozen of ’em at once, would draw a man as surely to his grave, as a
  • herse and six--rashly concluded, that the Devil himself was nothing in
  • the world, but one great bouncing _Canthari[di]s_.------
  • I have nothing to say to people who allow themselves this monstrous
  • liberty in arguing, but what _Nazianzen_ cried out (_that is,
  • polemically_) to _Philagrius_----
  • “Εὖγε!” _O rare! ’tis fine reasoning, Sir, indeed!_-- “ὅτι φιλοσοφεῖς ἐν
  • Πάθεσι”--_and most nobly do you aim at truth, when you philosophize
  • about it in your moods and passions._
  • Nor is it to be imagined, for the same reason, I should stop to inquire,
  • whether love is a disease, ----or embroil myself with _Rhasis_ and
  • _Dioscorides_, whether the seat of it is in the brain or liver;
  • --because this would lead me on, to an examination of the two very
  • opposite manners, in which patients have been treated----the one, of
  • _Aætius_, who always begun with a cooling clyster of hempseed and
  • bruised cucumbers; --and followed on with thin potations of
  • water-lillies and purslane--to which he added a pinch of snuff of the
  • herb _Hanea_; --and where _Aætius_ durst venture it, --his topaz-ring.
  • ----The other, that of _Gordonius_, who (in his cap. 15. _de Amore_)
  • directs they should be thrashed, “_ad putorem usque_,” ----till they
  • stink again.
  • These are disquisitions, which my father, who had laid in a great stock
  • of knowledge of this kind, will be very busy with in the progress of my
  • uncle _Toby’s_ affairs: I must anticipate thus much, That from his
  • theories of love, (with which, by the way, he contrived to crucify my
  • uncle _Toby’s_ mind, almost as much as his amours themselves)--he took a
  • single step into practice; --and by means of a camphorated cerecloth,
  • which he found means to impose upon the taylor for buckram, whilst he
  • was making my uncle _Toby_ a new pair of breeches, he produced
  • _Gordonius’s_ effect upon my uncle _Toby_ without the disgrace.
  • What changes this produced, will be read in its proper place: all that
  • is needful to be added to the anecdote, is this ----That whatever effect
  • it had upon my uncle _Toby_, ----it had a vile effect upon the house;
  • ----and if my uncle _Toby_ had not smoaked it down as he did, it might
  • have had a vile effect upon my father too.
  • CHAPTER XXXVII
  • ----’Twill come out of itself by and bye. ----All I contend for is, that
  • I am not obliged to set out with a definition of what love is; and so
  • long as I can go on with my story intelligibly, with the help of the
  • word itself, without any other idea to it, than what I have in common
  • with the rest of the world, why should I differ from it a moment before
  • the time? ----When I can get on no further, ----and find myself
  • entangled on all sides of this mystic labyrinth, --my Opinion will then
  • come in, in course, --and lead me out.
  • At present, I hope I shall be sufficiently understood, in telling the
  • reader, my uncle _Toby_ _fell in love_:
  • --Not that the phrase is at all to my liking: for to say a man is
  • _fallen_ in love, --or that he is _deeply_ in love, --or up to the ears
  • in love, --and sometimes even _over head and ears in it_, --carries an
  • idiomatical kind of implication, that love is a thing _below_ a man:
  • --this is recurring again to _Plato’s_ opinion, which, with all his
  • divinityship, --I hold to be damnable and heretical: --and so much for
  • that.
  • Let love therefore be what it will, --my uncle _Toby_ fell into it.
  • ----And possibly, gentle reader, with such a temptation--so wouldst
  • thou: For never did thy eyes behold, or thy concupiscence covet anything
  • in this world, more concupiscible than widow _Wadman_.
  • CHAPTER XXXVIII
  • To conceive this right, --call for pen and ink--here’s paper ready to
  • your hand. ----Sit down, Sir, paint her to your own mind----as like your
  • mistress as you can----as unlike your wife as your conscience will let
  • you--’tis all one to me----please but your own fancy in it.
  • *
  • *
  • *
  • *
  • *
  • *
  • ------Was ever any thing in Nature so sweet! --so exquisite!
  • ----Then, dear Sir, how could my uncle _Toby_ resist it?
  • Thrice happy book! thou wilt have one page, at least, within thy covers,
  • which MALICE will not blacken, and which IGNORANCE cannot misrepresent.
  • CHAPTER XXXIX
  • As _Susannah_ was informed by an express from Mrs. _Bridget_, of my
  • uncle _Toby’s_ falling in love with her mistress fifteen days before it
  • happened, --the contents of which express, _Susannah_ communicated to my
  • mother the next day, --it has just given me an opportunity of entering
  • upon my uncle _Toby’s_ amours a fortnight before their existence.
  • I have an article of news to tell you, Mr. _Shandy_, quoth my mother,
  • which will surprise you greatly.----
  • Now my father was then holding one of his second beds of justice, and
  • was musing within himself about the hardships of matrimony, as my mother
  • broke silence.------
  • “----My brother _Toby_, quoth she, is going to be married to Mrs.
  • _Wadman_.”
  • ----Then he will never, quoth my father, be able to lie _diagonally_ in
  • his bed again as long as he lives.
  • It was a consuming vexation to my father, that my mother never asked the
  • meaning of a thing she did not understand.
  • ----That she is not a woman of science, my father would say--is her
  • misfortune--but she might ask a question.--
  • My mother never did. ----In short, she went out of the world at last
  • without knowing whether it turned _round_, or stood _still_. ----My
  • father had officiously told her above a thousand times which way it was,
  • --but she always forgot.
  • For these reasons, a discourse seldom went on much further betwixt them,
  • than a proposition, --a reply, and a rejoinder; at the end of which, it
  • generally took breath for a few minutes (as in the affair of the
  • breeches), and then went on again.
  • If he marries, ’twill be the worse for us, --quoth my mother.
  • Not a cherry-stone, said my father, --he may as well batter away his
  • means upon that, as any thing else.
  • ----To be sure, said my mother: so here ended the proposition, --the
  • reply, --and the rejoinder, I told you of.
  • It will be some amusement to him, too, ----said my father.
  • A very great one, answered my mother, if he should have children.----
  • ----Lord have mercy upon me, --said my father to himself----
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * *
  • CHAPTER XL
  • I am now beginning to get fairly into my work; and by the help of a
  • vegetable diet, with a few of the cold seeds, I make no doubt but I
  • shall be able to go on with my uncle _Toby’s_ story, and my own, in a
  • tolerable strait line. Now,
  • [Illustration:
  • _Inv. T. S._ _Scul. T. S._]
  • These were the four lines I moved in through my first, second, third,
  • and fourth volumes.[6.4] --In the fifth volume I have been very good,
  • ----the precise line I have described in it being this:
  • [Illustration]
  • By which it appears, that except at the curve, marked A, where I took a
  • trip to _Navarre_, --and the indented curve _B_, which is the short
  • airing when I was there with the Lady _Baussiere_ and her page, --I have
  • not taken the least frisk of a digression, till _John de la Casse’s_
  • devils led me the round you see marked D. --for as for _c c c c c_ they
  • are nothing but parentheses, and the common _ins_ and _outs_ incident to
  • the lives of the greatest ministers of state; and when compared with
  • what men have done, --or with my own transgressions at the letters
  • A B D--they vanish into nothing.
  • In this last volume I have done better still--for from the end of _Le
  • Fever’s_ episode, to the beginning of my uncle _Toby’s_ campaigns, --I
  • have scarce stepped a yard out of my way.
  • If I mend at this rate, it is not impossible----by the good leave of his
  • grace of _Benevento’s_ devils----but I may arrive hereafter at the
  • excellency of going on even thus:
  • [Illustration (full-width line)]
  • which is a line drawn as straight as I could draw it, by a
  • writing-master’s ruler (borrowed for that purpose), turning neither to
  • the right hand or to the left.
  • This _right line_, --the path-way for Christians to walk in! say
  • divines----
  • ----The emblem of moral rectitude! says _Cicero_----
  • ----The _best line!_ say cabbage planters----is the shortest line, says
  • _Archimedes_, which can be drawn from one given point to another.----
  • I wish your ladyships would lay this matter to heart, in your next
  • birth-day suits!
  • ----What a journey!
  • Pray can you tell me, --that is, without anger, before I write my
  • chapter upon straight lines----by what mistake----who told them so----or
  • how it has come to pass, that your men of wit and genius have all along
  • confounded this line, with the line of GRAVITATION?
  • [Footnote 6.4: Alluding to the first edition.]
  • BOOK VII
  • CHAPTER I
  • No ----I think, I said, I would write two volumes every year, provided
  • the vile cough which then tormented me, and which to this hour I dread
  • worse than the devil, would but give me leave--and in another
  • place--(but where, I can’t recollect now) speaking of my book as a
  • _machine_, and laying my pen and ruler down cross-wise upon the table,
  • in order to gain the greater credit to it --I swore it should be kept a
  • going at that rate these forty years, if it pleased but the fountain of
  • life to bless me so long with health and good spirits.
  • Now as for my spirits, little have I to lay to their charge--nay so very
  • little (unless the mounting me upon a long stick and playing the fool
  • with me nineteen hours out of the twenty-four, be accusations) that on
  • the contrary, I have much--much to thank ’em for: cheerily have ye made
  • me tread the path of life with all the burthens of it (except its cares)
  • upon my back; in no one moment of my existence, that I remember, have ye
  • once deserted me, or tinged the objects which came in my way, either
  • with sable, or with a sickly green; in dangers ye gilded my horizon with
  • hope, and when DEATH himself knocked at my door--ye bad him come again;
  • and in so gay a tone of careless indifference did ye do it, that he
  • doubted of his commission----
  • “--There must certainly be some mistake in this matter,” quoth he.
  • Now there is nothing in this world I abominate worse, than to be
  • interrupted in a story----and I was that moment telling _Eugenius_ a
  • most tawdry one in my way, of a nun who fancied herself a shell-fish,
  • and of a monk damn’d for eating a muscle, and was shewing him the
  • grounds and justice of the procedure----
  • “--Did ever so grave a personage get into so vile a scrape?” quoth
  • Death. Thou hast had a narrow escape, _Tristram_, said _Eugenius_,
  • taking hold of my hand as I finished my story----
  • But there is no _living_, _Eugenius_, replied I, at this rate; for as
  • this _son of a whore_ has found out my lodgings----
  • --You call him rightly, said _Eugenius_, --for by sin, we are told, he
  • enter’d the world ----I care not which way he enter’d, quoth I, provided
  • he be not in such a hurry to take me out with him--for I have forty
  • volumes to write, and forty thousand things to say and do which no body
  • in the world will say and do for me, except thyself; and as thou seest
  • he has got me by the throat (for _Eugenius_ could scarce hear me speak
  • across the table), and that I am no match for him in the open field, had
  • I not better, whilst these few scatter’d spirits remain, and these two
  • spider legs of mine (holding one of them up to him) are able to support
  • me--had I not better, _Eugenius_, fly for my life? ’Tis my advice, my
  • dear _Tristram_, said _Eugenius_ --Then by heaven! I will lead him a
  • dance he little thinks of----for I will gallop, quoth I, without looking
  • once behind me, to the banks of the _Garonne_; and if I hear him
  • clattering at my heels ----I’ll scamper away to mount _Vesuvius_----from
  • thence to _Joppa_, and from _Joppa_ to the world’s end; where, if he
  • follows me, I pray God he may break his neck----
  • --He runs more risk _there_, said _Eugenius_, than thou.
  • _Eugenius’s_ wit and affection brought blood into the cheek from whence
  • it had been some months banish’d----’twas a vile moment to bid adieu in;
  • he led me to my chaise----_Allons!_ said I; the postboy gave a crack
  • with his whip----off I went like a cannon, and in half a dozen bounds
  • got into _Dover_.
  • CHAPTER II
  • Now hang it! quoth I, as I look’d towards the _French_ coast--a man
  • should know something of his own country too, before he goes
  • abroad----and I never gave a peep into _Rochester_ church, or took
  • notice of the dock of _Chatham_, or visited St. _Thomas_ at
  • _Canterbury_, though they all three laid in my way----
  • --But mine, indeed, is a particular case----
  • So without arguing the matter further with _Thomas o’ Becket_, or any
  • one else --I skip’d into the boat, and in five minutes we got under
  • sail, and scudded away like the wind.
  • Pray, captain, quoth I, as I was going down into the cabin, is a man
  • never overtaken by _Death_ in this passage?
  • Why, there is not time for a man to be sick in it, replied he ----What a
  • cursed lyar! for I am sick as a horse, quoth I, already----what a brain!
  • ----upside down! ----hey-day! the cells are broke loose one into
  • another, and the blood, and the lymph, and the nervous juices, with the
  • fix’d and volatile salts, are all jumbled into one mass----good G--!
  • everything turns round in it like a thousand whirlpools ----I’d give a
  • shilling to know if I shan’t write the clearer for it----
  • Sick! sick! sick! sick!----
  • --When shall we get to land? captain--they have hearts like stones ----O
  • I am deadly sick! ----reach me that thing, boy----’tis the most
  • discomfiting sickness ----I wish I was at the bottom --Madam! how is it
  • with you? Undone! undone! un ----O! undone! sir ----What the first time?
  • ----No, ’tis the second, third, sixth, tenth time, sir, ----hey-day!
  • --what a trampling over head! --hollo! cabin boy! what’s the matter?--
  • The wind chopp’d about! s’Death! --then I shall meet him full in the
  • face.
  • What luck! --’tis chopp’d about again, master ----O the devil chop it----
  • Captain, quoth she, for heaven’s sake, let us get ashore.
  • CHAPTER III
  • It is a great inconvenience to a man in a haste, that there are three
  • distinct roads between _Calais_ and _Paris_, in behalf of which there is
  • so much to be said by the several deputies from the towns which lie
  • along them, that half a day is easily lost in settling which you’ll
  • take.
  • First, the road by _Lisle_ and _Arras_, which is the most about----but
  • most interesting and instructing.
  • The second, that by _Amiens_, which you may go, if you would see
  • _Chantilly_----
  • And that by _Beauvais_, which you may go, if you will.
  • For this reason a great many chuse to go by _Beauvais_.
  • CHAPTER IV
  • “Now before I quit _Calais_,” a travel-writer would say, “it would not
  • be amiss to give some account of it.” --Now I think it very much
  • amiss--that a man cannot go quietly through a town and let it alone,
  • when it does not meddle with him, but that he must be turning about and
  • drawing his pen at every kennel he crosses over, merely o’ my conscience
  • for the sake of drawing it; because, if we may judge from what has been
  • wrote of these things, by all who have _wrote and gallop’d_--or who have
  • _gallop’d and wrote_, which is a different way still; or who, for more
  • expedition than the rest, have _wrote galloping_, which is the way I do
  • at present----from the great _Addison_, who did it with his satchel of
  • school books hanging at his a--, and galling his beast’s crupper at
  • every stroke--there is not a gallopper of us all who might not have gone
  • on ambling quietly in his own ground (in case he had any), and have
  • wrote all he had to write, dryshod, as well as not.
  • For my own part, as heaven is my judge, and to which I shall ever make
  • my last appeal --I know no more of _Calais_ (except the little my barber
  • told me of it as he was whetting his razor), than I do this moment of
  • _Grand Cairo_; for it was dusky in the evening when I landed, and dark
  • as pitch in the morning when I set out, and yet by merely knowing what
  • is what, and by drawing this from that in one part of the town, and by
  • spelling and putting this and that together in another --I would lay any
  • travelling odds, that I this moment write a chapter upon _Calais_ as
  • long as my arm; and with so distinct and satisfactory a detail of every
  • item, which is worth a stranger’s curiosity in the town--that you would
  • take me for the town-clerk of _Calais_ itself--and where, sir, would be
  • the wonder? was not _Democritus_, who laughed ten times more than
  • I--town-clerk of _Abdera?_ and was not (I forget his name) who had more
  • discretion than us both, town-clerk of _Ephesus?_ ----it should be
  • penn’d moreover, sir, with so much knowledge and good sense, and truth,
  • and precision----
  • --Nay--if you don’t believe me, you may read the chapter for your pains.
  • CHAPTER V
  • _Calais_, _Calatium_, _Calusium_, _Calesium_.
  • This town, if we may trust its archives, the authority of which I see no
  • reason to call in question in this place--was _once_ no more than a
  • small village belonging to one of the first Counts de _Guignes_; and as
  • it boasts at present of no less than fourteen thousand inhabitants,
  • exclusive of four hundred and twenty distinct families in the _basse
  • ville_, or suburbs----it must have grown up by little and little,
  • I suppose, to its present size.
  • Though there are four convents, there is but one parochial church in the
  • whole town; I had not an opportunity of taking its exact dimensions, but
  • it is pretty easy to make a tolerable conjecture of ’em--for as there
  • are fourteen thousand inhabitants in the town, if the church holds them
  • all it must be considerably large--and if it will not--’tis a very great
  • pity they have not another--it is built in form of a cross, and
  • dedicated to the Virgin _Mary_; the steeple, which has a spire to it, is
  • placed in the middle of the church, and stands upon four pillars elegant
  • and light enough, but sufficiently strong at the same time--it is
  • decorated with eleven altars, most of which are rather fine than
  • beautiful. The great altar is a masterpiece in its kind; ’tis of white
  • marble, and, as I was told, near sixty feet high--had it been much
  • higher, it had been as high as mount _Calvary_ itself--therefore,
  • I suppose it must be high enough in all conscience.
  • There was nothing struck me more than the great _Square_; tho’ I cannot
  • say ’tis either well paved or well built; but ’tis in the heart of the
  • town, and most of the streets, especially those in that quarter, all
  • terminate in it; could there have been a fountain in all _Calais_, which
  • it seems there cannot, as such an object would have been a great
  • ornament, it is not to be doubted, but that the inhabitants would have
  • had it in the very centre of this square, --not that it is properly a
  • square, --because ’tis forty feet longer from east to west, than from
  • north to south; so that the _French_ in general have more reason on
  • their side in calling them _Places_ than _Squares_, which, strictly
  • speaking, to be sure, they are not.
  • The town-house seems to be but a sorry building, and not to be kept in
  • the best repair; otherwise it had been a second great ornament to this
  • place; it answers however its destination, and serves very well for the
  • reception of the magistrates, who assemble in it from time to time; so
  • that ’tis presumable, justice is regularly distributed.
  • I have heard much of it, but there is nothing at all curious in the
  • _Courgain_; ’tis a distinct quarter of the town, inhabited solely by
  • sailors and fishermen; it consists of a number of small streets, neatly
  • built and mostly of brick; ’tis extremely populous, but as that may be
  • accounted for, from the principles of their diet, --there is nothing
  • curious in that neither. ----A traveller may see it to satisfy
  • himself--he must not omit however taking notice of _La Tour de Guet_,
  • upon any account; ’tis so called from its particular destination,
  • because in war it serves to discover and give notice of the enemies
  • which approach the place, either by sea or land; ----but ’tis monstrous
  • high, and catches the eye so continually, you cannot avoid taking notice
  • of it if you would.
  • It was a singular disappointment to me, that I could not have permission
  • to take an exact survey of the fortifications, which are the strongest
  • in the world, and which, from first to last, that is, from the time they
  • were set about by _Philip_ of _France_, Count of _Boulogne_, to the
  • present war, wherein many reparations were made, have cost (as I learned
  • afterwards from an engineer in _Gascony_)--above a hundred millions of
  • livres. It is very remarkable, that at the _Tête de Gravelenes_, and
  • where the town is naturally the weakest, they have expended the most
  • money; so that the out-works stretch a great way into the campaign, and
  • consequently occupy a large tract of ground --However, after all that is
  • _said_ and _done_, it must be acknowledged that _Calais_ was never upon
  • any account so considerable from itself, as from its situation, and that
  • easy entrance which it gave our ancestors, upon all occasions, into
  • _France_: it was not without its inconveniences also; being no less
  • troublesome to the _English_ in those times, than _Dunkirk_ has been to
  • us, in ours; so that it was deservedly looked upon as the key to both
  • kingdoms, which no doubt is the reason that there have arisen so many
  • contentions who should keep it: of these, the siege of _Calais_, or
  • rather the blockade (for it was shut up both by land and sea), was the
  • most memorable, as it withstood the efforts of _Edward_ the Third a
  • whole year, and was not terminated at last but by famine and extreme
  • misery; the gallantry of _Eustace de St. Pierre_, who first offered
  • himself a victim for his fellow-citizens, has rank’d his name with
  • heroes. As it will not take up above fifty pages, it would be injustice
  • to the reader, not to give him a minute account of that romantic
  • transaction, as well as of the siege itself, in _Rapin’s_ own words:
  • CHAPTER VI
  • ----But courage! gentle reader! ----I scorn it----’tis enough to have
  • thee in my power----but to make use of the advantage which the fortune
  • of the pen has now gained over thee, would be too much ----No----! by
  • that all-powerful fire which warms the visionary brain, and lights the
  • spirits through unwordly tracts! ere I would force a helpless creature
  • upon this hard service, and make thee pay, poor soul! for fifty pages,
  • which I have no right to sell thee, ----naked as I am, I would browse
  • upon the mountains, and smile that the north wind brought me neither my
  • tent or my supper.
  • --So put on, my brave boy! and make the best of thy way to _Boulogne_.
  • CHAPTER VII
  • ----Boulogne! ----hah! ----so we are all got together----debtors and
  • sinners before heaven; a jolly set of us--but I can’t stay and quaff it
  • off with you --I’m pursued myself like a hundred devils, and shall be
  • overtaken, before I can well change horses: ----for heaven’s sake, make
  • haste----’Tis for high-treason, quoth a very little man, whispering as
  • low as he could to a very tall man, that stood next him ----Or else for
  • murder; quoth the tall man ----Well thrown, _Size-ace!_ quoth I. No;
  • quoth a third, the gentleman has been committing----.
  • _Ah! ma chere fille!_ said I, as she tripp’d by from her matins--you
  • look as rosy as the morning (for the sun was rising, and it made the
  • compliment the more gracious) --No; it can’t be that, quoth a
  • fourth----(she made a curt’sy to me --I kiss’d my hand) ’tis debt,
  • continued he: ’Tis certainly for debt; quoth a fifth; I would not pay
  • that gentleman’s debts, quoth _Ace_, for a thousand pounds; nor would I,
  • quoth _Size_, for six times the sum --Well thrown, _Size-ace_, again!
  • quoth I; --but I have no debt but the debt of NATURE, and I want but
  • patience of her, and I will pay her every farthing I owe her ----How can
  • you be so hard-hearted, MADAM, to arrest a poor traveller going along
  • without molestation to any one upon his lawful occasions? do stop that
  • death-looking, long-striding scoundrel of a scare-sinner, who is posting
  • after me----he never would have followed me but for you----if it be but
  • for a stage or two, just to give me start of him, I beseech you,
  • madam----do, dear lady----
  • ----Now, in troth, ’tis a great pity, quoth mine _Irish_ host, that all
  • this good courtship should be lost; for the young gentlewoman has been
  • after going out of hearing of it all along.----
  • ----Simpleton! quoth I.
  • ----So you have nothing _else_ in _Boulogne_ worth seeing?
  • --By Jasus! there is the finest SEMINARY for the HUMANITIES----
  • --There cannot be a finer; quoth I.
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • When the precipitancy of a man’s wishes hurries on his ideas ninety
  • times faster than the vehicle he rides in--woe be to truth! and woe be
  • to the vehicle and its tackling (let ’em be made of what stuff you will)
  • upon which he breathes forth the disappointment of his soul!
  • As I never give general characters either of men or things in choler,
  • “_the most haste the worst speed_,” was all the reflection I made upon
  • the affair, the first time it happen’d; --the second, third, fourth, and
  • fifth time, I confined it respectively to those times, and accordingly
  • blamed only the second, third, fourth, and fifth post-boy for it,
  • without carrying my reflections further; but the event continuing to
  • befal me from the fifth, to the sixth, seventh, eighth, ninth, and tenth
  • time, and without one exception, I then could not avoid making a
  • national reflection of it, which I do in these words;
  • _That something is always wrong in a French post-chaise, upon first
  • setting out._
  • Or the proposition may stand thus:
  • _A French postilion has always to alight before he has got three hundred
  • yards out of town._
  • What’s wrong now? ----Diable! ----a rope’s broke! ----a knot has slipt!
  • ----a staple’s drawn! ----a bolt’s to whittle! ----a tag, a rag, a jag,
  • a strap, a buckle, or a buckle’s tongue, want altering.
  • Now true as all this is, I never think myself impowered to excommunicate
  • thereupon either the post-chaise, or its driver----nor do I take it into
  • my head to swear by the living G--, I would rather go a-foot ten
  • thousand times----or that I will be damn’d, if ever I get into
  • another----but I take the matter coolly before me, and consider, that
  • some tag, or rag, or jag, or bolt, or buckle, or buckle’s tongue, will
  • ever be a wanting, or want altering, travel where I will--so I never
  • chaff, but take the good and the bad as they fall in my road, and get
  • on: ----Do so, my lad! said I; he had lost five minutes already, in
  • alighting in order to get at a luncheon of black bread, which he had
  • cramm’d into the chaise-pocket, and was remounted, and going leisurely
  • on, to relish it the better ----Get on, my lad, said I, briskly--but in
  • the most persuasive tone imaginable, for I jingled a four-and-twenty
  • sous piece against the glass, taking care to hold the flat side towards
  • him, as he look’d back: the dog grinn’d intelligence from his right ear
  • to his left, and behind his sooty muzzle discovered such a pearly row of
  • teeth, that _Sovereignty_ would have pawn’d her jewels for them.----
  • Just heaven! {What masticators! --
  • {What bread!--
  • and so as he finished the last mouthful of it, we entered the town of
  • _Montreuil_.
  • CHAPTER IX
  • There is not a town in all _France_, which, in my opinion, looks better
  • in the map, than MONTREUIL; ----I own, it does not look so well in the
  • book of post-roads; but when you come to see it--to be sure it looks
  • most pitifully.
  • There is one thing, however, in it at present very handsome; and that
  • is, the inn-keeper’s daughter: She has been eighteen months at _Amiens_,
  • and six at _Paris_, in going through her classes; so knits, and sews,
  • and dances, and does the little coquetries very well.----
  • --A slut! in running them over within these five minutes that I have
  • stood looking at her, she has let fall at least a dozen loops in a white
  • thread stocking----yes, yes --I see, you cunning gipsy! --’tis long and
  • taper--you need not pin it to your knee--and that ’tis your own--and
  • fits you exactly.----
  • ----That Nature should have told this creature a word about a _statue’s
  • thumb!_
  • --But as this sample is worth all their thumbs----besides, I have her
  • thumbs and fingers in at the bargain, if they can be any guide to me,
  • --and as _Janatone_ withal (for that is her name) stands so well for a
  • drawing----may I never draw more, or rather may I draw like a
  • draught-horse, by main strength all the days of my life, --if I do not
  • draw her in all her proportions, and with as determined a pencil, as if
  • I had her in the wettest drapery.----
  • --But your worships chuse rather that I give you the length, breadth,
  • and perpendicular height of the great parish-church, or drawing of the
  • façade of the abbey of Saint _Austerberte_ which has been transported
  • from _Artois_ hither--everything is just I suppose as the masons and
  • carpenters left them, --and if the belief in _Christ_ continues so long,
  • will be so these fifty years to come--so your worships and reverences
  • may all measure them at your leisures----but he who measures thee,
  • _Janatone_, must do it now--thou carriest the principles of change
  • within thy frame; and considering the chances of a transitory life,
  • I would not answer for thee a moment; ere twice twelve months are passed
  • and gone, thou mayest grow out like a pumpkin, and lose thy shapes----or
  • thou mayest go off like a flower, and lose thy beauty--nay, thou mayest
  • go off like a hussy--and lose thyself. --I would not answer for my aunt
  • _Dinah_, was she alive----’faith, scarce for her picture----were it but
  • painted by _Reynolds_--
  • But if I go on with my drawing, after naming that son of _Apollo_, I’ll
  • be shot----
  • So you must e’en be content with the original; which, if the evening is
  • fine in passing thro’ _Montreuil_, you will see at your chaise-door, as
  • you change horses: but unless you have as bad a reason for haste as I
  • have--you had better stop: ----She has a little of the _devote_: but
  • that, sir, is a terce to a nine in your favour------
  • --L--help me! I could not count a single point: so had been piqued and
  • repiqued, and capotted to the devil.
  • CHAPTER X
  • All which being considered, and that Death moreover might be much nearer
  • me than I imagined ----I wish I was at _Abbeville_, quoth I, were it
  • only to see how they card and spin----so off we set.
  • [7.1]_de Montreuil à Nampont - poste et demi_
  • _de Nampont_ à Bernay - - - poste
  • de Bernay à Nouvion - - - poste
  • de Nouvion à ABBEVILLE - - poste
  • ----but the carders and spinners were all gone to bed.
  • [Footnote 7.1: Vid. Book of French post roads, page 36, edition
  • of 1762.]
  • CHAPTER XI
  • What a vast advantage is travelling! only it heats one; but there is a
  • remedy for that, which you may pick out of the next chapter.
  • CHAPTER XII
  • Was I in a condition to stipulate with Death, as I am this moment with
  • my apothecary, how and where I will take his clyster ----I should
  • certainly declare against submitting to it before my friends; and
  • therefore I never seriously think upon the mode and manner of this great
  • catastrophe, which generally takes up and torments my thoughts as much
  • as the catastrophe itself; but I constantly draw the curtain across it
  • with this wish, that the Disposer of all things may so order it, that it
  • happen not to me in my own house----but rather in some decent inn----at
  • home, I know it, ----the concern of my friends, and the last services of
  • wiping my brows, and smoothing my pillow, which the quivering hand of
  • pale affection shall pay me, will so crucify my soul; that I shall die
  • of a distemper which my physician is not aware of: but in an inn, the
  • few cold offices I wanted, would be purchased with a few guineas, and
  • paid me with an undisturbed, but punctual attention----but mark. This
  • inn should not be the inn at _Abbeville_----if there was not another inn
  • in the universe, I would strike that inn out of the capitulation: so
  • Let the horses be in the chaise exactly by four in the morning ----Yes,
  • by four, Sir, ----or by _Genevieve!_ I’ll raise a clatter in the house
  • shall wake the dead.
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • “_Make them like unto a wheel_,” is a bitter sarcasm, as all the learned
  • know, against the _grand tour_, and that restless spirit for making it,
  • which _David_ prophetically foresaw would haunt the children of men in
  • the latter days; and therefore, as thinketh the great bishop _Hall_,
  • ’tis one of the severest imprecations which _David_ ever utter’d against
  • the enemies of the Lord--and, as if he had said, “I wish them no worse
  • luck than always to be rolling about” --So much motion, continues he
  • (for he was very corpulent)--is so much unquietness; and so much of
  • rest, by the same analogy, is so much of heaven.
  • Now, I (being very thin) think differently; and that so much of motion,
  • is so much of life, and so much of joy----and that to stand still, or
  • get on but slowly, is death and the devil----
  • Hollo! Ho! ----the whole world’s asleep! ----bring out the
  • horses----grease the wheels--tie on the mail----and drive a nail into
  • that moulding ----I’ll not lose a moment----
  • Now the wheel we are talking of, and _whereinto_ (but not _whereunto_,
  • for that would make an Ixion’s wheel of it) he curseth his enemies,
  • according to the bishop’s habit of body, should certainly be a
  • post-chaise wheel, whether they were set up in _Palestine_ at that time
  • or not----and my wheel, for the contrary reasons, must as certainly be a
  • cart-wheel groaning round its revolution once in an age; and of which
  • sort, were I to turn commentator, I should make no scruple to affirm,
  • they had great store in that hilly country.
  • I love the Pythagoreans (much more than ever I dare tell my dear
  • _Jenny_) for their “χωρισμὸν ἀπὸ τοῦ Σώματος, εἰς τὸ καλῶς
  • φιλοσοφεῖν”---- [their] “_getting out of the body, in order to think
  • well_.” No man thinks right, whilst he is in it; blinded as he must be,
  • with his congenial humours, and drawn differently aside, as the bishop
  • and myself have been, with too lax or too tense a fibre ----REASON is,
  • half of it, SENSE; and the measure of heaven itself is but the measure
  • of our present appetites and concoctions----
  • ----But which of the two, in the present case, do you think to be mostly
  • in the wrong?
  • You, certainly: quoth she, to disturb a whole family so early.
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • ----But she did not know I was under a vow not to shave my beard till I
  • got to _Paris_; ----yet I hate to make mysteries of nothing; ----’tis
  • the cold cautiousness of one of those little souls from which _Lessius_
  • (_lib._ 13, _de moribus divinis, cap._ 24) hath made his estimate,
  • wherein he setteth forth, That one _Dutch_ mile, cubically multiplied,
  • will allow room enough, and to spare, for eight hundred thousand
  • millions, which he supposes to be as great a number of souls (counting
  • from the fall of _Adam_) as can possibly be damn’d to the end of the
  • world.
  • From what he has made this second estimate----unless from the parental
  • goodness of God --I don’t know --I am much more at a loss what could be
  • in _Franciscus Ribbera’s_ head, who pretends that no less a space than
  • one of two hundred _Italian_ miles multiplied into itself, will be
  • sufficient to hold the like number----he certainly must have gone upon
  • some of the old _Roman_ souls, of which he had read, without reflecting
  • how much, by a gradual and most tabid decline, in the course of eighteen
  • hundred years, they must unavoidably have shrunk so as to have come,
  • when he wrote, almost to nothing.
  • In _Lessius’s_ time, who seems the cooler man, they were as little as
  • can be imagined----
  • ----We find them less _now_----
  • And next winter we shall find them less again; so that if we go on from
  • little to less, and from less to nothing, I hesitate not one moment to
  • affirm, that in half a century, at this rate, we shall have no souls at
  • all; which being the period beyond which I doubt likewise of the
  • existence of the Christian faith, ’twill be one advantage that both of
  • ’em will be exactly worn out together.
  • Blessed _Jupiter!_ and blessed every other heathen god and goddess! for
  • now ye will all come into play again, and with _Priapus_ at your
  • tails----what jovial times! ----but where am I? and into what a
  • delicious riot of things am I rushing? I ----I who must be cut short in
  • the midst of my days, and taste no more of ’em than what I borrow from
  • my imagination----peace to thee, generous fool! and let me go on.
  • CHAPTER XV
  • ------“So hating, I say, to make mysteries of _nothing_” ----I intrusted
  • it with the post-boy, as soon as ever I got off the stones; he gave a
  • crack with his whip to balance the compliment; and with the thill-horse
  • trotting, and a sort of an up and a down of the other, we danced it
  • along to _Ailly au clochers_, famed in days of yore for the finest
  • chimes in the world; but we danced through it without music--the chimes
  • being greatly out of order--(as in truth they were through all
  • _France_).
  • And so making all possible speed, from
  • _Ailly au clochers_, I got to _Hixcourt_,
  • from _Hixcourt_, I got to _Pequignay_, and
  • from _Pequignay_, I got to AMIENS,
  • concerning which town I have nothing to inform you, but what I have
  • informed you once before----and that was--that _Janatone_ went there to
  • school.
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • In the whole catalogue of those whiffling vexations which come puffing
  • across a man’s canvass, there is not one of a more teasing and
  • tormenting nature, than this particular one which I am going to
  • describe----and for which (unless you travel with an avance-courier,
  • which numbers do in order to prevent it)----there is no help: and it is
  • this.
  • That be you in never so kindly a propensity to sleep----tho’ you are
  • passing perhaps through the finest country--upon the best roads, and in
  • the easiest carriage for doing it in the world----nay, was you sure you
  • could sleep fifty miles straight forwards, without once opening your
  • eyes--nay, what is more, was you as demonstratively satisfied as you can
  • be of any truth in _Euclid_, that you should upon all accounts be full
  • as well asleep as awake----nay, perhaps better ----Yet the incessant
  • returns of paying for the horses at every stage, ----with the necessity
  • thereupon of putting your hand into your pocket, and counting out from
  • thence three livres fifteen sous (sous by sous), puts an end to so much
  • of the project, that you cannot execute above six miles of it
  • (or supposing it is a post and a half, that is but nine)----were it to
  • save your soul from destruction.
  • --I’ll be even with ’em, quoth I, for I’ll put the precise sum into a
  • piece of paper, and hold it ready in my hand all the way: “Now I shall
  • have nothing to do,” said I (composing myself to rest), “but to drop
  • this gently into the post-boy’s hat, and not say a word.” ----Then there
  • wants two sous more to drink----or there is a twelve sous piece of
  • _Louis_ XIV. which will not pass--or a livre and some odd liards to be
  • brought over from the last stage, which Monsieur had forgot; which
  • altercations (as a man cannot dispute very well asleep) rouse him: still
  • is sweet sleep retrievable; and still might the flesh weigh down the
  • spirit, and recover itself of these blows--but then, by heaven! you have
  • paid but for a single post--whereas ’tis a post and a half; and this
  • obliges you to pull out your book of post-roads, the print of which is
  • so very small, it forces you to open your eyes, whether you will or no:
  • Then Monsieur _le Curé_ offers you a pinch of snuff----or a poor soldier
  • shews you his leg----or a shaveling his box----or the priestess of the
  • cistern will water your wheels----they do not want it----but she swears
  • by her _priesthood_ (throwing it back) that they do: ----then you have
  • all these points to argue, or consider over in your mind; in doing of
  • which, the rational powers get so thoroughly awakened----you may get ’em
  • to sleep again as you can.
  • It was entirely owing to one of these misfortunes, or I had pass’d clean
  • by the stables of _Chantilly_----
  • ----But the postilion first affirming, and then persisting in it to my
  • face, that there was no mark upon the two sous piece, I open’d my eyes
  • to be convinced--and seeing the mark upon it as plain as my nose --I
  • leap’d out of the chaise in a passion, and so saw everything at
  • _Chantilly_ in spite. ----I tried it but for three posts and a half, but
  • believe ’tis the best principle in the world to travel speedily upon;
  • for as few objects look very inviting in that mood--you have little or
  • nothing to stop you; by which means it was that I passed through St.
  • _Dennis_, without turning my head so much as on one side towards the
  • Abby----
  • ----Richness of their treasury! stuff and nonsense! ----bating their
  • jewels, which are all false, I would not give three sous for any one
  • thing in it, but _Jaidas’s lantern_----nor for that either, only as it
  • grows dark, it might be of use.
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • Crack, crack----crack, crack----crack, crack----so this is _Paris!_
  • quoth I (continuing in the same mood)--and this is _Paris!_----humph!
  • ----_Paris!_ cried I, repeating the name the third time----
  • The first, the finest, the most brilliant----
  • The streets however are nasty.
  • But it looks, I suppose, better than it smells----crack, crack----crack,
  • crack----what a fuss thou makest! --as if it concerned the good people
  • to be informed, that a man with pale face and clad in black, had the
  • honour to be driven into _Paris_ at nine o’clock at night, by a
  • postilion in a tawny yellow jerkin, turned up with red calamanco--crack,
  • crack----crack, crack----crack, crack, ----I wish thy whip----
  • ----But ’tis the spirit of thy nation; so crack--crack on.
  • Ha! ----and no one gives the wall! ----but in the SCHOOL of URBANITY
  • herself, if the walls are besh-t--how can you do otherwise?
  • And prithee when do they light the lamps? What? --never in the summer
  • months! ----Ho! ’tis the time of sallads. ----O rare! sallad and
  • soup--soup and sallad--sallad and soup, _encore_----
  • ----’Tis _too much_ for sinners.
  • Now I cannot bear the barbarity of it; how can that unconscionable
  • coachman talk so much bawdy to that lean horse? don’t you see, friend,
  • the streets are so villainously narrow, that there is not room in all
  • _Paris_ to turn a wheelbarrow? In the grandest city of the whole world,
  • it would not have been amiss, if they had been left a thought wider;
  • nay, were it only so much in every single street, as that a man might
  • know (was it only for satisfaction) on which side of it he was walking.
  • One--two--three--four--five--six--seven--eight--nine--ten. --Ten cook’s
  • shops! and twice the number of barbers! and all within three minutes
  • driving! one would think that all the cooks in the world, on some great
  • merry-meeting with the barbers, by joint consent had said --Come, let us
  • all go live at _Paris_: the _French_ love good eating----they are all
  • _gourmands_----we shall rank high; if their god is their belly----their
  • cooks must be gentlemen: and forasmuch as _the periwig maketh the man_,
  • and the periwig-maker maketh the periwig--_ergo_, would the barbers say,
  • we shall rank higher still--we shall be above you all--we shall be
  • _Capitouls_[7.2] at least--_pardi!_ we shall all wear swords----
  • --And so, one would swear (that is, by candle light, --but there is no
  • depending upon it) they continue to do, to this day.
  • [Footnote 7.2: Chief Magistrate in Toulouse, &c. &c. &c.]
  • CHAPTER XVIII
  • The _French_ are certainly misunderstood: ----but whether the fault is
  • theirs, in not sufficiently explaining themselves; or speaking with that
  • exact limitation and precision which one would expect on a point of such
  • importance, and which, moreover, is so likely to be contested by
  • us----or whether the fault may not be altogether on our side, in not
  • understanding their language always so critically as to know “what they
  • would be at” ----I shall not decide; but ’tis evident to me, when they
  • affirm, “_That they who have seen _Paris_, have seen everything_,” they
  • must mean to speak of those who have seen it by day-light.
  • As for candle-light --I give it up ----I have said before, there was no
  • depending upon it--and I repeat it again; but not because the lights and
  • shades are too sharp--or the tints confounded--or that there is neither
  • beauty or keeping, &c. . . . for that’s not truth--but it is an
  • uncertain light in this respect, That in all the five hundred grand
  • Hôtels, which they number up to you in _Paris_--and the five hundred
  • good things, at a modest computation (for ’tis only allowing one good
  • thing to a Hôtel), which by candle-light are best to be _seen_, _felt_,
  • _heard_, and _understood_ (which, by the bye, is a quotation from
  • _Lilly_)----the devil a one of us out of fifty, can get our heads fairly
  • thrust in amongst them.
  • This is no part of the _French_ computation: ’tis simply this,
  • That by the last survey taken in the year one thousand seven hundred and
  • sixteen, since which time there have been considerable argumentations,
  • _Paris_ doth contain nine hundred streets; (viz.)
  • In the quarter called the _City_--there are fifty-three streets.
  • In St. _James_ of the Shambles, fifty-five streets.
  • In St. _Oportune_, thirty-four streets.
  • In the quarter of the _Louvre_, twenty-five streets.
  • In the _Palace Royal_, or St. _Honorius_, forty-nine streets.
  • In _Mont. Martyr_, forty-one streets.
  • In St. _Eustace_, twenty-nine streets.
  • In the _Halles_, twenty-seven streets.
  • In St. _Dennis_, fifty-five streets.
  • In St. _Martin_, fifty-four streets.
  • In St. _Paul_, or the _Mortellerie_, twenty-seven streets.
  • The _Greve_, thirty-eight streets.
  • In St. _Avoy_, or the _Verrerie_, nineteen streets.
  • In the _Marais_, or the _Temple_, fifty-two streets.
  • In St. _Antony’s_, sixty-eight streets.
  • In the _Place Maubert_, eighty-one streets.
  • In St. _Bennet_, sixty streets.
  • In St. _Andrews de Arcs_, fifty-one streets.
  • In the quarter of the _Luxembourg_, sixty-two streets.
  • And in that of St. Germain, fifty-five streets, into any of which you
  • may walk; and that when you have seen them with all that belongs to
  • them, fairly by day-light--their gates, their bridges, their squares,
  • their statues - - - and have crusaded it moreover, through all their
  • parish-churches, by no means omitting St. _Roche_ and _Sulpice_ - - -
  • and to crown all, have taken a walk to the four palaces, which you may
  • see, either with or without the statues and pictures, just as you
  • chuse--
  • ----Then you will have seen----
  • ----but, ’tis what no one needeth to tell you, for you will read of it
  • yourself upon the portico of the _Louvre_, in these words,
  • [7.3]EARTH NO SUCH FOLKS! --NO FOLKS E’ER SUCH A TOWN
  • AS PARIS IS! --SING, DERRY, DERRY, DOWN.
  • The _French_ have a _gay_ way of treating everything that is Great; and
  • that is all can be said upon it.
  • [Footnote 7.3:
  • Non orbis gentem, non urbem gens habet ullam
  • --------ulla parem.]
  • CHAPTER XIX
  • In mentioning the word _gay_ (as in the close of the last chapter) it
  • puts one (_i.e._ an author) in mind of the word _spleen_----especially
  • if he has anything to say upon it: not that by any analysis--or that
  • from any table of interest or genealogy, there appears much more ground
  • of alliance betwixt them, than betwixt light and darkness, or any two of
  • the most unfriendly opposites in nature----only ’tis an undercraft of
  • authors to keep up a good understanding amongst words, as politicians do
  • amongst men--not knowing how near they may be under a necessity of
  • placing them to each other----which point being now gain’d, and that I
  • may place mine exactly to my mind, I write it down here--
  • SPLEEN
  • This, upon leaving _Chantilly_, I declared to be the best principle in
  • the world to travel speedily upon; but I gave it only as matter of
  • opinion. I still continue in the same sentiments--only I had not then
  • experience enough of its working to add this, that though you do get on
  • at a tearing rate, yet you get on but uneasily to yourself at the same
  • time; for which reason I here quit it entirely, and for ever, and ’tis
  • heartily at any one’s service--it has spoiled me the digestion of a good
  • supper, and brought on a bilious diarrhœa, which has brought me back
  • again to my first principle on which I set out----and with which I shall
  • now scamper it away to the banks of the _Garonne_--
  • ----No; ----I cannot stop a moment to give you the character of the
  • people--their genius----their manners--their customs--their
  • laws----their religion--their government--their manufactures--their
  • commerce--their finances, with all the resources and hidden springs
  • which sustain them: qualified as I may be, by spending three days and
  • two nights amongst them, and during all that time making these things
  • the entire subject of my enquiries and reflections----
  • Still--still I must away----the roads are paved--the posts are
  • short--the days are long--’tis no more than noon --I shall be at
  • _Fontainbleau_ before the king----
  • --Was he going there? not that I know----
  • CHAPTER XX
  • Now I hate to hear a person, especially if he be a traveller, complain
  • that we do not get on so fast in _France_ as we do in _England_; whereas
  • we get on much faster, _consideratis considerandis_; thereby always
  • meaning, that if you weigh their vehicles with the mountains of baggage
  • which you lay both before and behind upon them--and then consider their
  • puny horses, with the very little they give them--’tis a wonder they get
  • on at all: their suffering is most unchristian, and ’tis evident
  • thereupon to me, that a _French_ post-horse would not know what in the
  • world to do, was it not for the two words ****** and ****** in which
  • there is as much sustenance, as if you gave him a peck of corn: now as
  • these words cost nothing, I long from my soul to tell the reader what
  • they are; but here is the question--they must be told him plainly, and
  • with the most distinct articulation, or it will answer no end--and yet
  • to do it in that plain way--though their reverences may laugh at it in
  • the bed-chamber--fell well I wot, they will abuse it in the parlour: for
  • which cause, I have been volving and revolving in my fancy some time,
  • but to no purpose, by what clean device or facette contrivance I might
  • so modulate them, that whilst I satisfy _that ear_ which the reader
  • chuses to _lend_ me --I might not dissatisfy the other which he keeps to
  • himself.
  • ----My ink burns my finger to try----and when I have----’twill have a
  • worse consequence----it will burn (I fear) my paper.
  • ----No; ----I dare not----
  • But if you wish to know how the _abbess_ of _Andoüillets_ and a novice
  • of her convent got over the difficulty (only first wishing myself all
  • imaginable success) --I’ll tell you without the least scruple.
  • CHAPTER XXI
  • The abbess of _Andoüillets_, which, if you look into the large set of
  • provincial maps now publishing at _Paris_, you will find situated
  • amongst the hills which divide _Burgundy_ from _Savoy_, being in danger
  • of an _Anchylosis_ or stiff joint (the _sinovia_ of her knee becoming
  • hard by long matins), and having tried every remedy----first, prayers
  • and thanksgiving; then invocations to all the saints in heaven
  • promiscuously----then particularly to every saint who had ever had a
  • stiff leg, before her----then touching it with all the reliques of the
  • convent, principally with the thigh-bone of the man of _Lystra_, who had
  • been impotent from his youth----then wrapping it up in her veil when she
  • went to bed--then cross-wise her rosary--then bringing in to her aid the
  • secular arm, and anointing it with oils and hot fat of animals----then
  • treating it with emollient and resolving fomentations----then with
  • poultices of marsh-mallows, mallows, bonus Henricus, white lillies and
  • fenugreek--then taking the woods, I mean the smoak of ’em, holding her
  • scapulary across her lap----then decoctions of wild chicory,
  • water-cresses, chervil, sweet cecily and cochlearia----and nothing all
  • this while answering, was prevailed on at last to try the hot baths of
  • _Bourbon_----so having first obtain’d leave of the visitor-general to
  • take care of her existence--she ordered all to be got ready for her
  • journey: a novice of the convent of about seventeen, who had been
  • troubled with a whitloe in her middle finger, by sticking it constantly
  • into the abbess’s cast poultices, &c. --had gained such an interest,
  • that overlooking a sciatical old nun, who might have been set up for
  • ever by the hot-baths of _Bourbon_, _Margarita_, the little novice, was
  • elected as the companion of the journey.
  • An old calesh, belonging to the abbesse, lined with green frize, was
  • ordered to be drawn out into the sun--the gardener of the convent being
  • chosen muleteer--led out the two old mules, to clip the hair from the
  • rump-ends of their tails, whilst a couple of lay-sisters were busied,
  • the one in darning the lining, and the other in sewing on the shreads of
  • yellow binding, which the teeth of time had unravelled----the
  • under-gardener dress’d the muleteer’s hat in hot wine-lees----and a
  • taylor sat musically at it, in a shed over-against the convent, in
  • assorting four dozen of bells for the harness, whistling to each bell,
  • as he tied it on with a thong.----
  • ----The carpenter and the smith of _Andoüillets_ held a council of
  • wheels; and by seven, the morning after, all look’d spruce, and was
  • ready at the gate of the convent for the hot-baths of _Bourbon_--two
  • rows of the unfortunate stood ready there an hour before.
  • The abbess of _Andoüillets_, supported by _Margarita_ the novice,
  • advanced slowly to the calesh, both clad in white, with their black
  • rosaries hanging at their breasts----
  • ----There was a simple solemnity in the contrast: they entered the
  • calesh; and nuns in the same uniform, sweet emblem of innocence, each
  • occupied a window, and as the abbess and _Margarita_ look’d up--each
  • (the sciatical poor nun excepted)--each stream’d out the end of her veil
  • in the air--then kiss’d the lilly hand which let it go: the good abbess
  • and _Margarita_ laid their hands saint-wise upon their breasts--look’d
  • up to heaven--then to them--and look’d “God bless you, dear sisters.”
  • I declare I am interested in this story, and wish I had been there.
  • The gardener, whom I shall now call the muleteer, was a little, hearty,
  • broad-set, good-natured, chattering, toping kind of a fellow, who
  • troubled his head very little with the _hows_ and _whens_ of life; so
  • had mortgaged a month of his conventical wages in a borrachio, or
  • leathern cask of wine, which he had disposed behind the calesh, with a
  • large russet-coloured riding-coat over it, to guard it from the sun; and
  • as the weather was hot, and he not a niggard of his labours, walking ten
  • times more than he rode--he found more occasions than those of nature,
  • to fall back to the rear of his carriage; till by frequent coming and
  • going, it had so happen’d, that all his wine had leak’d out at the
  • _legal_ vent of the borrachio, before one half of the journey was
  • finish’d.
  • Man is a creature born to habitudes. The day had been sultry--the
  • evening was delicious--the wine was generous--the _Burgundian_ hill on
  • which it grew was steep--a little tempting bush over the door of a cool
  • cottage at the foot of it, hung vibrating in full harmony with the
  • passions--a gentle air rustled distinctly through the leaves--
  • “Come--come, thirsty muleteer--come in.”
  • --The muleteer was a son of _Adam_; I need not say a word more. He gave
  • the mules, each of ’em, a sound lash, and looking in the abbess’s and
  • _Margarita’s_ faces (as he did it)--as much as to say “here I am”--he
  • gave a second good crack--as much as to say to his mules, “get on”----so
  • slinking behind, he enter’d the little inn at the foot of the hill.
  • The muleteer, as I told you, was a little, joyous, chirping fellow, who
  • thought not of to-morrow, nor of what had gone before, or what was to
  • follow it, provided he got but his scantling of Burgundy, and a little
  • chit-chat along with it; so entering into a long conversation, as how he
  • was chief gardener to the convent of _Andoüillets_, &c. &c., and out of
  • friendship for the abbess and Mademoiselle _Margarita_, who was only in
  • her noviciate, he had come along with them from the confines of _Savoy_,
  • &c. &c. --and as how she had got a white swelling by her devotions--and
  • what a nation of herbs he had procured to mollify her humours, &c. &c.,
  • and that if the waters of _Bourbon_ did not mend that leg--she might as
  • well be lame of both--&c. &c. &c. --He so contrived his story, as
  • absolutely to forget the heroine of it--and with her the little novice,
  • and what was a more ticklish point to be forgot than both--the two
  • mules; who being creatures that take advantage of the world, inasmuch as
  • their parents took it of them--and they not being in a condition to
  • return the obligation _downwards_ (as men and women and beasts
  • are)--they do it side-ways, and long-ways, and back-ways--and up hill,
  • and down hill, and which way they can. ------Philosophers, with all
  • their ethicks, have never considered this rightly--how should the poor
  • muleteer, then in his cups, consider it at all? he did not in the
  • least--’tis time we do; let us leave him then in the vortex of his
  • element, the happiest and most thoughtless of mortal men----and for a
  • moment let us look after the mules, the abbess, and _Margarita_.
  • By virtue of the muleteer’s two last strokes the mules had gone quietly
  • on, following their own consciences up the hill, till they had conquer’d
  • about one half of it; when the elder of them, a shrewd crafty old devil,
  • at the turn of an angle, giving a side glance, and no muleteer behind
  • them----
  • By my fig! said she, swearing, I’ll go no further ----And if I do,
  • replied the other, they shall make a drum of my hide.----
  • And so with one consent they stopp’d thus----
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • ----Get on with you, said the abbess.
  • ----Wh - - - - ysh----ysh----cried _Margarita_.
  • Sh - - - a----suh - u----shu - - u--sh - - aw----shaw’d the abbess.
  • ----Whu--v--w----whew--w--w--whuv’d _Margarita_ pursing up her sweet
  • lips betwixt a hoot and a whistle.
  • Thump--thump--thump--obstreperated the abbess of _Andoüillets_ with the
  • end of her gold-headed cane against the bottom of the calesh----
  • The old mule let a f--
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • We are ruin’d and undone, my child, said the abbess to _Margarita_,
  • ----we shall be here all night----we shall be plunder’d----we shall be
  • ravish’d----
  • ----We shall be ravish’d, said _Margarita_, as sure as a gun.
  • _Sancta Maria!_ cried the abbess (forgetting the _O!_)--why was I
  • govern’d by this wicked stiff joint? why did I leave the convent of
  • _Andoüillets?_ and why didst thou not suffer thy servant to go
  • unpolluted to her tomb?
  • O my finger! my finger! cried the novice, catching fire at the word
  • _servant_--why was I not content to put it here, or there, any where
  • rather than be in this strait?
  • Strait! said the abbess.
  • Strait----said the novice; for terror had struck their understandings----
  • the one knew not what she said----the other what she answer’d.
  • O my virginity! virginity! cried the abbess.
  • ----inity! ----inity! said the novice, sobbing.
  • CHAPTER XXIV
  • My dear mother, quoth the novice, coming a little to herself, ----there
  • are two certain words, which I have been told will force any horse, or
  • ass, or mule, to go up a hill whether he will or no; be he never so
  • obstinate or ill-will’d, the moment he hears them utter’d, he obeys.
  • They are words magic! cried the abbess in the utmost horror --No; replied
  • _Margarita_ calmly--but they are words sinful --What are they? quoth the
  • abbess, interrupting her: They are sinful in the first degree, answered
  • _Margarita_, --they are mortal--and if we are ravish’d and die
  • unabsolved of them, we shall both----but you may pronounce them to me,
  • quoth the abbess of _Andoüillets_ ----They cannot, my dear mother, said
  • the novice, be pronounced at all; they will make all the blood in one’s
  • body fly up into one’s face --But you may whisper them in my ear, quoth
  • the abbess.
  • Heaven! hadst thou no guardian angel to delegate to the inn at the
  • bottom of the hill? was there no generous and friendly spirit
  • unemployed----no agent in nature, by some monitory shivering, creeping
  • along the artery which led to his heart, to rouse the muleteer from his
  • banquet? ----no sweet minstrelsy to bring back the fair idea of the
  • abbess and _Margarita_, with their black rosaries!
  • Rouse! rouse! ----but ’tis too late--the horrid words are pronounced
  • this moment----
  • ----and how to tell them --Ye, who can speak of everything existing,
  • with unpolluted lips, instruct me----guide me----
  • CHAPTER XXV
  • All sins whatever, quoth the abbess, turning casuist in the distress
  • they were under, are held by the confessor of our convent to be either
  • mortal or venial: there is no further division. Now a venial sin being
  • the slightest and least of all sins--being halved--by taking either only
  • the half of it, and leaving the rest--or, by taking it all, and amicably
  • halving it betwixt yourself and another person--in course becomes
  • diluted into no sin at all.
  • Now I see no sin in saying, _bou_, _bou_, _bou_, _bou_, _bou_, a hundred
  • times together; nor is there any turpitude in pronouncing the syllable
  • _ger_, _ger_, _ger_, _ger_, _ger_, were it from our matins to our
  • vespers: Therefore, my dear daughter, continued the abbess of
  • _Andoüillets_ --I will say _bou_, and thou shalt say _ger_; and then
  • alternately, as there is no more sin in _fou_ than in _bou_ --Thou shalt
  • say _fou_--and I will come in (like fa, sol, la, re, mi, ut, at our
  • complines) with _ter_. And accordingly the abbess, giving the pitch
  • note, set off thus:
  • Abbess, } Bou - - bou - - bou - -
  • _Margarita_, } ----ger, - - ger, - - ger.
  • _Margarita_, } Fou - - fou - - fou - -
  • Abbess, } ----ter, - - ter, - - ter.
  • The two mules acknowledged the notes by a mutual lash of their tails;
  • but it went no further----’Twill answer by an’ by, said the novice.
  • Abbess } Bou- bou- bou- bou- bou- bou-
  • _Margarita_, } --ger, ger, ger, ger, ger, ger.
  • Quicker still, cried _Margarita_.
  • Fou, fou, fou, fou, fou, fou, fou, fou, fou.
  • Quicker still, cried _Margarita_.
  • Bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou,
  • Quicker still --God preserve me; said the abbess --They do not understand
  • us, cried _Margarita_ --But the Devil does, said the abbess of
  • _Andoüillets_.
  • CHAPTER XXVI
  • What a tract of country have I run! --how many degrees nearer to the
  • warm sun am I advanced, and how many fair and goodly cities have I seen,
  • during the time you have been reading, and reflecting, Madam, upon this
  • story! There’s FONTAINBLEAU, and SENS, and JOIGNY, and AUXERRE, and
  • DIJON the capital of _Burgundy_, and CHALLON, and _Mâcon_ the capital of
  • the _Mâconese_, and a score more upon the road to LYONS----and now I
  • have run them over ----I might as well talk to you of so many market
  • towns in the moon, as tell you one word about them: it will be this
  • chapter at the least, if not both this and the next entirely lost, do
  • what I will----
  • ----Why, ’tis a strange story! _Tristram._
  • ----Alas! Madam, had it been upon some
  • melancholy lecture of the cross--the peace of meekness, or the
  • contentment of resignation ----I had not been incommoded: or had I
  • thought of writing it upon the purer abstractions of the soul, and that
  • food of wisdom and holiness and contemplation, upon which the spirit of
  • man (when separated from the body) is to subsist for ever ----You would
  • have come with a better appetite from it----
  • ----I wish I never had wrote it: but as I never blot anything out----let
  • us use some honest means to get it out of our heads directly.
  • ----Pray reach me my fool’s cap ----I fear you sit upon it, Madam----
  • ’tis under the cushion ----I’ll put it on----
  • Bless me! you have had it upon your head this half hour. ----There then
  • let it stay, with a
  • Fa-ra diddle di
  • and a fa-ri diddle d
  • and a high-dum--dye-dum
  • fiddle - - - dumb - c.
  • And now, Madam, we may venture, I hope, a little to go on.
  • CHAPTER XXVII
  • ----All you need say of _Fontainbleau_ (in case you are ask’d) is, that
  • it stands about forty miles (south _something_) from _Paris_, in the
  • middle of a large forest ----That there is something great in it ----That
  • the king goes there once every two or three years, with his whole court,
  • for the pleasure of the chase--and that, during that carnival of
  • sporting, any _English_ gentleman of fashion (you need not forget
  • yourself) may be accommodated with a nag or two, to partake of the
  • sport, taking care only not to out-gallop the king----
  • Though there are two reasons why you need not talk loud of this to every
  • one.
  • First, Because ’twill make the said nags the harder to be got; and
  • Secondly, ’Tis not a word of it true. ----_Allons!_
  • As for SENS----you may dispatch--in a word------ “_’Tis an
  • archiepiscopal see_.”
  • ----For JOIGNY--the less, I think, one says of it the better.
  • But for AUXERRE --I could go on for ever: for in my _grand tour_ through
  • _Europe_, in which, after all, my father (not caring to trust me with
  • any one) attended me himself, with my uncle _Toby_, and _Trim_, and
  • _Obadiah_, and indeed most of the family, except my mother, who being
  • taken up with a project of knitting my father a pair of large worsted
  • breeches--(the thing is common sense)--and she not caring to be put out
  • of her way, she staid at home, at SHANDY HALL, to keep things right
  • during the expedition; in which, I say, my father stopping us two days
  • at _Auxerre_, and his researches being ever of such a nature, that they
  • would have found fruit even in a desert----he has left me enough to say
  • upon AUXERRE: in short, wherever my father went----but ’twas more
  • remarkably so, in this journey through _France_ and _Italy_, than in any
  • other stages of his life----his road seemed to lie so much on one side
  • of that, wherein all other travellers have gone before him--he saw kings
  • and courts and silks of all colours, in such strange lights----and his
  • remarks and reasonings upon the characters, the manners, and customs, of
  • the countries we pass’d over, were so opposite to those of all other
  • mortal men, particularly those of my uncle _Toby_ and _Trim_--(to say
  • nothing of myself)--and to crown all--the occurrences and scrapes which
  • we were perpetually meeting and getting into, in consequence of his
  • systems and opiniatry--they were of so odd, so mix’d and tragi-comical a
  • contexture --That the whole put together, it appears of so different a
  • shade and tint from any tour of _Europe_, which was ever executed--that
  • I will venture to pronounce--the fault must be mine and mine only--if it
  • be not read by all travellers and travel-readers, till travelling is no
  • more, --or which comes to the same point--till the world, finally, takes
  • it into its head to stand still.----
  • ----But this rich bale is not to be open’d now; except a small thread or
  • two of it, merely to unravel the mystery of my father’s stay at AUXERRE.
  • ----As I have mentioned it--’tis too slight to be kept suspended; and
  • when ’tis wove in, there is an end of it.
  • We’ll go, brother _Toby_, said my father, whilst dinner is coddling--to
  • the abby of Saint _Germain_, if it be only to see these bodies, of which
  • Monsieur _Sequier_ has given such a recommendation. ----I’ll go see any
  • body, quoth my uncle _Toby_; for he was all compliance through every
  • step of the journey ----Defend me! said my father--they are all
  • mummies ----Then one need not shave; quoth my uncle _Toby_ ----Shave!
  • no--cried my father--’twill be more like relations to go with our beards
  • on --So out we sallied, the corporal lending his master his arm, and
  • bringing up the rear, to the abby of Saint _Germain_.
  • Everything is very fine, and very rich, and very superb, and very
  • magnificent, said my father, addressing himself to the sacristan, who
  • was a younger brother of the order of _Benedictines_--but our curiosity
  • has led us to see the bodies, of which Monsieur _Sequier_ has given the
  • world so exact a description. --The sacristan made a bow, and lighting a
  • torch first, which he had always in the vestry ready for the purpose; he
  • led us into the tomb of St. _Heribald_ ----This, said the sacristan,
  • laying his hand upon the tomb, was a renowned prince of the house of
  • _Bavaria_, who under the successive reigns of _Charlemagne_, _Louis le
  • Debonnair_, and _Charles the Bald_, bore a great sway in the government,
  • and had a principal hand in bringing everything into order and
  • discipline----
  • Then he has been as great, said my uncle, in the field, as in the
  • cabinet ----I dare say he has been a gallant soldier ----He was a
  • monk--said the sacristan.
  • My uncle _Toby_ and _Trim_ sought comfort in each other’s faces--but
  • found it not: my father clapped both his hands upon his cod-piece, which
  • was a way he had when anything hugely tickled him: for though he hated a
  • monk and the very smell of a monk worse than all the devils in
  • hell----yet the shot hitting my uncle _Toby_ and _Trim_ so much harder
  • than him, ’twas a relative triumph; and put him into the gayest humour
  • in the world.
  • ----And pray what do you call this gentleman? quoth my father, rather
  • sportingly: This tomb, said the young _Benedictine_, looking downwards,
  • contains the bones of Saint MAXIMA, who came from _Ravenna_ on purpose
  • to touch the body----
  • ----Of Saint MAXIMUS, said my father, popping in with his saint before
  • him, --they were two of the greatest saints in the whole martyrology,
  • added my father ----Excuse me, said the sacristan--------’twas to touch
  • the bones of Saint _Germain_, the builder of the abby ----And what did
  • she get by it? said my uncle _Toby_ ----What does any woman get by it?
  • said my father ----MARTYRDOME; replied the young _Benedictine_, making a
  • bow down to the ground, and uttering the word with so humble but
  • decisive a cadence, it disarmed my father for a moment. ’Tis supposed,
  • continued the _Benedictine_, that St. _Maxima_ has lain in this tomb
  • four hundred years, and two hundred before her canonization----’Tis but
  • a slow rise, brother _Toby_, quoth my father, in this self-same army of
  • martyrs. ----A desperate slow one, an’ please your honour, said _Trim_,
  • unless one could purchase ----I should rather sell out entirely, quoth
  • my uncle _Toby_ ----I am pretty much of your opinion, brother _Toby_,
  • said my father.
  • ----Poor St. _Maxima!_ said my uncle _Toby_ low to himself, as we turn’d
  • from her tomb: She was one of the fairest and most beautiful ladies
  • either of _Italy_ or _France_, continued the sacristan ----But who the
  • duce has got lain down here, besides her? quoth my father, pointing with
  • his cane to a large tomb as we walked on ----It is Saint _Optat_, Sir,
  • answered the sacristan ----And properly is Saint _Optat_ plac’d! said my
  • father: And what is Saint _Optat’s_ story? continued he. Saint _Optat_,
  • replied the sacristan, was a bishop----
  • ----I thought so, by heaven! cried my father, interrupting him ----Saint
  • _Optat!_----how should Saint _Optat_ fail? so snatching out his
  • pocket-book, and the young _Benedictine_ holding him the torch as he
  • wrote, he set it down as a new prop to his system of Christian names,
  • and I will be bold to say, so disinterested was he in the search of
  • truth, that had he found a treasure in Saint _Optat’s_ tomb, it would
  • not have made him half so rich: ’Twas as successful a short visit as
  • ever was paid to the dead; and so highly was his fancy pleas’d with all
  • that had passed in it, --that he determined at once to stay another day
  • in _Auxerre_.
  • --I’ll see the rest of these good gentry to-morrow, said my father, as
  • we cross’d over the square --And while you are paying that visit, brother
  • _Shandy_, quoth my uncle _Toby_--the corporal and I will mount the
  • ramparts.
  • CHAPTER XXVIII
  • ----Now this is the most puzzled skein of all----for in this last
  • chapter, as far at least as it has help’d me through _Auxerre_, I have
  • been getting forwards in two different journies together, and with the
  • same dash of the pen--for I have got entirely out of _Auxerre_ in this
  • journey which I am writing now, and I am got half way out of _Auxerre_
  • in that which I shall write hereafter ----There is but a certain degree
  • of perfection in everything; and by pushing at something beyond that,
  • I have brought myself into such a situation, as no traveller ever stood
  • before me; for I am this moment walking across the market-place of
  • _Auxerre_ with my father and my uncle _Toby_, in our way back to
  • dinner----and I am this moment also entering _Lyons_ with my post-chaise
  • broke into a thousand pieces--and I am moreover this moment in a
  • handsome pavillion built by _Pringello_,[7.4] upon the banks of the
  • _Garonne_, which Mons. _Sligniac_ has lent me, and where I now sit
  • rhapsodising all these affairs.
  • ----Let me collect myself, and pursue my journey.
  • [Footnote 7.4: The same Don _Pringello_, the celebrated
  • _Spanish_ architect, of whom my cousin _Antony_ has made such
  • honourable mention in a scholium to the Tale inscribed to his
  • name. --Vid. p. 129, small edit.]
  • CHAPTER XXIX
  • I am glad of it, said I, settling the account with myself, as I walk’d
  • into _Lyons_----my chaise being all laid higgledy-piggledy with my
  • baggage in a cart, which was moving slowly before me ----I am heartily
  • glad, said I, that ’tis all broke to pieces; for now I can go directly
  • by water to _Avignon_, which will carry me on a hundred and twenty miles
  • of my journey, and not cost me seven livres----and from thence,
  • continued I, bringing forwards the account, I can hire a couple of
  • mules--or asses, if I like (for nobody knows me) and cross the plains of
  • _Languedoc_ for almost nothing ----I shall gain four hundred livres by
  • the misfortune clear into my purse: and pleasure! worth--worth double
  • the money by it. With what velocity, continued I, clapping my two hands
  • together, shall I fly down the rapid _Rhone_, with the VIVARES on my
  • right hand, and DAUPHINY on my left, scarce seeing the ancient cities of
  • VIENNE, _Valence_, and _Vivieres_. What a flame will it rekindle in the
  • lamp, to snatch a blushing grape from the _Hermitage_ and _Côte roti_,
  • as I shoot by the foot of them! and what a fresh spring in the blood! to
  • behold upon the banks advancing and retiring, the castles of romance,
  • whence courteous knights have whilome rescued the distress’d----and see
  • vertiginous, the rocks, the mountains, the cataracts, and all the hurry
  • which Nature is in with all her great works about her.
  • As I went on thus, methought my chaise, the wreck of which look’d
  • stately enough at the first, insensibly grew less and less in its size;
  • the freshness of the painting was no more--the gilding lost its
  • lustre--and the whole affair appeared so poor in my eyes--so sorry! --so
  • contemptible! and, in a word, so much worse than the abbess of
  • _Andoüillets’_ itself--that I was just opening my mouth to give it to
  • the devil--when a pert vamping chaise-undertaker, stepping nimbly across
  • the street, demanded if Monsieur would have his chaise refitted ----No,
  • no, said I, shaking my head sideways --Would Monsieur chuse to sell it?
  • rejoined the undertaker. --With all my soul, said I--the iron work is
  • worth forty livres--and the glasses worth forty more--and the leather
  • you may take to live on.
  • What a mine of wealth, quoth I, as he counted me the money, has this
  • post-chaise brought me in? And this is my usual method of book-keeping,
  • at least with the disasters of life--making a penny of every one of ’em
  • as they happen to me----
  • ----Do, my dear _Jenny_, tell the world for me, how I behaved under one,
  • the most oppressive of its kind, which could befal me as a man, proud as
  • he ought to be of his manhood----
  • ’Tis enough, saidst thou, coming close up to me, as I stood with my
  • garters in my hand, reflecting upon what had _not_ pass’d----’Tis
  • enough, _Tristram_, and I am satisfied, saidst thou, whispering these
  • words in my ear, **** ** **** *** ******; --**** ** **----any other man
  • would have sunk down to the center----
  • ----Everything is good for something, quoth I.
  • ----I’ll go into _Wales_ for six weeks, and drink goat’s whey--and I’ll
  • gain seven years longer life for the accident. For which reason I think
  • myself inexcusable, for blaming fortune so often as I have done, for
  • pelting me all my life long, like an ungracious duchess, as I call’d
  • her, with so many small evils: surely, if I have any cause to be angry
  • with her, ’tis that she has not sent me great ones--a score of good
  • cursed, bouncing losses, would have been as good as a pension to me.
  • ----One of a hundred a year, or so, is all I wish --I would not be at
  • the plague of paying land-tax for a larger.
  • CHAPTER XXX
  • To those who call vexations, VEXATIONS, as knowing what they are, there
  • could not be a greater, than to be the best part of a day at _Lyons_,
  • the most opulent and flourishing city in _France_, enriched with the
  • most fragments of antiquity--and not be able to see it. To be withheld
  • upon _any_ account, must be a vexation; but to be withheld _by_ a
  • vexation----must certainly be, what philosophy justly calls
  • VEXATION
  • upon
  • VEXATION.
  • I had got my two dishes of milk coffee (which by the bye is excellently
  • good for a consumption, but you must boil the milk and coffee
  • together--otherwise ’tis only coffee and milk)--and as it was no more
  • than eight in the morning, and the boat did not go off till noon, I had
  • time to see enough of _Lyons_ to tire the patience of all the friends I
  • had in the world with it. I will take a walk to the cathedral, said I,
  • looking at my list, and see the wonderful mechanism of this great clock
  • of _Lippius_ of _Basil_, in the first place----
  • Now, of all things in the world, I understand the least of
  • mechanism ----I have neither genius, or taste, or fancy--and have a brain
  • so entirely unapt for everything of that kind, that I solemnly declare I
  • was never yet able to comprehend the principles of motion of a squirrel
  • cage, or a common knife-grinder’s wheel--tho’ I have many an hour of my
  • life look’d up with great devotion at the one--and stood by with as much
  • patience as any christian ever could do, at the other----
  • I’ll go see the surprising movements of this great clock, said I, the
  • very first thing I do: and then I will pay a visit to the great library
  • of the Jesuits, and procure, if possible, a sight of the thirty volumes
  • of the general history of _China_, wrote (not in the _Tartarean_, but)
  • in the _Chinese_ language, and in the _Chinese_ character too.
  • Now I almost know as little of the _Chinese_ language, as I do of the
  • mechanism of _Lippius’s_ clock-work; so, why these should have jostled
  • themselves into the two first articles of my list ----I leave to the
  • curious as a problem of Nature. I own it looks like one of her
  • ladyship’s obliquities; and they who court her, are interested in
  • finding out her humour as much as I.
  • When these curiosities are seen, quoth I, half addressing myself to my
  • _valet de place_, who stood behind me----’twill be no hurt if we go to
  • the church of St. _Irenæus_, and see the pillar to which _Christ_ was
  • tied----and after that, the house where _Pontius Pilate_ lived----’Twas
  • at the next town, said the _valet de place_--at _Vienne_; I am glad of
  • it, said I, rising briskly from my chair, and walking across the room
  • with strides twice as long as my usual pace---- “for so much the sooner
  • shall I be at the _Tomb of the two lovers_.”
  • What was the cause of this movement, and why I took such long strides in
  • uttering this ----I might leave to the curious too; but as no principle
  • of clock-work is concerned in it----’twill be as well for the reader if
  • I explain it myself.
  • CHAPTER XXXI
  • O there is a sweet æra in the life of man, when (the brain being tender
  • and fibrillous, and more like pap than anything else)----a story read of
  • two fond lovers, separated from each other by cruel parents, and by
  • still more cruel destiny----
  • _Amandus_ ----He
  • _Amanda_ ----She----
  • each ignorant of the other’s course,
  • He----east
  • She----west
  • _Amandus_ taken captive by the _Turks_, and carried to the emperor of
  • _Morocco’s_ court, where the princess of _Morocco_ falling in love with
  • him, keeps him twenty years in prison for the love of his _Amanda_.----
  • She--(_Amanda_) all the time wandering barefoot, and with dishevell’d
  • hair, o’er rocks and mountains, enquiring for _Amandus!_----_Amandus!
  • Amandus!_--making every hill and valley to echo back his name----
  • _Amandus! Amandus!_
  • at every town and city, sitting down forlorn at the gate ----Has
  • _Amandus!_--has my _Amandus_ enter’d? ----till, ----going round, and
  • round, and round the world----chance unexpected bringing them at the
  • same moment of the night, though by different ways, to the gate of
  • _Lyons_, their native city, and each in well-known accents calling out
  • aloud,
  • Is _Amandus_ }
  • Is my _Amanda_ } still alive?
  • they fly into each other’s arms, and both drop down dead for joy.
  • There is a soft æra in every gentle mortal’s life, where such a story
  • affords more _pabulum_ to the brain, than all the _Frusts_, and
  • _Crusts_, and _Rusts_ of antiquity, which travellers can cook up for it.
  • ----’Twas all that stuck on the right side of the cullender in my own,
  • of what _Spon_ and others, in their accounts of _Lyons_, had _strained_
  • into it; and finding, moreover, in some Itinerary, but in what God
  • knows ----That sacred to the fidelity of _Amandus_ and _Amanda_, a tomb
  • was built without the gates, where, to this hour, lovers called upon
  • them to attest their truths ----I never could get into a scrape of that
  • kind in my life, but this _tomb of the lovers_ would, somehow or other,
  • come in at the close----nay such a kind of empire had it establish’d
  • over me, that I could seldom think or speak of _Lyons_--and sometimes
  • not so much as see even a _Lyons-waistcoat_, but this remnant of
  • antiquity would present itself to my fancy; and I have often said in my
  • wild way of running on----tho’ I fear with some irreverence---- “I
  • thought this shrine (neglected as it was) as valuable as that of
  • _Mecca_, and so little short, except in wealth, of the _Santa Casa_
  • itself, that some time or other, I would go a pilgrimage (though I had
  • no other business at _Lyons_) on purpose to pay it a visit.”
  • In my list, therefore, of _Videnda_ at _Lyons_, this, tho’ _last_, --was
  • not, you see, _least_; so taking a dozen or two of longer strides than
  • usual across my room, just whilst it passed my brain, I walked down
  • calmly into the _Basse Cour_, in order to sally forth; and having called
  • for my bill--as it was uncertain whether I should return to my inn,
  • I had paid it----had moreover given the maid ten sous, and was just
  • receiving the dernier compliments of Monsieur _Le Blanc_, for a pleasant
  • voyage down the _Rhône_----when I was stopped at the gate----
  • CHAPTER XXXII
  • ----’Twas by a poor ass, who had just turned in with a couple of large
  • panniers upon his back, to collect eleemosynary turnip-tops and
  • cabbage-leaves; and stood dubious, with his two fore-feet on the inside
  • of the threshold, and with his two hinder feet towards the street, as
  • not knowing very well whether he was to go in or no.
  • Now, ’tis an animal (be in what hurry I may) I cannot bear to
  • strike----there is a patient endurance of sufferings, wrote so
  • unaffectedly in his looks and carriage, which pleads so mightily for
  • him, that it always disarms me; and to that degree, that I do not like
  • to speak unkindly to him: on the contrary, meet him where I
  • will--whether in town or country--in cart or under panniers--whether in
  • liberty or bondage ----I have ever something civil to say to him on my
  • part; and as one word begets another (if he has as little to do
  • as I) ----I generally fall into conversation with him; and surely never
  • is my imagination so busy as in framing his responses from the etchings
  • of his countenance--and where those carry me not deep enough----in
  • flying from my own heart into his, and seeing what is natural for an ass
  • to think--as well as a man, upon the occasion. In truth, it is the only
  • creature of all the classes of beings below me, with whom I can do this:
  • for parrots, jackdaws, &c. ----I never exchange a word with them----nor
  • with the apes, &c., for pretty near the same reason; they act by rote,
  • as the others speak by it, and equally make me silent: nay my dog and my
  • cat, though I value them both----(and for my dog he would speak if he
  • could)--yet somehow or other, they neither of them possess the talents
  • for conversation ----I can make nothing of a discourse with them, beyond
  • the _proposition_, the _reply_, and _rejoinder_, which terminated my
  • father’s and my mother’s conversations, in his beds of justice----and
  • those utter’d----there’s an end of the dialogue----
  • --But with an ass, I can commune for ever.
  • Come, _Honesty!_ said I, ----seeing it was impracticable to pass betwixt
  • him and the gate----art thou for coming in, or going out?
  • The ass twisted his head round to look up the street----
  • Well--replied I--we’ll wait a minute for thy driver:
  • ----He turned his head thoughtful about, and looked wistfully the
  • opposite way----
  • I understand thee perfectly, answered I ----If thou takest a wrong step
  • in this affair, he will cudgel thee to death ----Well! a minute is but a
  • minute, and if it saves a fellow-creature a drubbing, it shall not be
  • set down as ill spent.
  • He was eating the stem of an artichoke as this discourse went on, and in
  • the little peevish contentions of nature betwixt hunger and
  • unsavouriness, had dropt it out of his mouth half a dozen times, and
  • pick’d it up again ----God help thee, _Jack!_ said I, thou hast a bitter
  • breakfast on’t--and many a bitter day’s labour, --and many a bitter
  • blow, I fear, for its wages----’tis all--all bitterness to thee,
  • whatever life is to others. ----And now thy mouth, if one knew the truth
  • of it, is as bitter, I dare say, as soot--(for he had cast aside the
  • stem) and thou hast not a friend perhaps in all this world, that will
  • give thee a macaroon. ----In saying this, I pull’d out a paper of ’em,
  • which I had just purchased, and gave him one--and at this moment that I
  • am telling it, my heart smites me, that there was more of pleasantry in
  • the conceit, of seeing _how_ an ass would eat a macaroon----than of
  • benevolence in giving him one, which presided in the act.
  • When the ass had eaten his macaroon, I press’d him to come in--the poor
  • beast was heavy loaded----his legs seem’d to tremble under him----he
  • hung rather backwards, and as I pull’d at his halter, it broke short in
  • my hand----he look’d up pensive in my face-- “Don’t thrash me with
  • it--but if you will, you may” ----If I do, said I, I’ll be d----d.
  • The word was but one-half of it pronounced, like the abbess of
  • _Andoüillets’_--(so there was no sin in it)--when a person coming in,
  • let fall a thundering bastinado upon the poor devil’s crupper, which put
  • an end to the ceremony.
  • _Out upon it!_
  • cried I----but the interjection was equivocal----and, I think, wrong
  • placed too--for the end of an osier which had started out from the
  • contexture of the ass’s pannier, had caught hold of my breeches pocket,
  • as he rush’d by me, and rent it in the most disastrous direction you can
  • imagine----so that the
  • _Out upon it!_ in my opinion, should have come in here----but this I
  • leave to be settled by
  • THE
  • REVIEWERS
  • OF
  • MY BREECHES,
  • which I have brought over along with me for that purpose.
  • CHAPTER XXXIII
  • When all was set to rights, I came down stairs again into the _basse
  • cour_ with my _valet de place_, in order to sally out towards the tomb
  • of the two lovers, &c. --and was a second time stopp’d at the
  • gate----not by the ass--but by the person who struck him; and who, by
  • that time, had taken possession (as is not uncommon after a defeat) of
  • the very spot of ground where the ass stood.
  • It was a commissary sent to me from the post-office, with a rescript in
  • his hand for the payment of some six livres odd sous.
  • Upon what account? said I. ----’Tis upon the part of the king, replied
  • the commissary, heaving up both his shoulders----
  • ----My good friend, quoth I----as sure as I am I--and you are you----
  • ----And who are you? said he. ------Don’t puzzle me; said I.
  • CHAPTER XXXIV
  • ----But it is an indubitable verity, continued I, addressing myself to
  • the commissary, changing only the form of my asseveration----that I owe
  • the king of _France_ nothing but my good-will; for he is a very honest
  • man, and I wish him all health and pastime in the world----
  • _Pardonnez moi_--replied the commissary, you are indebted to him six
  • livres four sous, for the next post from hence to St. _Fons_, in your
  • route to _Avignon_--which being a post royal, you pay double for the
  • horses and postillion--otherwise ’twould have amounted to no more than
  • three livres two sous----
  • ----But I don’t go by land; said I.
  • ----You may if you please; replied the commissary----
  • Your most obedient servant----said I, making him a low bow----
  • The commissary, with all the sincerity of grave good breeding--made me
  • one, as low again. ----I never was more disconcerted with a bow in my
  • life.
  • ----The devil take the serious character of these people! quoth
  • I--(aside) they understand no more of IRONY than this----
  • The comparison was standing close by with his panniers--but something
  • seal’d up my lips --I could not pronounce the name--
  • Sir, said I, collecting myself--it is not my intention to take post----
  • --But you may--said he, persisting in his first reply--you may take post
  • if you chuse----
  • --And I may take salt to my pickled herring, said I, if I chuse----
  • --But I do not chuse--
  • --But you must pay for it, whether you do or no.
  • Aye! for the salt; said I (I know)----
  • --And for the post too; added he. Defend me! cried I----
  • I travel by water --I am going down the _Rhône_ this very afternoon--my
  • baggage is in the boat--and I have actually paid nine livres for my
  • passage----
  • _C’est tout egal_--’tis all one; said he.
  • _Bon Dieu!_ what, pay for the way I go! and for the way I do _not_ go!
  • ----_C’est tout egal_; replied the commissary----
  • ----The devil it is! said I--but I will go to ten thousand Bastiles
  • first----
  • _O England! England!_ thou land of liberty, and climate of good sense,
  • thou tenderest of mothers--and gentlest of nurses, cried I, kneeling
  • upon one knee, as I was beginning my apostrophe.
  • When the director of Madam _Le Blanc’s_ conscience coming in at that
  • instant, and seeing a person in black, with a face as pale as ashes, at
  • his devotions--looking still paler by the contrast and distress of his
  • drapery--ask’d, if I stood in want of the aids of the church----
  • I go by WATER--said I--and here’s another will be for making me pay for
  • going by OIL.
  • CHAPTER XXXV
  • As I perceived the commissary of the post-office would have his six
  • livres four sous, I had nothing else for it, but to say some smart thing
  • upon the occasion, worth the money:
  • And so I set off thus:----
  • ----And pray, Mr. Commissary, by what law of courtesy is a defenceless
  • stranger to be used just the reverse from what you use a _Frenchman_ in
  • this matter?
  • By no means; said he.
  • Excuse me; said I--for you have begun, Sir, with first tearing off my
  • breeches--and now you want my pocket----
  • Whereas--had you first taken my pocket, as you do with your own
  • people--and then left me bare a--’d after --I had been a beast to have
  • complain’d----
  • As it is----
  • ----’Tis contrary to the _law of nature_.
  • ----’Tis contrary to _reason_.
  • ----’Tis contrary to the GOSPEL.
  • But not to this----said he--putting a printed paper into my hand,
  • PAR LE ROY.
  • ------’Tis a pithy prolegomenon, quoth I--and so read on
  • ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ----
  • ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ----
  • ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ----
  • ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ----
  • ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- ---- --------
  • ----By all which it appears, quoth I, having read it over, a little too
  • rapidly, that if a man sets out in a post-chaise from _Paris_--he must
  • go on travelling in one, all the days of his life--or pay for it.
  • --Excuse me, said the commissary, the spirit of the ordinance is
  • this --That if you set out with an intention of running post from _Paris_
  • to _Avignon_, &c., you shall not change that intention or mode of
  • travelling, without first satisfying the fermiers for two posts further
  • than the place you repent at--and ’tis founded, continued he, upon this,
  • that the REVENUES are not to fall short through your _fickleness_----
  • ----O by heavens! cried I--if fickleness is taxable in _France_--we have
  • nothing to do but to make the best peace with you we can----
  • AND SO THE PEACE WAS MADE;
  • ----And if it is a bad one--as _Tristram Shandy_ laid the corner-stone
  • of it--nobody but _Tristram Shandy_ ought to be hanged.
  • CHAPTER XXXVI
  • Though I was sensible I had said as many clever things to the commissary
  • as came to six livres four sous, yet I was determined to note down the
  • imposition amongst my remarks before I retired from the place; so
  • putting my hand into my coat-pocket for my remarks--(which, by the bye,
  • may be a caution to travellers to take a little more care of _their_
  • remarks for the future) “my remarks were _stolen_” ----Never did sorry
  • traveller make such a pother and racket about his remarks as I did about
  • mine, upon the occasion.
  • Heaven! earth! sea! fire! cried I, calling in everything to my aid but
  • what I should ------My remarks are stolen! --what shall I do? ----Mr.
  • Commissary! pray did I drop any remarks, as I stood besides you?------
  • You dropp’d a good many very singular ones; replied he ----Pugh! said I,
  • those were but a few, not worth above six livres two sous--but these are
  • a large parcel ----He shook his head ----Monsieur _Le Blanc!_ Madam _Le
  • Blanc!_ did you see any papers of mine? --you maid of the house! run up
  • stairs--_François!_ run up after her----
  • --I must have my remarks----they were the best remarks, cried I, that
  • ever were made--the wisest--the wittiest --What shall I do? --which way
  • shall I turn myself?
  • _Sancho Pança_, when he lost his ass’s FURNITURE, did not exclaim more
  • bitterly.
  • CHAPTER XXXVII
  • When the first transport was over, and the registers of the brain were
  • beginning to get a little out of the confusion into which this jumble of
  • cross accidents had cast them--it then presently occurr’d to me, that I
  • had left my remarks in the pocket of the chaise--and that in selling my
  • chaise, I had sold my remarks along with it, to the chaise-vamper.
  • I leave this void space that the reader may swear
  • into it any oath that he is most accustomed to ----For my own part, if
  • ever I swore a _whole_ oath into a vacancy in my life, I think it was
  • into that----*********, said I--and so my remarks through _France_,
  • which were as full of wit, as an egg is full of meat, and as well worth
  • four hundred guineas, as the said egg is worth a penny--have I been
  • selling here to a chaise-vamper--for four _Louis d’Ors_--and giving him
  • a post-chaise (by heaven) worth six into the bargain; had it been to
  • _Dodsley_, or _Becket_, or any creditable bookseller, who was either
  • leaving off business, and wanted a post-chaise--or who was beginning
  • it--and wanted my remarks, and two or three guineas along with them
  • --I could have borne it----but to a chaise-vamper! --shew me to him this
  • moment, _François_, --said I --The valet de place put on his hat, and
  • led the way--and I pull’d off mine, as I pass’d the commissary, and
  • followed him.
  • CHAPTER XXXVIII
  • When we arrived at the Chaise-vamper’s House, Both the House and the
  • shop were shut up; it was the eighth of _September_, the nativity of the
  • blessed Virgin _Mary_, mother of God--
  • ----Tantarra-ra-tan-tivi----the whole world was gone out a
  • May-poling--frisking here--capering there----nobody cared a button for
  • me or my remarks; so I sat me down upon a bench by the door,
  • philosophating upon my condition: by a better fate than usually attends
  • me, I had not waited half an hour, when the mistress came in to take the
  • papilliotes from off her hair, before she went to the May-poles----
  • The _French_ women, by the bye, love May-poles, _à la folie_--that is,
  • as much as their matins----give ’em but a May-pole, whether in _May_,
  • _June_, _July_, or _September_--they never count the times----down it
  • goes----’tis meat, drink, washing, and lodging to ’em----and had we but
  • the policy, an’ please your worships (as wood is a little scarce in
  • _France_), to send them but plenty of May-poles----
  • The women would set them up; and when they had done, they would dance
  • round them (and the men for company) till they were all blind.
  • The wife of the chaise-vamper stepp’d in, I told you, to take the
  • papilliotes from off her hair----the toilet stands still for no
  • man----so she jerk’d off her cap, to begin with them as she open’d the
  • door, in doing which, one of them fell upon the ground ----I instantly
  • saw it was my own writing----
  • O Seigneur! cried I--you have got all my remarks upon your head, Madam!
  • ----_J’en suis bien mortifiée_, said she----’tis well, thinks I, they
  • have stuck there--for could they have gone deeper, they would have made
  • such confusion in a _French_ woman’s noddle --She had better have gone
  • with it unfrizled, to the day of eternity.
  • _Tenez_--said she--so without any idea of the nature of my suffering,
  • she took them from her curls, and put them gravely one by one into my
  • hat----one was twisted this way----another twisted that----ey! by my
  • faith; and when they are published, quoth I,----
  • They will be worse twisted still.
  • CHAPTER XXXIX
  • And now for _Lippius’s_ clock! said I, with the air of a man, who had
  • got thro’ all his difficulties----nothing can prevent us seeing that,
  • and the _Chinese_ history, &c., except the time, said _François_----for
  • ’tis almost eleven --Then we must speed the faster, said I, striding it
  • away to the cathedral.
  • I cannot say, in my heart, that it gave me any concern in being told by
  • one of the minor canons, as I was entering the west door, --That
  • _Lippius’s_ great clock was all out of joints, and had not gone for some
  • years ----It will give me the more time, thought I, to peruse the
  • _Chinese_ history; and besides I shall be able to give the world a
  • better account of the clock in its decay, than I could have done in its
  • flourishing condition----
  • ----And so away I posted to the college of the Jesuits.
  • Now it is with the project of getting a peep at the history of _China_
  • in _Chinese_ characters--as with many others I could mention, which
  • strike the fancy only at a distance; for as I came nearer and nearer to
  • the point--my blood cool’d--the freak gradually went off, till at length
  • I would not have given a cherrystone to have it gratified ------The truth
  • was, my time was short, and my heart was at the Tomb of the Lovers ----I
  • wish to God, said I, as I got the rapper in my hand, that the key of the
  • library may be but lost; it fell out as well------
  • _For all the JESUITS had got the cholic_--and to that degree, as never
  • was known in the memory of the oldest practitioner.
  • CHAPTER XL
  • As I knew the geography of the Tomb of the Lovers, as well as if I had
  • lived twenty years in _Lyons_, namely, that it was upon the turning of
  • my right hand, just without the gate, leading to the _Fauxbourg de
  • Vaise_ ----I dispatched _François_ to the boat, that I might pay the
  • homage I so long ow’d it, without a witness of my weakness --I walk’d
  • with all imaginable joy towards the place----when I saw the gate which
  • intercepted the tomb, my heart glowed within me----
  • --Tender and faithful spirits! cried I, addressing myself to _Amandus_
  • and _Amanda_--long--long have I tarried to drop this tear upon your
  • tomb ------I come ------I come------
  • When I came--there was no tomb to drop it upon.
  • What would I have given for my uncle _Toby_, to have whistled
  • Lillabullero!
  • CHAPTER XLI
  • No matter how, or in what mood--but I flew from the tomb of the
  • lovers--or rather I did not fly _from_ it--(for there was no such thing
  • existing) and just got time enough to the boat to save my passage; --and
  • ere I had sailed a hundred yards, the _Rhône_ and the _Saôn_ met
  • together, and carried me down merrily betwixt them.
  • But I have described this voyage down the _Rhône_, before I made it----
  • ----So now I am at _Avignon_, and as there is nothing to see but the old
  • house, in which the duke of _Ormond_ resided, and nothing to stop me but
  • a short remark upon the place, in three minutes you will see me crossing
  • the bridge upon a mule, with _François_ upon a horse with my portmanteau
  • behind him, and the owner of both, striding the way before us, with a
  • long gun upon his shoulder, and a sword under his arm, lest peradventure
  • we should run away with his cattle. Had you seen my breeches in entering
  • _Avignon_, ----Though you’d have seen them better, I think, as I
  • mounted--you would not have thought the precaution amiss, or found in
  • your heart to have taken it in dudgeon; for my own part, I took it most
  • kindly; and determined to make him a present of them, when we got to the
  • end of our journey, for the trouble they had put him to, of arming
  • himself at all points against them.
  • Before I go further, let me get rid of my remark upon _Avignon_, which
  • is this: That I think it wrong, merely because a man’s hat has been
  • blown off his head by chance the first night he comes to _Avignon_,
  • ----that he should therefore say, “_Avignon_ is more subject to high
  • winds than any town in all _France_:” for which reason I laid no stress
  • upon the accident till I had enquired of the master of the inn about it,
  • who telling me seriously it was so----and hearing, moreover, the
  • windiness of _Avignon_ spoke of in the country about as a proverb ----I
  • set it down, merely to ask the learned what can be the cause----the
  • consequence I saw--for they are all Dukes, Marquisses, and Counts,
  • there----the duce a Baron, in all _Avignon_----so that there is scarce
  • any talking to them on a windy day.
  • Prithee, friend, said I, take hold of my mule for a moment----for I
  • wanted to pull off one of my jack-boots, which hurt my heel--the man was
  • standing quite idle at the door of the inn, and as I had taken it into
  • my head, he was someway concerned about the house or stable, I put the
  • bridle into his hand--so begun with the boot: --when I had finished the
  • affair, I turned about to take the mule from the man, and thank him----
  • ------But _Monsieur le Marquis_ had walked in----
  • CHAPTER XLII
  • I had now the whole south of _France_, from the banks of the _Rhône_ to
  • those of the _Garonne_, to traverse upon my mule at my own leisure--_at
  • my own leisure_----for I had left Death, the Lord knows----and He
  • only--how far behind me---- “I have followed many a man thro’ _France_,
  • quoth he--but never at this mettlesome rate.” ----Still he followed,
  • ----and still I fled him----but I fled him chearfully----still he
  • pursued----but, like one who pursued his prey without hope----as he
  • lagg’d, every step he lost, soften’d his looks----why should I fly him
  • at this rate?
  • So notwithstanding all the commissary of the post-office had said,
  • I changed the _mode_ of my travelling once more; and, after so
  • precipitate and rattling a course as I had run, I flattered my fancy
  • with thinking of my mule, and that I should traverse the rich plains of
  • _Languedoc_ upon his back, as slowly as foot could fall.
  • There is nothing more pleasing to a traveller----or more terrible to
  • travel-writers, than a large rich plain; especially if it is without
  • great rivers or bridges; and presents nothing to the eye, but one
  • unvaried picture of plenty: for after they have once told you, that ’tis
  • delicious! or delightful! (as the case happens)--that the soil was
  • grateful, and that nature pours out all her abundance, &c. . . . they
  • have then a large plain upon their hands, which they know not what to do
  • with--and which is of little or no use to them but to carry them to some
  • town; and that town, perhaps of little more, but a new place to start
  • from to the next plain----and so on.
  • --This is most terrible work; judge if I don’t manage my plains better.
  • CHAPTER XLIII
  • I had not gone above two leagues and a half, before the man with his gun
  • began to look at his priming.
  • I had three several times loiter’d _terribly_ behind; half a mile at
  • least every time; once, in deep conference with a drum-maker, who was
  • making drums for the fairs of _Baucaira_ and _Tarascone_ --I did not
  • understand the principles----
  • The second time, I cannot so properly say, I stopp’d----for meeting a
  • couple of _Franciscans_ straitened more for time than myself, and not
  • being able to get to the bottom of what I was about ----I had turn’d back
  • with them----
  • The third, was an affair of trade with a gossip, for a hand-basket of
  • _Provence_ figs for four sous; this would have been transacted at once;
  • but for a case of conscience at the close of it; for when the figs were
  • paid for, it turn’d out, that there were two dozen of eggs cover’d over
  • with vine-leaves at the bottom of the basket--as I had no intention of
  • buying eggs --I made no sort of claim of them--as for the space they had
  • occupied--what signified it? I had figs enow for my money----
  • --But it was my intention to have the basket--it was the gossip’s
  • intention to keep it, without which, she could do nothing with her
  • eggs----and unless I had the basket, I could do as little with my figs,
  • which were too ripe already, and most of ’em burst at the side: this
  • brought on a short contention, which terminated in sundry proposals,
  • what we should both do----
  • ----How we disposed of our eggs and figs, I defy you, or the Devil
  • himself, had he not been there (which I am persuaded he was), to form
  • the least probable conjecture: You will read the whole of it------not
  • this year, for I am hastening to the story of my uncle _Toby’s_
  • amours--but you will read it in the collection of those which have arose
  • out of the journey across this plain--and which, therefore, I call my
  • PLAIN STORIES.
  • How far my pen has been fatigued, like those of other travellers, in
  • this journey of it, over so barren a track--the world must judge--but
  • the traces of it, which are now all set o’ vibrating together this
  • moment, tell me ’tis the most fruitful and busy period of my life; for
  • as I had made no convention with my man with the gun, as to time--by
  • stopping and talking to every soul I met, who was not in a full
  • trot--joining all parties before me--waiting for every soul
  • behind--hailing all those who were coming through cross-roads--arresting
  • all kinds of beggars, pilgrims, fiddlers, friars----not passing by a
  • woman in a mulberry-tree without commending her legs, and tempting her
  • into conversation with a pinch of snuff ------In short, by seizing every
  • handle, of what size or shape soever, which chance held out to me in
  • this journey --I turned my _plain_ into a _city_ --I was always in
  • company, and with great variety too; and as my mule loved society as
  • much as myself, and had some proposals always on his part to offer to
  • every beast he met --I am confident we could have passed through
  • _Pall-Mall_, or St. _James’s_-Street for a month together, with fewer
  • adventures--and seen less of human nature.
  • O! there is that sprightly frankness, which at once unpins every plait
  • of a _Languedocian’s_ dress--that whatever is beneath it, it looks so
  • like the simplicity which poets sing of in better days --I will delude
  • my fancy, and believe it is so.
  • ’Twas in the road betwixt _Nismes_ and _Lunel_, where there is the best
  • _Muscatto_ wine in all _France_, and which by the bye belongs to the
  • honest canons of MONTPELLIER--and foul befal the man who has drank it at
  • their table, who grudges them a drop of it.
  • ----The sun was set--they had done their work; the nymphs had tied up
  • their hair afresh--and the swains were preparing for a carousal----my
  • mule made a dead point----’Tis the fife and tabourin, said I ----I’m
  • frighten’d to death, quoth he ----They are running at the ring of
  • pleasure, said I, giving him a prick ----By saint _Boogar_, and all the
  • saints at the backside of the door of purgatory, said he--(making the
  • same resolution with the abbesse of _Andoüillets_) I’ll not go a step
  • further------’Tis very well, sir, said I ----I never will argue a point
  • with one of your family, as long as I live; so leaping off his back, and
  • kicking off one boot into this ditch, and t’other into that --I’ll take
  • a dance, said I--so stay you here.
  • A sun-burnt daughter of Labour rose up from the groupe to meet me, as I
  • advanced towards them; her hair, which was a dark chesnut approaching
  • rather to a black, was tied up in a knot, all but a single tress.
  • We want a cavalier, said she, holding out both her hands, as if to offer
  • them --And a cavalier ye shall have; said I, taking hold of both of them.
  • Hadst thou, _Nannette_, been array’d like a dutchesse!
  • ----But that cursed slit in thy petticoat!
  • _Nannette_ cared not for it.
  • We could not have done without you, said she, letting go one hand, with
  • self-taught politeness, leading me up with the other.
  • A lame youth, whom _Apollo_ had recompensed with a pipe, and to which he
  • had added a tabourin of his own accord, ran sweetly over the prelude, as
  • he sat upon the bank ----Tie me up this tress instantly, said _Nannette_,
  • putting a piece of string into my hand --It taught me to forget I was a
  • stranger ----The whole knot fell down ----We had been seven years
  • acquainted.
  • The youth struck the note upon the tabourin--his pipe followed, and off
  • we bounded---- “the duce take that slit!”
  • The sister of the youth, who had stolen her voice from heaven, sung
  • alternately with her brother----’twas a _Gascoigne_ roundelay.
  • VIVA LA JOIA!
  • FIDON LA TRISTESSA!
  • The nymphs join’d in unison, and their swains an octave below them----
  • I would have given a crown to have it sew’d up--_Nannette_ would not
  • have given a SOUS--_Viva la joia!_ was in her lips--_Viva la joia!_ was
  • in her eyes. A transient spark of amity shot across the space betwixt
  • us ----She look’d amiable! ----Why could I not live, and end my days
  • thus? Just Disposer of our joys and sorrows, cried I, why could not a
  • man sit down in the lap of content here----and dance, and sing, and say
  • his prayers, and go to heaven with this nut-brown maid? Capriciously did
  • she bend her head on one side, and dance up insidious ----Then ’tis time
  • to dance off, quoth I; so changing only partners and tunes, I danced it
  • away from _Lunel_ to _Montpellier_----from thence to _Pesçnas_,
  • _Beziers_ ----I danced it along through _Narbonne_, _Carcasson_, and
  • _Castle Naudairy_, till at last I danced myself into _Perdrillo’s_
  • pavillion, where pulling out a paper of black lines, that I might go on
  • straight forwards, without digression or parenthesis, in my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ amours----
  • I begun thus----
  • BOOK VIII
  • CHAPTER I
  • ----But softly----for in these sportive plains, and under this genial
  • sun, where at this instant all flesh is running out piping, fiddling,
  • and dancing to the vintage, and every step that’s taken, the judgment is
  • surprised by the imagination, I defy, notwithstanding all that has been
  • said upon _straight lines_[8.1] in sundry pages of my book --I defy the
  • best cabbage planter that ever existed, whether he plants backwards or
  • forwards, it makes little difference in the account (except that he will
  • have more to answer for in the one case than in the other) --I defy him
  • to go on coolly, critically, and canonically, planting his cabbages one
  • by one, in straight lines, and stoical distances, especially if slits in
  • petticoats are unsew’d up--without ever and anon straddling out, or
  • sidling into some bastardly digression ----In _Freeze-land_, _Fog-land_,
  • and some other lands I wot of--it may be done----
  • But in this clear climate of fantasy and perspiration, where every idea,
  • sensible and insensible, gets vent--in this land, my dear _Eugenius_--in
  • this fertile land of chivalry and romance, where I now sit, unskrewing
  • my ink-horn to write my uncle _Toby’s_ amours, and with all the meanders
  • of JULIA’S track in quest of her DIEGO, in full view of my study
  • window--if thou comest not and takest me by the hand----
  • What a work it is likely to turn out!
  • Let us begin it.
  • [Footnote 8.1: Vid. pp. 347-348.] [[Book VI, Chapter XL]]
  • CHAPTER II
  • It is with LOVE as with CUCKOLDOM----
  • But now I am talking of beginning a book, and have long had a thing upon
  • my mind to be imparted to the reader, which, if not imparted now, can
  • never be imparted to him as long as I live (whereas the COMPARISON may
  • be imparted to him any hour in the day) ----I’ll just mention it, and
  • begin in good earnest.
  • The thing is this.
  • That of all the several ways of beginning a book which are now in
  • practice throughout the known world, I am confident my own way of doing
  • it is the best ----I’m sure it is the most religious----for I begin with
  • writing the first sentence----and trusting to Almighty God for the
  • second.
  • ’Twould cure an author for ever of the fuss and folly of opening his
  • street-door, and calling in his neighbours and friends, and kinsfolk,
  • with the devil and all his imps, with their hammers and engines, &c.,
  • only to observe how one sentence of mine follows another, and how the
  • plan follows the whole.
  • I wish you saw me half starting out of my chair, with what confidence,
  • as I grasp the elbow of it, I look up----catching the idea, even
  • sometimes before it half way reaches me----
  • I believe in my conscience I intercept many a thought which heaven
  • intended for another man.
  • _Pope_ and his Portrait[8.2] are fools to me----no martyr is ever so
  • full of faith or fire ----I wish I could say of good works too----but I
  • have no
  • Zeal or Anger----or
  • Anger or Zeal----
  • And till gods and men agree together to call it by the same name----the
  • errantest TARTUFFE, in science--in politics--or in religion, shall never
  • kindle a spark within me, or have a worse word, or a more unkind
  • greeting, than what he will read in the next chapter.
  • [Footnote 8.2: Vid. _Pope’s_ Portrait.]
  • CHAPTER III
  • ----Bonjour! ----good morrow! ----so you have got your cloak on betimes!
  • ----but ’tis a cold morning, and you judge the matter rightly----’tis
  • better to be well mounted, than go o’ foot----and obstructions in the
  • glands are dangerous ----And how goes it with thy concubine--thy wife,
  • --and thy little ones o’ both sides? and when did you hear from the old
  • gentleman and lady--your sister, aunt, uncle, and cousins ----I hope they
  • have got better of their colds, coughs, claps, toothaches, fevers,
  • stranguries, sciaticas, swellings, and sore eyes.
  • ----What a devil of an apothecary! to take so much blood--give such a
  • vile purge--puke--poultice--plaister--night-draught--clyster--blister?
  • ----And why so many grains of calomel? santa Maria! and such a dose of
  • opium! periclitating, pardi! the whole family of ye, from head to
  • tail ----By my great-aunt _Dinah’s_ old black velvet mask! I think there
  • was no occasion for it.
  • Now this being a little bald about the chin, by frequently putting off
  • and on, _before_ she was got with child by the coachman--not one of our
  • family would wear it after. To cover the MASK afresh, was more than the
  • mask was worth----and to wear a mask which was bald, or which could be
  • half seen through, was as bad as having no mask at all----
  • This is the reason, may it please your reverences, that in all our
  • numerous family, for these four generations, we count no more than one
  • archbishop, a _Welch_ judge, some three or four aldermen, and a single
  • mountebank----
  • In the sixteenth century, we boast of no less than a dozen alchymists.
  • CHAPTER IV
  • “It is with Love as with Cuckoldom”----the suffering party is at least
  • the _third_, but generally the last in the house who knows anything
  • about the matter: this comes, as all the world knows, from having half a
  • dozen words for one thing; and so long, as what in this vessel of the
  • human frame, is _Love_--may be _Hatred_, in that----_Sentiment_ half a
  • yard higher----and _Nonsense_----------no, Madam, --not there ----I mean
  • at the part I am now pointing to with my forefinger----how can we help
  • ourselves?
  • Of all mortal, and immortal men too, if you please, who ever
  • soliloquized upon this mystic subject, my uncle _Toby_ was the worst
  • fitted, to have push’d his researches, thro’ such a contention of
  • feelings; and he had infallibly let them all run on, as we do worse
  • matters, to see what they would turn out----had not _Bridget’s_
  • pre-notification of them to _Susannah_, and _Susannah’s_ repeated
  • manifestoes thereupon to all the world, made it necessary for my uncle
  • _Toby_ to look into the affair.
  • CHAPTER V
  • Why weavers, gardeners, and gladiators--or a man with a pined leg
  • (proceeding from some ailment in the _foot_)--should ever have had some
  • tender nymph breaking her heart in secret for them, are points well and
  • duly settled and accounted for by ancient and modern physiologists.
  • A water-drinker, provided he is a profess’d one, and does it without
  • fraud or covin, is precisely in the same predicament: not that, at first
  • sight, there is any consequence, or show of logic in it, “That a rill of
  • cold water dribbling through my inward parts, should light up a torch in
  • my _Jenny’s_--”
  • ----The proposition does not strike one; on the contrary, it seems to
  • run opposite to the natural workings of causes and effects----
  • But it shews the weakness and imbecility of human reason.
  • ----“And in perfect good health with it?”
  • --The most perfect, --Madam, that friendship herself could wish me----
  • “And drink nothing! --nothing but water?”
  • --Impetuous fluid! the moment thou pressest against the flood-gates of
  • the brain----see how they give way!----
  • In swims CURIOSITY, beckoning to her damsels to follow--they dive into
  • the centre of the current----
  • FANCY sits musing upon the bank, and with her eyes following the stream,
  • turns straws and bulrushes into masts and bowsprits ----And DESIRE, with
  • vest held up to the knee in one hand, snatches at them, as they swim by
  • her with the other----
  • O ye water-drinkers! is it then by this delusive fountain, that ye
  • have so often governed and turn’d this world about like a mill-wheel--
  • grinding the faces of the impotent--bepowdering their ribs--bepeppering
  • their noses, and changing sometimes even the very frame and face of
  • nature----
  • If I was you, quoth _Yorick_, I would drink more water, _Eugenius_
  • --And, if I was you, _Yorick_, replied _Eugenius_, so would I.
  • Which shews they had both read _Longinus_----
  • For my own part, I am resolved never to read any book but my own, as
  • long as I live.
  • CHAPTER VI
  • I wish my uncle _Toby_ had been a water-drinker; for then the thing had
  • been accounted for, That the first moment Widow _Wadman_ saw him, she
  • felt something stirring within her in his favour --Something!
  • --something.
  • --Something perhaps more than friendship--less than love--something--no
  • matter what--no matter where --I would not give a single hair off my
  • mule’s tail, and be obliged to pluck it off myself (indeed the villain
  • has not many to spare, and is not a little vicious into the bargain), to
  • be let by your worships into the secret----
  • But the truth is, my uncle _Toby_ was not a water-drinker; he drank it
  • neither pure nor mix’d, or any how, or any where, except fortuitously
  • upon some advanced posts, where better liquor was not to be had----or
  • during the time he was under cure; when the surgeon telling him it would
  • extend the fibres, and bring them sooner into contact----my uncle _Toby_
  • drank it for quietness sake.
  • Now as all the world knows, that no effect in nature can be produced
  • without a cause, and as it is as well known, that my uncle _Toby_ was
  • neither a weaver--a gardener, or a gladiator----unless as a captain, you
  • will needs have him one--but then he was only a captain of foot--and
  • besides, the whole is an equivocation ----There is nothing left for us to
  • suppose, but that my uncle _Toby’s_ leg----but that will avail us little
  • in the present hypothesis, unless it had proceeded from some ailment _in
  • the foot_--whereas his leg was not emaciated from any disorder in his
  • foot--for my uncle _Toby’s_ leg was not emaciated at all. It was a
  • little stiff and awkward, from a total disuse of it, for the three years
  • he lay confined at my father’s house in town; but it was plump and
  • muscular, and in all other respects as good and promising a leg as the
  • other.
  • I declare, I do not recollect any one opinion or passage of my life,
  • where my understanding was more at a loss to make ends meet, and torture
  • the chapter I had been writing, to the service of the chapter following
  • it, than in the present case: one would think I took a pleasure in
  • running into difficulties of this kind, merely to make fresh experiments
  • of getting out of ’em ----Inconsiderate soul that thou art! What! are not
  • the unavoidable distresses with which, as an author and a man, thou art
  • hemm’d in on every side of thee----are they, _Tristram_, not sufficient,
  • but thou must entangle thyself still more?
  • Is it not enough that thou art in debt, and that thou hast ten
  • cart-loads of thy fifth and sixth volumes[8.3] still--still unsold, and
  • art almost at thy wit’s ends, how to get them off thy hands?
  • To this hour art thou not tormented with the vile asthma that thou
  • gattest in skating against the wind in _Flanders?_ and is it but two
  • months ago, that in a fit of laughter, on seeing a cardinal make water
  • like a quirister (with both hands) thou brakest a vessel in thy lungs,
  • whereby, in two hours, thou lost as many quarts of blood; and hadst thou
  • lost as much more, did not the faculty tell thee------it would have
  • amounted to a gallon?------
  • [Footnote 8.3: Alluding to the first edition.]
  • CHAPTER VII
  • ----But for heaven’s sake, let us not talk of quarts or gallons----let
  • us take the story straight before us; it is so nice and intricate a one,
  • it will scarce bear the transposition of a single tittle; and, somehow
  • or other, you have got me thrust almost into the middle of it--
  • --I beg we may take more care.
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • My uncle _Toby_ and the corporal had posted down with so much heat and
  • precipitation, to take possession of the spot of ground we have so often
  • spoke of, in order to open their campaign as early as the rest of the
  • allies; that they had forgot one of the most necessary articles of the
  • whole affair; it was neither a pioneer’s spade, a pickax, or a shovel--
  • --It was a bed to lie on: so that as _Shandy-Hall_ was at that time
  • unfurnished; and the little inn where poor _Le Fever_ died, not yet
  • built; my uncle _Toby_ was constrained to accept of a bed at Mrs.
  • _Wadman’s_, for a night or two, till corporal _Trim_ (who to the
  • character of an excellent valet, groom, cook, sempster, surgeon, and
  • engineer, superadded that of an excellent upholsterer too), with the
  • help of a carpenter and a couple of taylors, constructed one in my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ house.
  • A daughter of _Eve_, for such was widow _Wadman_, and ’tis all the
  • character I intend to give of her--
  • --“_That she was a perfect woman_--” had better be fifty leagues off--or
  • in her warm bed--or playing with a case-knife--or anything you
  • please--than make a man the object of her attention, when the house and
  • all the furniture is her own.
  • There is nothing in it out of doors and in broad day-light, where a
  • woman has a power, physically speaking, of viewing a man in more lights
  • than one--but here, for her soul, she can see him in no light without
  • mixing something of her own goods and chattels along with him----till by
  • reiterated acts of such combination, he gets foisted into her
  • inventory----
  • --And then good night.
  • But this is not matter of SYSTEM; for I have delivered that above----nor
  • is it matter of BREVIARY----for I make no man’s creed but my own----nor
  • matter of FACT----at least that I know of; but ’tis matter copulative
  • and introductory to what follows.
  • CHAPTER IX
  • I do not speak it with regard to the coarseness or cleanness of them--or
  • the strength of their gussets----but pray do not night-shifts differ
  • from day-shifts as much in this particular, as in anything else in the
  • world; That they so far exceed the others in length, that when you are
  • laid down in them, they fall almost as much below the feet, as the
  • day-shifts fall short of them?
  • Widow _Wadman’s_ night-shifts (as was the mode I suppose in King
  • _William’s_ and Queen _Anne’s_ reigns) were cut however after this
  • fashion; and if the fashion is changed (for in _Italy_ they are come to
  • nothing)----so much the worse for the public; they were two _Flemish_
  • ells and a half in length; so that allowing a moderate woman two ells,
  • she had half an ell to spare, to do what she would with.
  • Now from one little indulgence gained after another, in the many bleak
  • and decemberly nights of a seven years widowhood, things had insensibly
  • come to this pass, and for the two last years had got establish’d into
  • one of the ordinances of the bed-chamber --That as soon as Mrs. _Wadman_
  • was put to bed, and had got her legs stretched down to the bottom of it,
  • of which she always gave _Bridget_ notice--_Bridget_, with all suitable
  • decorum, having first open’d the bed-cloaths at the feet, took hold of
  • the half-ell of cloth we are speaking of, and having gently, and with
  • both her hands, drawn it downwards to its furthest extension, and then
  • contracted it again side-long by four or five even plaits, she took a
  • large corking pin out of her sleeve, and with the point directed towards
  • her, pinn’d the plaits all fast together a little above the hem; which
  • done, she tuck’d all in tight at the feet, and wish’d her mistress a
  • good night.
  • This was constant, and without any other variation than this; that on
  • shivering and tempestuous nights, when _Bridget_ untuck’d the feet of
  • the bed, &c., to do this----she consulted no thermometer but that of her
  • own passions; and so performed it standing--kneeling--or squatting,
  • according to the different degrees of faith, hope, and charity, she was
  • in, and bore towards her mistress that night. In every other respect,
  • the _etiquette_ was sacred, and might have vied with the most mechanical
  • one of the most inflexible bed-chamber in _Christendom_.
  • The first night, as soon as the corporal had conducted my uncle _Toby_
  • upstairs, which was about ten ----Mrs. _Wadman_ threw herself into her
  • arm-chair, and crossing her left knee with her right, which formed a
  • resting-place for her elbow, she reclin’d her cheek upon the palm of her
  • hand, and leaning forwards ruminated till midnight upon both sides of
  • the question.
  • The second night she went to her bureau, and having ordered _Bridget_ to
  • bring her up a couple of fresh candles and leave them upon the table,
  • she took out her marriage-settlement, and read it over with great
  • devotion: and the third night (which was the last of my uncle _Toby’s_
  • stay) when _Bridget_ had pull’d down the night-shift, and was assaying
  • to stick in the corking pin----
  • ----With a kick of both heels at once, but at the same time the most
  • natural kick that could be kick’d in her situation----for supposing * *
  • * * * * * * * to be the sun in its meridian, it was a north-east
  • kick----she kick’d the pin out of her fingers----the _etiquette_ which
  • hung upon it, down----down it fell to the ground, and was shiver’d into
  • a thousand atoms.
  • From all which it was plain that widow _Wadman_ was in love with my
  • uncle _Toby_.
  • CHAPTER X
  • My uncle _Toby’s_ head at that time was full of other matters, so that
  • it was not till the demolition of _Dunkirk_, when all the other
  • civilities of _Europe_ were settled, that he found leisure to return
  • this.
  • This made an armistice (that is, speaking with regard to my uncle
  • _Toby_--but with respect to Mrs. _Wadman_, a vacancy)--of almost eleven
  • years. But in all cases of this nature, as it is the second blow, happen
  • at what distance of time it will, which makes the fray ----I chuse for
  • that reason to call these the amours of my uncle _Toby_ with Mrs.
  • _Wadman_, rather than the amours of Mrs. _Wadman_ with my uncle _Toby_.
  • This is not a distinction without a difference.
  • It is not like the affair of _an old hat cock’d_----and _a cock’d old
  • hat_, about which your reverences have so often been at odds with one
  • another----but there is a difference here in the nature of things----
  • And let me tell you, gentry, a wide one too.
  • CHAPTER XI
  • Now as widow _Wadman_ did love my uncle _Toby_----and my uncle _Toby_
  • did not love widow _Wadman_, there was nothing for widow _Wadman_ to do,
  • but to go on and love my uncle _Toby_----or let it alone.
  • Widow _Wadman_ would do neither the one or the other.
  • ----Gracious heaven! ----but I forget I am a little of her temper
  • myself; for whenever it so falls out, which it sometimes does about the
  • equinoxes, that an earthly goddess is so much this, and that, and
  • t’other, that I cannot eat my breakfast for her----and that she careth
  • not three halfpence whether I eat my breakfast or no----
  • ----Curse on her! and so I send her to _Tartary_, and from _Tartary_ to
  • _Terra del Fuogo_, and so on to the devil: in short, there is not an
  • infernal nitch where I do not take her divinityship and stick it.
  • But as the heart is tender, and the passions in these tides ebb and flow
  • ten times in a minute, I instantly bring her back again; and as I do all
  • things in extremes, I place her in the very centre of the milky-way----
  • Brightest of stars! thou wilt shed thy influence upon some one------
  • ----The duce take her and her influence too----for at that word I lose
  • all patience----much good may it do him! ----By all that is hirsute and
  • gashly! I cry, taking off my furr’d cap, and twisting it round my
  • finger ----I would not give sixpence for a dozen such!
  • ----But ’tis an excellent cap too (putting it upon my head, and pressing
  • it close to my ears)--and warm--and soft; especially if you stroke it
  • the right way--but alas! that will never be my luck----(so here my
  • philosophy is shipwreck’d again).
  • ----No; I shall never have a finger in the pye (so here I break my
  • metaphor)----
  • Crust and Crumb
  • Inside and out
  • Top and bottom ----I detest it, I hate it, I repudiate it ----I’m sick
  • at the sight of it----
  • ’Tis all pepper,
  • garlick,
  • staragen,
  • salt, and
  • devil’s dung----by the great arch-cook of cooks, who does
  • nothing, I think, from morning to night, but sit down by the fire-side
  • and invent inflammatory dishes for us, I would not touch it for the
  • world----
  • ----_O Tristram! Tristram!_ cried _Jenny_.
  • _O Jenny! Jenny!_ replied I, and so went on with the twelfth chapter.
  • CHAPTER XII
  • ----“Not touch it for the world,” did I say----
  • Lord, how I have heated my imagination with this metaphor!
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • Which shows, let your reverences and worships say what you will of it
  • (for as for _thinking_----all who do think--think pretty much alike both
  • upon it and other matters) ----Love is certainly, at least alphabetically
  • speaking, one of the most
  • A gitating
  • B ewitching
  • C onfounded
  • D evilish affairs of life--the most
  • E xtravagant
  • F utilitous
  • G alligaskinish
  • H andy-dandyish
  • I racundulous (there is no K to it) and
  • L yrical of all human passions: at the same time, the most
  • M isgiving
  • N innyhammering
  • O bstipating
  • P ragmatical
  • S tridulous
  • R idiculous--though by the bye the R should have gone first --But in
  • short ’tis of such a nature, as my father once told my uncle _Toby_ upon
  • the close of a long dissertation upon the subject---- “You can scarce,”
  • said he, “combine two ideas together upon it, brother _Toby_, without an
  • hypallage” ----What’s that? cried my uncle _Toby_.
  • The cart before the horse, replied my father----
  • ----And what is he to do there? cried my uncle _Toby_----
  • Nothing, quoth my father, but to get in----or let it alone.
  • Now widow _Wadman_, as I told you before, would do neither the one or
  • the other.
  • She stood however ready harnessed and caparisoned at all points, to
  • watch accidents.
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • The Fates, who certainly all foreknew of these amours of widow _Wadman_
  • and my uncle _Toby_, had, from the first creation of matter and motion
  • (and with more courtesy than they usually do things of this kind),
  • established such a chain of causes and effects hanging so fast to one
  • another, that it was scarce possible for my uncle _Toby_ to have dwelt
  • in any other house in the world, or to have occupied any other garden in
  • _Christendom_, but the very house and garden which join’d and laid
  • parallel to Mrs. _Wadman’s_; this, with the advantage of a thickset
  • arbour in Mrs. _Wadman’s_ garden, but planted in the hedge-row of my
  • uncle _Toby’s_, put all the occasions into her hands which
  • Love-militancy wanted; she could observe my uncle _Toby’s_ motions, and
  • was mistress likewise of his councils of war; and as his unsuspecting
  • heart had given leave to the corporal, through the mediation of
  • _Bridget_, to make her a wicker-gate of communication to enlarge her
  • walks, it enabled her to carry on her approaches to the very door of the
  • sentry-box; and sometimes out of gratitude, to make an attack, and
  • endeavour to blow my uncle _Toby_ up in the very sentry-box itself.
  • CHAPTER XV
  • It is a great pity----but ’tis certain from every day’s observation of
  • man, that he may be set on fire like a candle, at either end--provided
  • there is a sufficient wick standing out; if there is not--there’s an end
  • of the affair; and if there is--by lighting it at the bottom, as the
  • flame in that case has the misfortune generally to put out
  • itself--there’s an end of the affair again.
  • For my part, could I always have the ordering of it which way I would be
  • burnt myself--for I cannot bear the thoughts of being burnt like a
  • beast --I would oblige a housewife constantly to light me at the top; for
  • then I should burn down decently to the socket; that is, from my head to
  • my heart, from my heart to my liver, from my liver to my bowels, and so
  • on by the meseraick veins and arteries, through all the turns and
  • lateral insertions of the intestines and their tunicles to the blind
  • gut----
  • ----I beseech you, doctor _Slop_, quoth my uncle _Toby_, interrupting
  • him as he mentioned the _blind gut_, in a discourse with my father the
  • night my mother was brought to bed of me ----I beseech you, quoth my
  • uncle _Toby_, to tell me which is the blind gut; for, old as I am, I vow
  • I do not know to this day where it lies.
  • The _blind gut_, answered doctor _Slop_, lies betwixt the _Ilion_ and
  • _Colon_----
  • In a man? said my father.
  • ----’Tis precisely the same, cried doctor _Slop_, in a woman.----
  • That’s more than I know; quoth my father.
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • ----And so to make sure of both systems, Mrs. _Wadman_ predetermined to
  • light my uncle _Toby_ neither at this end or that; but, like a
  • prodigal’s candle, to light him, if possible, at both ends at once.
  • Now, through all the lumber rooms of military furniture, including both
  • of horse and foot, from the great arsenal of _Venice_ to the _Tower_ of
  • _London_ (exclusive), if Mrs. _Wadman_ had been rummaging for seven
  • years together, and with _Bridget_ to help her, she could not have found
  • any one _blind_ or _mantelet_ so fit for her purpose, as that which the
  • expediency of my uncle _Toby’s_ affairs had fix’d up ready to her hands.
  • I believe I have not told you----but I don’t know----possibly I
  • have----be it as it will, ’tis one of the number of those many things,
  • which a man had better do over again, than dispute about it --That
  • whatever town or fortress the corporal was at work upon, during the
  • course of their campaign, my uncle _Toby_ always took care, on the
  • inside of his sentry-box, which was towards his left hand, to have a
  • plan of the place, fasten’d up with two or three pins at the top, but
  • loose at the bottom, for the conveniency of holding it up to the eye,
  • &c. . . . as occasions required; so that when an attack was resolved
  • upon, Mrs. _Wadman_ had nothing more to do, when she had got advanced to
  • the door of the sentry-box, but to extend her right hand; and edging in
  • her left foot at the same movement, to take hold of the map or plan, or
  • upright, or whatever it was, and with out-stretched neck meeting it half
  • way, --to advance it towards her; on which my uncle _Toby’s_ passions
  • were sure to catch fire----for he would instantly take hold of the other
  • corner of the map in his left hand, and with the end of his pipe in the
  • other, begin an explanation.
  • When the attack was advanced to this point; ----the world will naturally
  • enter into the reasons of Mrs. _Wadman’s_ next stroke of
  • generalship----which was, to take my uncle _Toby’s_ tobacco-pipe out of
  • his hand as soon as she possibly could; which, under one pretence or
  • other, but generally that of pointing more distinctly at some redoubt or
  • breastwork in the map, she would effect before my uncle _Toby_ (poor
  • soul!) had well march’d above half a dozen toises with it.
  • --It obliged my uncle _Toby_ to make use of his forefinger.
  • The difference it made in the attack was this; That in going upon it, as
  • in the first case, with the end of her forefinger against the end of my
  • uncle _Toby’s_ tobacco-pipe, she might have travelled with it, along the
  • lines, from _Dan_ to _Beersheba_, had my uncle _Toby’s_ lines reach’d so
  • far, without any effect: For as there was no arterial or vital heat in
  • the end of the tobacco-pipe, it could excite no sentiment----it could
  • neither give fire by pulsation----or receive it by sympathy----’twas
  • nothing but smoke.
  • Whereas, in following my uncle _Toby’s_ forefinger with hers, close
  • thro’ all the little turns and indentings of his works--pressing
  • sometimes against the side of it----then treading upon its nail----then
  • tripping it up----then touching it here----then there, and so on----it
  • set something at least in motion.
  • This, tho’ slight skirmishing, and at a distance from the main body, yet
  • drew on the rest; for here, the map usually falling with the back of it,
  • close to the side of the sentry-box, my uncle _Toby_, in the simplicity
  • of his soul, would lay his hand flat upon it, in order to go on with his
  • explanation; and Mrs. _Wadman_, by a manœuvre as quick as thought, would
  • as certainly place her’s close beside it; this at once opened a
  • communication, large enough for any sentiment to pass or repass, which a
  • person skill’d in the elementary and practical part of love-making, has
  • occasion for----
  • By bringing up her forefinger parallel (as before) to my uncle
  • _Toby’s_----it unavoidably brought the thumb into action----and the
  • forefinger and thumb being once engaged, as naturally brought in the
  • whole hand. Thine, dear uncle _Toby!_ was never now in its right
  • place ----Mrs. _Wadman_ had it ever to take up, or, with the gentlest
  • pushings, protrusions, and equivocal compressions, that a hand to be
  • removed is capable of receiving----to get it press’d a hair breadth of
  • one side out of her way.
  • Whilst this was doing, how could she forget to make him sensible, that
  • it was her leg (and no one’s else) at the bottom of the sentry-box,
  • which slightly press’d against the calf of his ----So that my uncle
  • _Toby_ being thus attacked and sore push’d on both his wings----was it a
  • wonder, if now and then, it put his centre into disorder?----
  • ----The duce take it! said my uncle _Toby_.
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • These attacks of Mrs. _Wadman_, you will readily conceive to be of
  • different kinds; varying from each other, like the attacks which history
  • is full of, and from the same reasons. A general looker-on would scarce
  • allow them to be attacks at all----or if he did, would confound them all
  • together----but I write not to them: it will be time enough to be a
  • little more exact in my descriptions of them, as I come up to them,
  • which will not be for some chapters; having nothing more to add in this,
  • but that in a bundle of original papers and drawings which my father
  • took care to roll up by themselves, there is a plan of _Bouchain_ in
  • perfect preservation (and shall be kept so, whilst I have power to
  • preserve anything), upon the lower corner of which, on the right hand
  • side, there is still remaining the marks of a snuffy finger and thumb,
  • which there is all the reason in the world to imagine, were Mrs.
  • _Wadman’s_; for the opposite side of the margin, which I suppose to have
  • been my uncle _Toby’s_, is absolutely clean: This seems an authenticated
  • record of one of these attacks; for there are vestigia of the two
  • punctures partly grown up, but still visible on the opposite corner of
  • the map, which are unquestionably the very holes, through which it has
  • been pricked up in the sentry-box----
  • By all that is priestly! I value this precious relick, with its
  • _stigmata_ and _pricks_, more than all the relicks of the _Romish_
  • church----always excepting, when I am writing upon these matters, the
  • pricks which entered the flesh of St. _Radagunda_ in the desert, which
  • in your road from FESSE to CLUNY, the nuns of that name will shew you
  • for love.
  • CHAPTER XVIII
  • I think, an’ please your honour, quoth _Trim_, the fortifications are
  • quite destroyed----and the bason is upon a level with the mole ----I
  • think so too; replied my uncle _Toby_ with a sigh half suppress’d----but
  • step into the parlour, _Trim_, for the stipulation----it lies upon the
  • table.
  • It has lain there these six weeks, replied the corporal, till this very
  • morning that the old woman kindled the fire with it--
  • ----Then, said my uncle _Toby_, there is no further occasion for our
  • services. The more, an’ please your honour, the pity, said the corporal;
  • in uttering which he cast his spade into the wheel-barrow, which was
  • beside him, with an air the most expressive of disconsolation that can
  • be imagined, and was heavily turning about to look for his pickax, his
  • pioneer’s shovel, his picquets, and other little military stores, in
  • order to carry them off the field----when a heigh-ho! from the
  • sentry-box, which being made of thin slit deal, reverberated the sound
  • more sorrowfully to his ear, forbad him.
  • ----No; said the corporal to himself, I’ll do it before his honour rises
  • to-morrow morning; so taking his spade out of the wheel-barrow again,
  • with a little earth in it, as if to level something at the foot of the
  • glacis----but with a real intent to approach nearer to his master, in
  • order to divert him----he loosen’d a sod or two----pared their edges
  • with his spade, and having given them a gentle blow or two with the back
  • of it, he sat himself down close by my uncle _Toby’s_ feet, and began as
  • follows.
  • CHAPTER XIX
  • It was a thousand pities----though I believe, an’ please your honour,
  • I am going to say but a foolish kind of a thing for a soldier----
  • A soldier, cried my uncle _Toby_, interrupting the corporal, is no more
  • exempt from saying a foolish thing, _Trim_, than a man of letters ----But
  • not so often, an’ please your honour, replied the corporal ----My uncle
  • _Toby_ gave a nod.
  • It was a thousand pities then, said the corporal, casting his eye upon
  • _Dunkirk_, and the mole, as _Servius Sulpicius_, in returning out of
  • _Asia_ (when he sailed from _Ægina_ towards _Megara_), did upon
  • _Corinth_ and _Pyreus_----
  • --“It was a thousand pities, an’ please your honour, to destroy these
  • works----and a thousand pities to have let them stood.”----
  • ----Thou art right, _Trim_, in both cases; said my uncle _Toby_.
  • ----This, continued the corporal, is the reason, that from the beginning
  • of their demolition to the end ----I have never once whistled, or sung,
  • or laugh’d, or cry’d, or talk’d of past done deeds, or told your honour
  • one story good or bad----
  • ----Thou hast many excellencies, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_, and I
  • hold it not the least of them, as thou happenest to be a story-teller,
  • that of the number thou hast told me, either to amuse me in my painful
  • hours, or divert me in my grave ones--thou hast seldom told me a bad
  • one----
  • ----Because, an’ please your honour, except one of a _King of Bohemia
  • and his seven castles_, --they are all true; for they are about
  • myself----
  • I do not like the subject the worse, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_, on
  • that score: But prithee what is this story? thou hast excited my
  • curiosity.
  • I’ll tell it your honour, quoth the corporal, directly --Provided, said
  • my uncle _Toby_, looking earnestly towards _Dunkirk_ and the mole
  • again----provided it is not a merry one; to such, _Trim_, a man should
  • ever bring one half of the entertainment along with him; and the
  • disposition I am in at present would wrong both thee, _Trim_, and thy
  • story ----It is not a merry one by any means, replied the corporal --Nor
  • would I have it altogether a grave one, added my uncle _Toby_ ----It is
  • neither the one nor the other, replied the corporal, but will suit your
  • honour exactly ----Then I’ll thank thee for it with all my heart, cried
  • my uncle _Toby_; so prithee begin it, _Trim_.
  • The corporal made his reverence; and though it is not so easy a matter
  • as the world imagines, to pull off a lank _Montero_-cap with grace----or
  • a whit less difficult, in my conceptions, when a man is sitting squat
  • upon the ground, to make a bow so teeming with respect as the corporal
  • was wont; yet by suffering the palm of his right hand, which was towards
  • his master, to slip backwards upon the grass, a little beyond his body,
  • in order to allow it the greater sweep----and by an unforced
  • compression, at the same time, of his cap with the thumb and the two
  • forefingers of his left, by which the diameter of the cap became
  • reduced, so that it might be said, rather to be insensibly
  • squeez’d--than pull’d off with a flatus----the corporal acquitted
  • himself of both in a better manner than the posture of his affairs
  • promised; and having hemmed twice, to find in what key his story would
  • best go, and best suit his master’s humour, --he exchanged a single look
  • of kindness with him, and set off thus.
  • THE STORY OF THE KING OF BOHEMIA AND HIS SEVEN CASTLES
  • There was a certain king of Bo - - he------
  • As the corporal was entering the confines of _Bohemia_, my uncle _Toby_
  • obliged him to halt for a single moment; he had set out bare-headed,
  • having, since he pull’d off his _Montero_-cap in the latter end of the
  • last chapter, left it lying beside him on the ground.
  • ----The eye of Goodness espieth all things----so that before the
  • corporal had well got through the first five words of his story, had my
  • uncle _Toby_ twice touch’d his _Montero_-cap with the end of his cane,
  • interrogatively----as much as to say, Why don’t you put it on, _Trim?_
  • _Trim_ took it up with the most respectful slowness, and casting a
  • glance of humiliation as he did it, upon the embroidery of the
  • fore-part, which being dismally tarnish’d and fray’d moreover in some of
  • the principal leaves and boldest parts of the pattern, he lay’d it down
  • again between his two feet, in order to moralise upon the subject.
  • ----’Tis every word of it but too true, cried my uncle _Toby_, that thou
  • art about to observe----
  • “_Nothing in this world, Trim, is made to last for ever._”
  • ----But when tokens, dear _Tom_, of thy love and remembrance wear out,
  • said _Trim_, what shall we say?
  • There is no occasion, _Trim_, quoth my uncle _Toby_, to say anything
  • else; and was a man to puzzle his brains till Doom’s day, I believe,
  • _Trim_, it would be impossible.
  • The corporal, perceiving my uncle _Toby_ was in the right, and that it
  • would be in vain for the wit of man to think of extracting a purer moral
  • from his cap, without further attempting it, he put it on; and passing
  • his hand across his forehead to rub out a pensive wrinkle, which the
  • text and the doctrine between them had engender’d, he return’d, with the
  • same look and tone of voice, to his story of the king of _Bohemia_ and
  • his seven castles.
  • THE STORY OF THE KING OF BOHEMIA AND HIS SEVEN CASTLES, CONTINUED
  • There was a certain king of _Bohemia_, but in whose reign, except his
  • own, I am not able to inform your honour----
  • I do not desire it of thee, _Trim_, by any means, cried my uncle _Toby_.
  • ----It was a little before the time, an’ please your honour, when giants
  • were beginning to leave off breeding: --but in what year of our Lord
  • that was----
  • I would not give a halfpenny to know, said my uncle _Toby_.
  • ----Only, an’ please your honour, it makes a story look the better in
  • the face----
  • ----’Tis thy own, _Trim_, so ornament it after thy own fashion; and take
  • any date, continued my uncle _Toby_, looking pleasantly upon him--take
  • any date in the whole world thou chusest, and put it to--thou art
  • heartily welcome----
  • The corporal bowed; for of every century, and of every year of that
  • century, from the first creation of the world down to _Noah’s_ flood;
  • and from _Noah’s_ flood to the birth of _Abraham_; through all the
  • pilgrimages of the patriarchs, to the departure of the _Israelites_ out
  • of _Egypt_----and throughout all the Dynasties, Olympiads, Urbeconditas,
  • and other memorable epochas of the different nations of the world, down
  • to the coming of Christ, and from thence to the very moment in which the
  • corporal was telling his story----had my uncle _Toby_ subjected this
  • vast empire of time and all its abysses at his feet; but as MODESTY
  • scarce touches with a finger what LIBERALITY offers her with both hands
  • open--the corporal contented himself with the very _worst year_ of the
  • whole bunch; which, to prevent your honours of the Majority and
  • Minority from tearing the very flesh off your bones in contestation,
  • ‘Whether that year is not always the last cast-year of the last
  • cast-almanack’ ----I tell you plainly it was; but from a different
  • reason than you wot of----
  • ----It was the year next him----which being, the year of our Lord
  • seventeen hundred and twelve, when the Duke of _Ormond_ was playing the
  • devil in _Flanders_----the corporal took it, and set out with it afresh
  • on his expedition to _Bohemia_.
  • THE STORY OF THE KING OF BOHEMIA AND HIS SEVEN CASTLES, CONTINUED
  • In the year of our Lord one thousand seven hundred and twelve, there
  • was, an’ please your honour----
  • ----To tell thee truly, _Trim_, quoth my uncle _Toby_, any other date
  • would have pleased me much better, not only on account of the sad stain
  • upon our history that year, in marching off our troops, and refusing to
  • cover the siege of _Quesnoi_, though _Fagel_ was carrying on the works
  • with such incredible vigour--but likewise on the score, _Trim_, of thy
  • own story; because if there are--and which, from what thou hast dropt,
  • I partly suspect to be the fact--if there are giants in it----
  • There is but one, an’ please your honour----
  • ----’Tis as bad as twenty, replied my uncle _Toby_----thou should’st
  • have carried him back some seven or eight hundred years out of harm’s
  • way, both of critics and other people: and therefore I would advise
  • thee, if ever thou tellest it again----
  • ----If I live, an’ please your honour, but once to get through it,
  • I will never tell it again, quoth _Trim_, either to man, woman, or
  • child ----Poo--poo! said my uncle _Toby_--but with accents of such sweet
  • encouragement did he utter it, that the corporal went on with his story
  • with more alacrity than ever.
  • THE STORY OF THE KING OF BOHEMIA AND HIS SEVEN CASTLES, CONTINUED
  • There was, an’ please your honour, said the corporal, raising his voice
  • and rubbing the palms of his two hands cheerily together as he begun,
  • a certain king of _Bohemia_----
  • ----Leave out the date entirely, _Trim_, quoth my uncle _Toby_, leaning
  • forwards, and laying his hand gently upon the corporal’s shoulder to
  • temper the interruption--leave it out entirely, _Trim_; a story passes
  • very well without these niceties, unless one is pretty sure of
  • ’em ----Sure of ’em! said the corporal, shaking his head----
  • Right; answered my uncle _Toby_, it is not easy, _Trim_, for one, bred
  • up as thou and I have been to arms, who seldom looks further forward
  • than to the end of his musket, or backwards beyond his knapsack, to know
  • much about this matter ----God bless your honour! said the corporal, won
  • by the _manner_ of my uncle _Toby’s_ reasoning, as much as by the
  • reasoning itself, he has something else to do; if not on action, or a
  • march, or upon duty in his garrison--he has his firelock, an’ please
  • your honour, to furbish--his accoutrements to take care of--his
  • regimentals to mend--himself to shave and keep clean, so as to appear
  • always like what he is upon the parade; what business, added the
  • corporal triumphantly, has a soldier, an’ please your honour, to know
  • anything at all of _geography?_
  • ----Thou would’st have said _chronology_, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_;
  • for as for geography, ’tis of absolute use to him; he must be acquainted
  • intimately with every country and its boundaries where his profession
  • carries him; he should know every town and city, and village and hamlet,
  • with the canals, the roads, and hollow ways which lead up to them; there
  • is not a river or a rivulet he passes, _Trim_, but he should be able at
  • first sight to tell thee what is its name--in what mountains it takes
  • its rise--what is its course--how far it is navigable--where
  • fordable--where not; he should know the fertility of every valley, as
  • well as the hind who ploughs it; and be able to describe, or, if it is
  • required, to give thee an exact map of all the plains and defiles, the
  • forts, the acclivities, the woods and morasses, thro’ and by which his
  • army is to march; he should know their produce, their plants, their
  • minerals, their waters, their animals, their seasons, their climates,
  • their heats and cold, their inhabitants, their customs, their language,
  • their policy, and even their religion.
  • Is it else to be conceived, corporal, continued my uncle _Toby_, rising
  • up in his sentry-box, as he began to warm in this part of his
  • discourse--how _Marlborough_ could have marched his army from the banks
  • of the _Maes_ to _Belburg_; from _Belburg_ to _Kerpenord_--(here the
  • corporal could sit no longer) from _Kerpenord_, _Trim_, to _Kalsaken_;
  • from _Kalsaken_ to _Newdorf_; from _Newdorf_ to _Landenbourg_; from
  • _Landenbourg_ to _Mildenheim_; from _Mildenheim_ to _Elchingen_; from
  • _Elchingen_ to _Gingen_; from _Gingen_ to _Balmerchoffen_; from
  • _Balmerchoffen_ to _Skellenburg_, where he broke in upon the enemy’s
  • works; forced his passage over the _Danube_; cross’d the _Lech_--push’d
  • on his troops into the heart of the empire, marching at the head of them
  • through _Fribourg_, _Hokenwert_, and _Schonevelt_, to the plains of
  • _Blenheim_ and _Hochstet?_ ----Great as he was, corporal, he could not
  • have advanced a step, or made one single day’s march without the aids of
  • _Geography_. ----As for _Chronology_, I own, _Trim_, continued my uncle
  • _Toby_, sitting down again coolly in his sentry-box, that of all others,
  • it seems a science which the soldier might best spare, was it not for
  • the lights which that science must one day give him, in determining the
  • invention of powder; the furious execution of which, renversing
  • everything like thunder before it, has become a new æra to us of
  • military improvements, changing so totally the nature of attacks and
  • defences both by sea and land, and awakening so much art and skill in
  • doing it, that the world cannot be too exact in ascertaining the precise
  • time of its discovery, or too inquisitive in knowing what great man was
  • the discoverer, and what occasions gave birth to it.
  • I am far from controverting, continued my uncle _Toby_, what historians
  • agree in, that in the year of our Lord 1380, under the reign of
  • _Wencelaus_, son of _Charles_ the Fourth----a certain priest, whose name
  • was _Schwartz_, show’d the use of powder to the _Venetians_, in their
  • wars against the _Genoese_; but ’tis certain he was not the first;
  • because if we are to believe Don _Pedro_, the bishop of _Leon_ --How came
  • priests and bishops, an’ please your honour, to trouble their heads so
  • much about gunpowder? God knows, said my uncle _Toby_----his providence
  • brings good out of everything--and he avers, in his chronicle of King
  • _Alphonsus_, who reduced _Toledo_, That in the year 1343, which was full
  • thirty-seven years before that time, the secret of powder was well
  • known, and employed with success, both by Moors and Christians, not only
  • in their sea-combats, at that period, but in many of their most
  • memorable sieges in _Spain_ and _Barbary_ --And all the world knows, that
  • Friar _Bacon_ had wrote expressly about it, and had generously given the
  • world a receipt to make it by, above a hundred and fifty years before
  • even _Schwartz_ was born --And that the _Chinese_, added my uncle _Toby_,
  • embarrass us, and all accounts of it, still more, by boasting of the
  • invention some hundreds of years even before him----
  • --They are a pack of liars, I believe, cried _Trim_----
  • ----They are somehow or other deceived, said my uncle _Toby_, in this
  • matter, as is plain to me from the present miserable state of military
  • architecture amongst them; which consists of nothing more than a fossé
  • with a brick wall without flanks--and for what they gave us as a bastion
  • at each angle of it, ’tis so barbarously constructed, that it looks for
  • all the world ------------Like one of my seven castles, an’ please your
  • honour, quoth _Trim_.
  • My uncle _Toby_, tho’ in the utmost distress for a comparison, most
  • courteously refused _Trim’s_ offer--till _Trim_ telling him, he had half
  • a dozen more in _Bohemia_, which he knew not how to get off his
  • hands----my uncle _Toby_ was so touch’d with the pleasantry of heart of
  • the corporal----that he discontinued his dissertation upon
  • gunpowder----and begged the corporal forthwith to go on with his story
  • of the King of _Bohemia_ and his seven castles.
  • THE STORY OF THE KING OF BOHEMIA AND HIS SEVEN CASTLES, CONTINUED
  • This _unfortunate_ King of _Bohemia_, said _Trim_, ----Was he
  • unfortunate, then? cried my uncle _Toby_, for he had been so wrapt up in
  • his dissertation upon gunpowder, and other military affairs, that tho’
  • he had desired the corporal to go on, yet the many interruptions he had
  • given, dwelt not so strong upon his fancy as to account for the
  • epithet ----Was he _unfortunate_, then, _Trim?_ said my uncle _Toby_,
  • pathetically ----The corporal, wishing first the _word_ and all its
  • synonimas at the devil, forthwith began to run back in his mind, the
  • principal events in the King of _Bohemia’s_ story; from every one of
  • which, it appearing that he was the most fortunate man that ever existed
  • in the world----it put the corporal to a stand: for not caring to
  • retract his epithet----and less to explain it----and least of all, to
  • twist his tale (like men of lore) to serve a system----he looked up in
  • my uncle _Toby’s_ face for assistance----but seeing it was the very
  • thing my uncle _Toby_ sat in expectation of himself----after a hum and a
  • haw, he went on------
  • The King of _Bohemia_, an’ please your honour, replied the corporal, was
  • _unfortunate_, as thus ----That taking great pleasure and delight in
  • navigation and all sort of sea affairs----and there _happening_
  • throughout the whole kingdom of _Bohemia_, to be no seaport town
  • whatever----
  • How the duce should there--_Trim?_ cried my uncle _Toby_; for _Bohemia_
  • being totally inland, it could have happen’d no otherwise ----It might,
  • said _Trim_, if it had pleased God----
  • My uncle _Toby_ never spoke of the being and natural attributes of God,
  • but with diffidence and hesitation----
  • ----I believe not, replied my uncle _Toby_, after some pause----for
  • being inland, as I said, and having _Silesia_ and _Moravia_ to the east;
  • _Lusatia_ and _Upper Saxony_ to the north; _Franconia_ to the west;
  • _Bavaria_ to the south; _Bohemia_ could not have been propell’d to the
  • sea without ceasing to be _Bohemia_----nor could the sea, on the other
  • hand, have come up to _Bohemia_, without overflowing a great part of
  • _Germany_, and destroying millions of unfortunate inhabitants who could
  • make no defence against it ----Scandalous! cried _Trim_ --Which would
  • bespeak, added my uncle _Toby_, mildly, such a want of compassion in him
  • who is the father of it----that, I think, _Trim_----the thing could have
  • happen’d no way.
  • The corporal made the bow of unfeigned conviction; and went on.
  • Now the King of _Bohemia_ with his queen and courtiers _happening_ one
  • fine summer’s evening to walk out ----Aye! there the word _happening_ is
  • right, _Trim_, cried my uncle _Toby_; for the King of _Bohemia_ and his
  • queen might have walk’d out or let it alone: ----’twas a matter of
  • contingency, which might happen, or not, just as chance ordered it.
  • King _William_ was of an opinion, an’ please your honour, quoth _Trim_,
  • that everything was predestined for us in this world; insomuch, that he
  • would often say to his soldiers, that “every ball had its billet.” He
  • was a great man, said my uncle _Toby_ ----And I believe, continued
  • _Trim_, to this day, that the shot which disabled me at the battle of
  • _Landen_, was pointed at my knee for no other purpose, but to take me
  • out of his service, and place me in your honour’s, where I should be
  • taken so much better care of in my old age ----It shall never, _Trim_,
  • be construed otherwise, said my uncle _Toby_.
  • The heart, both of the master and the man, were alike subject to sudden
  • overflowings; ----a short silence ensued.
  • Besides, said the corporal, resuming the discourse--but in a gayer
  • accent----if it had not been for that single shot, I had never, an’
  • please your honour, been in love------
  • So, thou wast once in love, _Trim!_ said my uncle _Toby_, smiling----
  • Souse! replied the corporal--over head and ears! an’ please your honour.
  • Prithee when? where? --and how came it to pass? ----I never heard one
  • word of it before; quoth my uncle _Toby_: ----I dare say, answered
  • _Trim_, that every drummer and serjeant’s son in the regiment knew of
  • it ----It’s high time I should----said my uncle _Toby_.
  • Your honour remembers with concern, said the corporal, the total rout
  • and confusion of our camp and army at the affair of _Landen_; every one
  • was left to shift for himself; and if it had not been for the regiments
  • of _Wyndham_, _Lumley_, and _Galway_, which covered the retreat over the
  • bridge of _Neerspeeken_, the king himself could scarce have gained
  • it----he was press’d hard, as your honour knows, on every side of
  • him----
  • Gallant mortal! cried my uncle _Toby_, caught up with enthusiasm--this
  • moment, now that all is lost, I see him galloping across me, corporal,
  • to the left, to bring up the remains of the English horse along with him
  • to support the right, and tear the laurel from _Luxembourg’s_ brows, if
  • yet ’tis possible ----I see him with the knot of his scarfe just shot
  • off, infusing fresh spirits into poor _Galway’s_ regiment--riding along
  • the line--then wheeling about, and charging _Conti_ at the head of
  • it ----Brave! brave, by heaven! cried my uncle _Toby_--he deserves a
  • crown ----As richly, as a thief a halter; shouted _Trim_.
  • My uncle _Toby_ knew the corporal’s loyalty; --otherwise the comparison
  • was not at all to his mind----it did not altogether strike the
  • corporal’s fancy when he had made it----but it could not be
  • recall’d----so he had nothing to do, but proceed.
  • As the number of wounded was prodigious, and no one had time to think of
  • anything but his own safety --Though _Talmash_, said my uncle _Toby_,
  • brought off the foot with great prudence ----But I was left upon the
  • field, said the corporal. Thou wast so; poor fellow! replied my uncle
  • _Toby_ ----So that it was noon the next day, continued the corporal,
  • before I was exchanged, and put into a cart with thirteen or fourteen
  • more, in order to be convey’d to our hospital.
  • There is no part of the body, an’ please your honour, where a wound
  • occasions more intolerable anguish than upon the knee----
  • Except the groin; said my uncle _Toby_. An’ please your honour, replied
  • the corporal, the knee, in my opinion, must certainly be the most acute,
  • there being so many tendons and what-d’ye-call-’ems all about it.
  • It is for that reason, quoth my uncle _Toby_, that the groin is
  • infinitely more sensible----there being not only as many tendons and
  • what-d’ye-call-’ems (for I know their names as little as thou
  • dost)----about it----but moreover * * *----
  • Mrs. _Wadman_, who had been all the time in her arbour--instantly
  • stopp’d her breath--unpinn’d her mob at the chin, and stood up upon one
  • leg----
  • The dispute was maintained with amicable and equal force betwixt my
  • uncle _Toby_ and _Trim_ for some time; till _Trim_ at length
  • recollecting that he had often cried at his master’s sufferings, but
  • never shed a tear at his own--was for giving up the point, which my
  • uncle _Toby_ would not allow----’Tis a proof of nothing, _Trim_, said
  • he, but the generosity of thy temper----
  • So that whether the pain of a wound in the groin (cæteris paribus) is
  • greater than the pain of a wound in the knee----or
  • Whether the pain of a wound in the knee is not greater than the pain of
  • a wound in the groin----are points which to this day remain unsettled.
  • CHAPTER XX
  • The anguish of my knee, continued the corporal, was excessive in itself;
  • and the uneasiness of the cart, with the roughness of the roads, which
  • were terribly cut up--making bad still worse--every step was death to
  • me: so that with the loss of blood, and the want of care-taking of me,
  • and a fever I felt coming on besides----(Poor soul! said my uncle
  • _Toby_)----all together, an’ please your honour, was more than I could
  • sustain.
  • I was telling my sufferings to a young woman at a peasant’s house, where
  • our cart, which was the last of the line, had halted; they had help’d me
  • in, and the young woman had taken a cordial out of her pocket and
  • dropp’d it upon some sugar, and seeing it had cheer’d me, she had given
  • it me a second and a third time ----So I was telling her, an’ please your
  • honour, the anguish I was in, and was saying it was so intolerable to
  • me, that I had much rather lie down upon the bed, turning my face
  • towards one which was in the corner of the room--and die, than go
  • on----when, upon her attempting to lead me to it, I fainted away in her
  • arms. She was a good soul! as your honour, said the corporal, wiping his
  • eyes, will hear.
  • I thought _love_ had been a joyous thing, quoth my uncle _Toby_.
  • ’Tis the most serious thing, an’ please your honour (sometimes), that is
  • in the world.
  • By the persuasion of the young woman, continued the corporal, the cart
  • with the wounded men set off without me: she had assured them I should
  • expire immediately if I was put into the cart. So when I came to
  • myself ----I found myself in a still quiet cottage, with no one but the
  • young woman, and the peasant and his wife. I was laid across the bed in
  • the corner of the room, with my wounded leg upon a chair, and the young
  • woman beside me, holding the corner of her handkerchief dipp’d in
  • vinegar to my nose with one hand, and rubbing my temples with the other.
  • I took her at first for the daughter of the peasant (for it was no
  • inn)--so had offer’d her a little purse with eighteen florins, which my
  • poor brother _Tom_ (here _Trim_ wip’d his eyes) had sent me as a token,
  • by a recruit, just before he set out for _Lisbon_.----
  • ----I never told your honour that piteous story yet----here _Trim_ wiped
  • his eyes a third time.
  • The young woman call’d the old man and his wife into the room, to show
  • them the money, in order to gain me credit for a bed and what little
  • necessaries I should want, till I should be in a condition to be got to
  • the hospital ----Come then! said she, tying up the little purse --I’ll
  • be your banker--but as that office alone will not keep me employ’d, I’ll
  • be your nurse too.
  • I thought by her manner of speaking this, as well as by her dress, which
  • I then began to consider more attentively----that the young woman could
  • not be the daughter of the peasant.
  • She was in black down to her toes, with her hair conceal’d under a
  • cambric border, laid close to her forehead: she was one of those kind of
  • nuns, an’ please your honour, of which, your honour knows, there are a
  • good many in _Flanders_, which they let go loose ----By thy description,
  • _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_, I dare say she was a young _Beguine_, of
  • which there are none to be found anywhere but in the _Spanish
  • Netherlands_--except at _Amsterdam_----they differ from nuns in this,
  • that they can quit their cloister if they choose to marry; they visit
  • and take care of the sick by profession ----I had rather, for my own
  • part, they did it out of good-nature.
  • ----She often told me, quoth _Trim_, she did it for the love of
  • Christ --I did not like it. ----I believe, _Trim_, we are both wrong,
  • said my uncle _Toby_--we’ll ask Mr. _Yorick_ about it to-night at my
  • brother _Shandy’s_----so put me in mind; added my uncle _Toby_.
  • The young _Beguine_, continued the corporal, had scarce given herself
  • time to tell me “she would be my nurse,” when she hastily turned about
  • to begin the office of one, and prepare something for me----and in a
  • short time--though I thought it a long one--she came back with flannels,
  • &c. &c., and having fomented my knee soundly for a couple of hours, &c.,
  • and made me a thin bason of gruel for my supper--she wish’d me rest, and
  • promised to be with me early in the morning. ----She wished me, an’
  • please your honour, what was not to be had. My fever ran very high that
  • night--her figure made sad disturbance within me --I was every moment
  • cutting the world in two--to give her half of it--and every moment was I
  • crying, That I had nothing but a knapsack and eighteen florins to share
  • with her ----The whole night long was the fair _Beguine_, like an angel,
  • close by my bedside, holding back the curtain and offering me
  • cordials--and I was only awakened from my dream by her coming there at
  • the hour promised, and giving them in reality. In truth, she was scarce
  • ever from me; and so accustomed was I to receive life from her hands,
  • that my heart sickened, and I lost colour when she left the room: and
  • yet, continued the corporal (making one of the strangest reflections
  • upon it in the world)----
  • ----“_It was not love_”----for during the three weeks she was almost
  • constantly with me, fomenting my knee with her hand, night and day --I
  • can honestly say, an’ please your honour--that * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * * * * * once.
  • That was very odd, _Trim_, quoth my uncle _Toby_.
  • I think so too--said Mrs. _Wadman_.
  • It never did, said the corporal.
  • CHAPTER XXI
  • ----But ’tis no marvel, continued the corporal--seeing my uncle _Toby_
  • musing upon it--for Love, an’ please your honour, is exactly like war,
  • in this; that a soldier, though he has escaped three weeks complete o’
  • _Saturday_ night, --may nevertheless be shot through his heart on
  • _Sunday_ morning----_It happened so here_, an’ please your honour, with
  • this difference only--that it was on _Sunday_ in the afternoon, when I
  • fell in love all at once with a sisserara ----It burst upon me, an’
  • please your honour, like a bomb----scarce giving me time to say, “God
  • bless me.”
  • I thought, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_, a man never fell in love so
  • very suddenly.
  • Yes, an’ please your honour, if he is in the way of it----replied
  • _Trim_.
  • I prithee, quoth my uncle _Toby_, inform me how this matter happened.
  • ----With all pleasure, said the corporal, making a bow.
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • I had escaped, continued the corporal, all that time from falling in
  • love, and had gone on to the end of the chapter, had it not been
  • predestined otherwise----there is no resisting our fate.
  • It was on a _Sunday_, in the afternoon, as I told your honour.
  • The old man and his wife had walked out----
  • Everything was still and hush as midnight about the house----
  • There was not so much as a duck or a duckling about the yard----
  • ----When the fair _Beguine_ came in to see me.
  • My wound was then in a fair way of doing well----the inflammation had
  • been gone off for some time, but it was succeeded with an itching both
  • above and below my knee, so insufferable, that I had not shut my eyes
  • the whole night for it.
  • Let me see it, said she, kneeling down upon the ground parallel to my
  • knee, and laying her hand upon the part below it----it only wants
  • rubbing a little, said the _Beguine_; so covering it with the
  • bed-clothes, she began with the forefinger of her right hand to rub
  • under my knee, guiding her forefinger backwards and forwards by the edge
  • of the _flannel_ which kept on the dressing.
  • In five or six minutes I felt slightly the end of her second finger--and
  • presently it was laid flat with the other, and she continued rubbing in
  • that way round and round for a good while; it then came into my head,
  • that I should fall in love --I blush’d when I saw how white a hand she
  • had --I shall never, an’ please your honour, behold another hand so
  • white whilst I live----
  • ----Not in that place; said my uncle _Toby_----
  • Though it was the most serious despair in nature to the corporal--he
  • could not forbear smiling.
  • The young _Beguine_, continued the corporal, perceiving it was of great
  • service to me--from rubbing for some time, with two fingers--proceeded
  • to rub at length, with three--till by little and little she brought down
  • the fourth, and then rubb’d with her whole hand: I will never say
  • another word, an’ please your honour, upon hands again--but it was
  • softer than sattin--
  • ----Prithee, _Trim_, commend it as much as thou wilt, said my uncle
  • _Toby_; I shall hear thy story with the more delight ----The corporal
  • thank’d his master most unfeignedly; but having nothing to say upon the
  • _Beguine’s_ hand but the same over again----he proceeded to the effects
  • of it.
  • The fair _Beguine_, said the corporal, continued rubbing with her whole
  • hand under my knee--till I fear’d her zeal would weary her---- “I would
  • do a thousand times more,” said she, “for the love of Christ” ----In
  • saying which, she pass’d her hand across the flannel, to the part above
  • my knee, which I had equally complain’d of, and rubb’d it also.
  • I perceived, then, I was beginning to be in love----
  • As she continued rub-rub-rubbing --I felt it spread from under her hand,
  • an’ please your honour, to every part of my frame.----
  • The more she rubb’d, and the longer strokes she took----the more the
  • fire kindled in my veins----till at length, by two or three strokes
  • longer than the rest----my passion rose to the highest pitch ----I seiz’d
  • her hand----
  • ----And then thou clapped’st it to thy lips, _Trim_, said my uncle
  • _Toby_----and madest a speech.
  • Whether the corporal’s amour terminated precisely in the way my uncle
  • _Toby_ described it, is not material; it is enough that it contained in
  • it the essence of all the love romances which ever have been wrote since
  • the beginning of the world.
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • As soon as the corporal had finished the story of his amour--or rather
  • my uncle _Toby_ for him --Mrs. _Wadman_ silently sallied forth from her
  • arbour, replaced the pin in her mob, pass’d the wicker-gate, and
  • advanced slowly towards my uncle _Toby’s_ sentry-box: the disposition
  • which _Trim_ had made in my uncle _Toby’s_ mind, was too favourable a
  • crisis to be let slipp’d----
  • ----The attack was determin’d upon: it was facilitated still more by my
  • uncle _Toby’s_ having ordered the corporal to wheel off the pioneer’s
  • shovel, the spade, the pick-axe, the picquets, and other military stores
  • which lay scatter’d upon the ground where _Dunkirk_ stood--the corporal
  • had march’d--the field was clear.
  • Now, consider, sir, what nonsense it is, either in fighting, or writing,
  • or anything else (whether in rhyme to it, or not) which a man has
  • occasion to do--to act by plan: for if ever Plan, independent of all
  • circumstances, deserved registering in letters of gold (I mean in the
  • archives of _Gotham_)--it was certainly the PLAN of Mrs. _Wadman’s_
  • attack of my uncle _Toby_ in his sentry-box, BY PLAN ----Now the plan
  • hanging up in it at this juncture, being the Plan of _Dunkirk_--and the
  • tale of _Dunkirk_ a tale of relaxation, it opposed every impression she
  • could make: and besides, could she have gone upon it--the manœuvre of
  • fingers and hands in the attack of the sentry-box, was so outdone by
  • that of the fair _Beguine’s_, in _Trim’s_ story--that just then, that
  • particular attack, however successful before--became the most heartless
  • attack that could be made----
  • O! let woman alone for this. Mrs. _Wadman_ had scarce open’d the
  • wicket-gate, when her genius sported with the change of circumstances.
  • ----She formed a new attack in a moment.
  • CHAPTER XXIV
  • ----I am half distracted, captain _Shandy_, said Mrs. _Wadman_, holding
  • up her cambrick handkerchief to her left eye, as she approach’d the door
  • of my uncle _Toby’s_ sentry-box----a mote----or sand----or
  • something ----I know not what, has got into this eye of mine----do look
  • into it--it is not in the white--
  • In saying which, Mrs. _Wadman_ edged herself close in beside my uncle
  • _Toby_, and squeezing herself down upon the corner of his bench, she
  • gave him an opportunity of doing it without rising up ----Do look into
  • it--said she.
  • Honest soul! thou didst look into it with as much innocency of heart, as
  • ever child look’d into a raree-shew-box; and ’twere as much a sin to
  • have hurt thee.
  • ----If a man will be peeping of his own accord into things of that
  • nature ----I’ve nothing to say to it----
  • My uncle _Toby_ never did: and I will answer for him, that he would have
  • sat quietly upon a sofa from _June_ to _January_ (which, you know, takes
  • in both the hot and cold months), with an eye as fine as the
  • _Thracian_[8.4] _Rodope’s_ beside him, without being able to tell,
  • whether it was a black or blue one.
  • The difficulty was to get my uncle _Toby_ to look at one at all.
  • ’Tis surmounted. And
  • I see him yonder with his pipe pendulous in his hand, and the ashes
  • falling out of it--looking--and looking--then rubbing his eyes--and
  • looking again, with twice the good-nature that ever _Gallileo_ look’d
  • for a spot in the sun.
  • ----In vain! for by all the powers which animate the organ ----Widow
  • _Wadman’s_ left eye shines this moment as lucid as her right----there is
  • neither mote, or sand, or dust, or chaff, or speck, or particle of opake
  • matter floating in it --There is nothing, my dear paternal uncle! but
  • one lambent delicious fire, furtively shooting out from every part of
  • it, in all directions, into thine----
  • ----If thou lookest, uncle _Toby_, in search of this mote one moment
  • longer----thou art undone.
  • [Footnote 8.4: _Rodope Thracia_ tam inevitabili fascino
  • instructa, tam exactè oculus intuens attraxit, ut si in illam
  • quis incidisset, fieri non posset, quin caperetur. ----I know
  • not who.]
  • CHAPTER XXV
  • An eye is for all the world exactly like a cannon, in this respect; That
  • it is not so much the eye or the cannon, in themselves, as it is the
  • carriage of the eye----and the carriage of the cannon, by which both the
  • one and the other are enabled to do so much execution. I don’t think the
  • comparison a bad one; However, as ’tis made and placed at the head of
  • the chapter, as much for use as ornament, all I desire in return is,
  • that whenever I speak of Mrs. _Wadman’s_ eyes (except once in the next
  • period), that you keep it in your fancy.
  • I protest, Madam, said my uncle _Toby_, I can see nothing whatever in
  • your eye.
  • It is not in the white; said Mrs. _Wadman_: my uncle _Toby_ look’d with
  • might and main into the pupil----
  • Now of all the eyes which ever were created----from your own, Madam, up
  • to those of _Venus_ herself, which certainly were as venereal a pair of
  • eyes as ever stood in a head----there never was an eye of them all, so
  • fitted to rob my uncle _Toby_ of his repose, as the very eye, at which
  • he was looking----it was not, Madam, a rolling eye----a romping or a
  • wanton one--nor was it an eye sparkling--petulant or imperious--of high
  • claims and terrifying exactions, which would have curdled at once that
  • milk of human nature, of which my uncle _Toby_ was made up----but ’twas
  • an eye full of gentle salutations----and soft responses----speaking----
  • not like the trumpet stop of some ill-made organ, in which many an eye
  • I talk to, holds coarse converse----but whispering soft----like the
  • last low accent of an expiring saint---- “How can you live comfortless,
  • captain _Shandy_, and alone, without a bosom to lean your head on----or
  • trust your cares to?”
  • It was an eye----
  • But I shall be in love with it myself, if I say another word about it.
  • ----It did my uncle _Toby’s_ business.
  • CHAPTER XXVI
  • There is nothing shews the character of my father and my uncle _Toby_,
  • in a more entertaining light, than their different manner of deportment,
  • under the same accident----for I call not love a misfortune, from a
  • persuasion, that a man’s heart is ever the better for it ----Great God!
  • what must my uncle _Toby’s_ have been, when ’twas all benignity without
  • it.
  • My father, as appears from many of his papers, was very subject to this
  • passion, before he married----but from a little subacid kind of drollish
  • impatience in his nature, whenever it befell him, he would never submit
  • to it like a christian; but would pish, and huff, and bounce, and kick,
  • and play the Devil, and write the bitterest Philippicks against the eye
  • that ever man wrote----there is one in verse upon somebody’s eye or
  • other, that for two or three nights together, had put him by his rest;
  • which in his first transport of resentment against it, he begins thus:
  • “A Devil ’tis----and mischief such doth work
  • As never yet did _Pagan_, _Jew_, or _Turk_.”[8.5]
  • In short, during the whole paroxism, my father was all abuse and foul
  • language, approaching rather towards malediction----only he did not do
  • it with as much method as _Ernulphus_----he was too impetuous; nor with
  • _Ernulphus’s_ policy----for tho’ my father, with the most intolerant
  • spirit, would curse both this and that, and every thing under heaven,
  • which was either aiding or abetting to his love----yet never concluded
  • his chapter of curses upon it, without cursing himself in at the
  • bargain, as one of the most egregious fools and coxcombs, he would say,
  • that ever was let loose in the world.
  • My uncle _Toby_, on the contrary, took it like a lamb----sat still and
  • let the poison work in his veins without resistance----in the sharpest
  • exacerbations of his wound (like that on his groin) he never dropt one
  • fretful or discontented word----he blamed neither heaven nor earth----or
  • thought or spoke an injurious thing of any body, or any part of it; he
  • sat solitary and pensive with his pipe----looking at his lame
  • leg----then whiffing out a sentimental heigh ho! which mixing with the
  • smoke, incommoded no one mortal.
  • He took it like a lamb ----I say.
  • In truth he had mistook it at first; for having taken a ride with my
  • father, that very morning, to save if possible a beautiful wood, which
  • the dean and chapter were hewing down to give to the poor;[8.6] which
  • said wood being in full view of my uncle _Toby’s_ house, and of singular
  • service to him in his description of the battle of _Wynnendale_--by
  • trotting on too hastily to save it----upon an uneasy saddle----worse
  • horse, &c. &c. . . it had so happened, that the serous part of the blood
  • had got betwixt the two skins, in the nethermost part of my uncle
  • _Toby_----the first shootings of which (as my uncle _Toby_ had no
  • experience of love) he had taken for a part of the passion--till the
  • blister breaking in the one case--and the other remaining--my uncle
  • _Toby_ was presently convinced, that his wound was not a skin-deep
  • wound----but that it had gone to his heart.
  • [Footnote 8.5: This will be printed with my father’s Life of
  • _Socrates_, &c. &c.]
  • [Footnote 8.6: Mr. _Shandy_ must mean the poor _in spirit_;
  • inasmuch as they divided the money amongst themselves.]
  • CHAPTER XXVII
  • The world is ashamed of being virtuous ----My uncle _Toby_ knew little
  • of the world; and therefore when he felt he was in love with widow
  • _Wadman_, he had no conception that the thing was any more to be made a
  • mystery of, than if Mrs. _Wadman_ had given him a cut with a gap’d knife
  • across his finger: Had it been otherwise----yet as he ever look’d upon
  • _Trim_ as a humble friend; and saw fresh reasons every day of his life,
  • to treat him as such----it would have made no variation in the manner in
  • which he informed him of the affair.
  • “I am in love, corporal!” quoth my uncle _Toby_.
  • CHAPTER XXVIII
  • In love! ----said the corporal--your honour was very well the day before
  • yesterday, when I was telling your honour the story of the King of
  • _Bohemia_--_Bohemia!_ said my uncle _Toby_ - - - - musing a long time
  • - - - What became of that story, _Trim?_
  • --We lost it, an’ please your honour, somehow betwixt us--but your
  • honour was as free from love then, as I am----’twas just whilst thou
  • went’st off with the wheel-barrow----with Mrs. _Wadman_, quoth my uncle
  • _Toby_ ----She has left a ball here--added my uncle _Toby_--pointing to
  • his breast----
  • ----She can no more, an’ please your honour, stand a siege, than she can
  • fly--cried the corporal----
  • ----But as we are neighbours, _Trim_, --the best way I think is to let
  • her know it civilly first--quoth my uncle _Toby_.
  • Now if I might presume, said the corporal, to differ from your
  • honour----
  • --Why else do I talk to thee, _Trim?_ said my uncle _Toby_, mildly----
  • --Then I would begin, an’ please your honour, with making a good
  • thundering attack upon her, in return--and telling her civilly
  • afterwards--for if she knows anything of your honour’s being in love,
  • before hand ----L--d help her! --she knows no more at present of it,
  • _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_--than the child unborn------
  • Precious souls!------
  • Mrs. _Wadman_ had told it, with all its circumstances, to Mrs. _Bridget_
  • twenty-four hours before; and was at that very moment sitting in council
  • with her, touching some slight misgivings with regard to the issue of
  • the affairs, which the Devil, who never lies dead in a ditch, had put
  • into her head--before he would allow half time, to get quietly through
  • her _Te Deum_.
  • I am terribly afraid, said widow _Wadman_, in case I should marry him,
  • _Bridget_--that the poor captain will not enjoy his health, with the
  • monstrous wound upon his groin----
  • It may not, Madam, be so very large, replied _Bridget_, as you
  • think----and I believe, besides, added she--that ’tis dried up----
  • ----I could like to know--merely for his sake, said Mrs. _Wadman_----
  • --We’ll know the long and the broad of it, in ten days--answered Mrs.
  • _Bridget_, for whilst the captain is paying his addresses to you --I’m
  • confident Mr. _Trim_ will be for making love to me--and I’ll let him as
  • much as he will--added _Bridget_--to get it all out of him----
  • The measures were taken at once----and my uncle _Toby_ and the corporal
  • went on with theirs.
  • Now, quoth the corporal, setting his left hand a-kimbo, and giving such
  • a flourish with his right, as just promised success--and no more----if
  • your honour will give me leave to lay down the plan of this attack----
  • ----Thou wilt please me by it, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_,
  • exceedingly--and as I foresee thou must act in it as my _aid de camp_,
  • here’s a crown, corporal, to begin with, to steep thy commission.
  • Then, an’ please your honour, said the corporal (making a bow first for
  • his commission)--we will begin with getting your honour’s laced cloaths
  • out of the great campaign-trunk, to be well air’d, and have the blue and
  • gold taken up at the sleeves--and I’ll put your white ramallie-wig fresh
  • into pipes--and send for a taylor, to have your honour’s thin scarlet
  • breeches turn’d----
  • --I had better take the red plush ones, quoth my uncle _Toby_ ----They
  • will be too clumsy--said the corporal.
  • CHAPTER XXIX
  • ----Thou wilt get a brush and a little chalk to my sword----’Twill be
  • only in your honour’s way, replied _Trim_.
  • CHAPTER XXX
  • ----But your honour’s two razors shall be new set--and I will get my
  • _Montero_-cap furbish’d up, and put on poor lieutenant _Le Fever’s_
  • regimental coat, which your honour gave me to wear for his sake--and as
  • soon as your honour is clean shaved--and has got your clean shirt on,
  • with your blue and gold, or your fine scarlet----sometimes one and
  • sometimes t’other--and everything is ready for the attack--we’ll march
  • up boldly, as if ’twas to the face of a bastion; and whilst your honour
  • engages Mrs. _Wadman_ in the parlour, to the right ----I’ll attack Mrs.
  • _Bridget_ in the kitchen, to the left; and having seiz’d the pass, I’ll
  • answer for it, said the corporal, snapping his fingers over his
  • head--that the day is our own.
  • I wish I may but manage it right; said my uncle _Toby_--but I declare,
  • corporal, I had rather march up to the very edge of a trench----
  • --A woman is quite a different thing--said the corporal.
  • --I suppose so, quoth my uncle _Toby_.
  • CHAPTER XXXI
  • If anything in this world, which my father said, could have provoked my
  • uncle _Toby_, during the time he was in love, it was the perverse use my
  • father was always making of an expression of _Hilarion_ the hermit; who,
  • in speaking of his abstinence, his watchings, flagellations, and other
  • instrumental parts of his religion--would say--tho’ with more
  • facetiousness than became an hermit-- “That they were the means he used,
  • to make his _ass_ (meaning his body) leave off kicking.”
  • It pleased my father well; it was not only a laconick way of
  • expressing----but of libelling, at the same time, the desires and
  • appetites of the lower part of us; so that for many years of my father’s
  • life, ’twas his constant mode of expression--he never used the word
  • _passions_ once--but _ass_ always instead of them ----So that he might
  • be said truly, to have been upon the bones, or the back of his own ass,
  • or else of some other man’s, during all that time.
  • I must here observe to you the difference betwixt
  • My father’s ass
  • and my hobby-horse--in order to keep characters as separate as may be,
  • in our fancies as we go along.
  • For my hobby-horse, if you recollect a little, is no way a vicious
  • beast; he has scarce one hair or lineament of the ass about him----’Tis
  • the sporting little filly-folly which carries you out for the present
  • hour--a maggot, a butterfly, a picture, a fiddlestick--an uncle _Toby’s_
  • siege--or an _anything_, which a man makes a shift to get a-stride on,
  • to canter it away from the cares and solicitudes of life--’Tis as useful
  • a beast as is in the whole creation--nor do I really see how the world
  • would do without it----
  • ----But for my father’s ass------oh! mount him--mount him--mount
  • him--(that’s three times, is it not?)--mount him not: --’tis a beast
  • concupiscent--and foul befal the man, who does not hinder him from
  • kicking.
  • CHAPTER XXXII
  • Well! dear brother _Toby_, said my father, upon his first seeing him
  • after he fell in love--and how goes it with your ASSE?
  • Now my uncle _Toby_ thinking more of the _part_ where he had had the
  • blister, than of _Hilarion’s_ metaphor--and our preconceptions having
  • (you know) as great a power over the sounds of words as the shapes of
  • things, he had imagined, that my father, who was not very ceremonious in
  • his choice of words, had enquired after the part by its proper name; so
  • notwithstanding my mother, doctor _Slop_, and Mr. _Yorick_, were sitting
  • in the parlour, he thought it rather civil to conform to the term my
  • father had made use of than not. When a man is hemm’d in by two
  • indecorums, and must commit one of ’em --I always observe--let him chuse
  • which he will, the world will blame him--so I should not be astonished
  • if it blames my uncle _Toby_.
  • My A--e, quoth my uncle _Toby_, is much better--brother _Shandy_ --My
  • father had formed great expectations from his Asse in this onset; and
  • would have brought him on again; but doctor _Slop_ setting up an
  • intemperate laugh--and my mother crying out L-- bless us! --it drove my
  • father’s Asse off the field--and the laugh then becoming general--there
  • was no bringing him back to the charge, for some time----
  • And so the discourse went on without him.
  • Everybody, said my mother, says you are in love, brother _Toby_, --and
  • we hope it is true.
  • I am as much in love, sister, I believe, replied my uncle _Toby_, as any
  • man usually is ----Humph! said my father----and when did you know it?
  • quoth my mother----
  • ----When the blister broke; replied my uncle _Toby_.
  • My uncle _Toby’s_ reply put my father into good temper--so he charg’d o’
  • foot.
  • CHAPTER XXXIII
  • As the ancients agree, brother _Toby_, said my father, that there are
  • two different and distinct kinds of _love_, according to the different
  • parts which are affected by it--the Brain or Liver ----I think when a
  • man is in love, it behoves him a little to consider which of the two he
  • is fallen into.
  • What signifies it, brother _Shandy_, replied my uncle _Toby_, which of
  • the two it is, provided it will but make a man marry, and love his wife,
  • and get a few children?
  • ----A few children! cried my father, rising out of his chair, and
  • looking full in my mother’s face, as he forced his way betwixt her’s and
  • doctor _Slop’s_--a few children! cried my father, repeating my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ words as he walk’d to and fro----
  • ----Not, my dear brother _Toby_, cried my father, recovering himself all
  • at once, and coming close up to the back of my uncle _Toby’s_ chair--not
  • that I should be sorry hadst thou a score--on the contrary, I should
  • rejoice--and be as kind, _Toby_, to every one of them as a father--
  • My uncle _Toby_ stole his hand unperceived behind his chair, to give my
  • father’s a squeeze----
  • ----Nay, moreover, continued he, keeping hold of my uncle _Toby’s_
  • hand--so much dost thou possess, my dear _Toby_, of the milk of human
  • nature, and so little of its asperities--’tis piteous the world is not
  • peopled by creatures which resemble thee; and was I an _Asiatic_
  • monarch, added my father, heating himself with his new project --I would
  • oblige thee, provided it would not impair thy strength--or dry up thy
  • radical moisture too fast--or weaken thy memory or fancy, brother
  • _Toby_, which these gymnics inordinately taken are apt to do--else, dear
  • _Toby_, I would procure thee the most beautiful women in my empire, and
  • I would oblige thee, _nolens, volens_, to beget for me one subject every
  • _month_----
  • As my father pronounced the last word of the sentence--my mother took a
  • pinch of snuff.
  • Now I would not, quoth my uncle _Toby_, get a child, _nolens, volens_,
  • that is, whether I would or no, to please the greatest prince upon
  • earth----
  • ----And ’twould be cruel in me, brother _Toby_, to compel thee; said my
  • father--but ’tis a case put to show thee, that it is not thy begetting a
  • child--in case thou should’st be able--but the system of Love and
  • Marriage thou goest upon, which I would set thee right in----
  • There is at least, said _Yorick_, a great deal of reason and plain sense
  • in captain _Shandy’s_ opinion of love; and ’tis amongst the ill-spent
  • hours of my life, which I have to answer for, that I have read so many
  • flourishing poets and rhetoricians in my time, from whom I never could
  • extract so much----
  • I wish, _Yorick_, said my father, you had read _Plato_; for there you
  • would have learnt that there are two LOVES --I know there were two
  • RELIGIONS, replied _Yorick_, amongst the ancients----one--for the
  • vulgar, and another for the learned; --but I think ONE LOVE might have
  • served both of them very well--
  • It could not; replied my father--and for the same reasons: for of these
  • Loves, according to _Ficinus’s_ comment upon _Velasius_, the one is
  • rational----
  • ----the other is _natural_----
  • the first ancient----without mother----where _Venus_ had nothing to do:
  • the second, begotten of _Jupiter_ and _Dione_--
  • ----Pray, brother, quoth my uncle _Toby_, what has a man who believes in
  • God to do with this? My father could not stop to answer, for fear of
  • breaking the thread of his discourse----
  • This latter, continued he, partakes wholly of the nature of _Venus_.
  • The first, which is the golden chain let down from heaven, excites to
  • love heroic, which comprehends in it, and excites to the desire of
  • philosophy and truth----the second, excites to _desire_, simply----
  • ----I think the procreation of children as beneficial to the world, said
  • _Yorick_, as the finding out of the longitude----
  • ----To be sure, said my mother, _love_ keeps peace in the world----
  • ----In the _house_--my dear, I own--
  • ----It replenishes the earth; said my mother----
  • But it keeps heaven empty--my dear; replied my father.
  • ----’Tis Virginity, cried _Slop_, triumphantly, which fills paradise.
  • Well push’d, nun! quoth my father.
  • CHAPTER XXXIV
  • My father had such a skirmishing, cutting kind of a slashing way with
  • him, in his disputations, thrusting and ripping, and giving every one a
  • stroke to remember him by in his turn--that if there were twenty people
  • in company--in less than half an hour he was sure to have every one of
  • ’em against him.
  • What did not a little contribute to leave him thus without an ally, was,
  • that if there was any one post more untenable than the rest, he would be
  • sure to throw himself into it; and to do him justice, when he was once
  • there, he would defend it so gallantly, that ’twould have been a
  • concern, either to a brave man or a good-natured one, to have seen him
  • driven out.
  • _Yorick_, for this reason, though he would often attack him--yet could
  • never bear to do it with all his force.
  • Doctor _Slop’s_ VIRGINITY, in the close of the last chapter, had got him
  • for once on the right side of the rampart; and he was beginning to blow
  • up all the convents in _Christendom_ about _Slop’s_ ears, when corporal
  • _Trim_ came into the parlour to inform my uncle _Toby_, that his thin
  • scarlet breeches, in which the attack was to be made upon Mrs. _Wadman_,
  • would not do; for that the taylor, in ripping them up, in order to turn
  • them, had found they had been turn’d before ----Then turn them again,
  • brother, said my father, rapidly, for there will be many a turning of
  • ’em yet before all’s done in the affair ----They are as rotten as dirt,
  • said the corporal ----Then by all means, said my father, bespeak a new
  • pair, brother----for though I know, continued my father, turning himself
  • to the company, that widow _Wadman_ has been deeply in love with my
  • brother _Toby_ for many years, and has used every art and circumvention
  • of woman to outwit him into the same passion, yet now that she has
  • caught him----her fever will be pass’d its height----
  • ----She has gain’d her point.
  • In this case, continued my father, which _Plato_, I am persuaded, never
  • thought of ----Love, you see, is not so much a SENTIMENT as a SITUATION,
  • into which a man enters, as my brother _Toby_ would do, into a
  • _corps_----no matter whether he loves the service or no----being once in
  • it--he acts as if he did; and takes every step to shew himself a man of
  • prowesse.
  • The hypothesis, like the rest of my father’s, was plausible enough, and
  • my uncle _Toby_ had but a single word to object to it--in which _Trim_
  • stood ready to second him----but my father had not drawn his
  • conclusion----
  • For this reason, continued my father (stating the case over
  • again)--notwithstanding all the world knows, that Mrs. _Wadman_
  • _affects_ my brother _Toby_--and my brother _Toby_ contrariwise
  • _affects_ Mrs. _Wadman_, and no obstacle in nature to forbid the music
  • striking up this very night, yet will I answer for it, that this
  • self-same tune will not be play’d this twelvemonth.
  • We have taken our measures badly, quoth my uncle _Toby_, looking up
  • interrogatively in _Trim’s_ face.
  • I would lay my _Montero_-cap, said _Trim_ ----Now _Trim’s_ _Montero_-cap,
  • as I once told you, was his constant wager; and having furbish’d it up
  • that very night, in order to go upon the attack--it made the odds look
  • more considerable ----I would lay, an’ please your honour, my
  • _Montero_-cap to a shilling--was it proper, continued _Trim_ (making a
  • bow), to offer a wager before your honours----
  • ----There is nothing improper in it, said my father--’tis a mode of
  • expression; for in saying thou would’st lay thy _Montero_-cap to a
  • shilling--all thou meanest is this--that thou believest--
  • ----Now, What do’st thou believe?
  • That widow _Wadman_, an’ please your worship, cannot hold it out ten
  • days----
  • And whence, cried _Slop_, jeeringly, hast thou all this knowledge of
  • woman, friend?
  • By falling in love with a popish clergywoman; said _Trim_.
  • ’Twas a _Beguine_, said my uncle _Toby_.
  • Doctor _Slop_ was too much in wrath to listen to the distinction; and my
  • father taking that very crisis to fall in helter-skelter upon the whole
  • order of Nuns and _Beguines_, a set of silly, fusty, baggages----_Slop_
  • could not stand it----and my uncle _Toby_ having some measures to take
  • about his breeches--and _Yorick_ about his fourth general division--in
  • order for their several attacks next day--the company broke up: and my
  • father being left alone, and having half an hour upon his hands betwixt
  • that and bed-time; he called for pen, ink, and paper, and wrote my uncle
  • _Toby_ the following letter of instructions:
  • MY DEAR BROTHER _Toby_,
  • What I am going to say to thee is upon the nature of women, and of
  • love-making to them; and perhaps it is as well for thee--tho’ not so
  • well for me--that thou hast occasion for a letter of instructions upon
  • that head, and that I am able to write it to thee.
  • Had it been the good pleasure of him who disposes of our lots--and thou
  • no sufferer by the knowledge, I had been well content that thou
  • should’st have dipp’d the pen this moment into the ink, instead of
  • myself; but that not being the case ------------Mrs. _Shandy_ being now
  • close beside me, preparing for bed ----I have thrown together without
  • order, and just as they have come into my mind, such hints and documents
  • as I deem may be of use to thee; intending, in this, to give thee a
  • token of my love; not doubting, my dear _Toby_, of the manner in which
  • it will be accepted.
  • In the first place, with regard to all which concerns religion in the
  • affair----though I perceive from a glow in my cheek, that I blush as I
  • begin to speak to thee upon the subject, as well knowing,
  • notwithstanding thy unaffected secrecy, how few of its offices thou
  • neglectest--yet I would remind thee of one (during the continuance of
  • thy courtship) in a particular manner, which I would not have omitted;
  • and that is, never to go forth upon the enterprize, whether it be in the
  • morning or the afternoon, without first recommending thyself to the
  • protection of Almighty God, that he may defend thee from the evil one.
  • Shave the whole top of thy crown clean once at least every four or five
  • days, but oftener if convenient; lest in taking off thy wig before her,
  • thro’ absence of mind, she should be able to discover how much has been
  • cut away by Time----how much by _Trim_.
  • --’Twere better to keep ideas of baldness out of her fancy.
  • Always carry it in thy mind, and act upon it as a sure maxim, _Toby_----
  • “_That women are timid:_” And ’tis well they are----else there would be
  • no dealing with them.
  • Let not thy breeches be too tight, or hang too loose about thy thighs,
  • like the trunk-hose of our ancestors.
  • ----A just medium prevents all conclusions.
  • Whatever thou hast to say, be it more or less, forget not to utter it in
  • a low soft tone of voice. Silence, and whatever approaches it, weaves
  • dreams of midnight secrecy into the brain: For this cause, if thou canst
  • help it, never throw down the tongs and poker.
  • Avoid all kinds of pleasantry and facetiousness in thy discourse with
  • her, and do whatever lies in thy power at the same time, to keep from
  • her all books and writings which tend thereto: there are some devotional
  • tracts, which if thou canst entice her to read over--it will be well:
  • but suffer her not to look into _Rabelais_, or _Scarron_, or _Don
  • Quixote_----
  • ----They are all books which excite laughter; and thou knowest, dear
  • _Toby_, that there is no passion so serious as lust.
  • Stick a pin in the bosom of thy shirt, before thou enterest her parlour.
  • And if thou art permitted to sit upon the same sopha with her, and she
  • gives thee occasion to lay thy hand upon hers--beware of taking
  • it----thou canst not lay thy hand on hers, but she will feel the temper
  • of thine. Leave that and as many other things as thou canst, quite
  • undetermined; by so doing, thou wilt have her curiosity on thy side; and
  • if she is not conquered by that, and thy ASSE continues still kicking,
  • which there is great reason to suppose ----Thou must begin, with first
  • losing a few ounces of blood below the ears, according to the practice
  • of the ancient _Scythians_, who cured the most intemperate fits of the
  • appetite by that means.
  • _Avicenna_, after this, is for having the part anointed with the syrup
  • of hellebore, using proper evacuations and purges----and I believe
  • rightly. But thou must eat little or no goat’s flesh, nor red
  • deer----nor even foal’s flesh by any means; and carefully
  • abstain----that is, as much as thou canst, from peacocks, cranes, coots,
  • didappers, and water-hens----
  • As for thy drink --I need not tell thee, it must be the infusion of
  • VERVAIN and the herb HANEA, of which _Ælian_ relates such effects--but
  • if thy stomach palls with it--discontinue it from time to time, taking
  • cucumbers, melons, purslane, water-lillies, woodbine, and lettice, in
  • the stead of them.
  • There is nothing further for thee, which occurs to me at present----
  • ----Unless the breaking out of a fresh war ----So wishing everything,
  • dear _Toby_, for the best,
  • I rest thy affectionate brother,
  • WALTER SHANDY.
  • CHAPTER XXXV
  • Whilst my father was writing his letter of instructions, my uncle _Toby_
  • and the corporal were busy in preparing everything for the attack. As
  • the turning of the thin scarlet breeches was laid aside (at least for
  • the present), there was nothing which should put it off beyond the next
  • morning; so accordingly it was resolved upon, for eleven o’clock.
  • Come, my dear, said my father to my mother--’twill be but like a brother
  • and sister, if you and I take a walk down to my brother _Toby’s_----to
  • countenance him in this attack of his.
  • My uncle _Toby_ and the corporal had been accoutred both some time, when
  • my father and mother enter’d, and the clock striking eleven, were that
  • moment in motion to sally forth--but the account of this is worth more
  • than to be wove into the fag end of the eighth[8.7] volume of such a
  • work as this. ----My father had no time but to put the letter of
  • instructions into my uncle _Toby’s_ coat-pocket----and join with my
  • mother in wishing his attack prosperous.
  • I could like, said my mother, to look through the key-hole out of
  • curiosity ----Call it by its right name, my dear, quoth my father--
  • _And look through the key-hole_ as long as you will.
  • [Footnote 8.7: Alluding to the first edition.]
  • THE LIFE AND OPINIONS
  • OF
  • TRISTRAM SHANDY
  • GENTLEMAN
  • Non enim excursus hic ejus, sed opus ipsum est.
  • PLIN. Lib. v. Epist. 6.
  • Si quid urbaniusculè lusum a nobis, per Musas et Charitas et omnium
  • poëtarum Numina, Oro te, ne me malè capias.
  • A DEDICATION
  • TO A GREAT MAN
  • Having, _a priori_, intended to dedicate _The Amours of my Uncle
  • Toby_ to Mr. *** ----I see more reasons, _a posteriori_, for doing it
  • to Lord *******.
  • I should lament from my soul, if this exposed me to the jealousy of
  • their Reverences; because _a posteriori_, in Court-latin, signifies
  • the kissing hands for preferment--or anything else--in order to get
  • it.
  • My opinion of Lord ******* is neither better nor worse, than it was
  • of Mr. ***. Honours, like impressions upon coin, may give an ideal
  • and local value to a bit of base metal; but Gold and Silver will
  • pass all the world over without any other recommendation than their
  • own weight.
  • The same good-will that made me think of offering up half an hour’s
  • amusement to Mr. *** when out of place--operates more forcibly at
  • present, as half an hour’s amusement will be more serviceable and
  • refreshing after labour and sorrow, than after a philosophical
  • repast.
  • Nothing is so perfectly _amusement_ as a total change of ideas; no
  • ideas are so totally different as those of Ministers, and innocent
  • Lovers: for which reason, when I come to talk of Statesmen and
  • Patriots, and set such marks upon them as will prevent confusion and
  • mistakes concerning them for the future --I propose to dedicate that
  • Volume to some gentle Shepherd,
  • Whose thoughts proud Science never taught to stray,
  • Far as the Statesman’s walk or Patriot-way;
  • Yet _simple Nature_ to his hopes had given
  • Out of a cloud-capp’d head a humbler heaven;
  • Some _untam’d_ World in depths of wood embraced--
  • Some happier Island in the watry-waste--
  • And where admitted to that equal sky,
  • His _faithful Dog_ should bear him company.
  • In a word, by thus introducing an entire new set of objects to his
  • Imagination, I shall unavoidably give a _Diversion_ to his
  • passionate and love-sick Contemplations. In the meantime,
  • I am
  • THE AUTHOR.
  • BOOK IX
  • CHAPTER I
  • I call all the powers of time and chance, which severally check us in
  • our careers in this world, to bear me witness, that I could never yet
  • get fairly to my uncle _Toby’s_ amours, till this very moment, that my
  • mother’s _curiosity_, as she stated the affair, ----or a different
  • impulse in her, as my father would have it----wished her to take a peep
  • at them through the key-hole.
  • “Call it, my dear, by its right name, quoth my father, and look through
  • the key-hole as long as you will.”
  • Nothing but the fermentation of that little subacid humour, which I have
  • often spoken of, in my father’s habit, could have vented such an
  • insinuation----he was however frank and generous in his nature, and at
  • all times open to conviction; so that he had scarce got to the last word
  • of this ungracious retort, when his conscience smote him.
  • My mother was then conjugally swinging with her left arm twisted under
  • his right, in such wise, that the inside of her hand rested upon the
  • back of his--she raised her fingers, and let them fall--it could scarce
  • be call’d a tap; or if it was a tap---- ’twould have puzzled a casuist
  • to say, whether ’twas a tap of remonstrance, or a tap of confession:
  • my father, who was all sensibilities from head to foot, class’d it
  • right --Conscience redoubled her blow--he turn’d his face suddenly the
  • other way, and my mother supposing his body was about to turn with it in
  • order to move homewards, by a cross movement of her right leg, keeping
  • her left as its centre, brought herself so far in front, that as he
  • turned his head, he met her eye ------Confusion again! he saw a thousand
  • reasons to wipe out the reproach, and as many to reproach himself----a
  • thin, blue, chill, pellucid chrystal with all its humours so at rest,
  • the least mote or speck of desire might have been seen, at the bottom of
  • it, had it existed----it did not----and how I happen to be so lewd
  • myself, particularly a little before the vernal and autumnal
  • equinoxes ----Heaven above knows ----My mother----madam----was so at no
  • time, either by nature, by institution, or example.
  • A temperate current of blood ran orderly through her veins in all months
  • of the year, and in all critical moments both of the day and night
  • alike; nor did she superinduce the least heat into her humours from the
  • manual effervescencies of devotional tracts, which having little or no
  • meaning in them, nature is oft-times obliged to find one ----And as for
  • my father’s example! ’twas so far from being either aiding or abetting
  • thereunto, that ’twas the whole business of his life to keep all fancies
  • of that kind out of her head ----Nature had done her part, to have spared
  • him this trouble; and what was not a little inconsistent, my father knew
  • it ----And here am I sitting, this 12th day of _August_ 1766, in a purple
  • jerkin and yellow pair of slippers, without either wig or cap on, a most
  • tragicomical completion of his prediction, “That I should neither think,
  • nor act like any other man’s child, upon that very account.”
  • The mistake in my father, was in attacking my mother’s motive, instead
  • of the act itself; for certainly key-holes were made for other purposes;
  • and considering the act, as an act which interfered with a true
  • proposition, and denied a key-hole to be what it was------it became a
  • violation of nature; and was so far, you see, criminal.
  • It is for this reason, an’ please your Reverences, That key-holes are
  • the occasions of more sin and wickedness, than all other holes in this
  • world put together.
  • ------which leads me to my uncle _Toby’s_ amours.
  • CHAPTER II
  • Though the corporal had been as good as his word in putting my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ great ramallie-wig into pipes, yet the time was too short to
  • produce any great effects from it: it had lain many years squeezed up in
  • the corner of his old campaign trunk; and as bad forms are not so easy
  • to be got the better of, and the use of candle-ends not so well
  • understood, it was not so pliable a business as one would have wished.
  • The corporal with cheary eye and both arms extended, had fallen back
  • perpendicular from it a score times, to inspire it, if possible, with a
  • better air----had SPLEEN given a look at it, ’twould have cost her
  • ladyship a smile----it curl’d everywhere but where the corporal would
  • have it; and where a buckle or two, in his opinion, would have done it
  • honour, he could as soon have raised the dead.
  • Such it was----or rather such would it have seem’d upon any other brow;
  • but the sweet look of goodness which sat upon my uncle _Toby’s_,
  • assimilated everything around it so sovereignly to itself, and Nature
  • had moreover wrote GENTLEMAN with so fair a hand in every line of his
  • countenance, that even his tarnish’d gold-laced hat and huge cockade of
  • flimsy taffeta became him; and though not worth a button in themselves,
  • yet the moment my uncle _Toby_ put them on, they became serious objects,
  • and altogether seem’d to have been picked up by the hand of Science to
  • set him off to advantage.
  • Nothing in this world could have co-operated more powerfully towards
  • this, than my uncle _Toby’s_ blue and gold----_had not Quantity in some
  • measure been necessary to Grace_: in a period of fifteen or sixteen
  • years since they had been made, by a total inactivity in my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ life, for he seldom went further than the bowling-green--his
  • blue and gold had become so miserably too strait for him, that it was
  • with the utmost difficulty the corporal was able to get him into them;
  • the taking them up at the sleeves, was of no advantage. ----They were
  • laced however down the back, and at the seams of the sides, &c., in the
  • mode of King _William’s_ reign; and to shorten all description, they
  • shone so bright against the sun that morning, and had so metallick and
  • doughty an air with them, that had my uncle _Toby_ thought of attacking
  • in armour, nothing could have so well imposed upon his imagination.
  • As for the thin scarlet breeches, they had been unripp’d by the taylor
  • between the legs, and left at _sixes and sevens_----
  • ----Yes, Madam, ----but let us govern our fancies. It is enough they
  • were held impracticable the night before, and as there was no
  • alternative in my uncle _Toby’s_ wardrobe, he sallied forth in the red
  • plush.
  • The corporal had array’d himself in poor _Le Fever’s_ regimental coat;
  • and with his hair tuck’d up under his _Montero_-cap, which he had
  • furbish’d up for the occasion, march’d three paces distant from his
  • master: a whiff of military pride had puff’d out his shirt at the wrist;
  • and upon that in a black leather thong clipp’d into a tassel beyond the
  • knot, hung the corporal’s stick ----My uncle _Toby_ carried his cane
  • like a pike.
  • ----It looks well at least; quoth my father to himself.
  • CHAPTER III
  • My uncle _Toby_ turn’d his head more than once behind him, to see how he
  • was supported by the corporal; and the corporal as oft as he did it,
  • gave a slight flourish with his stick--but not vapouringly; and with the
  • sweetest accent of most respectful encouragement, bid his honour “never
  • fear.”
  • Now my uncle _Toby_ did fear; and grievously too; he knew not (as my
  • father had reproach’d him) so much as the right end of a Woman from the
  • wrong, and therefore was never altogether at his ease near any one of
  • them----unless in sorrow or distress; then infinite was his pity; nor
  • would the most courteous knight of romance have gone further, at least
  • upon one leg, to have wiped away a tear from a woman’s eye; and yet
  • excepting once that he was beguiled into it by Mrs. _Wadman_, he had
  • never looked stedfastly into one; and would often tell my father in the
  • simplicity of his heart, that it was almost (if not about) as bad as
  • talking bawdy.----
  • ----And suppose it is? my father would say.
  • CHAPTER IV
  • She cannot, quoth my uncle _Toby_, halting, when they had march’d up to
  • within twenty paces of Mrs. _Wadman’s_ door--she cannot, corporal, take
  • it amiss.----
  • ----She will take it, an’ please your honour, said the corporal, just as
  • the _Jew’s_ widow at _Lisbon_ took it of my brother _Tom_.----
  • ----And how was that? quoth my uncle _Toby_, facing quite about to the
  • corporal.
  • Your honour, replied the corporal, knows of _Tom’s_ misfortunes; but
  • this affair has nothing to do with them any further than this, That if
  • _Tom_ had not married the widow----or had it pleased God after their
  • marriage, that they had but put pork into their sausages, the honest
  • soul had never been taken out of his warm bed, and dragg’d to the
  • inquisition----’Tis a cursed place--added the corporal, shaking his
  • head, --when once a poor creature is in, he is in, an’ please your
  • honour, for ever.
  • ’Tis very true; said my uncle _Toby_, looking gravely at Mrs. _Wadman’s_
  • house, as he spoke.
  • Nothing, continued the corporal, can be so sad as confinement for
  • life--or so sweet, an’ please your honour, as liberty.
  • Nothing, _Trim_----said my uncle _Toby_, musing----
  • Whilst a man is free, --cried the corporal, giving a flourish with his
  • stick thus----
  • [Illustration]
  • A thousand of my father’s most subtle syllogisms could not have said
  • more for celibacy.
  • My uncle _Toby_ look’d earnestly towards his cottage and his
  • bowling-green.
  • The corporal had unwarily conjured up the Spirit of calculation with his
  • wand; and he had nothing to do, but to conjure him down again with his
  • story, and in this form of Exorcism, most un-ecclesiastically did the
  • corporal do it.
  • CHAPTER V
  • As _Tom’s_ place, an’ please your honour, was easy--and the weather
  • warm--it put him upon thinking seriously of settling himself in the
  • world; and as it fell out about that time, that a _Jew_ who kept a
  • sausage shop in the same street, had the ill luck to die of a strangury,
  • and leave his widow in possession of a rousing trade----_Tom_ thought
  • (as everybody in _Lisbon_ was doing the best he could devise for
  • himself) there could be no harm in offering her his service to carry it
  • on: so without any introduction to the widow, except that of buying a
  • pound of sausages at her shop--_Tom_ set out--counting the matter thus
  • within himself, as he walk’d along; that let the worst come of it that
  • could, he should at least get a pound of sausages for their worth--but,
  • if things went well, he should be set up; inasmuch as he should get not
  • only a pound of sausages--but a wife and--a sausage shop, an’ please
  • your honour, into the bargain.
  • Every servant in the family, from high to low, wish’d _Tom_ success; and
  • I can fancy, an’ please your honour, I see him this moment with his
  • white dimity waistcoat and breeches, and hat a little o’ one side,
  • passing jollily along the street, swinging his stick, with a smile and a
  • chearful word for everybody he met: ----But alas! _Tom!_ thou smilest no
  • more, cried the corporal, looking on one side of him upon the ground, as
  • if he apostrophised him in his dungeon.
  • Poor fellow! said my uncle _Toby_, feelingly.
  • He was an honest, light-hearted lad, an’ please your honour, as ever
  • blood warm’d----
  • ----Then he resembled thee, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_, rapidly.
  • The corporal blush’d down to his fingers ends--a tear of sentimental
  • bashfulness--another of gratitude to my uncle _Toby_--and a tear of
  • sorrow for his brother’s misfortunes, started into his eye, and ran
  • sweetly down his cheek together; my uncle _Toby’s_ kindled as one lamp
  • does at another; and taking hold of the breast of _Trim’s_ coat (which
  • had been that of _Le Fever’s_) as if to ease his lame leg, but in
  • reality to gratify a finer feeling----he stood silent for a minute and a
  • half; at the end of which he took his hand away, and the corporal making
  • a bow, went on with his story of his brother and the _Jew’s_ widow.
  • CHAPTER VI
  • When _Tom_, an’ please your honour, got to the shop, there was nobody in
  • it, but a poor negro girl, with a bunch of white feathers slightly tied
  • to the end of a long cane, flapping away flies--not killing them.
  • ----’Tis a pretty picture! said my uncle _Toby_--she had suffered
  • persecution, _Trim_, and had learnt mercy----
  • ----She was good, an’ please your honour, from nature, as well as from
  • hardships; and there are circumstances in the story of that poor
  • friendless slut, that would melt a heart of stone, said _Trim_; and some
  • dismal winter’s evening, when your honour is in the humour, they shall
  • be told you with the rest of _Tom’s_ story, for it makes a part of
  • it----
  • Then do not forget, _Trim_, said my uncle _Toby_.
  • A negro has a soul? an’ please your honour, said the corporal
  • (doubtingly).
  • I am not much versed, corporal, quoth my uncle _Toby_, in things of that
  • kind; but I suppose, God would not leave him without one, any more than
  • thee or me----
  • ----It would be putting one sadly over the head of another, quoth the
  • corporal.
  • It would so; said my uncle _Toby_. Why then, an’ please your honour, is
  • a black wench to be used worse than a white one?
  • I can give no reason, said my uncle _Toby_------
  • ----Only, cried the corporal, shaking his head, because she has no one
  • to stand up for her----
  • ----’Tis that very thing, _Trim_, quoth my uncle _Toby_, ----which
  • recommends her to protection----and her brethren with her; ’tis the
  • fortune of war which has put the whip into our hands _now_----where it
  • may be hereafter, heaven knows! ----but be it where it will, the brave,
  • _Trim!_ will not use it unkindly.
  • ----God forbid, said the corporal.
  • Amen, responded my uncle _Toby_, laying his hand upon his heart.
  • The corporal returned to his story, and went on----but with an
  • embarrassment in doing it, which here and there a reader in this world
  • will not be able to comprehend; for by the many sudden transitions all
  • along, from one kind and cordial passion to another, in getting thus far
  • on his way, he had lost the sportable key of his voice, which gave sense
  • and spirit to his tale: he attempted twice to resume it, but could not
  • please himself; so giving a stout hem! to rally back the retreating
  • spirits, and aiding nature at the same time with his left arm a-kimbo on
  • one side, and with his right a little extended, supporting her on the
  • other--the corporal got as near the note as he could; and in that
  • attitude, continued his story.
  • CHAPTER VII
  • As _Tom_, an’ please your honour, had no business at that time with the
  • _Moorish_ girl, he passed on into the room beyond, to talk to the
  • _Jew’s_ widow about love----and this pound of sausages; and being, as I
  • have told your honour, an open cheary-hearted lad, with his character
  • wrote in his looks and carriage, he took a chair, and without much
  • apology, but with great civility at the same time, placed it close to
  • her at the table, and sat down.
  • There is nothing so awkward, as courting a woman, an’ please your
  • honour, whilst she is making sausages ----So _Tom_ began a discourse
  • upon them; first, gravely, ----“as how they were made----with what meats,
  • herbs, and spices” --Then a little gayly, --as, “With what skins----and
  • if they never burst ----Whether the largest were not the best?” ----and
  • so on--taking care only as he went along, to season what he had to say
  • upon sausages, rather under than over; ----that he might have room to
  • act in----
  • It was owing to the neglect of that very precaution, said my uncle
  • _Toby_, laying his hand upon _Trim’s_ shoulder, that Count _De la Motte_
  • lost the battle of _Wynendale_: he pressed too speedily into the wood;
  • which if he had not done, _Lisle_ had not fallen into our hands, nor
  • _Ghent_ and _Bruges_, which both followed her example; it was so late in
  • the year, continued my uncle _Toby_, and so terrible a season came on,
  • that if things had not fallen out as they did, our troops must have
  • perish’d in the open field.----
  • ----Why, therefore, may not battles, an’ please your honour, as well as
  • marriages, be made in heaven? --My uncle _Toby_ mused----
  • Religion inclined him to say one thing, and his high idea of military
  • skill tempted him to say another; so not being able to frame a reply
  • exactly to his mind----my uncle _Toby_ said nothing at all; and the
  • corporal finished his story.
  • As _Tom_ perceived, an’ please your honour, that he gained ground, and
  • that all he had said upon the subject of sausages was kindly taken, he
  • went on to help her a little in making them. ----First, by taking hold
  • of the ring of the sausage whilst she stroked the forced meat down with
  • her hand----then by cutting the strings into proper lengths, and holding
  • them in his hand, whilst she took them out one by one----then, by
  • putting them across her mouth, that she might take them out as she
  • wanted them----and so on from little to more, till at last he adventured
  • to tie the sausage himself, whilst she held the snout.----
  • ----Now a widow, an’ please your honour, always chuses a second husband
  • as unlike the first as she can: so the affair was more than half settled
  • in her mind before _Tom_ mentioned it.
  • She made a feint however of defending herself, by snatching up a
  • sausage: ----_Tom_ instantly laid hold of another------
  • But seeing _Tom’s_ had more gristle in it------
  • She signed the capitulation----and _Tom_ sealed it; and there was an end
  • of the matter.
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • All womankind, continued _Trim_, (commenting upon his story) from the
  • highest to the lowest, an’ please your honour, love jokes; the
  • difficulty is to know how they chuse to have them cut; and there is no
  • knowing that, but by trying, as we do with our artillery in the field,
  • by raising or letting down their breeches, till we hit the mark.----
  • ----I like the comparison, said my uncle _Toby_, better than the thing
  • itself----
  • ----Because your honour, quoth the corporal, loves glory, more than
  • pleasure.
  • I hope, _Trim_, answered my uncle _Toby_, I love mankind more than
  • either; and as the knowledge of arms tends so apparently to the good and
  • quiet of the world----and particularly that branch of it which we have
  • practised together in our bowling-green, has no object but to shorten
  • the strides of AMBITION, and intrench the lives and fortunes of the
  • _few_, from the plunderings of the _many_----whenever that drum beats in
  • our ears, I trust, corporal, we shall neither of us want so much
  • humanity and fellow-feeling, as to face about and march.
  • In pronouncing this, my uncle _Toby_ faced about, and march’d firmly as
  • at the head of his company----and the faithful corporal, shouldering his
  • stick, and striking his hand upon his coat-skirt as he took his first
  • step----march’d close behind him down the avenue.
  • ----Now what can their two noddles be about? cried my father to my
  • mother----by all that’s strange, they are besieging Mrs. _Wadman_ in
  • form, and are marching round her house to mark out the lines of
  • circumvallation.
  • I dare say, quoth my mother ------------But stop, dear Sir----for what
  • my mother dared to say upon the occasion----and what my father did say
  • upon it----with her replies and his rejoinders, shall be read, perused,
  • paraphrased, commented, and descanted upon--or to say it all in a word,
  • shall be thumb’d over by Posterity in a chapter apart ----I say, by
  • Posterity--and care not, if I repeat the word again--for what has this
  • book done more than the Legation of _Moses_, or the Tale of a Tub, that
  • it may not swim down the gutter of Time along with them?
  • I will not argue the matter: Time wastes too fast: every letter I trace
  • tells me with what rapidity Life follows my pen; the days and hours of
  • it, more precious, my dear _Jenny!_ than the rubies about thy neck, are
  • flying over our heads like light clouds of a windy day, never to return
  • more----everything presses on----whilst thou art twisting that lock,
  • ----see! it grows grey; and every time I kiss thy hand to bid adieu, and
  • every absence which follows it, are preludes to that eternal separation
  • which we are shortly to make.----
  • ----Heaven have mercy upon us both!
  • CHAPTER IX
  • Now, for what the world thinks of that ejaculation ----I would not give
  • a groat.
  • CHAPTER X
  • My mother had gone with her left arm twisted in my father’s right, till
  • they had got to the fatal angle of the old garden wall, where Doctor
  • _Slop_ was overthrown by _Obadiah_ on the coach-horse: as this was
  • directly opposite to the front of Mrs. _Wadman’s_ house, when my father
  • came to it, he gave a look across; and seeing my uncle _Toby_ and the
  • corporal within ten paces of the door, he turn’d about---- “Let us just
  • stop a moment, quoth my father, and see with what ceremonies my brother
  • _Toby_ and his man _Trim_ make their first entry----it will not detain
  • us, added my father, a single minute:” ----No matter, if it be ten
  • minutes, quoth my mother.
  • ----It will not detain us half one; said my father.
  • The corporal was just then setting in with the story of his brother
  • _Tom_ and the _Jew’s_ widow: the story went on--and on----it had
  • episodes in it----it came back, and went on----and on again; there was
  • no end of it----the reader found it very long----
  • ----G-- help my father! he pish’d fifty times at every new attitude, and
  • gave the corporal’s stick, with all its flourishings and dangling, to as
  • many devils as chose to accept of them.
  • When issues of events like these my father is waiting for, are hanging
  • in the scales of fate, the mind has the advantage of changing the
  • principle of expectation three times, without which it would not have
  • power to see it out.
  • Curiosity governs the _first moment_; and the second moment is all
  • œconomy to justify the expence of the first----and for the third,
  • fourth, fifth, and sixth moments, and so on to the day of judgment--’tis
  • a point of HONOUR.
  • I need not be told, that the ethic writers have assigned this all to
  • Patience; but that VIRTUE, methinks, has extent of dominion sufficient
  • of her own, and enough to do in it, without invading the few dismantled
  • castles which HONOUR has left him upon the earth.
  • My father stood it out as well as he could with these three auxiliaries
  • to the end of _Trim’s_ story; and from thence to the end of my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ panegyrick upon arms, in the chapter following it; when seeing,
  • that instead of marching up to Mrs. _Wadman’s_ door, they both faced
  • about and march’d down the avenue diametrically opposite to his
  • expectation--he broke out at once with that little subacid soreness of
  • humour which, in certain situations, distinguished his character from
  • that of all other men.
  • CHAPTER XI
  • ----“Now what can their two noddles be about?” cried my father - - &c.
  • - - - -
  • I dare say, said my mother, they are making fortifications----
  • ------Not on Mrs. _Wadman’s_ premises! cried my father, stepping
  • back----
  • I suppose not: quoth my mother.
  • I wish, said my father, raising his voice, the whole science of
  • fortification at the devil, with all its trumpery of saps, mines,
  • blinds, gabions, fausse-brays and cuvetts------
  • ----They are foolish things----said my mother.
  • Now she had a way, which, by the bye, I would this moment give away my
  • purple jerkin, and my yellow slippers into the bargain, if some of your
  • reverences would imitate--and that was, never to refuse her assent and
  • consent to any proposition my father laid before her, merely because she
  • did not understand it, or had no ideas of the principal word or term of
  • art, upon which the tenet or proposition rolled. She contented herself
  • with doing all that her godfathers and godmothers promised for her--but
  • no more; and so would go on using a hard word twenty years together--and
  • replying to it too, if it was a verb, in all its moods and tenses,
  • without giving herself any trouble to enquire about it.
  • This was an eternal source of misery to my father, and broke the neck,
  • at the first setting out, of more good dialogues between them, than
  • could have done the most petulant contradiction----the few which
  • survived were the better for the _cuvetts_----
  • --“They are foolish things;” said my mother.
  • ----Particularly the _cuvetts_; replied my father.
  • ’Tis enough--he tasted the sweet of triumph--and went on.
  • --Not that they are, properly speaking, Mrs. _Wadman’s_ premises, said
  • my father, partly correcting himself--because she is but tenant for
  • life----
  • ----That makes a great difference--said my mother----
  • --In a fool’s head, replied my father----
  • Unless she should happen to have a child--said my mother--
  • ----But she must persuade my brother _Toby_ first to get her one--
  • ----To be sure, Mr. _Shandy_, quoth my mother.
  • ----Though if it comes to persuasion--said my father --Lord have mercy
  • upon them.
  • Amen: said my mother, _piano_.
  • Amen: cried my father, _fortissimè_.
  • Amen: said my mother again----but with such a sighing cadence of
  • personal pity at the end of it, as discomfited every fibre about my
  • father--he instantly took out his almanack; but before he could untie
  • it, _Yorick’s_ congregation coming out of church, became a full answer
  • to one half of his business with it--and my mother telling him it was a
  • sacrament day--left him as little in doubt, as to the other part --He
  • put his almanack into his pocket.
  • The first Lord of the Treasury thinking of _ways and means_, could not
  • have returned home with a more embarrassed look.
  • CHAPTER XII
  • Upon looking back from the end of the last chapter, and surveying the
  • texture of what has been wrote, it is necessary, that upon this page and
  • the three following, a good quantity of heterogeneous matter be inserted
  • to keep up that just balance betwixt wisdom and folly, without which a
  • book would not hold together a single year: nor is it a poor creeping
  • digression (which but for the name of, a man might continue as well
  • going on in the king’s highway) which will do the business----no; if it
  • is to be a digression, it must be a good frisky one, and upon a frisky
  • subject too, where neither the horse or his rider are to be caught, but
  • by rebound.
  • The only difficulty, is raising powers suitable to the nature of the
  • service: FANCY is capricious --WIT must not be searched for--and
  • PLEASANTRY (good-natured slut as she is) will not come in at a call, was
  • an empire to be laid at her feet.
  • ----The best way for a man is to say his prayers----
  • Only if it puts him in mind of his infirmities and defects as well
  • ghostly as bodily--for that purpose, he will find himself rather worse
  • after he has said them than before--for other purposes, better.
  • For my own part, there is not a way either moral or mechanical under
  • heaven that I could think of, which I have not taken with myself in this
  • case: sometimes by addressing myself directly to the soul herself, and
  • arguing the point over and over again with her upon the extent of her
  • own faculties----
  • ----I never could make them an inch the wider----
  • Then by changing my system, and trying what could be made of it upon the
  • body, by temperance, soberness, and chastity: These are good, quoth I,
  • in themselves--they are good, absolutely; --they are good, relatively;
  • --they are good for health--they are good for happiness in this
  • world--they are good for happiness in the next----
  • In short, they were good for everything but the thing wanted; and there
  • they were good for nothing, but to leave the soul just as heaven made
  • it: as for the theological virtues of faith and hope, they give it
  • courage; but then that snivelling virtue of Meekness (as my father would
  • always call it) takes it quite away again, so you are exactly where you
  • started.
  • Now in all common and ordinary cases, there is nothing which I have
  • found to answer so well as this----
  • ----Certainly, if there is any dependence upon Logic, and that I am not
  • blinded by self-love, there must be something of true genius about me,
  • merely upon this symptom of it, that I do not know what envy is: for
  • never do I hit upon any invention or device which tendeth to the
  • furtherance of good writing, but I instantly make it public; willing
  • that all mankind should write as well as myself.
  • ----Which they certainly will, when they think as little.
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • Now in ordinary cases, that is, when I am only stupid, and the thoughts
  • rise heavily and pass gummous through my pen----
  • Or that I am got, I know not how, into a cold unmetaphorical vein of
  • infamous writing, and cannot take a plumb-lift out of it _for my soul_;
  • so must be obliged to go on writing like a _Dutch_ commentator to the
  • end of the chapter, unless something be done----
  • ----I never stand conferring with pen and ink one moment; for if a pinch
  • of snuff, or a stride or two across the room will not do the business
  • for me --I take a razor at once; and having tried the edge of it upon
  • the palm of my hand, without further ceremony, except that of first
  • lathering my beard, I shave it off; taking care only if I do leave a
  • hair, that it be not a grey one: this done, I change my shirt--put on a
  • better coat--send for my last wig--put my topaz ring upon my finger; and
  • in a word, dress myself from one end to the other of me, after my best
  • fashion.
  • Now the devil in hell must be in it, if this does not do: for consider,
  • Sir, as every man chuses to be present at the shaving of his own beard
  • (though there is no rule without an exception), and unavoidably sits
  • over-against himself the whole time it is doing, in case he has a hand
  • in it--the Situation, like all others, has notions of her own to put
  • into the brain.----
  • ----I maintain it, the conceits of a rough-bearded man, are seven years
  • more terse and juvenile for one single operation; and if they did not
  • run a risk of being quite shaved away, might be carried up by continual
  • shavings, to the highest pitch of sublimity --How _Homer_ could write
  • with so long a beard, I don’t know----and as it makes against my
  • hypothesis, I as little care ----But let us return to the Toilet.
  • _Ludovicus Sorbonensis_ makes this entirely an affair of the body
  • (ἐξωτερικὴ πρᾶξις) as he calls it----but he is deceived: the soul and
  • body are joint-sharers in everything they get: A man cannot dress, but
  • his ideas get cloath’d at the same time; and if he dresses like a
  • gentleman, every one of them stands presented to his imagination,
  • genteelized along with him--so that he has nothing to do, but take his
  • pen, and write like himself.
  • For this cause, when your honours and reverences would know whether I
  • writ clean and fit to be read, you will be able to judge full as well by
  • looking into my Laundress’s bill, as my book: there was one single month
  • in which I can make it appear, that I dirtied one and thirty shirts with
  • clean writing; and after all, was more abus’d, cursed, criticis’d, and
  • confounded, and had more mystic heads shaken at me, for what I had wrote
  • in that one month, than in all the other months of that year put
  • together.
  • ----But their honours and reverences had not seen my bills.
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • As I never had any intention of beginning the Digression I am making all
  • this preparation for, till I come to the 15th chapter ----I have this
  • chapter to put to whatever use I think proper ----I have twenty this
  • moment ready for it ----I could write my chapter of Button-holes in
  • it----
  • Or my chapter of _Pishes_, which should follow them----
  • Or my chapter of _Knots_, in case their reverences have done with
  • them----they might lead me into mischief: the safest way is to follow
  • the track of the learned, and raise objections against what I have been
  • writing, tho’ I declare beforehand, I know no more than my heels how to
  • answer them.
  • And first, it may be said, there is a pelting kind of _thersitical_
  • satire, as black as the very ink ’tis wrote with----(and by the bye,
  • whoever says so, is indebted to the muster-master general of the
  • _Grecian_ army, for suffering the name of so ugly and foul-mouth’d a man
  • as _Thersites_ to continue upon his roll----for it has furnish’d him
  • with an epithet)----in these productions he will urge, all the personal
  • washings and scrubbings upon earth do a sinking genius no sort of
  • good----but just the contrary, inasmuch as the dirtier the fellow is,
  • the better generally he succeeds in it.
  • To this, I have no other answer----at least ready----but that the
  • Archbishop of _Benevento_ wrote his _nasty_ Romance of the _Galatea_, as
  • all the world knows, in a purple coat, waistcoat, and purple pair of
  • breeches; and that the penance set him of writing a commentary upon the
  • book of the _Revelations_, as severe as it was look’d upon by one part
  • of the world, was far from being deem’d so by the other, upon the single
  • account of that _Investment_.
  • Another objection, to all this remedy, is its want of universality;
  • forasmuch as the shaving part of it, upon which so much stress is laid,
  • by an unalterable law of nature excludes one half of the species
  • entirely from its use: all I can say is, that female writers, whether of
  • _England_, or of _France_, must e’en go without it------
  • As for the _Spanish_ ladies ----I am in no sort of distress----
  • CHAPTER XV
  • The fifteenth chapter is come at last; and brings nothing with it but a
  • sad signature of “How our pleasures slip from under us in this world!”
  • For in talking of my digression ----I declare before heaven I have made
  • it! What a strange creature is mortal man! said she.
  • ’Tis very true, said I----but ’twere better to get all these things out
  • of our heads, and return to my uncle _Toby_.
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • When my uncle _Toby_ and the corporal had marched down to the bottom of
  • the avenue, they recollected their business lay the other way; so they
  • faced about and marched up straight to Mrs. _Wadman’s_ door.
  • I warrant your honour; said the corporal, touching his _Montero_-cap
  • with his hand, as he passed him in order to give a knock at the
  • door ----My uncle _Toby_, contrary to his invariable way of treating his
  • faithful servant, said nothing good or bad: the truth was, he had not
  • altogether marshal’d his ideas; he wish’d for another conference, and as
  • the corporal was mounting up the three steps before the door--he hem’d
  • twice--a portion of my uncle _Toby’s_ most modest spirits fled, at each
  • expulsion, towards the corporal; he stood with the rapper of the door
  • suspended for a full minute in his hand, he scarce knew why. _Bridget_
  • stood perdue within, with her finger and her thumb upon the latch,
  • benumb’d with expectation; and Mrs. _Wadman_, with an eye ready to be
  • deflowered again, sat breathless behind the window-curtain of her
  • bed-chamber, watching their approach.
  • _Trim!_ said my uncle _Toby_----but as he articulated the word, the
  • minute expired, and _Trim_ let fall the rapper.
  • My uncle _Toby_ perceiving that all hopes of a conference were knock’d
  • on the head by it------whistled Lillabullero.
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • As Mrs. _Bridget’s_ finger and thumb were upon the latch, the corporal
  • did not knock as oft as perchance your honour’s taylor ----I might have
  • taken my example something nearer home; for I owe mine, some five and
  • twenty pounds at least, and wonder at the man’s patience----
  • ----But this is nothing at all to the world: only ’tis a cursed thing to
  • be in debt, and there seems to be a fatality in the exchequers of some
  • poor princes, particularly those of our house, which no Economy can bind
  • down in irons: for my own part, I’m persuaded there is not any one
  • prince, prelate, pope, or potentate, great or small upon earth, more
  • desirous in his heart of keeping straight with the world than I am----
  • or who takes more likely means for it. I never give above half a
  • guinea----or walk with boots----or cheapen tooth-picks----or lay out a
  • shilling upon a band-box the year round; and for the six months I’m in
  • the country, I’m upon so small a scale, that with all the good temper in
  • the world, I outdo _Rousseau_, a bar length------for I keep neither man
  • or boy, or horse, or cow, or dog, or cat, or anything that can eat or
  • drink, except a thin poor piece of a Vestal (to keep my fire in), and
  • who has generally as bad an appetite as myself----but if you think this
  • makes a philosopher of me ----I would not my good people! give a rush
  • for your judgments.
  • True philosophy----but there is no treating the subject whilst my uncle
  • is whistling Lillabullero.
  • ----Let us go into the house.
  • CHAPTER XVIII
  • *
  • *
  • *
  • *
  • *
  • *
  • CHAPTER XIX
  • *
  • *
  • *
  • *
  • *
  • *
  • CHAPTER XX
  • ------ * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * *.------
  • ----You shall see the very place, Madam; said my uncle _Toby_.
  • Mrs. _Wadman_ blush’d----look’d towards the door----turn’d
  • pale----blush’d slightly again----recover’d her natural
  • colour----blush’d worse than ever; which, for the sake of the unlearned
  • reader, I translate thus----
  • “_L--d! I cannot look at it----
  • What would the world say if I look’d at it?
  • I should drop down, if I look’d at it--
  • I wish I could look at it----
  • There can be no sin in looking at it.
  • ----I will look at it._”
  • Whilst all this was running through Mrs. _Wadman’s_ imagination, my
  • uncle _Toby_ had risen from the sopha, and got to the other side of the
  • parlour door, to give _Trim_ an order about it in the passage----
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * ----I believe it is in the garret, said my uncle _Toby_
  • ----I saw it there, an’ please your honour, this morning, answered
  • _Trim_ ----Then prithee, step directly for it, _Trim_, said my uncle
  • _Toby_, and bring it into the parlour.
  • The corporal did not approve of the orders, but most chearfully obeyed
  • them. The first was not an act of his will--the second was; so he put on
  • his _Montero_-cap, and went as fast as his lame knee would let him. My
  • uncle _Toby_ returned into the parlour, and sat himself down again upon
  • the sopha.
  • ----You shall lay your finger upon the place--said my uncle _Toby_.
  • ----I will not touch it, however, quoth Mrs. _Wadman_ to herself.
  • This requires a second translation: --it shews what little knowledge is
  • got by mere words--we must go up to the first springs.
  • Now in order to clear up the mist which hangs upon these three pages,
  • I must endeavour to be as clear as possible myself.
  • Rub your hands thrice across your foreheads--blow your noses--cleanse
  • your emunctories--sneeze, my good people! ----God bless you----
  • Now give me all the help you can.
  • CHAPTER XXI
  • As there are fifty different ends (counting all ends in----as well civil
  • as religious) for which a woman takes a husband, she first sets about
  • and carefully weighs, then separates and distinguishes in her mind,
  • which of all that number of ends is hers: then by discourse, enquiry,
  • argumentation, and inference, she investigates and finds out whether she
  • has got hold of the right one----and if she has----then, by pulling it
  • gently this way and that way, she further forms a judgment, whether it
  • will not break in the drawing.
  • The imagery under which _Slawkenbergius_ impresses this upon the
  • reader’s fancy, in the beginning of his third Decad, is so ludicrous,
  • that the honour I bear the sex, will not suffer me to quote
  • it----otherwise it is not destitute of humour.
  • “She first, saith _Slawkenbergius_, stops the asse, and holding his
  • halter in her left hand (lest he should get away) she thrusts her right
  • hand into the very bottom of his pannier to search for it --For what?
  • --you’ll not know the sooner, quoth _Slawkenbergius_, for interrupting
  • me----
  • “I have nothing, good Lady, but empty bottles;” says the asse.
  • “I’m loaded with tripes;” says the second.
  • ----And thou art little better, quoth she to the third; for nothing is
  • there in thy panniers but trunk-hose and pantofles--and so to the fourth
  • and fifth, going on one by one through the whole string, till coming to
  • the asse which carries it, she turns the pannier upside down, looks at
  • it--considers it--samples it--measures it--stretches it--wets it--dries
  • it--then takes her teeth both to the warp and weft of it.
  • ----Of what? for the love of Christ!
  • I am determined, answered _Slawkenbergius_, that all the powers upon
  • earth shall never wring that secret from my breast.
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • We live in a world beset on all sides with mysteries and riddles--and so
  • ’tis no matter----else it seems strange, that Nature, who makes
  • everything so well to answer its destination, and seldom or never errs,
  • unless for pastime, in giving such forms and aptitudes to whatever
  • passes through her hands, that whether she designs for the plough, the
  • caravan, the cart--or whatever other creature she models, be it but an
  • asse’s foal, you are sure to have the thing you wanted; and yet at the
  • same time should so eternally bungle it as she does, in making so simple
  • a thing as a married man.
  • Whether it is in the choice of the clay----or that it is frequently
  • spoiled in the baking; by an excess of which a husband may turn out too
  • crusty (you know) on one hand----or not enough so, through defect of
  • heat, on the other----or whether this great Artificer is not so
  • attentive to the little Platonic exigences _of that part_ of the
  • species, for whose use she is fabricating _this_----or that her Ladyship
  • sometimes scarce knows what sort of a husband will do ----I know not: we
  • will discourse about it after supper.
  • It is enough, that neither the observation itself, or the reasoning upon
  • it, are at all to the purpose----but rather against it; since with
  • regard to my uncle _Toby’s_ fitness for the marriage state, nothing was
  • ever better: she had formed him of the best and kindliest clay----had
  • temper’d it with her own milk, and breathed into it the sweetest
  • spirit----she had made him all gentle, generous, and humane----she had
  • filled his heart with trust and confidence, and disposed every passage
  • which led to it, for the communication of the tenderest offices----she
  • had moreover considered the other causes for which matrimony was
  • ordained----
  • And accordingly * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * *.
  • The DONATION was not defeated by my uncle _Toby’s_ wound.
  • Now this last article was somewhat apocryphal; and the Devil, who is the
  • great disturber of our faiths in this world, had raised scruples in Mrs.
  • _Wadman’s_ brain about it; and like a true devil as he was, had done his
  • own work at the same time, by turning my uncle _Toby’s_ Virtue thereupon
  • into nothing but _empty bottles_, _tripes_, _trunk-hose_, and
  • _pantofles_.
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • Mrs. _Bridget_ had pawn’d all the little stock of honour a poor
  • chambermaid was worth in the world, that she would get to the bottom of
  • the affair in ten days; and it was built upon one of the most
  • concessible _postulata_ in nature: namely, that whilst my uncle _Toby_
  • was making love to her mistress, the corporal could find nothing better
  • to do, than make love to her---- “_And I’ll let him as much as he will_,
  • said _Bridget_, _to get it out of him_.”
  • Friendship has two garments; an outer and an under one. _Bridget_ was
  • serving her mistress’s interests in the one--and doing the thing which
  • most pleased herself in the other; so had as many stakes depending upon
  • my uncle _Toby’s_ wound, as the Devil himself ----Mrs. _Wadman_ had but
  • one--and as it possibly might be her last (without discouraging Mrs.
  • _Bridget_, or discrediting her talents) was determined to play her cards
  • herself.
  • She wanted not encouragement: a child might have look’d into his
  • hand----there was such a plainness and simplicity in his playing out
  • what trumps he had----with such an unmistrusting ignorance of the
  • _ten-ace_----and so naked and defenceless did he sit upon the same sopha
  • with widow _Wadman_, that a generous heart would have wept to have won
  • the game of him.
  • Let us drop the metaphor.
  • CHAPTER XXIV
  • ----And the story too--if you please: for though I have all along been
  • hastening towards this part of it, with so much earnest desire, as well
  • knowing it to be the choicest morsel of what I had to offer to the
  • world, yet now that I am got to it, any one is welcome to take my pen,
  • and go on with the story for me that will --I see the difficulties of
  • the descriptions I’m going to give--and feel my want of powers.
  • It is one comfort at least to me, that I lost some fourscore ounces of
  • blood this week in a most uncritical fever which attacked me at the
  • beginning of this chapter; so that I have still some hopes remaining, it
  • may be more in the serous or globular parts of the blood, than in the
  • subtile _aura_ of the brain----be it which it will--an Invocation can do
  • no hurt----and I leave the affair entirely to the _invoked_, to inspire
  • or to inject me according as he sees good.
  • THE INVOCATION
  • Gentle Spirit of sweetest humour, who erst did sit upon the easy pen of
  • my beloved CERVANTES; Thou who glided’st daily through his lattice, and
  • turned’st the twilight of his prison into noonday brightness by thy
  • presence----tinged’st his little urn of water with heaven-sent nectar,
  • and all the time he wrote of _Sancho_ and his master, didst cast thy
  • mystic mantle o’er his wither’d stump,[9.1] and wide extended it to all
  • the evils of his life------
  • ----Turn in hither, I beseech thee! ----behold these breeches! ----they
  • are all I have in the world----that piteous rent was given them at
  • _Lyons_------
  • My shirts! see what a deadly schism has happen’d amongst ’em--for the
  • laps are in _Lombardy_, and the rest of ’em here --I never had but six,
  • and a cunning gypsey of a laundress at _Milan_ cut me off the
  • _fore_-laps of five --To do her justice, she did it with some
  • consideration--for I was returning out of _Italy_.
  • And yet, notwithstanding all this, and a pistol tinderbox which was
  • moreover filch’d from me at _Sienna_, and twice that I pay’d five Pauls
  • for two hard eggs, once at _Raddicoffini_, and a second time at
  • _Capua_ --I do not think a journey through _France_ and _Italy_, provided
  • a man keeps his temper all the way, so bad a thing as some people would
  • make you believe: there must be _ups_ and _downs_, or how the duce
  • should we get into vallies where Nature spreads so many tables of
  • entertainment. --’Tis nonsense to imagine they will lend you their
  • voitures to be shaken to pieces for nothing; and unless you pay twelve
  • sous for greasing your wheels, how should the poor peasant get butter to
  • his bread? --We really expect too much--and for the livre or two above
  • par for your suppers and bed--at the most they are but one shilling and
  • ninepence halfpenny----who would embroil their philosophy for it? for
  • heaven’s and for your own sake, pay it----pay it with both hands open,
  • rather than leave _Disappointment_ sitting drooping upon the eye of your
  • fair Hostess and her Damsels in the gateway, at your departure----and
  • besides, my dear Sir, you get a sisterly kiss of each of ’em worth a
  • pound----at least I did----
  • ----For my uncle _Toby’s_ amours running all the way in my head, they
  • had the same effect upon me as if they had been my own ----I was in the
  • most perfect state of bounty and good-will; and felt the kindliest
  • harmony vibrating within me, with every oscillation of the chaise alike;
  • so that whether the roads were rough or smooth, it made no difference;
  • everything I saw or had to do with, touch’d upon some secret spring
  • either of sentiment or rapture.
  • ----They were the sweetest notes I ever heard; and I instantly let down
  • the fore-glass to hear them more distinctly----’Tis _Maria_; said the
  • postillion, observing I was listening ----Poor _Maria_, continued he
  • (leaning his body on one side to let me see her, for he was in a line
  • betwixt us), is sitting upon a bank playing her vespers upon her pipe,
  • with her little goat beside her.
  • The young fellow utter’d this with an accent and a look so perfectly in
  • tune to a feeling heart, that I instantly made a vow, I would give him a
  • four-and-twenty sous piece, when I got to _Moulins_----
  • ------And who is _poor Maria?_ said I.
  • The love and piety of all the villages around us; said the
  • postillion----it is but three years ago, that the sun did not shine upon
  • so fair, so quick-witted and amiable a maid; and better fate did _Maria_
  • deserve, than to have her Banns forbid, by the intrigues of the curate
  • of the parish who published them----
  • He was going on, when _Maria_, who had made a short pause, put the pipe
  • to her mouth, and began the air again----they were the same notes;
  • ----yet were ten times sweeter: It is the evening service to the Virgin,
  • said the young man----but who has taught her to play it--or how she came
  • by her pipe, no one knows; we think that heaven has assisted her in
  • both; for ever since she has been unsettled in her mind, it seems her
  • only consolation----she has never once had the pipe out of her hand, but
  • plays that _service_ upon it almost night and day.
  • The postillion delivered this with so much discretion and natural
  • eloquence, that I could not help decyphering something in his face above
  • his condition, and should have sifted out his history, had not poor
  • _Maria_ taken such full possession of me.
  • We had got up by this time almost to the bank where _Maria_ was sitting:
  • she was in a thin white jacket, with her hair, all but two tresses,
  • drawn up into a silk-net, with a few olive leaves twisted a little
  • fantastically on one side----she was beautiful; and if ever I felt the
  • full force of an honest heart-ache, it was the moment I saw her----
  • ----God help her! poor damsel! above a hundred masses, said the
  • postillion, have been said in the several parish churches and convents
  • around, for her, ----but without effect; we have still hopes, as she is
  • sensible for short intervals, that the Virgin at last will restore her
  • to herself; but her parents, who know her best, are hopeless upon that
  • score, and think her senses are lost for ever.
  • As the postillion spoke this, MARIA made a cadence so melancholy, so
  • tender and querulous, that I sprung out of the chaise to help her, and
  • found myself sitting betwixt her and her goat before I relapsed from my
  • enthusiasm.
  • MARIA look’d wistfully for some time at me, and then at her goat----and
  • then at me----and then at her goat again, and so on, alternately----
  • ----Well, _Maria_, said I softly ----What resemblance do you find?
  • I do entreat the candid reader to believe me, that it was from the
  • humblest conviction of what a _Beast_ man is, ----that I asked the
  • question; and that I would not have let fallen an unseasonable
  • pleasantry in the venerable presence of Misery, to be entitled to all
  • the wit that ever _Rabelais_ scatter’d----and yet I own my heart smote
  • me, and that I so smarted at the very idea of it, that I swore I would
  • set up for Wisdom, and utter grave sentences the rest of my days----and
  • never----never attempt again to commit mirth with man, woman, or child,
  • the longest day I had to live.
  • As for writing nonsense to them ----I believe, there was a reserve--but
  • that I leave to the world.
  • Adieu, _Maria!_--adieu, poor hapless damsel! ----some time, but not
  • _now_, I may hear thy sorrows from thy own lips----but I was deceived;
  • for that moment she took her pipe and told me such a tale of woe with
  • it, that I rose up, and with broken and irregular steps walk’d softly to
  • my chaise.
  • ------What an excellent inn at _Moulins!_
  • [Footnote 9.1: He lost his hand at the battle of _Lepanto_.]
  • CHAPTER XXV
  • When we have got to the end of this chapter (but not before) we must all
  • turn back to the two blank chapters, on the account of which my honour
  • has lain bleeding this half hour ----I stop it, by pulling off one of my
  • yellow slippers and throwing it with all my violence to the opposite
  • side of my room, with a declaration at the heel of it----
  • ----That whatever resemblance it may bear to half the chapters which are
  • written in the world, or for aught I know may be now writing in it--that
  • it was as casual as the foam of _Zeuxis_ his horse; besides, I look upon
  • a chapter which has _only nothing in it_, with respect; and considering
  • what worse things there are in the world ----That it is no way a proper
  • subject for satire------
  • ----Why then was it left so? And here without staying for my reply,
  • shall I be called as many blockheads, numsculs, doddypoles, dunderheads,
  • ninny-hammers, goosecaps, joltheads, nincompoops, and sh- -t-a-beds----
  • and other unsavoury appellations, as ever the cake-bakers of _Lernè_
  • cast in the teeth of King _Garangantan’s_ shepherds ----And I’ll let
  • them do it, as _Bridget_ said, as much as they please; for how was it
  • possible they should foresee the necessity I was under of writing the
  • 25th chapter of my book, before the 18th, &c.?
  • ------So I don’t take it amiss ----All I wish is, that it may be a lesson
  • to the world, “_to let people tell their stories their own way_.”
  • THE EIGHTEENTH CHAPTER
  • As Mrs. _Bridget_ opened the door before the corporal had well given the
  • rap, the interval betwixt that and my uncle _Toby’s_ introduction into
  • the parlour, was so short, that Mrs. _Wadman_ had but just time to get
  • from behind the curtain----lay a Bible upon the table, and advance a
  • step or two towards the door to receive him.
  • My uncle _Toby_ saluted Mrs. _Wadman_, after the manner in which women
  • were saluted by men in the year of our Lord God one thousand seven
  • hundred and thirteen----then facing about, he march’d up abreast with
  • her to the sopha, and in three plain words----though not before he was
  • sat down----nor after he was sat down----but as he was sitting down,
  • told her, “_he was in love_”----so that my uncle _Toby_ strained himself
  • more in the declaration than he needed.
  • Mrs. _Wadman_ naturally looked down, upon a slit she had been darning up
  • in her apron, in expectation every moment, that my uncle _Toby_ would go
  • on; but having no talents for amplification, and Love moreover of all
  • others being a subject of which he was the least a master ----When he
  • had told Mrs. _Wadman_ once that he loved her, he let it alone, and left
  • the matter to work after its own way.
  • My father was always in raptures with this system of my uncle _Toby’s_,
  • as he falsely called it, and would often say, that could his brother
  • _Toby_ to his process have added but a pipe of tobacco----he had
  • wherewithal to have found his way, if there was faith in a _Spanish_
  • proverb, towards the hearts of half the women upon the globe.
  • My uncle _Toby_ never understood what my father meant; nor will I
  • presume to extract more from it, than a condemnation of an error which
  • the bulk of the world lie under----but the _French_ every one of ’em to
  • a man, who believe in it, almost, as much as the REAL PRESENCE, “_That
  • talking of love, is making it_.”
  • ------I would as soon set about making a black-pudding by the same
  • receipt.
  • Let us go on: Mrs. _Wadman_ sat in expectation my uncle _Toby_ would do
  • so, to almost the first pulsation of that minute, wherein silence on one
  • side or the other, generally becomes indecent: so edging herself a
  • little more towards him, and raising up her eyes, sub-blushing, as she
  • did it----she took up the gauntlet----or the discourse (if you like it
  • better) and communed with my uncle _Toby_, thus:
  • The cares and disquietudes of the marriage state, quoth Mrs. _Wadman_,
  • are very great. I suppose so--said my uncle _Toby_: and therefore when a
  • person, continued Mrs. _Wadman_, is so much at his ease as you are--so
  • happy, captain _Shandy_, in yourself, your friends and your
  • amusements --I wonder, what reasons can incline you to the state------
  • ----They are written, quoth my uncle _Toby_, in the Common-Prayer Book.
  • Thus far my uncle _Toby_ went on warily, and kept within his depth,
  • leaving Mrs. _Wadman_ to sail upon the gulph as she pleased.
  • ----As for children--said Mrs. _Wadman_--though a principal end perhaps
  • of the institution, and the natural wish, I suppose, of every
  • parent--yet do not we all find, they are certain sorrows, and very
  • uncertain comforts? and what is there, dear sir, to pay one for the
  • heart-aches--what compensation for the many tender and disquieting
  • apprehensions of a suffering and defenceless mother who brings them into
  • life? I declare, said my uncle _Toby_, smit with pity, I know of none;
  • unless it be the pleasure which it has pleased God----
  • A fiddlestick! quoth she.
  • CHAPTER THE NINETEENTH
  • Now there are such an infinitude of notes, tunes, cants, chants, airs,
  • looks, and accents with which the word _fiddlestick_ may be pronounced
  • in all such causes as this, every one of ’em impressing a sense and
  • meaning as different from the other, as _dirt_ from _cleanliness_ --That
  • Casuists (for it is an affair of conscience on that score) reckon up no
  • less than fourteen thousand in which you may do either right or wrong.
  • Mrs. _Wadman_ hit upon the _fiddlestick_, which summoned up all my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ modest blood into his cheeks--so feeling within himself that he
  • had somehow or other got beyond his depth, he stopt short; and without
  • entering further either into the pains or pleasures of matrimony, he
  • laid his hand upon his heart, and made an offer to take them as they
  • were, and share them along with her.
  • When my uncle _Toby_ had said this, he did not care to say it again; so
  • casting his eye upon the Bible which Mrs. _Wadman_ had laid upon the
  • table, he took it up; and popping, dear soul! upon a passage in it, of
  • all others the most interesting to him--which was the siege of
  • _Jericho_--he set himself to read it over--leaving his proposal of
  • marriage, as he had done his declaration of love, to work with her after
  • its own way. Now it wrought neither as an astringent or a loosener; nor
  • like opium, or bark, or mercury, or buckthorn, or any one drug which
  • nature had bestowed upon the world--in short, it work’d not at all in
  • her; and the cause of that was, that there was something working there
  • before ----Babbler that I am! I have anticipated what it was a dozen
  • times; but there is fire still in the subject----allons.
  • CHAPTER XXVI
  • It is natural for a perfect stranger who is going from _London_ to
  • _Edinburgh_, to enquire before he sets out, how many miles to _York_;
  • which is about the half way----nor does anybody wonder, if he goes on
  • and asks about the corporation, &c.--
  • It was just as natural for Mrs. _Wadman_, whose first husband was all
  • his time afflicted with a Sciatica, to wish to know how far from the hip
  • to the groin; and how far she was likely to suffer more or less in her
  • feelings, in the one case than in the other.
  • She had accordingly read _Drake’s_ anatomy from one end to the other.
  • She had peeped into _Wharton_ upon the brain, and borrowed[9.2] _Graaf_
  • upon the bones and muscles; but could make nothing of it.
  • She had reason’d likewise from her own powers----laid down
  • theorems----drawn consequences, and come to no conclusion.
  • To clear up all, she had twice asked Doctor _Slop_, “if poor captain
  • _Shandy_ was ever likely to recover of his wound----?”
  • ----He is recovered, Doctor _Slop_ would say----
  • What! quite?
  • Quite: madam----
  • But what do you mean by a recovery? Mrs. _Wadman_ would say.
  • Doctor _Slop_ was the worst man alive at definitions; and so Mrs.
  • _Wadman_ could get no knowledge: in short, there was no way to extract
  • it, but from my uncle _Toby_ himself.
  • There is an accent of humanity in an enquiry of this kind which lulls
  • SUSPICION to rest----and I am half persuaded the serpent got pretty near
  • it, in his discourse with Eve; for the propensity in the sex to be
  • deceived could not be so great, that she should have boldness to hold
  • chat with the devil, without it ----But there is an accent of
  • humanity----how shall I describe it? --’tis an accent which covers the
  • part with a garment, and gives the enquirer a right to be as particular
  • with it, as your body-surgeon.
  • “----Was it without remission?--
  • “----Was it more tolerable in bed?
  • “----Could he lie on both sides alike with it?
  • “--Was he able to mount a horse?
  • “--Was motion bad for it?” _et cætera_, were so tenderly spoke to, and
  • so directed towards my uncle _Toby’s_ heart, that every item of them
  • sunk ten times deeper into it than the evils themselves----but when Mrs.
  • _Wadman_ went round about by _Namur_ to get at my uncle _Toby’s_ groin;
  • and engaged him to attack the point of the advanced counterscarp, and
  • _pêle mêle_ with the _Dutch_ to take the counterguard of St. _Roch_
  • sword in hand--and then with tender notes playing upon his ear, led him
  • all bleeding by the hand out of the trench, wiping her eye, as he was
  • carried to his tent ----Heaven! Earth! Sea! --all was lifted up--the
  • springs of nature rose above their levels--an angel of mercy sat besides
  • him on the sopha--his heart glow’d with fire--and had he been worth a
  • thousand, he had lost every heart of them to Mrs. _Wadman_.
  • --And whereabouts, dear Sir, quoth Mrs. _Wadman_, a little
  • categorically, did you receive this sad blow? ----In asking this
  • question, Mrs. _Wadman_ gave a slight glance towards the waistband of my
  • uncle _Toby’s_ red plush breeches, expecting naturally, as the shortest
  • reply to it, that my uncle _Toby_ would lay his forefinger upon the
  • place ----It fell out otherwise----for my uncle _Toby_ having got his
  • wound before the gate of St. _Nicolas_, in one of the traverses of the
  • trench opposite to the salient angle of the demibastion of St. _Roch_;
  • he could at any time stick a pin upon the identical spot of ground where
  • he was standing when the stone struck him: this struck instantly upon my
  • uncle _Toby’s_ sensorium----and with it, struck his large map of the
  • town and citadel of _Namur_ and its environs, which he had purchased and
  • pasted down upon a board, by the corporal’s aid, during his long
  • illness----it had lain with other military lumber in the garret ever
  • since, and accordingly the corporal was detached into the garret to
  • fetch it.
  • My uncle _Toby_ measured off thirty toises, with Mrs. _Wadman’s_
  • scissars, from the returning angle before the gate of St. _Nicolas_; and
  • with such a virgin modesty laid her finger upon the place, that the
  • goddess of Decency, if then in being--if not, ’twas her shade--shook her
  • head, and with a finger wavering across her eyes--forbid her to explain
  • the mistake.
  • Unhappy Mrs. _Wadman!_
  • ----For nothing can make this chapter go off with spirit but an
  • apostrophe to thee----but my heart tells me, that in such a crisis an
  • apostrophe is but an insult in disguise, and ere I would offer one to a
  • woman in distress--let the chapter go to the devil; provided any damn’d
  • critic _in keeping_ will be but at the trouble to take it with him.
  • [Footnote 9.2: This must be a mistake in Mr. _Shandy_; for
  • _Graaf_ wrote upon the pancreatick juice, and the parts of
  • generation.]
  • CHAPTER XXVII
  • My uncle _Toby’s_ Map is carried down into the kitchen.
  • CHAPTER XXVIII
  • ----And here is the _Maes_--and this is the _Sambre_; said the corporal,
  • pointing with his right hand extended a little towards the map and his
  • left upon Mrs. _Bridget’s_ shoulder----but not the shoulder next
  • him--and this, said he, is the town of _Namur_--and this the
  • citadel--and there lay the _French_--and here lay his honour and
  • myself----and in this cursed trench, Mrs. _Bridget_, quoth the corporal,
  • taking her by the hand, did he receive the wound which crush’d him so
  • miserably _here_. ----In pronouncing which, he slightly press’d the back
  • of her hand towards the part he felt for----and let it fall.
  • We thought, Mr. _Trim_, it had been more in the middle, ----said Mrs.
  • _Bridget_----
  • That would have undone us for ever--said the corporal.
  • ----And left my poor mistress undone too, said _Bridget_.
  • The corporal made no reply to the repartee, but by giving Mrs. _Bridget_
  • a kiss.
  • Come--come--said _Bridget_--holding the palm of her left hand parallel
  • to the plane of the horizon, and sliding the fingers of the other over
  • it, in a way which could not have been done, had there been the least
  • wart or protuberance----’Tis every syllable of it false, cried the
  • corporal, before she had half finished the sentence----
  • --I know it to be fact, said _Bridget_, from credible witnesses.
  • ------Upon my honour, said the corporal, laying his hand upon his heart
  • and blushing, as he spoke, with honest resentment--’tis a story, Mrs.
  • _Bridget_, as false as hell ----Not, said _Bridget_, interrupting him,
  • that either I or my mistress care a halfpenny about it, whether ’tis so
  • or no------only that when one is married, one would chuse to have such a
  • thing by one at least----
  • It was somewhat unfortunate for Mrs. _Bridget_, that she had begun the
  • attack with her manual exercise; for the corporal instantly *
  • * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * * * * * * *
  • * * * *.
  • CHAPTER XXIX
  • It was like the momentary contest in the moist eye-lids of an _April_
  • morning, “Whether _Bridget_ should laugh or cry.”
  • She snatched up a rolling-pin----’twas ten to one, she had laugh’d----
  • She laid it down----she cried; and had one single tear of ’em but tasted
  • of bitterness, full sorrowful would the corporal’s heart have been that
  • he had used the argument; but the corporal understood the sex, a _quart
  • major to a terce_ at least, better than my uncle _Toby_, and accordingly
  • he assailed Mrs. _Bridget_ after this manner.
  • I know, Mrs. _Bridget_, said the corporal, giving her a most respectful
  • kiss, that thou art good and modest by nature, and art withal so
  • generous a girl in thyself, that, if I know thee rightly, thou would’st
  • not wound an insect, much less the honour of so gallant and worthy a
  • soul as my master, wast thou sure to be made a countess of----but thou
  • hast been set on, and deluded, dear _Bridget_, as is often a woman’s
  • case, “to please others more than themselves----”
  • _Bridget’s_ eyes poured down at the sensations the corporal excited.
  • ----Tell me----tell me, then, my dear _Bridget_, continued the corporal,
  • taking hold of her hand, which hung down dead by her side, ----and,
  • giving a second kiss----whose suspicion has misled thee?
  • _Bridget_ sobb’d a sob or two----then open’d her eyes----the corporal
  • wiped ’em with the bottom of her apron----she then open’d her heart and
  • told him all.
  • CHAPTER XXX
  • My uncle _Toby_ and the corporal had gone on separately with their
  • operations the greatest part of the campaign, and as effectually cut off
  • from all communication of what either the one or the other had been
  • doing, as if they had been separated from each other by the _Maes_ or
  • the _Sambre_.
  • My uncle _Toby_, on his side, had presented himself every afternoon in
  • his red and silver, and blue and gold alternately, and sustained an
  • infinity of attacks in them, without knowing them to be attacks--and so
  • had nothing to communicate----
  • The corporal, on his side, in taking _Bridget_, by it had gain’d
  • considerable advantages----and consequently had much to
  • communicate----but what were the advantages----as well as what was the
  • manner by which he had seiz’d them, required so nice an historian, that
  • the corporal durst not venture upon it; and as sensible as he was of
  • glory, would rather have been contented to have gone bareheaded and
  • without laurels for ever, than torture his master’s modesty for a single
  • moment----
  • ----Best of honest and gallant servants! ----But I have apostrophiz’d
  • thee, _Trim!_ once before----and could I apotheosize thee also (that is
  • to say) with good company ----I would do it _without ceremony_ in the
  • very next page.
  • CHAPTER XXXI
  • Now my uncle _Toby_ had one evening laid down his pipe upon the table,
  • and was counting over to himself upon his finger ends (beginning at his
  • thumb) all Mrs. _Wadman’s_ perfections one by one; and happening two or
  • three times together, either by omitting some, or counting others twice
  • over, to puzzle himself sadly before he could get beyond his middle
  • finger ----Prithee, _Trim!_ said he, taking up his pipe again, ----bring
  • me a pen and ink: _Trim_ brought paper also.
  • Take a full sheet----_Trim!_ said my uncle _Toby_, making a sign with
  • his pipe at the same time to take a chair and sit down close by him at
  • the table. The corporal obeyed----placed the paper directly before
  • him----took a pen, and dipp’d it in the ink.
  • --She has a thousand virtues, _Trim!_ said my uncle _Toby_----
  • Am I to set them down, an’ please your honour? quoth the corporal.
  • ----But they must be taken in their ranks, replied my uncle _Toby_; for
  • of them all, _Trim_, that which wins me most, and which is a security
  • for all the rest, is the compassionate turn and singular humanity of her
  • character --I protest, added my uncle _Toby_, looking up, as he protested
  • it, towards the top of the ceiling ----That was I her brother, _Trim_, a
  • thousand fold, she could not make more constant or more tender enquiries
  • after my sufferings----though now no more.
  • The corporal made no reply to my uncle _Toby’s_ protestation, but by a
  • short cough--he dipp’d the pen a second time into the inkhorn; and my
  • uncle _Toby_, pointing with the end of his pipe as close to the top of
  • the sheet at the left hand corner of it, as he could get it----the
  • corporal wrote down the word HUMANITY - - - - thus.
  • Prithee, corporal, said my uncle _Toby_, as soon as _Trim_ had done
  • it------how often does Mrs. _Bridget_ enquire after the wound on the cap
  • of thy knee, which thou received’st at the battle of _Landen?_
  • She never, an’ please your honour, enquires after it at all.
  • That, corporal, said my uncle _Toby_, with all the triumph the goodness
  • of his nature would permit ----That shews the difference in the character
  • of the mistress and maid----had the fortune of war allotted the same
  • mischance to me, Mrs. _Wadman_ would have enquired into every
  • circumstance relating to it a hundred times ----She would have enquired,
  • an’ please your honour, ten times as often about your honour’s
  • groin ----The pain, _Trim_, is equally excruciating, ----and Compassion
  • has as much to do with the one as the other----
  • ----God bless your honour! cried the corporal----what has a woman’s
  • compassion to do with a wound upon the cap of a man’s knee? had your
  • honour’s been shot into ten thousand splinters at the affair of
  • _Landen_, Mrs. _Wadman_ would have troubled her head as little about it
  • as _Bridget_; because, added the corporal, lowering his voice, and
  • speaking very distinctly, as he assigned his reason----
  • “The knee is such a distance from the main body----whereas the groin,
  • your honour knows, is upon the very _curtain_ of the _place_.”
  • My uncle _Toby_ gave a long whistle----but in a note which could scarce
  • be heard across the table.
  • The corporal had advanced too far to retire----in three words he told
  • the rest----
  • My uncle _Toby_ laid down his pipe as gently upon the fender, as if it
  • had been spun from the unravellings of a spider’s web----
  • ------Let us go to my brother _Shandy’s_, said he.
  • CHAPTER XXXII
  • There will be just time, whilst my uncle _Toby_ and _Trim_ are walking
  • to my father’s, to inform you that Mrs. _Wadman_ had, some moons before
  • this, made a confident of my mother; and that Mrs. _Bridget_, who had
  • the burden of her own, as well as her mistress’s secret to carry, had
  • got happily delivered of both to _Susannah_ behind the garden-wall.
  • As for my mother, she saw nothing at all in it, to make the least bustle
  • about----but _Susannah_ was sufficient by herself for all the ends and
  • purposes you could possibly have, in exporting a family secret; for she
  • instantly imparted it by signs to _Jonathan_----and _Jonathan_ by tokens
  • to the cook as she was basting a loin of mutton; the cook sold it with
  • some kitchen-fat to the postillion for a groat, who truck’d it with the
  • dairy maid for something of about the same value----and though whisper’d
  • in the hay-loft, FAME caught the notes with her brazen trumpet, and
  • sounded them upon the house-top --In a word, not an old woman in the
  • village or five miles round, who did not understand the difficulties of
  • my uncle _Toby’s_ siege, and what were the secret articles which had
  • delayed the surrender.----
  • My father, whose way was to force every event in nature into an
  • hypothesis, by which means never man crucified TRUTH at the rate he
  • did----had but just heard of the report as my uncle _Toby_ set out; and
  • catching fire suddenly at the trespass done his brother by it, was
  • demonstrating to _Yorick_, notwithstanding my mother was sitting
  • by----not only, “That the devil was in women, and that the whole of the
  • affair was lust;” but that every evil and disorder in the world, of what
  • kind or nature soever, from the first fall of _Adam_, down to my uncle
  • _Toby’s_ (inclusive), was owing one way or other to the same unruly
  • appetite.
  • _Yorick_ was just bringing my father’s hypothesis to some temper, when
  • my uncle _Toby_ entering the room with marks of infinite benevolence and
  • forgiveness in his looks, my father’s eloquence rekindled against the
  • passion----and as he was not very nice in the choice of his words when
  • he was wroth----as soon as my uncle _Toby_ was seated by the fire, and
  • had filled his pipe, my father broke out in this manner.
  • CHAPTER XXXIII
  • ----That provision should be made for continuing the race of so great,
  • so exalted and godlike a Being as man --I am far from denying--but
  • philosophy speaks freely of everything; and therefore I still think and
  • do maintain it to be a pity, that it should be done by means of a
  • passion which bends down the faculties, and turns all the wisdom,
  • contemplations, and operations of the soul backwards----a passion, my
  • dear, continued my father, addressing himself to my mother, which
  • couples and equals wise men with fools, and makes us come out of our
  • caverns and hiding-places more like satyrs and four-footed beasts than
  • men.
  • I know it will be said, continued my father (availing himself of the
  • _Prolepsis_), that in itself, and simply taken----like hunger, or
  • thirst, or sleep----’tis an affair neither good or bad--or shameful or
  • otherwise. ----Why then did the delicacy of _Diogenes_ and _Plato_ so
  • recalcitrate against it? and wherefore, when we go about to make and
  • plant a man, do we put out the candle? and for what reason is it, that
  • all the parts thereof--the congredients--the preparations--the
  • instruments, and whatever serves thereto, are so held as to be conveyed
  • to a cleanly mind by no language, translation, or periphrasis whatever?
  • ----The act of killing and destroying a man, continued my father,
  • raising his voice--and turning to my uncle _Toby_--you see, is
  • glorious--and the weapons by which we do it are honourable ----We
  • march with them upon our shoulders ----We strut with them by our
  • sides ----We gild them ----We carve them ----We in-lay them ----We
  • enrich them ----Nay, if it be but a _scoundrel_ cannon, we cast an
  • ornament upon the breach of it.--
  • ----My uncle _Toby_ laid down his pipe to intercede for a better
  • epithet----and _Yorick_ was rising up to batter the whole hypothesis to
  • pieces----
  • ----When _Obadiah_ broke into the middle of the room with a complaint,
  • which cried out for an immediate hearing.
  • The case was this:
  • My father, whether by ancient custom of the manor, or as impropriator of
  • the great tythes, was obliged to keep a Bull for the service of the
  • Parish, and _Obadiah_ had led his cow upon a _pop-visit_ to him one day
  • or other the preceding summer ----I say, one day or other--because as
  • chance would have it, it was the day on which he was married to my
  • father’s housemaid----so one was a reckoning to the other. Therefore
  • when _Obadiah’s_ wife was brought to bed--_Obadiah_ thanked God----
  • ----Now, said _Obadiah_, I shall have a calf: so _Obadiah_ went daily to
  • visit his cow.
  • She’ll calve on _Monday_--on _Tuesday_--on _Wednesday_ at the
  • farthest----
  • The cow did not calve----no--she’ll not calve till next week----the cow
  • put it off terribly----till at the end of the sixth week _Obadiah’s_
  • suspicions (like a good man’s) fell upon the Bull.
  • Now the parish being very large, my father’s Bull, to speak the truth of
  • him, was no way equal to the department; he had, however, got himself,
  • somehow or other, thrust into employment--and as he went through the
  • business with a grave face, my father had a high opinion of him.
  • ----Most of the townsmen, an’ please your worship, quoth _Obadiah_,
  • believe that ’tis all the Bull’s fault----
  • ----But may not a cow be barren? replied my father, turning to Doctor
  • _Slop_.
  • It never happens: said Dr. _Slop_, but the man’s wife may have come
  • before her time naturally enough ----Prithee has the child hair upon his
  • head? --added Dr. _Slop_------
  • ----It is as hairy as I am; said _Obadiah_. ----_Obadiah_ had not been
  • shaved for three weeks ----Wheu - - u - - - - u - - - - - - - - cried my
  • father; beginning the sentence with an exclamatory whistle----and so,
  • brother _Toby_, this poor Bull of mine, who is as good a Bull as ever
  • p--ss’d, and might have done for _Europa_ herself in purer times----had
  • he but two legs less, might have been driven into Doctors Commons and
  • lost his character----which to a Town Bull, brother _Toby_, is the very
  • same thing as his life------
  • L--d! said my mother, what is all this story about?----
  • A COCK and a BULL, said _Yorick_ ----And one of the best of its kind,
  • I ever heard.
  • [Decorative Text:
  • The
  • Temple Press
  • LETCHWORTH
  • ENGLAND]
  • * * * * *
  • * * * *
  • * * * * *
  • Errors and Inconsistencies
  • Inconsistent capitalization of “Christian” or “christian” is unchanged.
  • Intentional anomalies:
  • BOOK IV: CHAPTER XXV:
  • --No doubt, Sir, --there is a whole chapter wanting here ...
  • [the text skips 10 pages (from 146 to 156 in this edition, with
  • a corresponding skip in signature numbers) and one chapter]
  • in this manner, [BRAVO]
  • [printed with a line through the word, as described]
  • please but your own fancy in it. // ------Was ever any thing
  • [these lines are separated by a blank page]
  • I leave this void space [printed with ⅓ line left blank]
  • BOOK IX: CHAPTER XVIII, CHAPTER XVIII
  • [each chapter heading is at the top of a blank page]
  • Typographical Errors corrected by transcriber:
  • this amiable turn of mind [or mind]
  • with what good intention and resolution you may [you way]
  • and a tolerable tune I thought it was [I though]
  • a dwarf in more articles than one. [drawf]
  • EARTH NO SUCH FOLKS! [N O SUCH]
  • the sun in its meridian [meridan]
  • for doing it to Lord *******. [too]
  • towards the top of the ceiling [cieling; _the word occurs elsewhere
  • with “ei”_]
  • Unchanged Forms:
  • [Editor’s Introduction]
  • All but a quarter of a century had passed
  • [“all but” appears to mean “almost”, i.e. from 1736 to 1759]
  • [Primary Text]
  • If thou art not too busy with CANDID [error for Candide?]
  • [Illustration (full-page black tombstone)]
  • [some editions have two consecutive black pages, positioned
  • immediately after the first “Alas, poor Yorick!”]
  • Footnote 1.3: Pentagraph, an instrument to copy ...
  • [expected form is Pantagraph]
  • between the scarp and counter-scarp
  • [anomalous hyphen may be intentional]
  • fee-farms, knights fees [may be error for “knights’ fees”]
  • 470 pounds averdupois [expected spelling is “avoirdupois”]
  • griping them hard together with one hand [expected “gripping”]
  • May he be cursed in his reins [not an error: _renibus_ = kidneys]
  • _ad ixcitandum focum_ (to stir up the fire)
  • [error for “excitandum”]
  • _Trim_ took his off the ground [missing “hat” may be intentional]
  • and many and many a look of mutual congratulation
  • [probably not an error]
  • in the corner of an old compaigning trunk [expected “campaigning”]
  • the one, of _Aætius_, [error for Æetius]
  • from _Tartary_ to _Terra del Fuogo_, [spelling unchanged]
  • Hyphens and Spaces:
  • Inconsistent hyphenization or spacing has not been regularized. Words
  • found only at line break were handled on a “best guess” basis.
  • anywhere and any where [both forms occur]
  • beforehand and before-hand [both forms occur at mid-line]
  • hornworks and horn-works
  • [both forms occur at mid-line; line-end occurrences have hyphen]
  • christian (Christian) name and christian-name
  • [both forms occur more than once]
  • be-virtu’d [the only occurrence of this word is at line-break]
  • shall not be opened again this twelve-/month
  • [all other occurrences of this word are at mid-line: the three
  • preceding have a hyphen; the one following does not]
  • Punctuation and Typography:
  • [Editor’s Introduction]
  • for about five years. [years,]
  • [Primary Text]
  • for a stage or two together, [the comma is intentional]
  • (quoth St. _Thomas!_) [. missing]
  • ’yclept logomachies [apostrophe in original]
  • rise up against him, [invisible , at line-end]
  • Because, continued Dr. _Slop_ [, missing]
  • for Mrs. _Shandy_ the mother is
  • [“Shandy” printed in Roman (non-italic) type]
  • ’Tis my comfort, however, I am not an obstinate one: therefore
  • [missing paragraph-final punctuation is intentional]
  • _Gordonius_, who (in his cap. 15. _de Amore_)
  • [closing parenthesis missing at line-end]
  • resumed the case at _Limerick_
  • [“Limerick” printed in Roman (non-italic) type]
  • the child looks extremely well, said my father,
  • [final , invisible at line-end]
  • if the _French_ are treacherous
  • [“French” printed in Roman (non-italic) type]
  • --or up to the ears in love [expected italics missing]
  • I shall never, an’ please your honour, [first , missing at line-end]
  • which _Plato_, I am persuaded, never [second , missing at line-end]
  • I’ll see the rest of these good gentry to-morrow, [missing comma]
  • the abbess of _Andoüillets’_ itself-- [apostrophe in original]
  • and sing, and say his prayers, and go to heaven [prayers.]
  • greater than the pain of a wound in the knee----or
  • [the lack of paragraph-final punctuation is intentional]
  • Greek:
  • οὐσία [ούσία]
  • Περιζώματα [Περιζώμαυτὲ]
  • περι φύσεως [accent missing in original]
  • Footnote 5.3: Χαλεπῆς νόσου, καὶ δυσιάτου ἀπαλλαγὴν [ἀπαλλαγὴ]
  • Footnote 5.6: Ὁ Ἶλος, τὰ αἰδοῖα περιτέμνεται, ταὐτὸ ποιῆσαι καὶ
  • τοὺς ἅμ’ αυτῷ συμμάχους καταναγκάσας.
  • [diacritics as printed: Ὁ Ιλος, τὰ ἀιδοῖα περιτέμνεται, τἀυτὸ
  • ποῖησαι καὶ τοὺς ἅμ’ αυτῷ συμμὰχους καταναγκάσας.]
  • γυναῖκα τε, βοῦν τ’ ἀροτῆρα [γυνᾶικα ... ἀροτὴρα]
  • Εὖγε! ὅτι φιλοσοφεῖς ἐν Πάθεσι [῏Ευγε! ... φιλοσοφεἶς]
  • End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Life and Opinions of Tristram
  • Shandy, Gentleman, by Laurence Sterne
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK TRISTRAM SHANDY ***
  • ***** This file should be named 39270-0.txt or 39270-0.zip *****
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/3/9/2/7/39270/
  • Produced by Louise Hope, Malcolm Farmer and the Online
  • Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.org/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org/license
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  • page at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
  • To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.